Diamond
Age
or
A
Young Lady's Illustrated Primer
Neil
Stephenson
By
nature, men are nearly alike; by practice, they get to be wide apart.
-Confucius
Moral
reforms and deteriorations are moved by large forces, and they are mostly
caused by reactions from the habits of a preceding period. Backwards and
forwards swings the great pendulum, and its alterna-tions are not determined by
a few distinguished folk clinging to the end of it.
-Sir
Charles Petrie, THE
VICTORIANS
PART THE FIRST
A
thete visits a mod parlor;
noteworthy
features of modern armaments.
The bells of St.
Mark's were ringing changes up on the mountain when Bud skated over to the mod
parlor to upgrade his skull gun. Bud had a nice new pair of blades with a top
speed of anywhere from a hundred to a hundred and fifty kilometers, depending
on how fat you were and whether or not you wore aero. Bud liked wearing
skin-tight leather, to show off his muscles. On a previous visit to the mod
parlor, two years ago, he had paid to have a bunch of 'sites implanted in his
muscles- little critters; too small to see or feel, that twitched Bud's muscle
fibers electrically according to a program that was supposed to maximize bulk.
Combined with the testosterone pump embedded in his forearm, it was like working
out in a gym night and day, except you didn't have to actually do anything and
you never got sweaty. The only drawback was that all the little twitches made
him kind of tense and jerky. He'd gotten used to it, but it still made him a
little hinky on those skates, especially when he was doing a hundred clicks an
hour through a crowded street. But few people hassled Bud, even when he knocked
them down in the street, and after today no one would hassle him
ever again.
Bud
had walked away, improbably unscratched, from his last job- decoy-
with something like a thousand yuks in his pocket. He'd spent a
third of it on new clothes, mostly black leather, another third of it on the
blades, and was about to spend the last third at the mod parlor. You could get
skull guns a lot cheaper, of course, but that would mean going over the
Causeway to Shanghai and getting a back-alley job from some Coaster, and
probably a nice bone infection in with the bargain, and he'd probably pick your
pocket while he had you theezed. Besides, you could only get into a Shanghai if
you were virgin. To cross the Causeway when you were already packing a skull
gun, like Bud, you had to bribe the shit out of numerous Shanghai cops. There
was no reason to economize here. Bud had a rich and boundless career ahead of
him, vaulting up a hierarchy of extremely dangerous drug-related occupations
for which decoy served as a paid audition of sorts. A start weapons system was
a wise investment.
The
damn bells kept ringing through the fog. Bud mumbled a command to his music
system, a phased acoustical array splayed across both eardrums like the seeds
on a strawberry. The volume went up but couldn't scour away the deep tones of
the carillon, which resonated in his long bones. He wondered whether, as long as
he was at the mod parlor, he should have the batteries drilled out of his right
mastoid and replaced. Supposedly they were ten-year jobs, but he'd had them for
six and he listened to music all the time, loud.
Three
people were waiting. Bud took a seat and skimmed a mediatron from the coffee
table; it looked exactly like a dirty, wrinkled, blank sheet of paper.
"'Annals of Self-Protection,'" he said, loud enough for everyone else
in the place to hear him. The logo of his favorite meedfeed coalesced on the
page. Mediaglyphics, mostly the cool
animated ones, arranged themselves in a grid. Bud scanned through them until he
found the one that denoted a comparison of a bunch of different stuff, and
snapped at it with his fingernail. New mediaglyphics appeared, surrounding
larger cine panes in which Annals staff tested several models
of skull guns against live and dead targets. Bud frisbeed the mediatron back
onto the table; this was the same review he'd been poring over for the last
day, they hadn't updated it, his decision was still valid.
One
of the guys ahead of him got a tattoo, which took about ten seconds. The other
guy just wanted his skull gun reloaded, which didn't take much longer. The girl
wanted a few 'sites replaced in her racting grid, mostly around her eyes, where
she was starting to wrinkle up. That took a while, so Bud picked up the mediatron again and went in a ractive, his
favorite, called Shut
Up or Die!
The mod artist
wanted to see Bud's yuks before he installed the gun, which in other
surroundings might have been construed as an insult but was standard business
practice here in the Leased Territories. When he was satisfied that this wasn't
a stick-up, he theezed Bud's forehead with a spray gun, scalped back a flap of
skin, and pushed a machine, mounted on a delicate robot arm like a dental tool,
over Bud's forehead. The arm homed in automatically on the old gun, moving with
alarming speed and determination. Bud, who was a little jumpy at the best of
times because of hismuscle stimulators, flinched a little. But the robot arm
was a hundred times faster than he was and plucked out the old gun unerringly.
The proprietor was watching all of this on a screen and had nothing to do
except narrate: "The hole in your skull's kind of rough, so the machine is
reaming it out to a larger bore- okay, now here comes the new gun."
A
nasty popping sensation radiated through Bud's skull when the robot arm snapped
in the new model. It reminded Bud of the days of his youth, when, from time to
time, one of his playmates would shoot him in the head with a BB gun. He
instantly developed a low headache.
"It's
loaded with a hundred rounds of popcorn," the proprietor said, "so
you can test out the yuvree. Soon as you're comfortable with it, I'll load it
for real." He stapled the skin of Bud's forehead back together so it'd
heal invisibly. You could pay the guy extra to leave a scar there on purpose,
so everyone would know you were packing, but Bud had heard that some chicks
didn't like it. Bud's relationship with the female sex was governed by a
gallimaufry of primal impulses, dim suppositions, deranged theories, overheard
scraps of conversation, half-remembered pieces of bad advice, and fragments of
no-doubt exaggerated anecdotes that amounted to rank superstition. In this
case, it dictated that he should not request the scar.
Besides,
he had a nice collection of Sights- not very tasteful sunglasses with
crosshairs hudded into the lens on your dominant eye. They did wonders for
marksmanship, and they were real obvious too, so that everyone knew you didn't
fuck with a man wearing Sights.
"Give
it a whirl," the guy said, and spun the chair around- it was a big old
antique barber chair upholstered in swirly plastic- so Bud was facing a
mannikin in the corner of the room. The mannikin had no face or hair and was
speckled with little burn marks, as was the wall behind it.
"Status,"
Bud said, and felt the gun buzz lightly in response. "Stand by," he
said, and got another answering buzz. He turned his face squarely toward the
mannikin.
"Hut,"
he said. He said it under his breath, through unmoving lips, but the gun heard
it; he felt a slight recoil tapping his head back, and a startling POP sounded
from the mannikin, accompanied by a flash of light on the wall up above its
head. Bud's headache deepened, but he didn't care.
"This
thing runs faster ammo, so you'll have to get used to aiming a tad lower,"
said the guy. So Bud tried it again and this time popped the mannikin right in
the neck.
"Great
shot! That would have decapped him if you were using Hellfire," the guy
said. "Looks to me like you know what you're doing- but there's other
options too. And three magazines so you can run multiple ammos."
"I
know," Bud said, "I been checking this thing out." Then, to the
gun, "Disperse ten, medium pattern." Then he said "hut"
again. His head snapped back much harder, and ten POPs went off at once, all
over the mannikin's body and the wall behind it. The room was getting smoky
now, starting to smell like burned plastic.
"You
can disperse up to a hundred," the guy said, "but the recoil'd
probably break your neck."
"I
think I got it down," Bud said, "so load me up. First magazine with
electrostun rounds. Second magazine with Cripplers. Third with Hellfires. And
get me some fucking aspirin."
Source
Victoria; description of its environs.
Source
Victoria's air intakes erupted from the summit of the Royal Ecological
Conservatory like a spray of hundred-meter-long calla lilies. Below, the
analogy was perfected by an inverted tree of rootlike plumbing that spread
fractally through the diamondoid bedrock of New Chusan, terminating in the warm
water of the South China Sea as numberless capillaries arranged in a belt
around the smartcoral reef, several dozen nieters beneath the surface. One big
huge pipe gulping up seawater would have done roughly the same thing, just as
the lilies could have been replaced by one howling maw, birds and litter
whacking into a bloody grid somewhere before they could gum up the works.
But
it wouldn't have been ecological. The geotects of Imperial Tectonics would not
have known an ecosystem if they'd been living in the middle of one. But they
did know that ecosystems were especially tiresome when they got fubared, so
they protected the environment with the same implacable, plodding,
green-visored mentality that they applied to designing overpasses and culverts.
Thus, water seeped into Source Victoria through microtubes, much the same way
it seeped into a beach, and air wafted into it silently down the artfully
skewed exponential horns of those thrusting calla lilies, each horn a point in
parameter space not awfully far from some central ideal. They were strong
enough to withstand typhoons but flexible enough to rustle in a breeze. Birds,
wandering inside, sensed a gradient in the air, pulling them down into night,
and simply chose to fly out. They didn't even get scared enough to shit.
The
lilies sprouted from a stadium-sized cut-crystal vase, the Diamond Palace,
which was open to the public. Tourists, aerobicizing pensioners, and ranks of
uniformed schoolchildren marched through it year in and year out, peering
through walls of glass (actually solid diamond, which was cheaper) at various
phases of the molecular disassembly line that was Source Victoria. Dirty air
and dirty water came in and pooled in tanks. Next to each tank was another tank
containing slightly cleaner air or cleaner water. Repeat several dozen times.
The tanks at the end were filled with perfectly clean nitrogen gas and perfectly
clean water.
The
line of tanks was referred to as a cascade, a rather abstract bit of engineer's
whimsy lost on the tourists who did not see anything snapshot-worthy there. All
the action took place in the walls separating the tanks, which were not really
walls but nearly infinite grids of submicroscopic wheels, ever-rotating and
many-spoked. Each spoke grabbed a nitrogen or water molecule on the dirty side
and released it after spinning around to the clean side. Things that weren't
nitrogen or water didn't get grabbed, hence didn't make it through. There were
also wheels for grabbing handy trace elements like carbon, sulfur, and
phosphorus; these were passed along smaller, parallel cascades until they were
also perfectly pure. The immaculate molecules wound up in reservoirs. Some of them got combined with
others to make simple but handy molecular widgets. In the end, all of them were
funneled into a bundle of molecular conveyor belts known as the Feed, of which
Source Victoria, and the other half-dozen Sources of Atlantis/Shanghai, were
the fountainheads.
Financial
complications of Bud's lifestyle; visit
to a banker.
Bud surprised himself with how long he went
before he had to use the skull gun in anger. Just knowing it was in there gave
him such an attitude that no one in his right mind would Rick with him,
especially when they saw his Sights and the black leather. He got his way just
by giving people the evil eye.
It
was time to move up the ladder. He sought work as a lookout. It wasn't easy.
The alternative pharmaceuticals industry ran on a start, just-in-time delivery
system, keeping inventories low so that there was never much evidence for the
cops to seize. The stuff was grown in illicit matter compilers, squirreled away
in vacant low-rent housing blocks, and carried by the runners to the actual
street dealers. Meanwhile, a cloud of lookouts and decoys circulated
probabilistically through the neighborhood, never stopping long enough to be
picked up for loitering, monitoring the approach of cops (or cops' surveillance
pods) through huds in their sunglasses.
When
Bud told his last boss to go Rick himself, he'd been pretty sure he could get a
runner job. But it hadn't panned out, and since then a couple more big airships
had come in from North America and disgorged thousands of white and black trash
into the job market. Now Bud was running out of money and getting tired of
eating the free food from the public matter compilers.
The
Peacock Bank was a handsome man with a salt-and-pepper goatee, smelling of
citrus and wearing an exceedingly snappy doublebreasted suit that displayed his
narrow waist to good effect. He was to be found in a rather seedy office
upstairs of a travel agency in one of the lurid blocks between the Aerodrome and
the brothel-lined waterfront.
The
banker didn't say much after they shook hands, just crossed his arms pensively
and leaned back against the edge of his desk. In this attitude he listened to
Bud's freshly composed prevarication, nodding from time to time as though Bud
had said something significant. This was a little disconcerting since Bud knew
it was all horseshit, but he had heard that these dotheads prided themselves on
customer service.
At
no particular point in the monologue, the banker cut Bud off simply by looking
up at him brightly. "You wish to secure a line ofcredit," he said, as
if he were pleasantly surprised, which was not terribly likely.
"I
guess you could say that," Bud allowed, wishing he'd known to put it in
such fine-sounding terminology.
The
banker reached inside his jacket and withdrew a piece of paper, folded in
thirds, from his breast pocket. "You may wish to peruse this
brochure," he said to Bud, and to the brochure itself he rattled off
something in an unfamiliar tongue. As Bud took it from the banker's hand, the
blank page generated a nice animated color logo and music. The logo developed
into a peacock. Beneath it, a video presentation commenced, hosted by a
similar-looking gent- sort of Indian looking but sort of Arab too. "'The
Parsis welcome you to Peacock Bank,'" he said.
"What's
a Parsi?" Bud said to the banker, who merely lowered his eyelids one click
and jutted his goatee at the piece of paper, which had picked up on his
question and already branched into an explanation. Bud ended up regretting
having asked, because the answer turned out to be a great deal of general
hoo-ha about these Parsis, who evidently wanted to make very sure no one
mistook them for dotheads or Pakis or Arabs- not that they had any problem with
those very fine ethnic groups, mind you. As hard as he tried not to pay
attention, Bud absorbed more than he wanted to know about the Parsis, their
oddball religion, their tendency to wander around, even their fucking cuisine,
which looked weird but made. his mouth water anyway. Then the brochure got back
to the business at hand, which was lines of credit.
Bud
had seen this all before. The Peacock Bank was running the same racket as all
the others: If they accepted you, they'd shoot the credit card right into you,
then and there, on the spot. These guys implanted it in the iliac crest of the
pelvis, some opted for the mastoid bone in the skull-anywhere a big bone was
close to the surface. A bone mount was needed because the card had to talk on
the radio, which meant it needed an antenna long enough to hear radio waves.
Then you could go around and buy stuff just by asking for it; Peacock Bank and
the merchant you were buying from and the card in your pelvis handled all the
details.
Banks
varied in their philosophy of interest rates, minimum monthly payments, and so
on. None of that mattered to Bud. What mattered was what they would do to him
if he got into arrears, and so after he had allowed a decent interval to pass
pretending to listen very carefully to all this crap about interest rates, he
inquired, in an offhanded way, like it was an afterthought, about their
collection policy. The banker glanced out the window like he hadn't noticed.
The
soundtrack segued into some kind of a cool jazz number and a scene of a
multicultural crew of ladies and gentlemen, not looking much like degraded
credit abusers at all, sitting around a table assembling chunky pieces of
ethnic jewelry by hand. They were having a good time too, sipping tea and
exchanging lively banter. Sipping too much tea, to Bud's suspicious eye, so
opaque to so many things yet so keen to the tactics of media manipulation. They
were making rather a big deal out of the tea.
He
noted with approval that they were wearing normal clothes, not uniforms, and
that men and women were allowed to mingle. "Peacock Bank supports a global
network of clean, safe, and commodious workhouses, so if unforeseen
circumstances should befall you during our relationship, or if you should
inadvertently anticipate your means, you can rely on being housed close to home
while you and the bank resolve any difficulties. Inmates in Peacock Bank
workhouses enjoy private beds and in some cases private rooms. Naturally your
children can remain with you for the duration of your visit. Working conditions
are among the best in the industry, and the high added-value content of our
folk jewelry operation means that, no matter the extent of your difficulties,
your situation will be happily resolved in practically no time."
"What's
the, uh, strategy for making sure people actually, you know, show up when
they're supposed to show up?" Bud said. At this point the banker lost
interest in the proceedings, straightened up, strolled around his desk, and sat
down, staring out the window across the water toward Pudong and Shanghai.
"That detail is not covered in the brochure," he said, "as most
of our prospective customers do not share your diligent attention to detail
insofar as that aspect of the arrangement is concerned."
He
exhaled through his nose, like a man eager not to smell something, and adjusted
his goatee one time. "The enforcement regime consists of three phases. We
have pleasant names for them, of course, but you might think of them,
respectively, as: one, a polite reminder; two, well in excess of your pain
threshold; three, spectacularly fatal."
Bud
thought about showing this Parsi the meaning of fatal right then and there, but
as a bank, the guy probably had pretty good security. Besides, it was pretty
standard policy, and Bud was actually kind of glad the guy'd given it to him
straight. "Okay, well, I'll get back to you," he said. "Mind if
I keep the brochure?"
The
Parsi waved him and the brochure away. Bud took to the streets again in search
of cash on easier terms.
A
visit from royalty; the Hackworths take
an airship holiday; Princess Charlotte's
birthday party; Hackworth encounters a
member of the peerage.
Three geodesic
seeds skated over the roofs and gardens of Atlantis/Shanghai on a Friday
afternoon, like the germs of some moon-size calabash. A pair of mooring masts
sprouted and grew from cricket ovals at Source Victoria Park. The smallest of
the airships was decorated with the royal ensign; she kept station overhead as
the two large ones settled toward their berths. Their envelopes, filled with
nothing, were predominantly transparent. Instead of blocking the sunlight, they
yellowed and puckered it, projecting vast abstract patterns of brighter and
not-as-bright that the children in their best crinolines and natty short-pants
suits tried to catch in their arms. A brass band played. A tiny figure in a
white dress stood at the rail of the airship Atlantis, waving
at the children below. They all knew that this must be the birthday girl
herself, Princess Charlotte, and they cheered and waved back.
Fiona
Hackworth had been wandering through the Royal Ecological Conservatory
bracketed by her parents, who hoped that in this way they could keep mud and
vegetable debris off her skirts. The strategy had not been completely
successful, but with a quick brush, John and Gwendolyn were able to transfer
most of the dirt onto their white gloves. From there it went straight into the
air. Most gentlemen's and ladies' gloves nowadays were constructed of
infinitesimal fabricules that knew how to eject dirt; you could thrust your
gloved hand into mud, and it would be white a few seconds later.
The
hierarchy of staterooms on Ęther matched the status of its
passengers perfectly, as these parts of the ship could be decompiled and remade
between voyages. For Lord Finkle-McGraw, his three children and their spouses, and Elizabeth (his first and only
grandchild so far), the airship lowered a private escalator thatcarried them up
into the suite at the very prow, with its nearly 180-degree forward view.
Aft
of the Finkle-McGraws were a dozen or so other Equity Lords, merely earl- or
baron-level, mostly ushering grandchildren rather than children into the class
B suites. Then it was executives, whose gold watch chains, adangle with tiny email-boxes,
phones, torches, snuffboxes, and other fetishes, curved round the dark
waistcoats they wore to deemphasize their bellies. Most of their children had
reached the age when they were no longer naturally endearing to anyone save
their own parents; the size when their energy was more a menace than a wonder;
and the level of intelligence when what would have been called innocence in a
smaller child was infuriating rudeness. A honeybee cruising for nectar is
pretty despite its implicit threat, but the same behavior in a hornet three
times larger makes one glance about for some handy swatting material. So on the
broad escalators leading to the first-class staterooms, one could see many
upper arms being violently grabbed by hissing fathers with their top hats askew
and teeth clenched and eyes swiveling for witnesses.
John
Percival Hackworth was an engineer. Most engineers were assigned to tiny rooms
with fold-down beds, but Hackworth bore the loftier title of Artifex and had
been a team leader on this very project, so he rated a second-class stateroom
with one double bed and a fold-out for Fiona. The porter brought their
overnight bags around just as Ęther was clearing her
mooring mast- a twenty-meter diamondoid truss that had already dissolved back
into the billiard-table surface of the oval by the time the ship had turned
itself to the south. Lying as close as it did to Source Victoria, the park was
riddled with catachthonic Feed lines, and anything could be grown there on
short notice.
The
Hackworths' stateroom was to starboard, and so as they accelerated away from
New Chusan, they got to watch the sun set on Shanghai, shining redly through
the city's eternal cloak of coal-smoke. Gwendolyn read Fiona stories in bed for
an hour while John perused the evening edition of the Times,
then spread out some papers on the room's tiny desk. Later, they both changed
into their evening clothes, primping quietly in twilight so as not to wake
Fiona. At nine o'clock they stepped into the passageway, locked the door, and
followed the sound of the big band to Ęther's grand
ballroom, where the dancing was just getting underway. The floor of the
ballroom was a slab of transpicuous diamond. The lights werelow. They seemed to
float above the glittering moonlit surface of the Pacific as they did the
waltz, minuet, Lindy, and electric slide into the night. . . .
Sunrise found
the three airships hovering over the South China Sea, no land visible. The
ocean was relatively shallow here, but only Hackworth and a few other engineers
knew that. The Hackworths had a passable view from their stateroom window, but
John woke up early and staked out a place on the diamond floor of the ballroom,
ordered an espresso and a Times from a waiter, and passed
the time pleasantly while Gwen and Fiona got themselves ready for the day. All
around them he could hear children speculating on what was about to happen.
Gwen
and Fiona arrived just late enough to make it interesting for John, who took
his mechanical pocket watch out at least a dozen times as he waited, and
finally ended up clutching it in one hand, nervously popping the lid open and
shut. Gwen folded her long legs and spread her skirts out prettily on the
transparent floor, drawing vituperative looks from several women who remained
standing. But John was relieved to see that most of these women were relatively
low-ranking engineers or their wives; none of the higher-ups needed to come to
the ballroom.
Fiona
collapsed to her hands and knees and practically shoved her face against the
diamond, her fundament aloft. Hackworth gripped the creases of his trousers,
hitched them up just a bit, and sank to one knee.
The
smart coral burst out of the depths with violence that shocked Hackworth, even
though he'd been in on the design, seen the trial runs. Viewed through the dark
surface of the Pacific, it was like watching an explosion through a pane of
shattered glass. It reminded him of pouring a jet of heavy cream into
coffee, watching it rebound from the
bottom of the cup in a turbulent fractal bloom that solidified just as it
dashed against the surface. The speed of this process was a carefully planned
sleight-of-hand; the smart coral had actually been growing down on the bottom
of the ocean for the last three months, drawing its energy from a supercon that
they'd grown across the seafloor for the occasion, extracting the necessary
atoms directly from the seawater and the gases dissolved therein. The process
happening below looked chaotic, and in a way it was; but each lithocule knew
exactly where it was supposed to go and what it was supposed to do. They were
tetrahedral building blocks of calcium and carbon, the size of poppyseeds, each
equipped with a power source, a brain, and a navigational system. They rose
from the bottom of the sea at a signal given by Princess Charlotte; she had
awakened to find a small present under her pillow, unwrapped it to find a
golden whistle on a chain, stood out on her balcony, and blown the whistle.
The
coral was converging on the site of the island from all directions, some of the
lithocules traveling several kilometers to reach their assigned positions. They
displaced a volume of water equal to the island itself, several cubic
kilometers in all. The result was furious turbulence, an upswelling in the
surface of the ocean that made some of the children scream, thinking it might
rise up and snatch the airship out of the sky; and indeed a few drops pelted
the ship's diamond belly, prompting the pilot to give her a little more
altitude. The curt maneuver forced hearty laughter from all of the fathers in
the ballroom, who were delighted by the illusion of danger and the impotence of
Nature.
The
foam and mist cleared away at some length to reveal a new island,
salmon-colored in the light of dawn. Applause and cheers diminished to a
professional murmur. The chattering of the astonished children was too loud and
high to hear.
It
would be a couple of hours yet. Hackworth snapped his fingers for a waiter and
ordered fresh fruit, juice, Belgian waffles, more coffee. They might as well
enjoy Ęther's
famous cuisine while the island sprouted castles, fauns, centaurs, and
enchanted forests.
Princess
Charlotte was the first human to set foot on the enchanted isle, tripping down
the gangway of Atlantis
with a couple of her little friends in tow, all of them looking
like tiny wildflowers in their ribboned sun-bonnets, all carrying little
baskets for souvenirs, though before long these were handed over to
governesses. The Princess faced Ęther and Chinook,
moored a couple of hundred meters away, and spoke to them in a normal tone of
voice that was, however, heard clearly by all; a nanophone was hidden somewhere
in the lace collar of her pinafore, tied into phased-audio-array systems grown
into the top layers of the island itself.
"I
would like to express my gratitude to Lord Finkle-McGraw and all the employees
of Machine-Phase Systems Limited for this most wonderful birthday present. Now,
children of Atlantis/Shanghai, won't you please join me at my birthday
party?"
The
children of Atlantis/Shanghai all screamed yes and rampaged down the
multifarious gangways of Ęther and Chinook,
which had all been splayed out for the occasion in hopes of preventing
bottlenecks, which might lead to injury or, heaven forbid, rudeness. For the
first few moments the children simply burst away from the airships like gas
escaping from a bottle. Then they began to converge on sources of wonderment: a
centaur, eight feet high if he was an inch, walking across a meadow with his
son and daughter cantering around him: Some baby dinosaurs. A cave angling
gently into a hillside, bearing promising signs of enchantment. A road winding
up another hill toward a ruined castle. The grownups mostly remained aboard the
airships and gave the children a few minutes to flame out, though Lord
Finkle-McGraw could be seen making his way toward Atlantis,
poking curiously at the earth with his walking-stick, just to make sure it was
fit to be trod by royal feet.
A
man and a woman descended the gangway of Atlantis: in a floral
dress that explored the labile frontier between modesty and summer comfort,
accessorized with a matching parasol, Queen Victoria II of Atlantis. In a natty
beige linen suit, her husband, the Prince Consort, whose name, lamentably, was
Joe. Joe, or Joseph as he was called in official circumstances, stepped down
first, moving in a somewhat pompous one-small-step-for-man gait, then turned to
face Her Majesty and offered his hand, which she accepted graciously but
perfunctorily, as if to remind everyone that she'd done crew at Oxford and had
blown off tension during her studies at Stanford B-School with lap-swimming,
rollerbiading, and jeet kune do. Lord Finkle-McGraw bowed as the royal
espadrilles touched down. She extended her hand, and he kissed it, which was
racy but allowed if you were old and stylish, like Alexander Chung-Sik
Finkle-McGraw.
"We
thank Lord Finkle-McGraw, Imperial Tectonics Limited, and Machine-Phase Systems
Limited once again for this lovely occasion. Now let us all enjoy these magnificent
surroundings before, like the first Atlantis, they sink forever beneath the
waves."
The
parents of Atlantis/Shanghai strolled down the gangways, though many had
retreated to their staterooms to change clothes upon catching sight of what the
Queen and Prince Consort were wearing. The big news, already being uploaded to
the Times by
telescope-wielding fashion columnists on board Ęther was
that the parasol was back.
Gwendolyn
Hackworth hadn't packed a parasol, but she was untroubled; she'd always had a
kind of natural, unconscious alamodality. She and John strolled down onto the
island. By the time Hackworth's eyes had adjusted to the sunlight, he was
already squatting and rubbing a pinch of soil between his fingertips. Gwen left
him to obsess and joined a group of other women, mostly engineers' wives, and
even a baronet-level Equity Participant or two.
Hackworth
found a concealed path that wound through trees up a hillside to a little grove
around a cool, clear pond of fresh water- he tasted it just to be sure. He
stood there for a while, looking out over the enchanted island, wondering what
Fiona was up to right now. This led to daydreaming: perhaps she had, by some
miracle, encountered Princess Charlotte, made friends with her, and was exploring
some wonder with her right now. This led him into a long reverie that was
interrupted when he realized that someone was quoting poetry to him. "Where had we been, we two, beloved
Friend! If in the season of unperilous
choice, In lieu of wandering, as we did,
through vales Rich with indigenous
produce, open ground Of Fancy, happy
pastures ranged at will, We had been
followed, hourly watched, and noosed,
Each in his several melancholy walk
Stringed like a poor man's heifer at its feed, Led through the lanes in forlorn
servitude."
Hackworth turned
to see that an older man was sharing his view. Genetically Asian, with a
somewhat Twangy North American accent, the man looked at least seventy. His
translucent skin was still stretched tight over broad cheekbones, but the
eyelids, ears, and the hollows of his cheeks were weathered and wrinkled. Under
his pith helmet no fringe of hair showed; the man was completely bald.
Hackworth gathered these clues slowly, until at last he realized who stood
before him.
"Sounds
like Wordsworth," Hackworth said.
The
man had been staring out over the meadows below. He cocked his head and looked
directly at Hackworth for the first time.
"The
poem?"
"Judging
by content, I'd guess The
Prelude."
"Nicely
done," the man said.
"John
Percival Hackworth at your service." Hackworth stepped toward the other
and handed him a card.
"Pleasure,"
the man said. He did not waste breath introducing himself. Lord Alexander
Chung-Sik Finkle-McGraw was one of several duke-level Equity Lords who had come
out of Apthorp. Apthorp was not a formal organization that could be looked up
in a phone book; in financial cant, it referred to a strategic alliance of
several immense companies, including Machine-Phase Systems Limited and Imperial
Tectonics Limited. When no one important was listening, its employees called it
John Zaibatsu, much as their forebears of a previous century had referred to
the East India Company as John Company.
MPS
made consumer goods and ITL made real estate, which was, as ever, where the
real money was. Counted by the hectare, it didn't amount to much- just a few
strategically placed islands really, counties rather than continents- but it
was the most expensive real estate in the world outside of a few blessed places
like Tokyo, San Francisco, and Manhattan. The reason was that Imperial
Tectonics had geotects, and geotects could make sure that every new piece of
land possessed the charms of Frisco, the strategic location of Manhattan, the
feng-shui of Hong Kong, the dreary but obligatory Lebensraum of
L.A. It was no longer necessary to send out dirty yokels in coonskin caps to
chart the wilderness, kill the abos, and clear-cut the groves; now all you
needed was a hot young geotect, a start matter compiler, and a jumbo Source.
Like
most other neo-Victorians, Hackworth could recite Finkle-McGraw's biography
from memory. The future Duke had been born in Korea and adopted, at the age of
six months, by a couple who'd met during grad school in Iowa City and later
started an organic farm near the Iowa/South Dakota border.
During
his early teens, a passenger jet made an improbable crashlanding at the Sioux
City airport, and Finkle-McGraw, along with several other members of his Boy
Scout troop who had been hastily mobilized by their scoutmaster, was standing
by the runway along with every ambulance, fireman, doctor, and nurse from a
radius of several counties. The uncanny efficiency with which the locals
responded to the crash was widely publicized and became the subject of a
made-for-TV movie. Finkle-McGraw couldn't understand why. They had simply done
what was reasonable and humane under the circumstances; why did people from
other parts of the country find this so difficult to understand?
This
tenuous grasp of American culture might have been owing to the fact that his
parents home-schooled him up to the age of fourteen. A typical school day for
Finkle-McGraw consisted of walking down to a river to study tadpoles or going
to the public library to check out a book on ancient Greece or Rome. The family
had little spare money, and vacations consisted of driving to the Rockies for
some backpacking, or up to northern Minnesota for canoeing. He probably learned
more on his summer vacations than most of his peers did during their school
years. Social contact with other children happened mostly through Boy Scouts or
church- the Finkle-McGraws belonged to a Methodist church, a Roman Catholic
church, and a tiny synagogue that met in a rented room in Sioux City.
His
parents enrolled him in a public high school, where he maintained a steady 2.0
average out of a possible 4. The coursework was so stunningly inane, the other
children so dull, that Finkle-McGraw developed a poor attitude. He earned some
repute as a wrestler and cross-country runner, but never exploited it for
sexual favors, which would have been easy enough in the promiscuous climate of
the times. He had some measure of the infuriating trait that causes a young man
to be a nonconformist for its own sake and found that the surest way to shock
most people, in those days, was to believe that some kinds of behavior were bad
and others good, and that it was reasonable to live one's life accordingly.
After
graduating from high school, he spent a year running certain parts of his
parents' agricultural business and then attended Iowa State University of
Science and Technology ("Science with Practice") in Ames. He enrolled
as an agricultural engineering major and switched to physics after his first
quarter. While remaining a nominal physics major for the next three years, he
took classes in whatever he wanted: information science, metallurgy, early
music.
He
never earned a degree, not because of poor performance but because of the
political climate; like many universities at the time, ISU insisted that its
students study a broad range of subjects, including arts and humanities.
Finkle-McGraw chose instead to read books, listen to music, and attend plays in
his spare time. One summer, as he was living in Ames and working as a research
assistant in a solid-state physics lab, the city was actually turned into an
island for a couple of days by an immense flood.
Along
with many other Midwesterners, Finkle-McGraw put in a few weeks building levees
out of sandbags and plastic sheeting. Once again he was struck by the national
media coverage- reporters from the coasts kept showing up and announcing, with
some bewilderment, that there had been no looting. The lesson learned during
the Sioux City plane crash was reinforced. The Los Angeles riots of the
previous year provided a vivid counterexample. Finkle-McGraw began to develop
an opinion that was to shape his political views in later years, namely, that
while people were not genetically
different, they were culturally as different as
they could possibly be, and that some cultures were simply better than others.
This was not a subjective value judgment, merely an observation that some
cultures thrived and expanded while others failed. It was a view implicitly
shared by nearly everyone but, in those days, never voiced.
Finkle-McGraw
left the university without a diploma and went back to the farm, which he
managed for a few years while his parents were preoccupied with his mother's
breast cancer. After her death, he moved to Minneapolis and took a job with a
company founded by one of his former professors, making scanning tunneling microscopes, which at that time
were newish devices capable of seeing and manipulating individual atoms. The
field was an obscure one then, the clients tended to be large research
institutions, and practical applications seemed far away. But it was perfect
for a man who wanted to study nanotechnology, and McGraw began doing so,
working late at night on his own time. Given his diligence, his
self-confidence, his intelligence ("adaptable, relentless, but not really
brilliant"), and the basic grasp of business he'd picked up on the farm,
it was inevitable that he would become one of the few hundred pioneers of
nanotechnological revolution; that his own company, which he founded five years
after he moved to Minneapolis, would survive long enough to be absorbed into
Apthorp; and that he would navigate Apthorp's political and economic currents
well enough to develop a decent equity position.
He
still owned the family farm in northwestern Iowa, along with a few hundred
thousand acres of adjoining land, which he was turning back into a tall-grass
prairie, complete with herds of bison and real Indians who had discovered that
riding around on horses hunting wild game was a better deal than pissing
yourself in gutters in Minneapolis or Seattle. But for the most part he stayed
on New Chusan, which was for all practical purposes his ducal estate. . . .
"Public
relations?" said Finkle-McGraw.
"Sir?"
Modern etiquette was streamlined; no "Your Grace" or other honorifics
were necessary in such an informal setting.
"Your
department, sir."
Hackworth
had given him his social card, which was appropriate under these circumstances
but revealed nothing else.
"Engineering.
Bespoke."
"Oh,
really. I'd thought anyone who could recognise Wordsworth must be one of those
artsy sorts in P.R."
"Not
in this case, sir. I'm an engineer. Just promoted to Bespoke recently. Did some
work on this project, as it happens."
"What
sort of work?"
"Oh, P.I. stuff mostly," Hackworth
said. Supposedly Finkle-McGraw still kept up with things and would recognize
the abbreviation for pseudo-intelligence, and perhaps even appreciate that
Hackworth had made this assumption.
Finkle-McGraw
brightened a bit. "You know, when I was a lad they called it A.I.
Artificial intelligence."
Hackworth
allowed himself a tight, narrow, and brief smile. "Well, there's something
to be said for cheekiness, I suppose."
"In
what way was pseudo-intelligence used here?"
"Strictly
on MPS's side of the project, sir." Imperial Tectonics had done the
island, buildings, and vegetation. Machine-Phase Systems-Hackworth's
employer-did anything that moved. "Stereotyped behaviors were fine for the
birds, dinosaurs, and so on, but for the centaurs and fauns we wanted more
interactivity, something that would provide an illusion of sentience."
"Yes,
well done, well done, Mr. Hackworth."
"Thank
you, sir."
"Now,
I know perfectly well that only the very finest engineers make it to Bespoke.
Suppose you tell me how an aficionado of Romantic poets made it into such a
position."
Hackworth
was taken aback by this and tried to respond without seeming to put on airs.
"Surely a man in your position does not see any contradiction-"
"But
a man in my position was not responsible for promoting you to Bespoke. A man in
an entirely different position was. And I am very much afraid that such men do
tend to see a contradiction."
"Yes,
I see. Well, sir, I studied English literature in college."
"Ah!
So you are not one of those who followed the straight and narrow path to
engineering."
"I
suppose not, sir."
"And
your colleagues at Bespoke?"
"Well,
if I understand your question, sir, I would say that, as compared with other
departments, a relatively large proportion of Bespoke engineers have had- well,
for lack of a better way of describing it, interesting lives."
"And
what makes one man's life more interesting than another's?"
"In
general, I should say that we find unpredictable or novel things more
interesting."
"That
is nearly a tautology." But while Lord Finkle-McGraw was not the sort to
express feelings promiscuously, he gave the appearance of being nearly
satisfied with the way the conversation was going. He turned back toward the
view again and watched the children for a minute or so, twisting the point of
his walking-stick into the ground as if he were still skeptical of the island's
integrity. Then he swept the stick around in an arc that encompassed half the
island. "How many of those children do you suppose are destined to lead
interesting lives?"
"Well,
at least two, sir-Princess Charlotte, and your granddaughter."
"You're
quick, Hackworth, and I suspect capable of being devious if not for your
staunch moral character," Finkle-McGraw said, not without a certain
archness. "Tell me, were your parents subjects, or did you take the
Oath?"
"As
soon as I turned twenty-one, sir. Her Majesty- at that time, actually, she was
still Her Royal Highness- was touring North America, prior to her enrollment at
Stanford, and I took the Oath at Trinity Church in Boston."
"Why?
You're a clever fellow, not blind to culture like so many engineers. You could
have joined the First Distributed Republic or any of a hundred synthetic phyles
on the West Coast. You would have had
decent prospects and been free from all this"- Finkle-McGraw jabbed his
cane at the two big airships-
"behavioural discipline that we impose upon ourselves. Why did you
impose it on yourself, Mr. Hackworth?"
"Without
straying into matters that are strictly personal in nature," Hackworth
said carefully, "I knew two kinds of discipline as a child: none at all,
and too much. The former leads to degenerate behaviour. When I speak of
degeneracy, I am not being priggish, sir- I am alluding to things well known to
me, as they made my own childhood less than idyllic."
Finkle-McGraw,
perhaps realizing that he had stepped out of bounds, nodded vigorously.
"This is a familiar argument, of course."
"Of
course, sir. I would not presume to imply that I was the only young person
ill-used by what became of my native culture."
"And
I do not see such an implication. But many who feel as you do found their way
into phyles wherein a much harsher regime prevails and which view us as degenerates."
"My
life was not without periods of excessive, unreasoning discipline, usually
imposed capriciously by those responsible for laxity in the first place. That
combined with my historical studies led me, as many others, to the conclusion
that there was little in the previous century worthy of emulation, and that we
must look to the nineteenth century instead for stable social models."
"Well
done, Hackworth! But you must know that the model to which you allude did not
long survive the first Victoria."
"We
have outgrown much of the ignorance and resolved many of the internal
contradictions that characterised that era."
"Have
we, then? How reassuring. And have we resolved them in a way that will ensure
that all of those children down there live interesting lives?"
"I
must confess that I am too slow to follow you."
"You
yourself said that the engineers in the Bespoke department- the very best- had
led interesting lives, rather than coming from the straight and narrow. Which
implies a correlation, does it not?"
"Clearly."
"This
implies, does it not, that in order to raise a generation of children who can
reach their full potential, we must find a way to make their lives interesting.
And the question I have for you, Mr. Hackworth, is this: Do you think that our
schools accomplish that? Or are they like the schools that Wordsworth
complained of?"
"My
daughter is too young to attend school- but I should fear that the latter
situation prevails."
"I
assure you that it does, Mr. Hackworth. My three children were raised in those
schools, and I know them well. I am determined that Elizabeth shall be raised
differently."
Hackworth
felt his face flushing. "Sir, may I remind you that we have just met-I do
not feel worthy of the confidences you are reposing in me."
"I'm
telling you these things not as a friend, Mr. Hackworth, but as a
professional."
"Then
I must remind you that I am an engineer, not a child psychologist."
"This
I have not forgotten, Mr. Hackworth. You are indeed an engineer, and a very
fine one, in a company that I still think of as mine- though as an Equity Lord,
I no longer have a formal connection. And now that you have brought your part
of this project to a successful conclusion, I intend to put you in charge of a
new project for which I have reason to believe you are perfectly suited."
Bud
embarks on a life of crime; an insult to
a tribe & its consequences.
Bud rolled his
first victim almost by accident. He'd taken a wrong turn into a cul-de-sac and
inadvertently trapped a black man and woman and a couple of little kids who'd
blundered in there before him. They had a scared look about them, like a lot of
the new arrivals did, and Bud noticed the way the man's gaze lingered on his
Sights, wondering whether those crosshairs, invisible to him, were centered on
him, his lady, or his kid.
Bud
didn't get out of their way. He was packing, they weren't, it was up to them to
get out of his way. But instead they just froze up. "You got a
problem?" Bud said.
"What
do you want?" the man said.
It
had been a while since anyone had manifested such sincere concern for Bud's
desires, and he kind of liked it. He realized that these people were under the
impression that they were being mugged. "Oh, same as anyone else. Money
and shit," Bud said, and just like that, the man took some hard ucus out
of his pocket and handed them over-and then actually thanked him as he backed
away.
Bud
enjoyed getting that kind of respect from black people- it reminded him of his
noble heritage in the trailer parks of North Florida- and he didn't mind the
money either. After that day he began looking for black people with that same
scared uncertain look about them. These people bought and sold off the record,
and so they carried hard money. He did pretty well for himself for a couple of
months. Every so often he would stop by the flat where his bitch Tequila lived,
give her some lingerie, and maybe give Harv some chocolate.
Harv
was presumed by both Bud and Tequila to be Bud's son. He was five, which meant
that he had been conceived in a much earlier cycle of Bud and Tequila's
break-up-and-make-up relationship. Now the bitch was pregnant again, which
meant that Bud would have to bring even more gifts to her place when he came
around. The pressures of fatherhood!
One
day Bud targeted a particularly well-dressed family because of their fancy
clothes. The man was wearing a business suit and the woman a nice clean dress,
and they were carrying a baby all dressed up in a white lacy thing, and they
had hired a porter to help them haul their luggage away from the Aerodrome. The
porter was a white guy who vaguely reminded Bud of himself, and he was incensed
to see him acting as a pack animal for blacks. So as soon as these people got
away from the bustle of the Aerodrome and into a more secluded neighborhood,
Bud approached them, swaggering in the way he'd practiced in the mirror,
occasionally pushing his Sights up on his nose with one index finger.
The
guy in the suit was different from most of them. He didn't try to act like he
hadn't seen Bud, didn't try to skulk away, didn't cringe or slouch, just stood
his ground, feet planted squarely, and very pleasantly said, "Yes, sir,
can I be of assistance?" He didn't talk like an American black, had almost
a British accent, but crisper.
Now
that Bud had come closer, he saw that the man had a strip of colored cloth
thrown around his neck and over his lapels, dangling down like a scarf. He
looked well-housed and well-fed for the most part, except for a little scar
high up on one cheekbone.
Bud
kept walking until he was a little too close to the guy. He kept his head
tilted back until the last minute, like he was kicking back listening to some
loud tunes (which he was), and then suddenly snapped his head forward so he was
staring the guy right in the face. It was another way to emphasize the fact
that he was packing, and it usually did the trick. But this guy did not respond
with the little flinch that Bud had come to expect and enjoy. Maybe he was from
some booga-booga country where they didn't know about skull guns.
"Sir,"
the man said, "my family and I are on the way to our hotel. We have had a
long journey, and we are tired; my daughter has an ear infection. If you would
state your business as expeditiously as possible, I would be obliged."
"You
talk like a fucking Vicky," Bud said.
"Sir,
I am not what you refer to as a Vicky, or I should have gone directly there. I
would be obliged if you could be so kind as to moderate your language in the
presence of my wife and child."
It
took Bud a while to untangle this sentence, and a while longer to believe that
the man really cared about a few dirty words spoken within earshot of his
family, and longer yet to believe that he had been so insolent to Bud, a
heavily muscled guy who was obviously packing a skull gun.
"I'm
gonna fucking say whatever I fucking want to your bitch and your flicking
brat," Bud said, very loud. Then he could not keep himself from grinning.
Score a few points for Bud!
The
man looked impatient rather than scared and heaved a deep sigh. "Is this
an armed robbery or something? Are you sure you know what you are getting
into?"
Bud
answered by whispering "hut" under his breath and firing a Crippler
into the man's right bicep. It went off deep in the muscle, like an M-80,
blowing a dark hole in the sleeve of the man's jacket and leaving his arm
stretched out nice and straight- the trike now pulling without anything to
oppose it. The man clenched his teeth, his eyes bulged, and for a few moments
he made strangled grunting noises from way down in his chest, making an effort
not to cry out.
Bud
stared at the wound in fascination. It was just like shooting people in a
ractive. Except that the bitch didn't scream and beg for mercy. She just turned
her back, using her body to shield the baby, and looked over her shoulder,
calmly, at Bud. Bud noticed she had a little scar on her cheek too.
"Next
I take your eye," Bud said, "then I go to work on the bitch."
The
man held up his good hand palm out, indicating surrender. He emptied his pocket
of hard Universal Currency Units and handed them over. And then Bud made
himself scarce, because the monitors- almond-size aerostats with eyes, ears,
and radios- had probably picked up the sound of the explosion and begun
converging on the area. He saw one hiss by him as he rounded the corner,
trailing a short whip antenna that caught the light like a hairline crack in
the atmosphere.
Three
days later, Bud was hanging around the Aerodrome, looking for easy pickings,
when a big ship came in from Singapore. Immersed in a stream of thousand
arrivals was a tight group of some two dozen solidly built, very dark-skinned
black men dressed in business suits, with Strips of colored cloth draped around
their necks and little scars on their cheekbone.
It
was later that night that Bud, for the first time in his life, heard the word Ashanti.
"Another twenty-five Ashanti just came in from L.A.!" said a man in a
bar. "The Ashanti had a big meeting in the conference room at the
Sheraton!" said a woman on the street. Waiting in a queue for one of the
free matter compilers, a bum said, "One of them Ashanti gave me five yuks.
They're fine folks." When Bud ran into a guy he knew, a former comrade in
the decoy trade, he said, "Hey, the place is crawling with them Ashanti,
ain't it?"
"Yup,"
said the guy, who had seemed unaccountably shocked to see Bud's face on the
Street, and who was annoyingly distracted all of a sudden, swiveling his head
to look all ways.
"They
must be having a convention or something," Bud theorized. "I rolled
one of 'em the other night."
"Yeah,
I know," his friend said.
"Huh?
How'd you know that?"
"They
ain't having a convention, Bud. All of those Ashanti- except the first one-came
to town hunting for you."
Paralysis
struck Bud's vocal cords, and he felt lightheaded, unable to concentrate.
"I
gotta go," his friend said, and removed himself from Bud's vicinity.
For
the next few hours Bud felt as though everyone on the street was looking at
him. Bud was certainly looking at them, looking for those suits, those colored
strips of cloth. But he caught sight of a man in shorts and a T-shirt- a black
man with very high cheeks, one of which was marked with a tiny scar, and almost
Asian-looking eyes in a very high state of alertness. So he couldn't rely on
the Ashanti wearing stereotyped clothing.
Very
soon after that, Bud swapped clothes with an indigent down on the beach, giving
up all his black leather and coming away
with a T-shirt and shorts of his own. The T-shirt was much too small; it bound
him under the armpits and pressed against his muscles so that he felt the
eternal twitching even more than usual. He wished he could turn the stimulators
off now, relax his muscles even for one night, but that would require a trip to
the mod parlor, and he had to figure that the Ashanti had the mod parlors all
staked out. He could have gone to any of several brothels, but he didn't know
what kind of connections these Ashanti might have- or even what the hell an Ashanti
was, exactly-and he wasn't sure he could get a boner under these circumstances
anyway.
As
he wandered the streets of the Leased Territories, primed to level his Sights
at any black person who blundered into his path, he reflected on the unfairness
of his fate. How was he to know that guy belonged to a tribe? Actually, he
should have known, just from the fact that he wore nice clothes and didn't look
like all the other people. The very apartness of those people should have been
a dead giveaway. And his lack of fear should have told him something. Like he
couldn't believe anyone would be stupid enough to mug him.
Well,
Bud had been that stupid, and Bud didn't have a phyle of his own, so Bud was
screwed. Bud would have to go get himself one real quick, now.
He'd
already tried to join the Boers a few years back. The Boers were to Bud's kind
of white trash what these Ashanti were to most of the blacks. Stocky blonds in
suits or the most conservative sorts of dresses, usually with half a dozen kids
in tow, and my god did they ever stick together. Bud had paid a few visits to
the local laager, studied some of their training ractives on his home
mediatron, put in some extra hours at the gym trying to meet their physical
standards, even gone to a couple of horrific bible-study sessions. But in the
end, Bud and the Boers weren't much of a match. The amount of church you had to
attend was staggering-it was like living in church. And
he'd studied their history, but there were only so many Boer/Zulu skirmishes he
could stand to read about or keep straight in his head. So that was out; he
wasn't getting into any laager tonight.
The
Vickys wouldn't take him in a million years, of course. Almost all the other
tribes were racially oriented, like those Parsis or whatever. The Jews wouldn't
take him unless he cut a piece of his dick off and learned to read a whole
nother language, which was a bit of a tall order since he hadn't gotten round
to learning how to read English yet. There were a bunch of coenobitical phyles-
religious tribes- that took people of all races, but most of them weren't very
powerful and didn't have turf in the Leased Territories. The Mormons had turf
and were very powerful, but he wasn't sure if they'd take him as quickly and
readily as he needed to be taken.
Then
there were the tribes that people just made up out of thin air- the synthetic
phyles- but most of them were based on some shared skill or weird idea or
ritual that he wouldn't be able to pick up in half an hour.
Finally,
sometime around midnight, he wandered past a man in a funny gray jacket and cap
with a red star on it, trying to give away little red books, and it hit him:
Sendero. Most Senderistas were either Incan or Korean, but they'd take anyone.
They had a nice clave here in the Leased Territories, a clave with good security, and every one of them, down to the
last man or woman, was batshit. They'd be more than a match for a few dozen
Ashantis. And you could join anytime just by walking in the gates. They would
take anyone, no questions asked.
He'd
heard it was not such a good thing to be a Communist, but under the
circumstances he figured he could hold his nose and quote from the little red
book as necessary. As soon as those Ashantis left town, he'd bolt.
Once
he made up his mind, he couldn't wait to get there. He had to restrain himself
from breaking into a jog, which would be sure to draw the attention of any
Ashantis on the street. He couldn't bear the idea of being so close to safety
and then blowing it.
He
rounded a corner and saw the wall of the Sendero Clave; four stories high and
two blocks long, one solid giant mediatron with a tiny gate in the middle. Mao
was on one end, waving to an unseen multitude, backed up by his horsetoothed
wife and his beetle-browed sidekick Lin Biao, and Chairman Gonzalo was on the
other, teaching some small children, and in the middle was a slogan in
ten-meter-high letters: STRIVE TO UPHOLD THE PRINCIPLES OF MAO-GONZALO-THOUGHT!
The
gate was guarded, as always, by a couple of twelve-year-old kids in red
neckerchiefs and armbands, ancient bolt-action rifles with real bayonets
leaning against their collarbones. A blond white girl and a pudgy Asian boy.
Bud and his son Harv had whiled away many an idle hour trying to get these kids
to laugh: making silly faces, mooning them, telling jokes. Nothing ever worked.
But he'd seen the ritual: They'd bar his path with crossed rifles and not let
him in until he swore his undying allegiance to Mao-Gonzalo-thought, and then-
A
horse, or something built around the same general plan, was coming down the
street at a hand-gallop. Its hooves did not make the pocking noise of iron
horseshoes. Bud realized it was a chevaline- a four-legged robot thingy.
The
man on the chev was an African in very colorful clothing.
Bud
recognized the patterns on that cloth and knew without bothering to check for
the scar that the guy was Ashanti. As soon as he caught Bud's eye, he kicked it
up another gear, to a tantivy. He was going to cut Bud off before he could reach
Sendero. And he was too far away, yet, to be reached by the skull gun, whose
infinitesimal bullets had a disappointingly short range.
He
heard a soft noise behind him and swiveled his head around, and something
whacked him on the forehead and stuck there. A couple more Ashantis had snuck
up on him barefoot.
"Sir,"
one of them said, "I would not recommend operation of your weapon, unless
you want the round to detonate in your own forehead. Hey?" and he smiled
broadly, enormous perfectly white teeth, and touched his own forehead. Bud
reached up and felt something hard glued to the skin of his brow, right over
the skull gun.
The
chev dropped to a trot and cut toward him. Suddenly Ashantis were everywhere.
He wondered how long they'd been tracking him. They all had beautiful smiles.
They all carried small devices in their hands, which they aimed at the
pavement, trigger fingers laid alongside the barrels until the guy on the chev
told them otherwise. Then, suddenly, they all seemed to be aimed in his direction.
The
projectiles stuck to his skin and clothing and burst sideways, flinging out
yards and yards of weightless filmy stuff that stuck to itself and shrank. One
struck him in the back of the head, and a swath of the stuff whipped around his
face and encased it. It was about as thick as a soap bubble, and so he could
see through it pretty well- it had peeled one of his eyelids back so he
couldn't help but see- and everything now had that gorgeous rainbow tinge
characteristic of soap bubbles. The entire shrink-wrapping process consumed
maybe half a second, and then Bud, mummified in plastic, toppled over
face-forward. One of the Ashantis was good enough to catch him. They laid him
down on the Street and rolled him over on his back. Someone poked the blade of
a pocketknife through the film over Bud's mouth so that he could breathe again.
Several
Ashantis set about the chore of bonding handles to the shrinkwrap, two up near
the shoulders and two down by the ankles, as the man on the chev dismounted and
knelt over him.
This
equestrian had several prominent scars on his cheeks. "Sir," the man
said, smiling, "I accuse you of violating certain provisions of the Common
Economic Protocol, which I will detail at a more convenient time, and I hereby
place you under personal arrest. Please be aware that anyone who has been so
arrested is subject to deadly force in the event he tries to resist- which- ha!
ha!- does not seem likely at present- but it is a part of the procedure that I
am to say this. As this territory belongs to a nation-state that recognizes the
Common Economic Protocol, you are entitled to a hearing of any such charges
within the judicial framework of the nation-state in question, which in this
case happens to be the Chinese Coastal Republic. This nation-state may or may
not grant you additional rights; we will find out in a very few moments, when
we present the situation to one of the relevant authorities. Ah, I believe I
see one now."
A
constable from the Shanghai Police, legs strapped into a pedomotive, was coming
down the street with the tremendous loping strides afforded by such devices,
escorted by a couple of power-skating Ashantis. The Ashantis had big smiles,
but the constable looked stereotypically inscrutable.
The
chief of the Ashantis bowed to the constable and graciously spun out another
lengthy quotation from the fine print of the Common Economic Protocol. The
constable kept making a gesture that was somewhere between a nod and a
perfunctory bow. Then the constable turned to Bud and said, very fast:
"Are you a member of any signatory tribe, phyle, registered diaspora,
franchise-organized quasi-national entity, sovereign polity, or any other form
of dynamic security collective claiming status under the CEP?"
"Are
you shitting me?" Bud said. The shrink-wrap squished his mouth together so
he sounded like a duck.
Four
Ashantis took the four handles and hoisted Bud off the ground. They began to
follow the loping constable in the direction of the Causeway that led over the
sea to Shanghai. "How 'bout it," Bud quacked through the hole in the
shrink-wrap, "he said I might have other rights. Do I have any other
rights?"
The
constable looked back over his shoulder, turning his head carefully so he
wouldn't lose his balance on that pedomotive. "Don't be a jerk," he
said in pretty decent English, "this is China."
Hackworth's
morning ruminations; breakfast and
departure for work.
Thinking
about tomorrow's crime, John Percival Hackworth slept poorly, rising three
times on the pretext of having to use the loo.
Each
time he looked in on Fiona, who was sprawled out in her white lace nightgown,
arms above her head, doing a backflip into the arms of Morpheus. Her face was
barely visible in the dark room, like the moon seen through folds of white
silk.
At
five A.M., a shrill pentatonic reveille erupted from the North Koreans' brutish
mediatrons. Their clave, which went by the name Sendero, was not far above sea
level: a mile below the Hackworths' building in altitude, and twenty degrees
warmer on the average day. But whenever the women's chorus chimed in with their
armor-piercing refrain about the all-seeing beneficence of the Serene Leader,
it felt as if they were right next door.
Gwendolyn
didn't even stir. She would sleep soundly for another hour, or until Tiffany
Sue, her lady's maid, came bustling into the room and began to lay out her
clothes: stretchy lingerie for the morning workout, a business frock, hat,
gloves, and veil for later.
Hackworth
drew a silk dressing gown from the wardrobe and poured it over his shoulders.
Binding the sash around his waist, the cold tassels splashing over his fingers
in the dark, he glanced through the doorway to Gwendolyn's closet and out the
other side into her boudoir. Against that room's far windows was the desk she
used for social correspondence, really just a table with a top of genuine
marble, strewn with bits of stationery, her own and others', dimly identifiable
even at this distance as business cards, visiting cards, note cards, invitations from various people still going
through triage. Most of the boudoir floor was covered with a tatty carpet, worn
through in places all the way down to its underlying matrix of jute, but
hand-woven and sculpted by genuine Chinese slave labor during the Mao Dynasty.
Its only real function was to protect the floor from Gwendolyn's exercise
equipment, which gleamed in the dim light scattering off the clouds from
Shanghai: a step unit done up in Beaux-Arts ironmongery, a rowing machine
cleverly fashioned of writhing sea-serpents and hard-bodied nereids, a rack of
free weights supported by four callipygious caryatids-not chunky Greeks but
modern women, one of each major racial group, each tricep, gluteus, latissimus,
sartorius, and rectus abdominus casting its own highlight. Classical
architecture indeed. The caryatids were supposed to be role models, and despite
subtle racial differences, each body fit the current ideal: twenty-two-inch
waist, no more than 17% body fat. That kind of body couldn't be faked with undergarments,
never mind what the ads in the women's magazines claimed; the long tight
bodices of the current mode, and modern fabrics thinner than soap bubbles, made
everything obvious. Most women who didn't have superhuman willpower couldn't
manage it without the help of a lady's maid who would run them through two or
even three vigorous workouts a day. So after Fiona had stopped breast-feeding
and the time had loomed when Gwen would have to knacker her maternity clothes,
they had hired Tiffany Sue- just another one of the child-related expenses
Hackworth had never imagined until the bills had started to come in. Gwen
accused him, half-seriously, of having eyes for Tiffany Sue. The accusation was
almost a standard formality of modern marriage, as lady's maids were all young,
pretty, and flawlessly buffed. But Tiffany Sue was a typical thete, loud and
classless and heavily made up, and Hackworth couldn't abide her. If he had eyes
for anyone, it was those caryatids holding up the weight rack; at least they had
impeccable taste going for them.
Mrs.
Hull had not heard him and was still bumping sleepily around in her quarters.
Hackworth put a crumpet into the toaster oven and went out on their flat's tiny
balcony with a cup of tea, catching a bit of the auroral breeze off the Yangtze
Estuary.
The
Hackworths' building was one of several lining a block-long garden where a few
early risers were already out walking their spaniels or touching their toes.
Far down the slopes of New Chusan, the Leased Territories were coming awake:
the Senderos streaming out of their barracks and lining up in the streets to
chant and sing through their morning calisthenics. All the other thetes,
coarcted into the tacky little claves belonging to their synthetic phyles,
turning up their own mediatrons to drown out the Senderos, setting off
firecrackers or guns- he could never tell them apart- and a few
internal-combustion hobbyists starting up their primitive full-lane vehicles,
the louder the better. Commuters lining up at the tube stations, waiting to
cross the Causeway into Greater Shanghai, seen only as a storm front of
neon-stained, coal-scented smog that encompassed the horizon.
This
neighborhood was derisively called Earshot. But Hackworth didn't mind the noise
so much. It would have been a sign of better breeding, or higher pretentions,
to be terribly sensitive about it, to complain of it all the time, and to yearn
for a townhouse or even a small estate farther inland.
Finally
the bells of St. Mark's chimed six o'clock. Mrs. Hull burst into the kitchen on
the first stroke and expressed shame that Hackworth had beaten her to the
kitchen and shock that he had defiled it. The matter compiler in the corner of
the kitchen came on automatically and began to create a pedomotive for Hackworth
to take to work.
Before
the last bell had died away, the rhythmic whack-whack-whack of a big vacuum
pump could be heard. The engineers of the Royal Vacuum Utility were already at
work expanding the eutactic environment. The pumps sounded big, probably
Intrepids, and Hackworth reckoned that they must be preparing to raise a new
structure, possibly a wing of the University.
He
sat down at the kitchen table. Mrs. Hull was already marmalading his crumpet.
As she laid out plates and silver, Hackworth picked up a large sheet of blank
paper. "The usual," he said, and then the paper was no longer blank;
now it was the front page of the Times.
Hackworth
got all the news that was appropriate to his station in life, plus a few
optional services: the latest from his favorite cartoonists and columnists
around the world; clippings on various peculiar crackpot subjects forwarded to
him by his father, ever anxious that he had not, even after all this time,
sufficiently edified his son; and stories relating to the Uitlanders- a
subphyle of New Atlantis, consisting of persons of British ancestry who had
fled South Africa several decades previously. Hackworth's mother was an
Uitlander, so he subscribed to the service.
A
gentleman of higher rank and more far-reaching responsibilities would probably
get different information written in a different way, and the top stratum of
New Chusan actually got the Times on paper, printed out by a
big antique press that did a run of a hundred or so, every morning at about
three A.M. That the highest levels of the society received news written with
ink on paper said much about the steps New Atlantis had taken to distinguish
itself from other phyles.
Now
nanotechnology had made nearly anything possible, and so the cultural role in
deciding what should
be done with it had become far more important than imagining
what could be
done with it. One of the insights of the Victorian Revival was that it was not
necessarily a good thing for everyone to read a completely different newspaper
in the morning; so the higher one rose in the society, the more similar one's Times became
to one's peers'.
Hackworth
almost managed to dress without waking Gwendolyn, but she began to stir while
he was stringing his watch chain around various tiny buttons and pockets in his
waistcoat. In addition to the watch, various other charms dangled from it, such
as a snuffbox that helped perk him up now and then, and a golden pen that made
a little chime whenever he received mail.
"Have
a good day at work, dear," she mumbled. Then, blinking once or twice,
frowning, and focusing on the chintz canopy over the bed: "You finish it
today, do you?"
"Yes,"
Hackworth said. "I'll be home late. Quite late."
"I
understand."
"No,"
he blurted. Then he pulled himself up short. This was it, he realized.
"Darling?"
"It's
not that-the project should finish itself. But after work, I believe I'll get a
surprise for Fiona. Something special."
"Being
home for dinner would be more special than anything you could get her."
"No,
darling. This is different. I promise."
He
kissed her and went to the stand by the front door. Mrs. Hull was awaiting him,
holding his hat in one hand and his briefcase in the other. She had already
removed the pedomotive from the M.C. and set it by the door for him; it was
smart enough to know that it was indoors, and so its long legs were fully
collapsed, giving him almost no mechanical advantage. Hackworth stepped onto
the tread plates and felt the straps reach out and hug his legs.
He
told himself that he could still back out. But a flash of red caught his eye,
and he looked in and saw Fiona creeping down the hallway in her nightie, her
flaming hair flying all directions, getting ready to surprise Gwendolyn, and
the look in her eyes told him that she had heard everything. He blew her a kiss
and walked out the door, resolute.
Bud
is prosecuted; noteworthy features of the Confucian judicial system; he receives an invitation to take a long walk
on a short pier.
Bud had spent
the last several days living in the open, in a prison on the low, smelly delta
of the Chang Jiang (as most of his thousands of fellow inmates called it) or,
as Bud called it, the Yangtze. The walls of the prison were lines of bamboo
stakes, spaced at intervals of a few meters, with strips of orange plastic
fluttering gaily from their tops. Yet another device had been mounted on Bud's
bones, and it knew where those boundaries were. From place to place one could
see a corpse just on the other side of the line, body striped with the lurid
marks of cookie-cutters. Bud had mistaken these for suicides until he'd seen a
lynching in progress: a prisoner who was thought to have stolen some other
fellow's shoes was picked up bodily by the mob, passed from hand to hand overhead
like a crowd-surfing rock singer, all the time flailing frantically trying to
grab something. When he reached the line of bamboo poles, he was given one last
shove and ejected, his body virtually
exploding as he flew through the invisible plane of the perimeter.
But
the ever-present threat of lynching was a minor irritation compared to the
mosquitoes. So when Bud heard the voice in his ears telling him to report to
the northeast corner of the compound, he didn't waste any time- partly because
he wanted to get away from that place and partly because, if he didn't, they
could pop him by remote control. They could have just told him to walk directly
to the courtroom and take a seat and he would have done it, but for ceremonial
purposes they sent a cop to escort him.
The
courtroom was a high-ceilinged room in one of the old buildings along the Bund,
not lavishly furnished. At one end was a raised platform, and on that was an
old folding table with a red cloth tossed over it. The red cloth had gold threads
woven through it to make a design: a unicorn or a dragon or some shit like
that. Bud had trouble discriminating among mythical beasts.
The
judge came in and was introduced as Judge Fang by the larger of his two gofers:
a bulky, rounded-headed Chinese guy who smelled tantalizingly of menthol
cigarettes. The constable who had escorted Bud to the courtroom pointed to the
floor, and Bud, knowing his cue, dropped to his knees and touched his forehead
to the floor.
The
Judge's other gofer was a tiny little Amerasian woman wearing glasses. Hardly
anyone used glasses anymore to correct their vision, and so it was a likely bet
that this was actually some kind of phantascope, which let you see things that
weren't there, such as ractives. Although, when people used them for purposes
other than entertainment, they used a fancier word: phenomenoscope.
You
could get a phantascopic system planted directly on your retinas, just as Bud's
sound system lived on his eardrums. You could even get telęsthetics patched
into your spinal column at various key vertebrae. But this was said to have its
drawbacks: some concerns about long-term nerve damage, plus it was rumored that
hackers for big media companies had figured out a way to get through the
defenses that were built into such systems, and run junk advertisements in your
peripheral vision (or even spang in the fucking middle) all the time-even when
your eyes were closed. Bud knew a guy like that who'd somehow gotten infected
with a meme that ran advertisements for roach motels, in Hindi, superimposed on
the bottom right-hand corner of his visual field, twenty-four hours a day,
until the guy whacked himself.
Judge
Fang was surprisingly young, probably not out of his thirties yet. He sat at
the red cloth-covered table and started to talk in Chinese. His two gofers
stood behind him. A Sikh was here; he stood up and said a few words back to the
Judge in Chinese. Bud couldn't figure out why there was a Sikh here, but he'd
become accustomed to Sikhs turning up where they were least sought.
Judge
Fang said in a New York City accent, "The representative from Protocol has
suggested that we conduct these proceedings in English. Any objections?"
Also
present was the guy he had mugged, who was holding the one arm rather stiffly but
seemed otherwise healthy. His wife was with him too.
"I'm
Judge Fang," the Judge continued, looking straight at Bud. "You can
address me as Your Honor. Now, Bud, Mr. Kwamina here has accused you of certain
activities that are illegal in the Coastal Republic. You are also accused of
actionable offenses under the Common Economic Protocol, to which we are a
subscriber. These offenses are closely related to the crimes I already
mentioned, but slightly different. Are you getting all this?"
"Not
exactly, Your Honor," Bud said.
"We
think you mugged this guy and blew a hole in his arm," Judge Fang said,
"which is frowned upon. Capiche?"
"Yes,
sir."
Judge
Fang nodded at the Sikh, who took the cue. "The CEP code," said the
Sikh, "governs all kinds of economic interactions between people and
organizations. Theft is one such interaction. Maiming is another, insofar as it
affects the victim's ability to fend for himself economically. As Protocol does
not aspire to sovereign status, we work in cooperation with the indigenous
justice system of CEP signatories in order to pursue such cases."
"You
familiar with the Confucian system of justice, Bud?" said Judge Fang.
Bud's head was beginning to get dizzy from snapping back and forth like a
spectator at a tennis match. "I'm guessing no. Okay, even though the
Chinese Coastal Republic is no longer strictly or even vaguely Confucian, we
still run our judicial system that way- we've had it for a few thousand years,
and we think it's not half bad. The general idea is that as judge, I actually
perform several roles at once: detective, judge, jury, and if need be,
executioner."
Bud
snickered at this crack, then noticed that Judge Fang did not appear to be in
an especially jocose mood. His New Yorkish ways had initially fooled Bud into
thinking that Judge Fang was something of a Regular Guy.
"So
in the first-mentioned role," Judge Fang continued, "I would like for
you, Mr. Kwamina, to tell me whether you recognize the suspect."
"He
is the man," said Mr. Kwamina, aiming one index finger at Bud's forehead,
"who threatened me, shot me, and stole my money."
"And
Mrs. Kum?" Judge Fang said. Then, as an aside to Bud, he added, "In
their culture, the woman does not adopt her husband's family name."
Mrs.
Kum just nodded at Bud and said, "He is the guilty party."
"Miss
Pao, do you have anything to add?"
The
tiny woman in the spectacles looked at Bud and said, in Texan-accented English,
"From this man's forehead I removed a voice-activated nanoprojectile
launcher, colloquially known as a skull gun, loaded with three types of
ammunition, including so-called Crippler rounds of the type used against Mr.
Kwamina. Nanopresence examination of the serial numbers on those rounds, and
comparison of the same with fragments removed from Mr. Kwamina's wound,
indicated that the round used on Mr. Kwamina was fired from the gun embedded in
the suspect's forehead."
"Dang,"
Bud said.
"Okay,"
Judge Fang said, and reached up with one hand to rub his temples for just a
moment. Then he turned to Bud. "You're guilty."
Hey!
Don't I get to put up a defense?" Bud said. "I object!"
"Don't
be an asshole," Judge Fang said.
The
Sikh said, "As the offender has no significant assets, and as the value of
his labor would not be sufficient to compensate the victim for his injury,
Protocol terminates its interest in this case."
"Got
it," Judge Fang said. "Okay, Bud, my man, do you have any
dependents?"
"I
got a girlfriend," Bud said. "She's got a son named Harv who is my
boy, unless we counted wrong. And I heard she's pregnant."
"You
think she is, or you know she is?"
"She
was last time I checked- a couple months ago."
"What's
her name?"
"Tequila."
A
muffled snort came from one of the Protocol trainees- the young woman- who put
one hand over her mouth. The Sikh appeared to be biting his lip.
"Tequila?"
Judge Fang said, incredulous. It was becoming clear that Judge Fang tried a lot
of these cases and relished the odd scrap of entertainment value.
"There
are nineteen women named Tequila in the Leased Territories," said Miss
Pao, reading something out of her phenomenoscope, "one of whom delivered a
baby girl named Nellodee three days ago. She also has a five-year-old boy named
Harvard."
"Oh,
wow," Bud said.
"Congratulations,
Bud, you're a pa," Judge Fang said. "I gather from your reaction that
this comes as something of a surprise. It seems evident that your relationship
with this Tequila is tenuous, and so I do not find that there are any
mitigating circumstances I should take into account in sentencing. That being
the case, I would like you to go out that door over there"- Judge Fang
pointed to a door in the corner of the courtroom-" and all the way down
the steps. Leave through the exit door and cross the street, and you will find
a pier sticking out into the river. Walk to the end of that pier until you are
standing on the red part and await further instructions."
Bud
moved tentatively at first, but Judge Fang gestured impatiently, so finally he
went out the door and down the stairway and out onto the Bund, the street that
ran along the waterfront of the Huang Pu River, and that was lined with big old
European-style buildings. A pedestrian tunnel took him under the road to the
actual waterfront, which was crowded with Chinese people strolling around, and
legless wretches dragging themselves
hither and thither.
Some
middle-aged Chinese people had set up a sound system playing archaic music and
were ballroom-dancing. The music and dance style would have been offensively
quaint to Bud at any other point in his life, but now for some reason the sight
of these somewhat fleshy, settled-looking people, twirling around gently in one
another's arms, made him feel sad.
Eventually
he found the right pier. As he strolled out onto it, he had to shoulder his way
past some slopes carrying a long bundle wrapped in cloth, who were trying to
get onto the pier ahead of him.
The
view was nice here; the old buildings of the Bund behind him, the vertiginous
neon wall of the Pudong Economic Zone exploding from the opposite bank and
serving as backdrop for heavy river traffic- mostly chains of low-lying barges.
The
pier did not turn red until the very end, where it began to slope down steeply
toward the river. It had been coated with some kind of grippy stuff so his feet
wouldn't fly out from under him. He turned around and looked back up at the
domed court building, searching for a window where he might make out the face
of Judge Fang or one of his gofers. The family of Chinese was following him down
the pier, carrying their long bundle, which was draped with garlands of flowers
and, as Bud now realized, was probably the corpse of a family member. He had
heard about these piers; they were called funeral piers.
Several
dozen of the microscopic explosives known as cookie-cutters detonated in his
bloodstream.
Nell
learns to work the matter compiler;
youthful indiscretions; all is
made better.
Nell had grown
too long for her old crib mattress, and so Harv, her big brother, said he would
help get a new one. He was big enough, he offhandedly mentioned, to do that
sort of thing. Nell followed him into the kitchen, which housed several
important boxy entities with prominent doors. Some were warm, some cool, some
had windows, some made noises. Nell had frequently seen Harv, or Tequila, or
one of Tequila's boyfriends, removing food from them, in one stage or another
of doneness.
One
of the boxes was called the M.C. It was built into the wall over the counter.
Nell dragged a chair and climbed up to watch as Harv worked at it. The front of
the M.C. was a mediatron, which meant anything that had pictures moving around
on it, or sound coming out of it, or both. As Harv poked it with his fingers
and spoke to it, little moving pictures danced around. It reminded her of the
ractives she played on the big mediatron in the living room, when it wasn't
being used by someone bigger.
"What
are those?" Nell said.
"Mediaglyphics,"
Harv said coolly. "Someday you'll learn how to read."
Nell
could already read some of them.
"Red
or blue?" Harv asked magnanimously.
"Red."
Harv
gave it an especially dramatic poke, and then a new mediaglyphic came up, a
white circle with a narrow green wedge at the top. The wedge got wider and
wider. The M.C. played a little tune that meant you were supposed to wait. Harv
went to the fridge and got himself a juice box and one for Nell too. He looked
at the M.C. disdainfully. "This takes so long, it's ridiculous," he
said.
"Why?"
"'Cause
we got a cheap Feed, just a few grams per second. Pathetic."
"Why
do we got a cheap Feed?"
"Because
it's a cheap house."
"Why
is it a cheap house?"
"Because
that's all we can afford because of the economics," Harv said. "Mom's
gotta compete with all kinds of Chinese and stuff that don't have any
self-respect and so they'll work for nothing. So Mom's gotta work for
nothing." He looked at the M.C. again and shook his head. "Pathetic.
At the Flea Circus they got a Feed that's, like, this big around." He
touched his fingertips together in front of him and made a big circle with his
arms. "But this one's probly like the size of your pinkie."
He
stepped away from the M.C. as if he could no longer stand to share a room with
it, sucked powerfully on his juice box, and wandered into the living room to
get in a ractive. Nell just watched the green wedge get bigger and bigger until
it filled half the circle, and then it began to look like a green circle with a
white wedge in it, getting narrower and narrower, and finally the music came to
a bouncy conclusion just as the white wedge vanished.
"It's
done!" she said.
Harv
paused his ractive, swaggered into the kitchen, and poked a mediaglyphic that
was an animated picture of a door swinging open. The M.C. took to hissing
loudly. Harv watched her scared face and ruffled her hair; she could not fend
him off because she had her hands over her ears. "Got to release the
vacuum," he explained.
The
sound ended, and the door popped open. Inside the M.C., folded up neatly, was
Nell's new red mattress. "Give it to me! Give it to me!" Nell
shouted, furious to see Harv's hands on it. Harv amused himself for a second
playing keep-away, then gave it to her. She ran to the room that she shared
with Harv and slammed the door as hard as she could. Dinosaur, Duck, Peter, and
Purple were waiting for her. "I got us a new bed," she told them. She
grabbed her old crib mattress and heaved it into the corner, then unfolded the
new one precisely on the floor. It was disappointingly thin, more blanket than
mattress. But when she had it all laid out on the floor, it made a whooshing
noise- not loud- the sound of her brother's breathing late at night. It
thickened as it inhaled, and when it was done, it looked like a real mattress.
She gathered Dinosaur and Duck and Peter and Purple up into her arms and then,
just to make sure, jumped up and down on it several hundred times.
"You
like it?" Harv said. He had opened the door.
"No!
Get out!" Nell screamed.
"Nell,
it's my room too," Harv said. "I gotta deke your old one."
Later,
Harv went out with his buddies, and Nell was alone in the house for a while.
She had decided that her kids needed mattresses too, and so she dragged the
chair to the counter and climbed up on top, right in front of the M.C., and
tried to read the mediaglyphics. A lot of them she didn't recognize. But she
remembered that Tequila just used words when she couldn't read something, so
she tried talking to it instead.
"Please
secure the permission of an adult," the M.C. said, over and over again.
Now
she knew why Harv always poked at things rather than talking to them. She poked
at the M.C. for a long time until finally she came to the same mediaglyphics
that Harv had used to choose her mattress. One showed a man and woman sleeping
in a very large bed. A man and woman in a somewhat smaller bed. A man by
himself. A child by herself. A baby.
Nell
poked at the baby. The white circle and red wedge appeared, the music played,
the M.C. hissed and opened.
She
spread it out on the floor and formally presented it to Dinosaur, who was too
little to know how to jump up and down on it; so Nell showed him for a while.
Then she went back to the M.C. and got mattresses for Duck, Peter, and Purple.
Now, much of the room was covered with mattresses, and she thought how fun it
would be to have the whole room just be one big mattress, so she made a couple
of the very largest size. Then she made a new mattress for Tequila and another
new one for her boyfriend Rog.
When
Harv came back, his reaction swerved between terror and awe. "Mom's gonna
have Rog beat the shit out of us," he said. "We gotta deke all this
stuff now."
Easy
come, easy go. Nell explained the situation to her kids and then helped Harv
stuff all of the mattresses, except her own, into the deke hopper. Harv had to
use all his strength to shove the door closed. "Now we just better hope
this stuff all dekes before Mom gets home," he said. "It's gonna take
a while."
Later
they went to bed and both lay awake for a while, dreading the sound of the
front door opening. But neither Mom nor Rog came home that night. Mom finally
showed up in the morning, changed into her maid outfit, and ran for the bus to
the Vicky Clave, but she just left all her garbage on the floor instead of
throwing it in the hopper. When Harv checked the hopper later, it was empty.
"We dodged a bullet," he said. "You gotta be careful how you use
the matter compiler, Nell."
"What's
a matter compiler?"
"We
call it the M.C. for short."
"Why?"
"Because
M.C. stands for matter compiler, or so they say."
"Why?"
"It
just does. In letters, I guess."
"What
are letters?"
"Kinda
like mediaglyphics except they're all black, and they're tiny, they don't move,
they're old and boring and really hard to read. But you can use 'em to make short
words for long words."
Hackworth
arrives at work; a visit to the Design
Works; Mr. Cotton's vocation.
Rain beaded on
the specular toes of Hackworth's boots as he strode under the vaulting
wrought-iron gate. The little beads reflected the silvery gray light of the sky
as they rolled off onto the pedomotive's tread plates, and dripped to the
gray-brown cobblestones with each stride. Hackworth excused himself through a
milling group of uncertain Hindus. Their hard shoes were treacherous on the
cobblestones, their chins were in the air so that their high white collars
would not saw their heads off. They had arisen many hours ago in their tiny
high-rise warrens, their human coin lockers on the island south of New Chusan,
which was Hindustani. They had crossed into Shanghai in the wee hours on
autoskates and velocipedes, probably paid off some policemen, made their way to
the Causeway joining New Chusan to the city. MachinePhase Systems Limited knew
that they were coming, because they came every day. The company could have set
up an employment office closer to the Causeway, or even in Shanghai itself. But
the company liked to have job-seekers come all the way to the main campus to
fill out their applications. The difficulty of getting here prevented people
from coming on a velleity, and the eternal presence of these people- like
starlings peering down hungrily at a picnic- reminded everyone who was lucky
enough to have a job that others were waiting to take their place.
The
Design Works emulated a university campus, in more ways than its architects had
really intended. If a campus was a green quadrilateral described by hulking,
hederated Gothics, then this was a campus. But if a campus was also a factory
of sorts, most of whose population sat in rows and columns in large stuffy
rooms and did essentially the same things all day, then the Design Works was a
campus for that reason too.
Hackworth
detoured through Merkle Hall. It was Gothic and very large, like most of the
Design Works. Its vaulted ceiling was decorated with a hard fresco consisting
of paint on plaster. Since this entire building, except for the fresco, had
been grown straight from the Feed, it would have been easier to build a
mediatron into the ceiling and set it to display a soft fresco, which could
have been changed from time to time. But neo-Victorians almost never used
mediatrons. Hard art demanded commitment from the artist. It could only be done
once, and if you screwed it up, you had to live with the consequences.
The
centerpiece of the fresco was a flock of cybernetic cherubs, each shouldering a
spherical atom, converging on some central work-in-progress, a construct of
some several hundred atoms, radially symmetric, perhaps intended to look like a
bearing or motor. Brooding over the whole thing, quite large but obviously not
to scale, was a white-coated Engineer with a monocular nanophenomenoscope
strapped to his head. No one really used them because you couldn't get depth
perception, but it looked better on the fresco because you could see the
Engineer's other eye, steel-blue, dilated, scanning infinity like the steel
oculus of Arecibo. With one hand the Engineer stroked his waxed mustache. The
other was thrust into a nanomanipulator, and it was made obvious, through
glorious overuse of radiant tromp l'oeil, that the atom-humping cherubs were
all dancing to his tune, naiads to the Engineer's Neptune. The corners of the
fresco were occupied with miscellaneous busywork; in the upper left, Feynman
and Drexler and Merkle, Chen and Singh and Finkle-McGraw reposed on a numinous
buckyball, some of them reading books and some pointing toward the
work-in-progress in a manner that implied constructive criticism. In the upper
right was Queen Victoria II, who managed to look serene despite the gaudiness
of her perch, a throne of solid diamond. The bottom fringe of the work was
crowded with small figures, mostly children with the occasional longsuffering
mom, ordered chronologically. On the left were the spirits of generations past
who had showed up too early to enjoy the benefits of nanotechnology and (not
explicitly shown, but somewhat ghoulishly implied) croaked from obsolete causes
such as cancer, scurvy, boiler explosions, derailments, drive-by shootings,
pogroms, blitzkriegs, mine shaft collapses, ethnic cleansing, meltdowns,
running with scissors, eating Drano, heating a cold house with charcoal
briquets, and being gored by oxen. Surprisingly, none of them seemed sullen;
they were all watching the activities of the Engineer and his cherubic
workforce, their cuddly, uplifted faces illuminated by the light streaming from
the center, liberated (as Hackworth the engineer literal-mindedly supposed) by
the binding energy of the atoms as they plummeted into their assigned potential
wells.
The
children in the center had their backs to Hackworth and were mostly seen in
silhouette, looking directly up and raising their arms toward the light. The
kids in bottom right balanced the angelic host on the bottom left; these were
the spirits of unborn children yet to benefit from the Engineer's work, though
they certainly looked eager to get born as soon as possible. Their backdrop was
a luminescent, undulous curtain, much like the aurora, which was actually a
continuation of the flowing skirts of Victoria II seated on her throne above.
"Pardon
me, Mr. Cotton," Hackworth said, almost sotto voce. He had worked here
once, for several years, and knew the etiquette. A hundred designers were
sitting in the hall, neatly arranged in rows. All had their heads wrapped up in
phenomenoscopes. The only persons who were aware of Hackworth's presence in the
hall were Supervising Engineer Dung, his lieutenants Chu, DeGrado, and
Beyerley, and a few water-boys and couriers standing erect at their stations
around the perimeter. It was bad form to startle the engineers, so you
approached them loudly and spoke to them softly.
"Good
morning, Mr. Hackworth," Cotton said.
"Good
morning, Demetrius. Take your time."
"I'll
be with you in a moment, sir."
Cotton
was a southpaw. His left hand was in a black glove. Laced through it was a
network of invisibly tiny rigid structures, motors, position sensors, and
tactile stimulators. The sensors kept track of his hand's position, how much
each joint of each knuckle was bent, and so on. The rest of the gear made him
feel as though he were touching real objects.
The
glove's movements were limited to a roughly hemispherical
domain with a radius of about one cubit; as long as his elbow stayed on or near
its comfy elastomeric rest, his hand was free. The glove was attached to a web
of infinitesimal wires that emerged from filatories placed here and there
around the workstation. The filatories acted like motorized reels, taking up
slack and occasionally pulling the glove one way or another to simulate
external forces. In fact they were not motors but little wire factories that
generated wire when it was needed and, when slack needed to be taken up or a
wire needed a tug, sucked it back in and digested it. Each wire was surrounded
by a loose accordion sleeve a couple of millimeters in diameter, which was
there for safety, lest visitors stick their hands in and slice off fingers on
the invisible wires.
Cotton
was working with some kind of elaborate structure consisting, probably, of
several hundred thousand atoms. Hackworth could see this because each
workstation had a mediation providing a two-dimensional view of what the user
was seeing. This made it easy for the supervisors to roam up and down the
aisles and see at a glance what each employee was up to.
The
structures these people worked with seemed painfully bulky to Hackworth, even
though he'd done it himself for a few years. The people here in Merkle Hall
were all working on mass-market consumer products, which by and large were not
very demanding. They worked in symbiosis with big software that handled
repetitive aspects of the job. It was a fast way to design products, which was
essential when going after the fickle and impressionable consumer market. But
systems designed that way always ended up being enormous. An automated design
system could always make something work by throwing more atoms at it. Every
engineer in this hall, designing those nanotechnological toasters and hair
dryers, wished he could have Hackworth's job in Bespoke, where concinnity was
an end in itself, where no atom was wasted and every subsystem was designed
specifically for the task at hand. Such work demanded intuition and creativity,
qualities neither abundant nor encouraged here in Merkle Hall. But from time to
time, over golf or karaoke or cigars, Dung or one of the other supervisors
would mention some youngster who showed promise. Because Lord Alexander
Chung-Sik Finkle-McGraw was paying for Hackworth's current project, the Young Lady's Illustrated
Primer, price was no object. The Duke would
brook no malingering or corner-cutting, so everything was as start as Bespoke
could make it, every atom could be justified.
Even
so, there was nothing especially interesting about the power supply being
created for the Primer, which consisted of batteries of the same kind used to
run everything from toys to airships. So Hackworth had farmed that part of the
job out to Cotton, just to see whether he had potential.
Cotton's
gloved hand fluttered and probed like a stuck horsefly in the center of the
black web. On the mediatronic screen attached to his workstation, Hackworth saw
that Cotton was gripping a medium-size (by Merkie Hall standards) subassembly,
presumably belonging to some much larger nanotechnological system. The standard
color scheme used in these phenomenoscopes depicted carbon atoms in green,
sulfur in yellow, oxygen in red, and hydrogen in blue. Cotton's assembly, as
seen from a distance, was generally turquoise because it consisted mostly of
carbon and hydrogen, and because Hackworth's point of view was so far away that
the thousands of individual atoms all blended together. It was a gridwork of
long, straight, but rather bumpy rods laid across each other at right angles.
Hackworth recognized it as a rod logic system- a mechanical computer.
Cotton
was trying to snap it together with some larger part. From this Hackworth
inferred that the auto-assembly process (which Cotton would have tried first)
hadn't worked quite right, and so now Cotton was trying to maneuver the part
into place by hand. This wouldn't fix what was wrong with it, but the
telesthetic feedback coming into his hand through those wires would give him
insight as to which bumps were lining up with which holes and which weren't. It
was an intuitive approach to the job, a practice furiously proscribed by the
lecturers at the Royal Nanotechnological Institute but popular among
Hackworth's naughty, clever colleagues.
"Okay,"
Cotton finally said, "I see the problem." His hand relaxed. On the
mediatron, the subassembly drifted away from the main group under its own
momentum, then slowed, stopped, and began to fall back toward it, drawn in by
weak van den Waals forces. Cotton's right hand was resting on a small
chordboard; he whacked a key that froze the simulation, then, as Hackworth
noted approvingly, groped the keys for a few seconds, typing in some
documentation. Meanwhile he was withdrawing his left hand from the glove and
using it to pull the rig off his head; its straps and pads left neat indentations
in the nap of his hair.
"Is
this the smart makeup?" Hackworth said, nodding at the screen.
"The
next step beyond," Cotton said. "Remote-control."
"Controlled
how? Yuvree?" Hackworth said, meaning Universal Voice Recognition
Interface.
"A
specialised variant thereof, yes sir," Cotton said. Then, lowering his
voice, "Word has it they considered makeup with nanoreceptors for galvanic
skin response, pulse, respiration, and so on, so that it would respond to the
wearer's emotional state. This superficial, need I say it, cosmetic issue
concealed an undertow that pulled them out into deep and turbulent
philosophical waters-"
"What?
Philosophy of makeup?"
"Think
about it, Mr. Hackworth- is the function of makeup to respond to one's
emotions- or precisely not to do so?"
"These
waters are already over my head," Hackworth admitted.
"You'll
be wanting to know about the power supply for Runcible," Cotton said,
using the code name for the Illustrated Primer. Cotton had no idea what
Runcible was, just that it needed a relatively long-lived power supply.
"Yes."
"The
modifications you requested are complete. I ran the tests you specified plus a
few others that occurred to me- all of them are documented here." Cotton
grabbed the heavy brasslike pull of his desk drawer and paused for a fraction
of a second while the embedded fingerprint-recognition logic did its work. The
drawer unlocked itself, and Cotton pulled it open to reveal a timeless
assortment of office drawer miscellany, including several sheets of paper- some
blank, some printed, some scrawled on, and one sheet that was blank except for
the word RUNCIBLE printed at the top in Cotton's neat draughtsman's hand.
Cotton pulled this one out and spoke to it: "Demetrius James Cotton
transferring all privileges to Mr. Hackworth."
"John
Percival Hackworth in receipt," Hackworth said, taking the page from
Cotton. "Thank you, Mr. Cotton."
"You're
welcome, sir."
"Cover
sheet," Hackworth said to the piece of paper, and then it had pictures and
writing on it, and the pictures moved- a schematic of a machine-phase system
cycling.
"If
I'm not being too forward by enquiring," Cotton said, "will you be
compiling Runcible soon?"
"Today
most likely," Hackworth said.
"Please
feel free to inform me of any glitches," Cotton said, just for the sake of
form.
"Thank
you, Demetrius," Hackworth said. "Letter fold," he said to the
piece of paper, and it creased itself neatly into thirds. Hackworth put it in
the breast pocket of his jacket and walked out of Merkle Hall.
Particulars
of Nell & Harv's domestic situation; Harv brings back a wonder.
Whenever
Nell's clothes got too small for her, Harv would pitch them into the deke bin
and then have the M.C. make new ones. Sometimes, if Tequila was going to take
Nell someplace where they would see other moms with other daughters, she'd use
the M.C. to make Nell a special dress with lace and ribbons, so that the other
moms would see how special Nell was and how much Tequila loved her. The kids
would sit in front of the mediatron and watch a passive, and the moms would sit
nearby and talk sometimes or watch the mediatron sometimes. Nell listened to
them, especially when Tequila was talking, but she didn't really understand all
the words.
She
knew, because Tequila repeated it often, that when Tequila got pregnant with
Nell, she had been using something called the Freedom Machine- a mite that
lived in your womb and caught eggs and ate them. Victorians didn't believe in
them, but you could buy them from Chinese and Hindustanis, who, of course, had
no scruples. You never knew when they'd all gotten too worn out to work
anymore, which is how Tequila had ended up with Nell. One of the women said you
could buy a special kind of Freedom Machine that would go in there and eat a
fetus. Nell didn't know what a fetus was, but all of the women apparently did,
and thought that the idea was the kind of thing that only the Chinese or
Hindustanis would ever think up. Tequila said she knew all about that sort of
Freedom Machine but didn't want to use one, because she was afraid it might be
gross.
Sometimes
Tequila would bring back pieces of real cloth from her work, because she said
that the rich Victorians she worked for would never miss them. She never let
Nell play with them, and so Nell did not understand the difference between real
cloth and the kind that came from the M.C.
Harv
found a piece of it once. The Leased Territories, where they lived, had their
own beach, and Harv and his friends liked to go prospecting there, early in the
morning, for things that had drifted across from Shanghai, or that the Vickys
in New Atlantis Clave had flushed down their water-closets. What they were
really looking for was pieces of stretchy, slippery Nanobar. Sometimes the
Nanobar was in the shape of condoms, sometimes it came in larger chunks that
were used to wrap things up and preserve them from the depredations of mites.
In any case, it could be gathered up and sold to certain persons who knew how
to clean it and weld one piece of Nanobar to another and make it into
protective suits and other shapes.
Harv
had quietly stuffed the piece of cloth into his shoe and then limped home, not
saying a word to anyone. That night Nell, lying on her red mattress, was
troubled by vague dreams about strange lights and finally woke up to see a blue
monster in her room: It was Harv underneath his blanket with a torch, doing
something. She climbed out very slowly so as not to disturb Dinosaur, Duck,
Peter, and Purple, and stuck her head beneath the blanket, and found Harv,
holding the little flashlight in his teeth, working at something with a pair of
toothpicks.
"Harv,"
she said, "are you working on a mite?"
"No,
dummy." Harv's voice was hushed, and he had to mumble around the little
button-shaped torch he was holding in his teeth. "Mites are lots smaller.
See, look!"
She
crawled forward a little more, drawn as much by warmth and security as by
curiosity, and saw a limp mottled brown thing a few centimeters on a side,
fuzzy around the edges, resting on Hanv's crossed ankles.
"What
is it?"
"It's
magic. Watch this," Harv said. And worrying at it with his toothpick, he
teased something loose.
"It's
got string coming out of it!" Nell said.
"Sssh!"
Harv gripped the end of the thread beneath his thumbnail and pulled. It looked
quite short, but it lengthened as he pulled, and the fuzzy edge of the piece of
fabric waffled too fast to see, and then the thread had come loose entirely. He
held it up for inspection, then let it drift down onto a heap of others just
like it.
"How
many does it have?" Nell said.
"Nell,"
Harv said, turning to face her so that his light shone into her face, his voice
coming out of the light epiphanically, "you got it wrong. It's not that
the thing has threads in
it- it is
threads. Threads going under and over each other. If you pulled
out all of the threads, nothing would be left."
"Did
mites make it?" Nell asked.
"The
way it's made- so digital- each thread going over and under other threads, and
those ones going over and under all the other threads-" Harv stopped for a
moment, his mind overloaded by the inhuman audacity of the thing, the
promiscuous reference frames. "It had to be mites, Nell, nothing else
could do it."
Security
measures adopted by Atlantis/Shanghai.
Atlantis/Shanghai
occupied the loftiest ninety percent of New Chusan's land area- an inner
plateau about a mile above sea level,
where the air was cooler and cleaner. Parts of it were marked off with a lovely
wrought iron fence, but the real border was defended by something called the
dog pod grid- a swarm of quasi-independent aerostats.
Aerostat
meant anything that hung in the air. This was an easy trick to pull off
nowadays. Nanotech materials were stronger. Computers were infinitesimal. Power
supplies were much more potent. It was almost difficult not to build things
that were lighter than air. Really simple things like packaging materials- the
constituents of litter, basically- tended to float around as if they weighed
nothing, and aircraft pilots, cruising along ten kilometers above sea level,
had become accustomed to the sight of empty, discarded grocery bags zooming
past their windshields (and getting sucked into their engines). As seen from
low earth orbit, the upper atmosphere now looked dandruffy. Protocol insisted
that everything be made heavier than need be, so that it would fall, and
capable of being degraded by ultraviolet light. But some people violated
Protocol.
Given
that it was so easy to make things that would float in air, it was not much of
a stretch to add an air turbine. This was nothing more than a small propeller,
or series of them, mounted in a tubular foramen wrought through the body of the
aerostat, drawing in air at one end and forcing it out the other to generate thrust.
A device built with several thrusters pointed along different axes could remain
in one position, or indeed navigate through space.
Each
aerostat in the dog pod grid was a mirror-surfaced, aerodynamic teardrop just
wide enough, at its widest part, to have contained a pingpong ball. These pods
were programmed to hang in space in a hexagonal grid pattern, about ten
centimeters apart near the ground (close enough to stop a dog but not a cat,
hence "dog pods") and spaced wider as they got higher. In this
fashion a hemispherical dome was limned around the sacrosanct airspace of the
New Atlantis Clave. When wind gusted, the pods all swung into it like
weathervanes, and the grid deformed for a bit as the pods were shoved around;
but all of them eventually worked their way back into place, swimming upstream
like minnows, propelling the air turbines. The 'bines made a thin hissing
noise, like a razor blade cutting air, that, when multiplied by the number of
pods within earshot, engendered a not altogether cheerful ambience. Enough
wrestling with the wind, and a pod's battery would run down. Then it would swim
over and nuzzle its neighbor. The two would mate in midair, like dragonflies,
and the weaker would take power from the stronger. The system included larger
aerostats called nurse drones that would cruise around dumping large amounts of
power into randomly selected pods all over the grid, which would then
distribute it to their neighbors. If a pod thought it was having mechanical
trouble, it would send out a message, and a fresh pod would fly out from the
Royal Security installation beneath Source Victoria and relieve it so that it
could fly home to be decompiled.
As
numerous eight-year-old boys had discovered, you could not climb the dog pod
grid because the pods didn't have enough thrust to support your weight; your
foot would just mash the first pod into the ground. It would try to work its
way loose, but if it were stuck in mud or its turbines fouled, another pod
would have to come out and replace it. For the same reason you could pluck any
pod from its place and carry it away. When Hackworth had performed this stunt
as a youth, he had discovered that the farther it got from its appointed place
the hotter it became, all the while politely informing him, in clipped military
diction, that he had best release it or fall victim to vaguely adumbrated
consequences. But nowadays you could just steal one or two whenever you felt
like it, and a new one would come out and replace it; once they figured out
they were no longer part of the grid, the pods would self-scramble and become
instant souvenirs.
This
user-friendly approach did not imply that grid-tampering went ignored, or that
such activities were approved of. You could walk through the grid whenever you
chose by shoving a few pods out of the way- unless Royal Security had told the
pods to electrocute you or blast you into chum. If so, they would politely warn
you before doing it. Even when they were in a more passive mode, though, the
aerostats were watching and listening, so that nothing got through the dog pod
grid without becoming an instant media celebrity with hundreds of uniformed
fans down in Royal Joint Forces Command.
Unless
it was microscopic. Microscopic invaders were more of the threat nowadays. Just
to name one example, there was Red Death, a.k.a. the Seven Minute Special, a
tiny aerodynamic capsule that burst open after impact and released a thousand
or so corpuscle-size bodies, known colloquially as cookie-cutters, into the
victim's bloodstream. It took about seven minutes for all of the blood in a
typical person's body to recirculate, so after this interval the cookie-cutters
would be randomly distributed throughout the victim's organs and limbs.
A
cookie-cutter was shaped like an aspirin tablet except that the top and bottom
were domed more to withstand ambient pressure; for like most other
nanotechnological devices a cookie-cutter was filled with vacuum. Inside were
two centrifuges, rotating on the same axis but in opposite directions, preventing
the unit from acting like a gyroscope. The device could be triggered in various
ways; the most primitive were simple seven-minute time bombs.
Detonation
dissolved the bonds holding the centrifuges together so that each of a thousand
or so balhisticules suddenly flew outward. The enclosing shell shattered
easily, and each ballisticule kicked up a shock wave, doing surprisingly little
damage at first, tracing narrow linear disturbances and occasionally taking a
chip out of a bone. But soon they slowed to near the speed of sound, where
shock wave piled on top of shock wave to produce a sonic boom. Then all the
damage happened at once. Depending on the initial speed of the centrifuge, this
could happen at varying distances from the detonation point; most everything
inside the radius was undamaged but everything near it was pulped; hence,
"cookie-cutter."
The
victim then made a loud noise like the crack of a whip, as a few fragments
exited his or her flesh and dropped through the sound barrier in air. Startled
witnesses would turn just in time to see the victim flushing bright pink.
Bloodred crescents would suddenly appear all over the body; these marked the
geometric intersection of detonation surfaces with skin and were a boon to
forensic types, who could thereby identify the type of cookie-cutter by
comparing the marks against a handy pocket reference card. The victim was just
a big leaky sack of undifferentiated gore at this point and, of course, never
survived.
Such
inventions had spawned concern that people from Phyle A might surreptitiously
introduce a few million lethal devices into the bodies of members of Phyle B,
providing the technically sweetest possible twist on the trite, ancient dream
of being able instantly to turn a whole society into gravy. A few inroads of
that kind had been made, a few mass closed-casket funerals had been held, but
not many. It was hard to control these devices. If a person ate or drank one,
it might end up in their body, but it might just go into the food chain and get
recycled into the body of someone you liked. But the big problem was the host's
immune system, which caused enough of a histological fuss to tip off the
intended victims.
What
worked in the body could work elsewhere, which is why phyles had their own
immune systems now. The impregnable-shield paradigm didn't work at the nano
level; one needed to hack the mean free path. A well-defended clave was
surrounded by an aerial buffer zone infested with immunocules- microscopic
aerostats designed to seek and destroy invaders. In the case of
Atlantis/Shanghai this zone was never shallower than twenty kilometers. The
innermost ring was a greenbelt lying on both sides of the dog pod grid, and the
outer ring was called the Leased Territories.
It
was always foggy in the Leased Territories, because all of the immunocules in
the air sensed as nuclei for the condensation of water vapor. If you stared
carefully into the fog and focused on a point inches in front of your nose, you
could see it sparkling, like so many microscopic searchlights, as the
immunocules swept space with lidar beams. Lidar was like radar except that it
used the smaller wavelengths that happened to be visible to the human eye. The
sparkling of tiny lights was the evidence of microscopic dreadnoughts hunting
each other implacably through the fog, like U-boats and destroyers in the black
water of the North Atlantic.
Nell
sees something peculiar; Harv explains
all.
One morning Nell
looked out the window and saw the world had turned the color of pencil lead.
Cars, velocipedes, quadrupeds, even power-skaters left towering black vortices
in their wakes. Harv came back from being out all night. Nell screamed when she
saw him because he was a charcoal wraith with two monstrous growths on his face.
He peeled back a filter mask to reveal grayish-pink skin underneath. He showed
her his white teeth and then took up coughing. He went about this methodically,
conjuring tangles of spun phlegm from his deepest alveoli and projecting them
into the toilet. Now and then he would stop just to breathe, and a faint
whistling noise would come from his throat.
Harv
did not explain himself but went about working with his things. He unscrewed
the bulges on his mask and took out black things that kicked up little black
dust storms when he tossed them onto the floor. He replaced them with a couple
of white things that he took from a Nanobar wrapper, though by the time he was
finished, the white things were covered with his black fingerprints, the ridges
and whorls perfectly resolved. He
held the Nanobar wrapper up to the light for a moment. "Early
protocol," he rasped, and pitched it toward the wastebasket.
Then
he held the mask up to Nell's face, guided the straps around her head, and
tightened them down. Her long hair got caught in the buckles and pinched, but
her objections were muffled by the mask. It took a little effort to breathe
now. The mask pressed against her face when she inhaled and whooshed when she
exhaled.
"Keep
it on," Harv said. "It'll protect you from toner."
"What's
toner?" she mumbled. The words did not make it out through the mask, but
Harv guessed them from the look in her eyes.
"Mites,"
he said, "or so they say down at the Flea Circus anyway." He picked
up one of the black things taken from the mask and flicked it with a fingertip.
A cineritious cloud swirled out of it, like a drop of ink in a glass of water,
and hung swirling in the air, neither rising nor falling. Sparkles of light
flashed in the midst of it like fairy dust. "See, there's mites around,
all the time. They use the sparkles to talk to each other," Harv
explained. "They're in the air, in food and water, everywhere. And there's
rules that these mites are supposed to follow, and those rules are called
protocols. And there's a protocol from way back that says they're supposed to
be good for your lungs. They're supposed to break down into safe pieces if you
breathe one inside of you." Harv paused at this point, theatrically, to
summon forth one more ebon loogie, which Nell guessed must be swimming with
safe mite bits. "But there are people who break those rules sometimes. Who
don't follow the protocols. And I guess if there's too many mites in the air
all breaking down inside your lungs, millions- well maybe those safe pieces aren't
so safe if there's millions. But anyways, the guys at the Flea Circus say that
sometimes the mites go to war with each other. Like maybe someone in Shanghai
makes a mite that doesn't follow the protocol, and gets his matter compiler to
making a whole lot of them, and sends them all across the water to New Atlantis
Clave to snoop on the Vickys, or even maybe to do them harm. Then some Vicky-
one of their Protocol Enforcement guys- makes a mite to go out and find that
mite and kill it, and they get into a war.
That's
what's happening today, Nell. Mites fighting other mites. This dust- we call it
toner- is actually the dead bodies of all those mites."
"When
will the war be over?" Nell asked, but Harv could not hear her, having
entered into another coughing jag.
Eventually
Harv got up and tied a strip of white Nanobar around his face. The spot over
his mouth immediately began turning gray. He ejected used cartridges from his
mite gun and inserted new ones. It was shaped like a gun, but it sucked air in instead
of shooting things out. You loaded it with drum-shaped cartridges filled with
accordion-pleated paper. When you turned it on, it made a little whooshing
noise as it sucked air- and hopefully mites- through the paper. The mites got
stuck in there. "Gotta go," he said, goosing the trigger on the gun a
couple of times. "Never know what I might find." Then he headed for
the exit, leaving black toner footprints on the floor, which were scoured away
by the swirling air currents in his wake, as if he had never passed that way.
Hackworth
compiles the Young Lady's Illustrated Primer;
particulars of the underlying technology.
Bespoke was a
Victorian house on a hill, a block long and replete with wings, turrets, atria,
and breezy verandas. Hackworth was not senior enough to merit a turret or a
balcony, but he did have a view into a garden where gardenia and boxwood grew.
Sitting at his desk, he could not see the garden, but he could smell it,
especially when the wind blew in from the sea.
Runcible
was sitting on his desk in the form of a stack of papers, most of them signed
JOHN PERCIVAL HACKWORTH.
He
unfolded Cotton's document. It was still running the little industrial cartoon.
Cotton had clearly enjoyed himself. No one ever got fired for going with
enhanced photorealism, but Hackworth's own signature look was lifted from
nineteenth-century patent applications: black on white, shades of gray implied
with nearly microscopic crosshatching, old-fashioned letterpress font a little
rough around the edges. It drove clients wild- they always wanted to blow up
the diagrams on their drawing-room mediatrons. Cotton got it. He'd done his
diagram in the same style, and so his nanotechnological battery chugged away on
the page looking much like the gear train of an Edwardian dreadnought.
Hackworth
put Cotton's document atop the Runcible stack and guillotined it against the
desktop a couple of times, superstitiously trying to make it look neat. He
carried it to the corner of his office, over by the window, where a new piece
of furniture had recently been rolled in by the porter: a cherrywood cabinet on
brass casters. It came up to his waist. On top was a polished brass mechanism-
an automatic document reader with detachable tray. A small door in the back betrayed
a Feed port, one centimeter, typical of household appliances but startlingly
wimpy in a heavy industrial works, especially considering that this cabinet
contained one of the most powerful computers on earth- five cc's of Bespoke rod
logic. It used about a hundred thousand watts of power, which came in over the
superconducting part of the Feed. The power had to be dissipated, or else the
computer would incinerate itself and most of the building too. Getting rid of
that energy had been much more of an engineering job than the rod logic. The
latest Feed protocol had a solution built in: a device could now pull ice off
the Feed, one microscopic chunk at a time, and output warm water.
Hackworth
put the stack of documents into the feed tray on top and told the machine to
compile Runcible. There was a card-shuffling buzz as the reader grabbed the
edge of each page momentarily and extracted its contents. The flexible Feed
line, which ran from the wall into the back of the cabinet, jerked and
stiffened orgasmically as the computer's works sucked in a tremendous jolt of
hypersonic ice and shot back warm water. A fresh sheet of paper appeared in the
cabinet's output tray.
The
top of the document read, "RUNCIBLE VERSION 1.0- COMPILED
SPECIFICATION." The only other thing on the document was a picture of the
final product, nicely rendered in Hackworth's signature pseudo-engraved style.
It looked exactly like a book.
On
his way down the vast helical stair in the largest and most central of
Bespoke's atria, Hackworth pondered his upcoming crime. It was entirely too
late to go back now. It flustered him that he had unconsciously made up his
mind months ago without marking the occasion.
Though
Bespoke was a design rather than a production house, it had its own matter
compilers, including a couple of fairly big ones, a hundred cubic meters.
Hackworth had reserved a more modest desktop model, one-tenth of a cubic meter.
Use of these compilers had to be logged, so he identified himself and the
project first. Then the machine accepted the edge of the document.
Hackworth
told the matter compiler to begin immediately, and then looked through a
transparent wall of solid diamond into the eutactic environment.
The
universe was a disorderly mess, the only interesting bits being the organized
anomalies. Hackworth had once taken his family out rowing on the pond in the
park, and the ends of the yellow oars spun off compact vortices, and Fiona, who
had taught herself the physics of liquids through numerous experimental beverage
spills and in the bathtub, demanded an explanation for these holes in water.
She leaned over the gunwhale, Gwendolyn holding the sash of her dress, and felt
those vortices with her hands, wanting to understand them. The rest of the
pond, simply water in no particular order, was uninteresting.
We
ignore the blackness of outer space and pay attention to the stars, especially
if they seem to order themselves into constellations. "Common as the
air" meant something worthless, but Hackworth knew that every breath of
air that Fiona drew, lying in her little bed at night, just a silver glow in
the moonlight, was used by her body to make skin and hair and bones. The air
became Fiona, and deserving- no, demanding- of love. Ordering matter was the
sole endeavor of Life, whether it was a jumble of self-replicating molecules in
the primordial ocean, or a steam-powered English mill turning weeds into
clothing, or Fiona lying in her bed turning air into Fiona.
A
leaf of paper was about a hundred thousand nanometers thick; a third of a
million atoms could fit into this span. Smart paper consisted of a network of
infinitesimal computers sandwiched between mediatrons. A mediation was a thing
that could change its color from place to place; two of them accounted for about
two-thirds of the paper's thickness, leaving an internal gap wide enough to
contain structures a hundred thousand atoms wide.
Light
and air could easily penetrate to this point, so the works were contained
within vacuoles- airless buckminsterfullerene shells overlaid with a reflective
aluminum layer so that they would not implode en masse whenever the page was
exposed to sunlight. The interiors of the buckyballs, then, constituted
something close to a eutactic environment. Here resided the rod logic that made
the paper smart. Each of these spherical computers was linked to its four
neighbors, north-east-southwest, by a bundle of flexible pushrods running down
a flexible, evacuated buckytube, so that the page as a whole constituted a
parallel computer made up of about a billion separate processors. The
individual processors weren't especially smart or fast and were so susceptible
to the elements that typically only a small fraction of them were working, but
even with those limitations the smart paper still constituted, among other
things, a powerful graphical computer.
And
still, Hackworth reflected, it had nothing on Runcible, whose pages were
thicker and more densely packed with computational machinery, each sheet folded
four times into a sixteen-page signature, thirty-two signatures brought
together in a spine that, in addition to keeping the book from falling apart,
functioned as an enormous switching system and database. It was made to be
robust, but it still had to be born in the eutactic womb, a solid diamond
vacuum chamber housing a start matter compiler. The diamond was doped with
something that let only red light pass through; standard engineering practice
eschewed any molecular bonds that were tenuous enough to be broken by those
lazy red photons, underachievers of the visible spectrum. Thus the growth of
your prototype was visible through the window- a good last-ditch safety
measure. If your code was buggy and your project grew too large, threatening to
shatter the walls of the chamber, you could always shut it down via the
ludicrously low-tech expedient of shutting off the Feed line.
Hackworth
wasn't worried, but he watched the initial phases of growth anyway, just
because it was always interesting. In the beginning was an empty chamber, a
diamond hemisphere, glowing with dim red light. In the center of the floor
slab, one could see a naked cross-section of an eight-centimeter Feed, a
central vacuum pipe surrounded by a collection of smaller lines, each a bundle
of microscopic conveyor belts carrying nanomechanical building blocks-
individual atoms, or scores of them linked together in handy modules.
The
matter compiler was a machine that sat at the terminus of a Feed and, following
a program, plucked molecules from the conveyors one at a time and assembled
them into more complicated structures. Hackworth was the programmer. Runcible
was the program. It was made up of a number of subprograms, each of which had
resided on a separate piece of paper until a few minutes ago, when the
immensely powerful computer in Hackworth's office had compiled them into a
single finished program written in a language that the matter compiler could
understand.
A
transparent haze coalesced across the terminus of the Feed, mold on an overripe
strawberry. The haze thickened and began adopting a shape, some parts a little
higher than others. It spread across the floor away from the Feed line until it
had filled out its footprint: one quadrant of a circle with a radius of a dozen
centimeters. Hackworth continued to watch until he was sure he could see the
top edge of the book growing out of it.
In
the corner of this lab stood an evolved version of a copy machine that could
take just about any kind of recorded information and transmogrify it into
something else. It could even destroy a piece of information and then attest to
the fact that it had been destroyed, which was useful in the relatively
paranoid environment of Bespoke. Hackworth gave it the document containing the
compiled Runcible code and destroyed it. Provably.
When
it was finished, Hackworth released the vacuum and lifted the red diamond dome.
The finished book stood upright atop the system that had extruded it, which was
turned into a junkheap as soon as it was touched by the air. Hackworth picked
up the book in his right hand and the extruder in his left, and tossed the
latter into a junk bin.
He
locked the book in a desk drawer, picked up his top hat, gloves, and
walking-stick, stepped into his walker, and set off for the Causeway. Toward
Shanghai.
Nell
& Harv's general living situation; the Leased Territories; Tequila.
China was right
across the water, and you could see it if you went down to the beach. The city
there, the one with skyscrapers, was called Pudong, and beyond that was Shanghai.
Harv went there with his friends sometimes. He said it was bigger than you
could imagine, old and dirty and full of strange people and sights.
They
lived in the L.T., which according to Harv was short for Leased Territories in
letters. Nell already knew the mediaglyphics for it. Harv had also taught her
the sign for Enchantment, which was the name of the Territory where they lived;
it was a princess sprinkling golden specks from a stick onto some gray houses, which turned yellow and bright when
the specks touched them. Nell thought that the specks were mites, but Harv
insisted that mites were too small to be seen, that the stick was a magic wand
and the specks were fairy dust. In any case, Harv made her remember that
mediaglyph so that if she ever got lost, she could find her way home.
"But
it's better if you just call me," Harv said, "and I'll come and find
you."
"Why?"
"Because
there's bad people out there, and you shouldn't walk through the L.T. alone,
ever."
"What
bad people?"
Harv
looked troubled, heaved multiple sighs, fidgeted. "You know that ractive I
was in the other day, where there were pirates, and they tied up the kids and
were going to make them walk the plank?"
"Yeah."
"There
are pirates in the L.T. too."
"Where?"
"Don't
bother looking. You can't see 'em. They don't look like pirates, with the big
hats and swords and all. They just look like normal people. But they're pirates
on the inside, and they like to grab kids and tie 'em up."
"And
make them walk the plank?"
"Something
like that."
"Call
the police!"
"I
don't think the police would help. Maybe they would."
Police
were Chinese. They came across the Causeway from Shanghai. Nell saw them up
close once, when they came into the house to arrest Mom's boyfriend Rog. Rog
wasn't home, just Nell and Harv were, and so Harv let them in and let them sit
in the living room and fetched tea for them. Harv spoke some words of
Shanghainese to them, and they grinned and ruffled his hair. He told Nell to
stay in their bedroom and not come out, but Nell came out anyway and peeked.
There were three policemen, two in uniforms and one in a suit, and they sat
smoking cigarettes and watching something on the mediatron until Rog came back.
Then they had an argument with him and took him out, shouting the whole way.
After that, Rog didn't come around anymore, and Tequila started going out with
Mark.
Unlike
Rog, Mark had a job. He worked in the New Atlantis Clave cleaning windows of
the Vickys' homes. He would come home late in the afternoon all tired and dirty
and take a long shower in their bathroom. Sometimes he would have Nell come
into the bathroom with him and help scrub his back, because he couldn't quite
reach one spot in the middle. Sometimes he would look at Nell's hair and tell
her that she needed a bath, and then she would take off her clothes and climb
into the shower with him and he would help wash her.
One
day she asked Harv whether Mark ever gave him a shower. Harv got upset and
asked her a lot of questions. Later, Harv told Tequila about it, but Tequila
had an argument with him and sent him to his room with one side of his face red
and puffy. Then Tequila talked to Mark. They argued in the living room, the
thumps booming through the wall as Harv and Nell huddled together in Harv's
bed.
Harv
and Nell both pretended to go to sleep that night, but Nell heard Harv getting
up and sneaking out of the house. She didn't see him for the rest of the night.
In the morning, Mark got up and went to work, and then Tequila got up and put a
lot of makeup all over her face and went to work.
Nell
was alone the whole day, wondering if Mark was going to make her take a shower
that evening. She knew from the way Harv had reacted that the showers were a
bad thing, and in a way it felt good to know this because it explained why it
felt wrong. She did not know how to stop Mark from making her take the shower
this evening. She told Dinosaur, Duck, Peter, and Purple about it.
These
four creatures were the only animals that had sun'ived a great massacre
perpetrated during the previous year by Mac, one of Mom's boyfriends, who in a
fit of rage had gathered up all of the dolls and stuffed animals in Nell's room
and stuffed them into the knacking hatch.
When
Harv had opened it up a few hours later, he had found all of the toys vanished
except for these four. He had explained that the deke bin would only work on
things that had come from the M.C.originally, and that anything that had been
made "by hand" (a troublesome concept to explain) was rejected.
Dinosaur, Duck, Peter, and Purple were old ragged things that had been made
"by hand."
When
Nell told them her story, Dinosaur was brave and said that she should fight
Mark. Duck had some ideas, but they were silly ideas, because Duck was just a little
kid. Peter thought she should run away. Purple thought she should use magic and
sprinkle Mark with fairy dust; some of it would be like the mites that
(according to Hanr) the Vickys used to protect themselves from bad people.
In
the kitchen was some food that Tequila had brought home last night, including
chopsticks with little mediatrons built into their handles so that
mediaglyphics ran up and down them while you ate. Nell knew that there must be
mites in there, to make those mediaglyphics, and so she took one of the
chopsticks as her magic wand. She also had a silvery plastic balloon that Harv
had made her in the M.C. All the air had gone out of it. She reckoned it would
make a nice shield like she had once seen on the arm of a knight in one of Harv's
ractives. She sat in the corner of the room on her mattress with Dinosaur and
Purple in front of her, and Duck and Peter behind her, and waited, clutching
her magic wand and her shield.
But
Mark didn't come home. Tequila came home and wondered where Mark was, but
didn't seem to mind that he wasn't there. Finally Harv came back, late that
night, after Nell had gone to bed, and hid something under his mattress. The
next day Nell looked: It was a pair of heavy sticks, each about a foot long,
joined in the middle by a short chain, and the whole thing was smeared with
reddish-brown stuff that had gone sticky and crusty.
The
next time Nell saw Harv, he told her that Mark was never coming back, that he
was one of the pirates he'd warned her about, and that if anyone else ever
tried to do such things to her, she should run away and scream and tell Harv
and his friends right away. Nell was astonished; she had not understood just
how tricky pirates were until this moment.
Hackworth
crosses the Causeway into Shanghai; ruminations.
The Causeway
joining New Chusan and the Pudong Economic Zone was Atlantis/Shanghai's whole
reason for existence, being in fact a titanic Feed restrained by mountainous
thrust bearings at each end.
From
the standpoint of mass & cash flow, the physical territory of New Chusan
itself, a lung of smart coral respiring in the ocean, was nothing more or less
than the fountainhead of China's consumer economy, its only function to spew
megatons of nanostuff into the Middle Kingdom's ever amplifying Feed network,
reaching millions of new peasants every month.
For
most of its length the Causeway skimmed the high tide level, but the middle
kilometer arched to let ships through; not that anyone really needed ships
anymore, but a few recalcitrant swabbies and some creative tour operators were
still plying the Yangtze estuary in junks, which looked precious underneath the
catenary arch of the big Feed, strumming
the ancient-meets-modern chord for adherents of the National Geographic worldview.
As Hackworth reached the apogee, he could see similar Causeways to port and
starboard, linking the outskirts of Shanghai with other artificial islands.
Nippon Nano looked Fujiesque, a belt of office buildings around the waterline,
houses above that, the higher the better, then a belt of golf courses, the
whole top third reserved for gardens, bamboo groves, and other forms of
micromanaged Nature. In the other direction was a little bit of Hindustan. The
geotecture of their island owed less to the Mogul period than to the Soviet, no
effort being made to shroud its industrial heart in fractal artifice. It
squatted out there some ten kilometers from New Chusan, sabotaging many
expensive views and serving as the butt of snotty wog jokes. Hackworth never
joined in these jokes because he was better informed than most and knew that
the Hindustanis stood an excellent chance of stomping all over the Victorians
and the Nipponese in the competition for China. They were just as smart, there
were more of them, and they understood the peasant thing.
From
the high point of the arch, Hackworth could look across the flat territory of
outer Pudong and into the high-rise district of metropolis. He was struck, as
ever, by the sheer clunkiness of old cities, the acreage sacrificed, over the
centuries, to various stabs at the problem of Moving Stuff Around. Highways,
bridges, railways, and their attendant smoky, glinting yards, power lines,
pipelines, port facilities ranging from sampan-and-junk to stevedore-and-cargo-net
to containership, airports. Hackworth had enjoyed San Francisco and was hardly
immune to its charm, but Atlantis/Shanghai had imbued him with, the sense that
all the old cities of the world were doomed, except possibly as theme parks,
and that the future was in the new cities, built from the bedrock up one atom
at a time, their Feed lines as integral as capillaries were to flesh. The old
neighborhoods of Shanghai, Feedless or with overhead Feeds kludged in on bamboo
stilts, seemed frighteningly inert, like an opium addict squatting in the
middle of a frenetic downtown street, blowing a reed of sweet smoke out between
his teeth, staring into some ancient dream that all the bustling pedestrians
had banished to unfrequented parts of their minds.
Hackworth
was heading for one of those neighborhoods right now, as fast as he could walk.
If
you counterfeited directly from a Feed, it would be noticed sooner or later,
because all matter compilers fed information back to the Source.
You
needed your very own private Source, disconnected from the Feed network, and
this was a difficult thing to make. But a motivated counterfeiter could, with
some ingenuity and patience, put together a Source capable of providing an
assortment of simple building blocks in the range of ten to a hundred daltons.
There were a lot of people like that in Shanghai, some more patient and
ingenious than others.
Hackworth
in the hong of Dr. X.
The scalpel's
edge was exactly one atom wide; it delaminated the skin of Hackworth's palm
like an airfoil gliding through smoke. He peeled off a strip the size of a
nailhead and proffered it to Dr. X, who snatched it with ivory chopsticks,
dredged it through an exquisite cloisonné bowl filled with chemical dessicant,
and arranged it on a small windowpane of solid diamond.
Dr.
X's real name was a sequence of shushing noises, disembodied metallic buzzes,
unearthly quasi-Germanic vowels, and half-swallowed R's, invariably mangled by
Westerners. Possibly for political reasons, he preferred not to pick a fake
Western name like many Asians, instead suggesting, in a vaguely patronizing
way, that they should just be satisfied with calling him Dr. X- that letter
being the first in the Pinyin spelling of his name.
Dr.
X placed the diamond slide into a stainless-steel cylinder. At one end was a
teflon-gasketed flange riddled with bolt-holes. Dr. X handed it to one of his
assistants, who carried it with both hands, as if it were a golden egg on a
silken pillow, and mated it with another flange on a network of massive
stainless-steel plumbing that covered
most of two tabletops. The assistant's assistant got the job of inserting all
the shiny bolts and torque-wrenching them down.
Then
the assistant flicked a switch, and an old-fashioned vacuum pump whacked into
life, making conversation impossible for a minute or two. During this time
Hackworth looked around Dr. X's laboratory, trying to peg the century and in
some cases even the dynasty of each item. A row of mason jars stood on a high
shelf, filled with what looked like giblets floating in urine. Hackworth
supposed that they were the gall bladders of now-extinct species, no doubt
accruing value by the moment, better than any mutual fund. A locked gun cabinet
and a primeval Macintosh desktop-publishing system, green with age, attested to
the owner's previous forays into officially discouraged realms of behavior. A
window had been cut into one wall, betraying an airshaft no larger than a
grave, from the bottom of which grew a gnarled maple. Other than that, the room
was packed with so many small, numerous, brown, wrinkled, and organic-looking
objects that Hackworth's eyes lost the ability to distinguish one from the
next. There were also some samples of calligraphy dangling here and there,
probably snatches of poetry.
Hackworth
had made efforts to learn a few Chinese characters and to acquaint himself with
some basics of their intellectual system, but in general, he liked his
transcendence out in plain sight where he could keep an eye on it- say, in a nice
stained-glass window- not woven through the fabric of life like gold threads
through a brocade.
Everyone
in the room could tell by its sound when the mechanical pump was finished with
its leg of the relay. The vapor pressure of its own oil had been reached. The
assistant closed a valve that isolated it from the rest of the system, and then
they switched over to the nanopumps, which made no noise at all. They were
turbines, just like the ones in jet engines but very small and lots of them.
Casting a critical eye over Dr. X's vacuum plumbing, Hackworth could see that
they also had a scavenger, which was a cylinder about the size of a child's
head, wrinkled up on the inside into a preposterous surface area coated with
nanodevices good at latching onto stray molecules. Between the nanopumps and
the scavenger, the vacuum rapidly dropped to what you might expect to see
halfway between the Milky Way and Andromeda galaxies. Then Dr. X himself
quivered up out of his chair and began shuffling around the room, powering up a
gallimaufry of contraband technology.
This
equipment came from diverse technological epochs and had been smuggled into
this, the Outer Kingdom, from a variety of sources, but all of it contributed
to the same purpose: It surveyed the microscopic world through X-ray
diffraction, electron microscopy, and direct nanoscale probing, and synthesized
all of the resulting information into a single three-dimensional view. If
Hackworth had been doing this at work, he would already be finished, but Dr. X's
system was a sort of Polish democracy requiring full consent of all
participants, elicited one subsystem at a time. Dr. X and his assistants would
gather around whichever subsystem was believed to be farthest out of line and
shout at each other in a mixture of Shanghainese, Mandarin, and technical
English for a while. Therapies administered included but were not limited to:
turning things off, then on again; picking them up a couple of inches and then
dropping them; turning off nonessential appliances in this and other rooms;
removing lids and wiggling circuit boards; extracting small contaminants, such
as insects and their egg cases, with nonconducting chopsticks; cable-wiggling;
incense-burning; putting folded-up pieces of paper beneath table legs; drinking
tea and sulking; invoking unseen powers; sending runners to other rooms,
buildings, or precincts with exquisitely calligraphed notes and waiting for
them to come back carrying spare parts in dusty, yellowed cardboard boxes; and
a similarly diverse suite of troubleshooting techniques in the realm of
software. Much of this performance seemed to be genuine, the rest merely for
Hackworth's consumption, presumably laying the groundwork for a renegotiation
of the deal.
Eventually
they were looking at the severed portion of John Percival Hackworth on a
meter-wide sheet of mediatronic paper that one of the assistants had, with
great ceremony, unfurled across a low, black lacquer table. They sought
something that was bulky by nanotech standards, so the magnification was not
very high- even so, the surface of Hackworth's skin looked like a table heaped
with crumpled newspapers. If Dr. X shared Hackworth's queasiness, he didn't
show it. He appeared to be sitting with hands folded in the lap of his
embroidered silk robe, but Hackworth leaned forward a bit and saw his yellowed,
inch-long fingernails overhanging the black Swiss cross of an old Nintendo pad.
The fingers moved, the image on the mediation zoomed forward. Something smooth
and inorganic unfolded at the top of their field of view: some kind of remotely
controlled manipulator. Under Dr. X's direction it began to sift through the
heap of desiccated skin. They found a lot of mites, of course, both natural and
artificial.
The
natural ones looked like little crabs and had been quietly inhabiting the outer
layers of other creatures' bodies for hundreds of millions of years. The
artificial ones had all been developed in the past few decades. Most of them
consisted of a spherical or ellipsoidal hull with various attachments. The hull
was a vacuole, a wee bit of the eutactic environment to coddle the mite's
machine-phase innards. The hull's diamondoid structure was protected from the
light by a thin layer of aluminum that made mites look like miniature
spaceships- only with the air on the outside and the vacuum inside.
Attached
to the hulls were various bits of gear: manipulators, sensors, locomotion
systems, and antennas. The antennas were not at all like the ones on an insect-
they were usually flat patches studded with what looked like close-cropped
fuzz- phased-array systems for sweeping beams of visible light through the air.
Most of the mites were also clearly marked with the manufacturer's name and a
part number; this was demanded by Protocol. A few of them were unmarked. These
were illicit and had been invented either by people like Dr. X; by outlaw
phyles who spurned Protocol; or by the covert labs that most people assumed
were run by all the zaibatsus.
During
half an hour's rooting around through Hackworth's skin, roaming around an area
perhaps a millimeter on a side, they obsen'ed a few dozen artificial mites, not
an unusual number nowadays. Almost all of them were busted. Mites didn't last
very long because they were small but complicated, which left little space for
redundant systems. As soon as one got hit with a cosmic ray, it died. They also
had little space for energy storage, so many of them simply ran out of juice
after a while. Their manufacturers compensated for this by making a lot of
them.
Nearly
all of the mites were connected in some way with the Victorian immune system,
and of these, most were immunocules whose job was to drift around the dirty
littoral of New Chusan using lidar to home in on any other mites that might
disobey protocol. Finding one, they killed the invader by grabbing onto it and
not letting go. The Victorian system used Darwinian techniques to create
killers adapted to their prey, which was elegant and effective but led to the
creation of killers that were simply too bizarre to have been thought up by
humans, just as humans designing a world never would have thought up tile naked
mole rat. Dr. X took time out to zoom in on an especially freakish killer
locked in a death-grip around an unlabeled mite. This did not necessarily mean
that Hackworth's flesh had been invaded, rather that the dead mites had become
part of the dust on a table somewhere and been ground into his skin when he
touched it.
To
illustrate the kind of mite he was presently looking for, Hackworth had brought
along a cocklebur that he had teased from Fiona's hair after they had gone for
a walk in the park. He had shown it to Dr. X, who had understood immediately,
and eventually he found it. It looked completely different from all the other
mites, because, as a cocklebur, its sole job was to stick to whatever touched
it first. It had been generated a few hours previously by the matter compiler
at Bespoke, which, following Hackworth's instructions, had placed a few million
of them on the outer surface of the Illustrated Primer. Many of them had been
embedded in Hackworth's flesh when he had first picked the book up. Many
remained on the book, back at the office, but Hackworth had anticipated that.
He
made it explicit now, just so Dr. X and his staff wouldn't get any ideas:
"The cocklebur has an internal timer," he said, "that will cause
it to disintegrate twelve hours after it was compiled. We have six hours left
in which to extract the information. It's encrypted, of course."
Dr.
X smiled for the first time all day. . . .
Dr. X was the
ideal man for this job because of his very disreputability. He was a reverse
engineer. He collected artificial mites like some batty Victorian
lepidopterist. He took them apart one atom at a time to see how they worked,
and when he found some clever innovation, he squirreled it away in his
database. Since most of these innovations were the result of natural selection,
Dr. X was usually the first human being to know about them.
Hackworth
was a forger, Dr. X was a honer. The distinction was at least as old as the
digital computer. Forgers created a new technology and then forged on to the
next project, having explored only the outlines of its potential. Honers got
less respect because they appeared to sit still technologically, playing around
with systems that were no longer start, hacking them for all they were worth,
getting them to do things the forgers had never envisioned.
Dr.
X selected a pair of detachable manipulator arms from his unusually large
arsenal. Some of these had been copied from New Atlantan, Nipponese, or
Hindustani designs and looked familiar to Hackworth; others, however, were
bizarre naturalistic devices that seemed to have been torn loose from New
Atlantan immunocules- evolved structures, rather than designed. The Doctor
employed two of these arms to grip the cocklebur. It was an aluminum-covered
megabuckyball in a sunburst of barbed spines, several of which were decorated
with fragments of shishkebabed skin.
Under
Hackworth's direction he rotated the cocklebur until a small spine-free patch
came into view. A circular depression, marked with a regular pattern of holes
and knobs, was set into the surface of the ball, like a docking port on the
side of a spacecraft. Inscribed around the circumference of this fitting was
his maker's mark: IOANNI HACVIRTUS FECIT.
Dr.
X did not need an explanation. It was a standard port. He probably had half a
dozen manipulator arms designed to mate with it. He selected one and maneuvered
its tip into place, then spoke a command in Shanghainese. Then he pulled the
rig off his head and watched his assistant pour him another cup of tea.
"How long?" he said.
"About
a terabyte," Hackworth said. This was a measure of storage capacity, not
of time, but he knew that Dr. X was the sort who could figure it out.
The
ball contained a machine-phase tape drive system, eight reels of tape rigged in
parallel, each with its own read/write machinery. The tapes themselves were
polymer chains with different side groups representing the logical ones and
zeroes. It was a standard component, and so Dr. X already knew that when it was
told to dump, it would spew out about a billion bytes a second.
Hackworth
had just told him that the total stored on the tapes was a trillion bytes, so
they had a thousand seconds to wait. Dr. X took advantage of the time to leave
the room, supported by assistants, and tend to some of the other parallel
threads of his enterprise, which was known informally as the Flea Circus.
Hackworth
departs from Dr. X's laboratory; further
ruminations; poem from Finkle-McGraw;
encounter with ruffians.
Dr.
X's assistant swung the door open and nodded insolently. Hackworth swung his
top hat into place and stepped out of the Flea Circus, blinking at the reek of
China: smoky like the dregs of a hundred million pots of lapsang souchong,
mingled with the sweet earthy smell of pork fat and the brimstony tang of
plucked chickens and hot garlic. He felt his way across the cobbles with the
tip of his walking-stick until his eyes began to adjust. He was now poorer by
several thousand ucus. A sizable investment, but the best a father could make.
Dr.
X's neighborhood was in the Ming Dynasty heart of Shanghai, a warren of tiny
brick structures sheathed in gray stucco, topped with tiled roofs, frequently
surrounded by stucco walls. Iron poles projected from the second-story windows
for drying clothes, so that in the narrow streets the buildings appeared to be
fencing with each other. This neighborhood was near the foundation of the
ancient city wall, built to keep out acquisitive Nipponese ronin, which had
been torn down and made into a ring road.
It
was part of the Outer Kingdom, which meant that foreign devils were allowed, as
long as they were escorted by Chinese. Beyond it, deeper into the old
neighborhood, was supposedly a scrap of the Middle Kingdom proper- the Celestial Kingdom, or
C.K., as they liked to call it- where no foreigners at all were allowed.
An
assistant took Hackworth as far as the border, where he stepped into the
Chinese Coastal Republic, an entirely different country that comprised, among
many other things, virtually all of Shanghai. As if to emphasize this, young
men loitered on corners in Western clothes, listening to loud music, hooting at
women, and generally ignoring their filial duties.
He
could have taken an auto-rickshaw, which was the only vehicle other than a
bicycle or skateboard narrow enough to negotiate the old streets. But you never
could tell what kind of surveillance might be present in a Shanghai taxi. The
departure of a New Atlantis gentleman from the Flea Circus late at night could
only stimulate the imaginations of the gendarmes, who had intimidated the
criminal element to such a degree that they were now feeling restless and looking
for ways to diversify. Sages, seers, and theoretical physicists could only
speculate at what, if any, relationship might exist between the Shanghai Police
Department's astonishing scope of activities and actual law enforcement:
Deplorable, but Hackworth was thankful for it as he sampled the French
Settlement's ramified backstreets. A handful of figures skulked across an
intersection several blocks away, bloody light from a mediatron glancing off
their patchwork Nanobar outfits, the kind of thing only street criminals would
need to wear. Hackworth comforted himself by reasoning that this must be a gang
from one of the Leased Territories who had just come over the Causeway. They
wouldn't possibly be so rash as to assault a gentleman in the street, not in Shanghai.
Hackworth detoured around the intersection anyway. Having never done anything
illegal in his life, he was startled to understand, all of a sudden, that a
ruthless constabulary was a crucial resource to more imaginative sorts of
criminals, such as himself.
Countless
times that afternoon, Hackworth had been overcome by shame, and as many times
he had fought it off with rationalization: What was so bad about what he was
doing? He was not selling any of the new technologies that Lord Finkle-McGraw
had paid Bespoke to develop. He was not profiting directly. He was just trying
to secure a better place in the world for his descendants, which was every
father's responsibility.
Old
Shanghai was close to the Huang Pu; the mandarins had once sat in their garden
pavilions enjoying the river view. Within a few minutes Hackworth had crossed a
bridge into Pudong and was navigating narrow ravines between illuminated
skyscrapers, heading for the coast a few miles farther to the east.
Hackworth
had been catapulted out of the rank-and-file and into Bespoke's elite ranks by
his invention of the mediatronic chopstick. He'd been working in San Francisco
at the time. The company was thinking hard about things Chinese, trying to
one-up the Nipponese, who had already figured out a way to generate passable
rice (five different varieties, yet!) direct from Feed, bypassing the whole
paddy/coolie rat race, enabling two billion peasants to hang up their conical
hats and get into some serious leisure time- and don't think for one moment
that the Nipponese didn't already have some suggestions for what they might do
with it. Some genius at headquarters, stewing over Nippon's prohibitive lead in
nanotechnological rice production, decided the only thing for it was to
leapfrog them by mass-producing entire meals, from wonton all the way to
digital interactive fortune cookies. Hackworth got the seemingly trivial job of
programming the matter compiler to extrude chopsticks.
Now,
doing this in plastic was idiotically simple- polymers and nanotechnology went
together like toothpaste and tubes. But Hackworth, who'd eaten his share of
Chinese as a student, had never taken well to the plastic chopsticks, which
were slick and treacherous in the blunt hands of a gwailo.
Bamboo was better- and not that much harder to program, if you just had a bit
of imagination. Once he'd made that conceptual leap, it wasn't long before he
came up with the idea of selling advertising space on the damn things,
chopstick handles and Chinese columnar script being a perfect match. Before
long he was presenting it to his superiors: eminently user-friendly bamboid
chopsters with colorful advertising messages continuously scrolling up their
handles in real time, like news headlines in Times Square. For that, Hackworth was
kicked upstairs to Bespoke and across the Pacific to Atlantis/Shanghai. He saw
these chopsticks everywhere now. To the Equity Lords, the idea had been worth
billions; to Hackworth, another week's paycheck. That was the difference
between the classes, right there. He wasn't doing that badly, compared to most
other people in the world, but it still rankled him. He wanted more for Fiona.
He wanted Fiona to grow up with some equity of her own. And not just a few
pennies invested in common stocks, but a serious position in a major company.
Starting
your own company and making it successful was the only way. Hackworth had
thought about it from time to time, but he hadn't done it. He wasn't sure why
not; he had plenty of good ideas. Then he'd noticed that Bespoke was full of
people with good ideas who never got around to starting their own companies.
And he'd met a few big lords, spent considerable time with Lord Finkle-McGraw
developing Runcible, and seen that they weren't really smarter than he. The
difference lay in personality, not in native intelligence.
It
was too late for Hackworth to change his personality, but it wasn't too late
for Fiona.
Before
Finkle-McGraw had come to him with the idea for Runcible, Hackworth had spent a
lot of time pondering this issue, mostly while carrying Fiona through the park
on his shoulders. He knew that he must seem distant to his daughter, though he
loved her so- but only because, when he was with her, he couldn't stop thinking
about her future. How could he inculcate her with the nobleman's emotional
stance- the pluck to take risks with her life, to found a company, perhaps
found several of them even after the first efforts had failed? He had read the
biographies of several notable peers and found few common threads between them.
Just
when he was about to give up and attribute it all to random chance, Lord
Finkle-McGraw had invited him over to his club and, out of nowhere, begun
talking about precisely the same issue. Finkle-McGraw couldn't prevent his
granddaughter Elizabeth's parents from sending her to the very schools for
which he had lost all respect; he had no right to interfere. It was his role as
a grandparent to indulge and give gifts. But why not give her a gift that would
supply the ingredient missing in those schools?
It
sounds ingenious, Hackworth had said, startled by Finkle-McGraw's offhanded
naughtiness. But what is that ingredient?
I
don't exactly know, Finkle-McGraw had said, but as a starting-point, I would
like you to go home and ponder the meaning of the word subversive.
Hackworth
didn't have to ponder it for long, perhaps because he'd been toying with these
ideas so long himself. The seed of this idea had been germinating in his mind
for some months now but had not bloomed, for the same reason that none of
Hackworth's ideas had ever developed into companies. He lacked an ingredient
somewhere, and as he now realized, that ingredient was subversiveness. Lord
Alexander Chung-Sik Finkle-McGraw, the embodiment of the Victorian
establishment, was a subversive. He was unhappy because his children were not
subversives and was horrified at the thought of Elizabeth being raised in the
stodgy tradition of her parents. So now he was trying to subvert his own
granddaughter.
A
few days later, the gold pen on Hackworth's watch chain chimed. Hackworth
pulled out a blank sheet of paper and summoned his mail. The following appeared
on the page:
THE RAVEN A CHRISTMAS TALE, TOLD BY A SCHOOL-BOY TO HIS LITTLE BROTHERS
AND SISTERS by Samuel Taylor
Coleridge (1798) Underneath
an old oak tree There was of swine a huge company That grunted as they crunched
the mast: For that was ripe, and fell full fast. Then they trotted away, for
the wind grew high: One acorn they left, and no more might you spy. Next came a
Raven, that liked not such folly: He belonged, they did say, to the witch
Melancholy! Blacker was he than blackest jet, Flew low in the rain, and his
feathers not wet. He picked up the acorn and buried it straight By the side of
a river both deep and great. Where then did the Raven go? He went high and low,
Over hill, over dale, did the black Raven go. Many Autumns, many Springs
Travelled he with wandering wings: Many summers, many Winters- I can't tell
half his adventures. At length he came back, and with him a She And the acorn
was grown to a tall oak tree. They built them a nest in the topmost bough, And young ones they had, and were happy enow.
But soon came a Woodman in leathern guise, His brow, like a pent-house, hung
over his eyes. He'd an axe in his hanth not a word he spoke, But with many a
hem! and a sturdy stroke, At length he brought down the poor Raven's own oak.
His young ones were killed; for they could not depart, And their mother did die
of a broken heart. The boughs from the trunk the Woodman did sever; And they
floated it down on the course of the river. They sawed it in planks, and its
bark they did strip, And with this tree and others they made a good ship. The
ship, it was launched; but in sight of the land Such a storm there did rise as
no ship would withstand. It bulged on a rock, and the waves rush'd in fast;
Round and round flew the Raven, and cawed to the blast. He heard the last
shriek of the perishing souls- See! see! o'er the topmast the mad water rolls!
Right glad was the Raven, and off he went fleet, And Death riding home on a
cloud he did meet, And he thank'd him again and again for this treat: They had
taken his all, and REVENGE IT WAS SWEET!
Mr. Hackworth:
I
hope the above poem illuminates the ideas I only touched on during our meeting
of Tuesday last, and that it may contribute to your paroemiological studies.
Coleridge
wrote it in reaction to the tone of contemporary children's literature, which
was didactic, much like the stuff they feed to our children in the "best"
schools. As you can see, his concept of a children's poem is refreshingly
nihilistic.
Perhaps
this sort of material might help to inculcate the sought-after qualities.
I
look forward to further conversations on the subject. Finkle-McGraw
This
was only the starting-point of development that had lasted for two years and
culminated today. Christmas was just over a month away. Four-year-old Elizabeth
Finkle-McGraw would receive the Young Lady's Illustrated Primer from
her grandfather.
Fiona
Hackworth would be getting a copy of the Illustrated Primer too, for this had
been John Percival Hackworth's crime: He had programmed the matter compiler to
place the cockleburs on the outside of Elizabeth's book. He had paid Dr. X to
extract a terabyte of data from one of the cockleburs. That data was, in fact,
an encrypted copy of the matter compiler program that had generated the Young Lady's Illustrated
Primer. He had paid Dr. X for the use of one of
his matter compilers, which was connected to private Sources owned by Dr. X and
not connected to any Feed. He had generated a second, secret copy of the
Primer.
The
cockleburs had already self-destructed, leaving no evidence of his crime. Dr. X
probably had a copy of the program on his computers, but it was encrypted, and
Dr. X was smart enough simply to erase the thing and free up the storage,
knowing that the encryption schemes apt to be used by someone like Hackworth
could not be cracked without divine intervention.
Before
long the streets widened, and the hush of tires on pavement blended with the
buller of waves against the gradual shores of Pudong. Across the bay, the white
lights of the New Atlantis Clave rose up above the particolored mosaic of the
Leased Territories. It seemed a long way off, so on impulse Hackworth rented a
velocipede from an old man who had set up a stall in the lee of the Causeway's
thrust bearing. He rode out onto the Causeway and, invigorated by the cool
moist air on his face and hands, decided to pedal for a while. When he reached the arch, he allowed
the bike's internal batteries to carry him up the slope. At the summit he
turned it off and began to coast down the other side, enjoying the speed.
His
top hat flew off. It was a good one, with a smart band that was supposed to make
these mishaps a thing of the past, but as an engineer, Hackworth had never
taken the manufacturer's promise seriously. Hackworth
was going too fast to make a safe U-turn, and so he put on the brakes. When he
finally got himself turned around, he was unable to see his hat. He did see
another cyclist coming toward him. It was a young man, covered in a slick
Nanobar outfit. Except for his head, which was smartly adorned with Hackworth's top hat.
Hackworth
was prepared to ignore this jape; it was probably the only way the boy could
safely get the hat down the hill, as prudence dictated keeping both hands on
the handlebars. But the boy did not seem to be applying his brakes, and as he
accelerated toward Hackworth, he actually sat up, taking both hands off the
handlebars, and gripped the brim of the hat with both hands. Hackworth thought
the boy was preparing to throw it back as he went by, but instead he pulled it
down onto his head and grinned insolently as he shot past.
"Say!
Stop right there! You have my hat!" Hackworth shouted, but the boy did not
stop. Hackworth stood astride his bicycle and watched unbelievingly as the boy
began to fade into the distance. Then he turned on the bicycle's power assist
and began chasing him.
His
natural impulse had been to summon the police. But since they were on the
Causeway, this would mean the Shanghai Police again. In any case, they could
not possibly have responded fast enough to catch this boy, who was well on his
way to the end of the Causeway, where he could fork off into any of the Leased
Territories.
Hackworth
nearly caught him. Without the power assist it would have been no contest, as
Hackworth exercised daily in his club while this boy had the pudgy, pasty look
typical of thetes. But the boy had a considerable head start. By the time they
reached the first ramp leading down into the Leased Territories, Hackworth was only ten or twenty meters away,
just close enough that he could not resist following the boy down the ramp. An
overhead sign read: ENCHANTMENT.
They
both picked up more speed on the ramp, and once again the boy reached up to
grip the brim of the top hat. This time the bike's front wheel turned the wrong
way. The boy erupted from the seat. The bicycle skittered into the irrelevant
distance and clattered into something. The boy bounced once, rolled, and
skidded for a couple of meters. The hat, its crown partially collapsed, rolled
on its brim, toppled, and wobbled to a stop. Hackworth hit the brakes hard and
overshot the boy for some distance. As before, it took him longer than he would
have liked to get turned around.
And
then he knew for the first time that the boy was not alone but part of a gang,
probably the same group he'd seen in Shanghai; that they'd followed him onto
the Causeway and taken advantage of his fallen top hat to lure him into the
Leased Territories; and that the rest of the gang, four or five boys on
bicycles, was coming toward him down the ramp, coming fast; and in the fog of
light from all of the Leased Territories' mediatronic billboards glittered the
chromium chains of their nunchuks.
Miranda; how she became a ractor; her early career.
From the age of
five, Miranda wanted to be in a ractive. In her early teens, after Mother had
taken her away from Father and Father's money, she'd worked as a
maid-of-all-work, chopping onions and polishing people's sterling-silver
salvers, cake combs, fish trowels, and grape shears. As soon as she got good
enough with hair and makeup to pass for an eighteen-year-old, she worked as a
governess for five years, which paid a little better. With her looks she
probably could have gotten a job as a lady's maid or parlormaid and become an
Upper Servant, but she preferred the governess job. Whatever bad things her
parents had done to her along the way, they had at least put her through some
nice schools, where she'd learned to read Greek, conjugate Latin verbs, speak a
couple of Romance languages, draw, paint, integrate a few simple functions, and
play the piano. Working as a governess,
she could put it all to use. Besides, she preferred even bratty children to
adults.
When
the parents finally dragged their worn-out asses home to give their children
Quality Time, Miranda would run to her subterranean quarters and get into the
cheapest, trashiest ractive she could find. She wasn't going to make the
mistake of spending all her money being in fancy ractives. She wanted to be a
payee, not a payer, and you could practice your racting just as well in a dead
shoot-'em-up as a live Shakespeare.
As
soon as she had saved up her ucus, she made the long-dreamed-of trip to the mod
parlor, strode in with her jawline riding high as the hull of a clipper ship
above a black turtleneck, looking very like a ractor, and asked for the Jodie. That turned
a few heads in the waiting room. From there on it was all very good, madam, and
please make
yourself comfortable here and would you like tea, madam.
It was the first time since she and her mother had left home that anyone had
offered her tea, instead of ordering her to make some, and she knew perfectly
well it would be the last time for several years, even if she got lucky.
The
tat machine worked on her for sixteen hours; they dripped Valium into her arm
so she wouldn't whine. Most tats nowadays went on like a slap on the back. "You sure you want the
skull?" "Yeah, I'm sure."
"Positive?" "Positive." "Okay-" and
SPLAT there was the skull, dripping blood and lymph, blasted through your
epidermis with a wave of pressure that nearly knocked you out of the chair. But
a dermal grid was a whole different thing, and a Jodie was top of the line, it
had a hundred times as many 'sites as the lo-res grid sported by many a porn
starlet, something like ten thousand of them in the face alone. The grossest
part was when the machine reached down her throat to plant a trail of
nanophones from her vocal cords all the way up to her gums. She closed her eyes
for that one.
She
was glad she'd done it on the day before Christmas because she couldn't have
handled the kids afterward. Her face swelled up just like they said it would,
especially around the lips and eyes where the 'site density was greatest. They
gave her creams and drugs, and she used them. The day after that, her mistress
double-taked when Miranda came upstairs to fix the children breakfast. But she
didn't say anything, probably assuming she'd gotten slapped around by a drunken
boyfriend at a Christmas party. Which was hardly Miranda's style, but it was a
comfortable assumption for a New Atlantan woman to make.
When
her face had gotten back to looking exactly the same as it had before her trip
to the tat parlor, she packed everything she owned into a carpet bag and took
the tube into the city.
The
theatre district had its good end and its bad end. The good end was exactly
what and where it had been for centuries. The bad end was a vertical rather
than a horizontal development, being a couple of old office skyscrapers now
fallen into disreputable uses. Like many such structures they were remarkably
unpleasant to look at, but from the point of view of a ractive company, they
were ideal. They had been designed to support a large number of people working
side by side in vast grids of semiprivate cubicles.
"Let's
have a gander at your grid, sweetheart," said a man identifying himself as
Mr. Fred ("not my real name") Epidermis, after he had removed his
cigar from his mouth and given Miranda a prolonged, methodical, full-body
optical grope.
"My
grid ain't no Sweetheart," she said. SweetheartTM and HeroTM were the same
grid as purveyed to millions of women and men respectively. The owners didn't
want to be ractors at all, just to look good when they happened to be in a
ractive. Some were stupid enough to fall for the hype that one of these grids
could serve as the portal to stardom; a lot of those girls probably ended up
talking to Fred Epidermis.
"Ooh,
now I'm all curious," he said, writhing just enough to make Miranda's lip
curl. "Let's put you on stage and see what you got."
The
cubicles where his ractors toiled were mere head stages. He had a few body
stages, though, probably so he could bid on fully ractive porn. He pointed her
toward one of these. She walked in, slammed the door, turned toward the
wall-size mediatron, and got her first look at her new Jodie.
Fred
Epidermis had put the stage into Constellation Mode. Miranda was looking at a
black wall speckled with twenty or thirty thousand individual pricks of white
light. Taken together, they formed a sort of three-dimensional constellation of
Miranda, moving as she moved. Each point of light marked one of the 'sites that
had been poked into her skin by the tat machine during those sixteen hours. Not
shown were the filaments that tied them all together into a network- a new
bodily system overlaid and interlaced with the nervous, lymph, and vascular
systems.
"Holy
shit! Got a fucking Hepburn or something here!" Fred Epidermis was
exclaiming, watching her on a second monitor outside the stage.
"It's
a Jodie," she said, but she stumbled over the words as the field of stars
moved, tracking the displacements of her jaw and lips.
Outside,
Fred Epidermis was wielding the editing controls, zooming in on her face, which
was dense as a galactic core. By comparison, her arms and legs were wispy
nebulas and the back of her head nearly invisible, with a grand total of maybe
a hundred 'sites placed around her scalp like the vertices of a geodesic dome.
The eyes were empty holes, except (she imagined) when she closed her eyes. Just
to check it out, she winked into the mediatron. The 'sites on her eyelids were
dense as grass blades on a putting green, but accordioned together except when
the lid expanded over the eye.
Fred
Epidermis recognized the move and zoomed in so violently on her winking eye
that she nearly threw herself back on her ass. She could hear him chortling.
"You'll get used to it, honey," he said. "Just hold still so I
check the 'sites on your lips."
He
panned to her lips, rotated them this way and that, as she puckered and pursed.
She was glad they'd drugged her out of her mind while they were doing the lips;
thousands of nanosites in there.
"Looks
like we got ourselves an artiste here," Fred Epidermis
said. "Lemme try you in one of our most challenging roles."
Suddenly
a blond, blue-eyed woman was standing in the mediatron, perfectly aping
Miranda's posture, wearing big hair, a white sweater with a big letter F in the
middle, and a preposterously short skirt. She was carrying big colored puffy
things. Miranda recognized her, from old passives she'd seen on the mediatron,
as an American teenager from the previous century. "This is Spirit. A
little old-fashioned to you and me, but popular with tube feeders," said
Fred Epidermis. "'Course your grid's way overkill for this, but hey, we're
about giving the customer what they want- moving those bids, you know."
But
Miranda wasn't really listening; for the first time ever, she was watching
another person move exactly as she moved, as the stage mapped Miranda's grid
onto this imaginary body. Miranda pressed her lips together as if she'd just
put on lipstick, and Spirit did the same. She winked, and Spirit winked. She
touched her nose, and Spirit got a face full of pom-pon.
"Let's
run you through a scene," said Fred Epidermis.
Spirit
vanished and was replaced by an electronic form with blanks for names, numbers,
dates, and other data. He flashed through it before Miranda could really read
it; they didn't need a contract for a dry run. Then she saw Spirit again, this
time from two different camera angles. The mediatron had split up into several
panes. One was a camera angle on Spirit's face, which still did whatever
Miranda's face did. One was a two-shot showing Spirit and an older man,
standing in a room full of big machines. Another pane showed a closeup of the
old man, who as Spirit realized was being played by Fred Epidermis. The old man
said, "Okay, keep in mind we usually play this through a head stage, so
you don't control Spirit's arms and legs, just her face-"
"How
do I walk around?" Miranda said. Spirit's lips moved with hers, and from
the mediatron came Spirit's voice- squeaky and breathy at the same time. The
stage was programmed to take the feeds from the nanophones in her throat and
disp them into a different envelope.
"You
don't. Computer decides where you go, when. Our dirty little secret: This isn't
really that ractive, it's just a plot tree- but it's good enough for our
clientele because all the leaves of the tree- the ends of the branches, you
understand- are exactly the same, namely what the payer wants you to follow?
Well, you'll see," said the old man on the screen, reading Miranda's
confusion in Spirit's face. What looked like guarded skepticism on Miranda came
across as bubble-brained innocence on Spirit. "Cue! Follow the fucking
cues! This isn't improv workshop!" shouted the old man.
Miranda
checked the other panes on the display. One she reckoned was a map of the room,
showing her location and the old man's, with arrows occasionally pulsing in the
direction of movement. The other was a prompter, with a line waiting for her,
flashing red.
"Oh,
hello, Mr. Willie!" she said, "I know school's out, and you must be
very tired after a long day of teaching shop to all of those nasty boys, but I
was wondering if I could ask you for a big, big favor."
"Certainly,
go ahead, whatever," said Fred Epidermis through the face and body of Mr.
Willie, not even pretending to emote.
"Well,
it's just that I have this appliance that's very important to me, and it seems
to have broken. I was wondering if you knew how to fix- one of these,"
Miranda said. On the mediatron, Spirit said the same thing. But Spirit's hand
was moving. She was holding something up next to her face. An elongated glossy
white plastic thing. A vibrator.
"Well,"
said Mr. Willie, "it's a scientific fact that all electrical devices work
on the same principles, so in theory I should be able to help you. But I must
confess, I've never seen an appliance quite like that one. Would you mind
explaining what it is and what it does?"
"I'd
be more than happy to- " said Miranda, but then the display froze and Fred
Epidermis cut her off by shouting through the door. "Enough already,"
he said. "I just had to make sure you could read."
He
opened the stage door and said, "You're hired. Cubicle 238. My commission
is eighty percent. The dormitory's upstairs- pick your own bunk, and clean it
out. You can't afford to live anywhere else."
Harv
brings Nell a present; she experiments
with the Primer.
When Harv came back home, he was walking
with all of his weight on one foot. When the light struck the smudges on his
face in the right way, Nell could see streaks of red mixed in with the dirt and
the toner. He was breathing fast, and he swallowed heavily and often, as though
throwing up were much on his mind. But he was not empty-handed. His arms were
crossed tightly across his belly. He was carrying things in his jacket.
"I
made out, Nell," he said, seeing his sister's face and knowing that she
was too scared to talk first. "Didn't get much, but got some. Got some
stuff for the Flea Circus."
Nell
wasn't sure what the Flea Circus was, but she had learned that it was good to
have stuff to take there, that Harv usually came back from the Flea Circus with
an access code for a new ractive. Harv shouldered the light switch on and
kneeled in the middle of the room before relaxing his arms, lest some small
thing fall out and be lost in a corner. Nell sat in front of him and watched.
He
took out a piece of jewelry swinging ponderously at the end of a gold chain. It
was circular, smooth gold on one side and white on the other. The white side
was protected under a flattened glass dome. It had numbers written around the
edge, and a couple of slender metal things like daggers, one longer than the
other, joined at their hilts in the center. It made a noise like mice trying to
eat their way through a wall in the middle of the night.
Before
she could ask about it, Harv had taken out other things. He had a few
cartridges from his mite trap. Tomorrow Harv would take the cartridge down to
the Flea Circus and find out if he'd caught anything, and whether it was worth
money. There were other things like buttons. But Harv saved the biggest thing
for last, and he withdrew it with ceremony.
"I
had to fight for this, Nell," he said. "I fought hard because I was
afraid the others would break it up for parts. I'm giving it to you."
It
appeared to be a flat decorated box. Nell could tell immediately that it was
fine. She had not seen many fine things in her life, but they had a look of
their own, dark and rich like chocolate, with glints of gold.
"Both
hands," Harv admonished her, "it's heavy."
Nell
reached out with both hands and took it. Harv was right, it was heavier than it
looked. She had to lay it down in her lap or she'd drop it. It was not a box at
all. It was a solid thing. The top was printed with golden letters. The left
edge was rounded and smooth, made of something that felt warm and soft but
strong. The other edges were indented slightly, and they were cream-colored.
Harv
could not put up with the wait. "Open it," he said.
"How?"
Harv
leaned toward her, caught the upper-right corner under his finger, and flipped
it. The whole lid of the thing bent upward around a hinge on the left side,
pulling a flutter of cream-colored leaves after it. Underneath the cover was a
piece of paper with a picture on it and some more letters. On the first page of
the book was a picture of a little girl sitting on a bench. Above the bench was
a thing like a ladder, except it was horizontal, supported at each end by
posts. Thick vines twisted up the posts and gripped the ladder, where they
burst into huge flowers.
The
girl had her back to Nell; she was looking down a grassy slope sprinkled with
little flowers toward a blue pond. On the other side of the pond rose mountains
like the ones they supposedly had in the middle of New Chusan, where the
fanciest Vickys of all had their ęstival houses. The girl had a book open on
her lap. The facing page had a little picture in the upper left, consisting of
more vines and flowers wrapped around a giant egg-shaped letter. But the rest
of that page was nothing but tiny black letters without decoration. Nell turned
it and found two more pages of letters, though a couple of them were big ones
with pictures drawn around them. She turned another page and found another
picture. In this one, the little girl had set aside her book and was talking to
a big black bird that had apparently gotten its foot tangled up in the vines overhead.
She flipped another page.
The
pages she'd already turned were under her left thumb. They were trying to work
their way loose, as if they were alive. She had to press down harder and harder
to keep them there. Finally they bulged up in the middle and slid out from
underneath her thumb and, flop-flop-flop, returned to the beginning of the
story.
"Once
upon a time," said a woman's voice, "there was a little girl named
Elizabeth who liked to sit in the bower in her grandfather's garden and read
story-books." The voice was soft, meant just for her, with an expensive
Victorian accent.
Nell
slammed the book shut and pushed it away. It slid across the floor and came to
rest by the sofa. The next day, Mom's boyfriend Tad came home in a bad mood. He
slammed his six-pack down on the kitchen table, pulled out a beer, and headed
for the living room. Nell was trying to get out of the way. She picked up
Dinosaur, Duck, Peter Rabbit, and Purple, her magic wand, a paper bag that was
actually a car her kids could drive around in, and a piece of cardboard that
was a sword for killing pirates. Then she ran for the room where she and Harv
slept, but Tad had already come in with his beer and begun rooting through the
stuff on the sofa with his other hand, trying to find the control pad for the
mediatron. He threw a lot of Harv's and Nell's toys on the floor and then
stepped on the book with his bare foot.
"Ouch,
god damn it!" Tad shouted. He looked down at the book in disbelief.
"What the fuck is this?!" He wound up as if to kick it, then thought
better of it, remembering he was barefoot. He picked it up and hefted it,
looking straight at Nell and getting a fix on her range and azimuth.
"Stupid little cunt, how many times do I have to tell you to keep your flicking
shit cleaned up!" Then he turned away from her slightly, wrapping his arm
around his body, and snapped the book straight at her head like a frisbee.
She
stood watching it come toward her because it did not occur to her to get out of
the way, but at the last moment the covers flew open. The pages spread apart.
They all bent like feathers as they hit her in the face, and it didn't hurt at
all.
The
book fell to the floor at her feet, open to an illustrated page. The picture
was of a big dark man and a little girl in a cluttered room, the man angrily
flinging a book at the little girl's head. "Once upon a time there was a
little girl named Cunt," the book said.
"My
name is Nell," Nell said.
A
tiny disturbance propagated through the grid of letters on the facing page.
"Your
name's mud if you don't fucking clean this shit up," Tad said. "But
do it later, I want some fucking privacy for once."
Nell's
hands were full, and so she shoved the book down the hallway and into the kids'
room with her foot. She dumped all her stuff on her mattress and then ran back
and shut the door. She left her magic wand and sword nearby in case she should
need them, then set Dinosaur, Duck, Peter, and Purple into bed, all in a neat
to be a bird. Big letters appeared beneath. "R A V E N," the book
said. "Raven. Now, say it with me."
"Raven."
"Very
good! Nell, you are a clever girl, and you have much talent with words. Can you
spell raven?"
Nell
hesitated. She was still blushing from the praise. After a few seconds, the
first of the letters began to blink. Nell prodded it. The letter grew until it
had pushed all the other letters and pictures off the edges of the page. The
loop on top shrank and became a head, while the lines sticking out the bottom
developed into legs and began to scissor. "R is for Run," the book
said. The picture kept on changing until it was a picture of Nell. Then
something fuzzy and red appeared beneath her feet. "Nell Runs on the Red
Rug," the book said, and as it spoke, new words appeared.
"Why
is she running?"
"Because
an Angry Alligator Appeared," the book said, and panned back quite some
distance to show an alligator, waddling along ridiculously, no threat to the
fleet Nell. The alligator became frustrated and curled itself into a circle,
which became a small letter.
"A
is for Alligator. The Very Vast alligator Vainly Viewed Nell's Valiant
Velocity." The little story went on to include an Excited Elf who was
Nibbling Noisily on some Nuts. Then the picture of the Raven came back, with
the letters beneath. "Raven. Can you spell raven, Nell?" A hand
materialized on the page and pointed to the first letter.
"R,"
Nell said.
"Very
good! You are a clever girl, Nell, and good with letters," the book said.
"What is this letter?" and it pointed to the second one.
This
one Nell had forgotten. But the book told her a story about an Ape named
Albert.
A
young hooligan before the court of Judge Fang;
the magistrate confers with his advisers; Justice is served.
"The
revolving chain of a nunchuk has a unique radar signature- reminiscent of that
of a helicopter blade, but noisier," Miss Pao said, gazing up at Judge
Fang over the half-lenses of her phenomenoscopic spectacles. Her eyes went out
of focus, and she winced; she had been lost in some enhanced three-dimensional
image, and the adjustment to dull reality was disorienting. "A cluster of
such patterns was recognized by one of Shanghai P.D.'s sky-eyes at ten seconds
after 2351 hours."
As
Miss Pao worked her way through this summary, images appeared on the big sheet
of mediatronic paper that Judge Fang had unrolled across his brocade tablecloth
and held down with carved jade paperweights. At the moment, the image was a map
of a Leased Territory called Enchantment, with one location, near the Causeway,
highlighted. In the corner was another pane containing a standard picture of an
anticrime sky-eye, which always looked, to Judge Fang, like an American
football as redesigned by fetishists: glossy and black and studded.
Miss
Pao continued, "The sky-eye dispatched a flight of eight smaller aerostats
equipped with cine cameras." The kinky football was replaced by a picture
of a teardrop-shaped craft, about the size of an almond, trailing a whip
antenna, with an orifice at its nose protected by an incongruously beautiful
iris. Judge Fang was not really looking; at least three-quarters of the cases
that came before him commenced with a summary almost exactly like this one. It
was a credit to Miss Pao's seriousness and diligence that she was able to tell
each story afresh. It was a challenge to Judge Fang's professionalism for him
to listen to each one in the same spirit.
"Converging
on the scene," Miss Pao said, "they recorded activities."
The
large map image on Judge Fang's scroll was replaced by a cine feed. The figures
were far away, flocks of relatively dark pixels nudging their way across a
rough gray background like starlings massing before a winter gale. They got
bigger and more clearly defined as the aerostat flew closer to the action. A man
was curled on the street with his arms wrapped around his head. The nunchuks
had been put away by this point, and hands were busy going through the
innumerable pockets that were to be found in a gentleman's suit. At this point
the cine went into slow-mo. A watch flashed and oscillated hypnotically at the
end of its gold chain. A silver fountain pen glowed like an ascending rocket
and vanished into the folds of someone's mite-proof raiment. And then out came something else,
harder to resolve: larger, mostly dark, white around the edge. A book, perhaps.
"Heuristic
analysis of the cine feeds suggested a probable violent crime in
progress," Miss Pao said.
Judge
Fang valued Miss Pao's services for many reasons, but her deadpan delivery was
especially precious to him.
"So
the sky-eye dispatched another flight of aerostats, specialized for
tagging." An image of a tagger stat appeared: smaller and narrower than
the cinestats, reminiscent of a hornet with the wings stripped off. The
nacelles containing the tiny air turbines, which gave such devices the power to
propel themselves through the air, were prominent; it was built for speed.
"The
suspected assailants adopted countermeasures," Miss Pao aaid, again using
that deadpan tone. On the cine feed, the criminals were retreating. The
cinestat followed them with a nice tracking shot. Judge Fang, who had watched
thousands of hours of film of thugs departing from the scenes of their crimes,
watched with a discriminating eye. Less sophisticated hoodlums would simply
have run away in a panic, but this group was proceeding methodically, two to a
bicycle, one person pedaling and steering while the other handled the
countermeasures. Two of them were discharging fountains of material into the
air from canisters on their bicycles' equipment racks, like fire extinguishers,
waving the nozzles in all directions.
"Following
a pattern that has become familiar to law enforcement," Miss Pao said,
"they dispersed adhesive foam that clogged the intakes of the stats' air
turbines, rendering them inoperative." The big mediatron had also taken to
emitting tremendous flashes of light that caused Judge Fang to close his eyes
and pinch the bridge of his nose. After a few of these, the cine feed went
dead.
"Another
suspect used strobe illumination to pick out the locations of the cinestats,
then disabled them with pulses of laser light- evidently using a device,
designed for this purpose, that has recently become widespread among the
criminal element in the L.T."
The
big mediatron cut back to a new camera angle on the original scene of the
crime. Across the bottom of the scroll was a bar graph depicting the elapsed
time since the start of the incident, and the practiced Judge Fang noted that
it had jumped backward by a quarter of a minute or so; the narrative had split,
and we were now seeing the other fork of the plot. This feed depicted a
solitary gang member who was trying to climb aboard his bicycle even as his
comrades were riding away on contrails of sticky foam. But the bike had been
mangled somehow and would not function. The youth abandoned it and fled on
foot.
Up
in the corner, the small diagram of the tagging aerostat zoomed in to a high
magnification, revealing some of the device's internal complications, so that
it began to look less like a hornet and more like a cutaway view of a starship.
Mounted in the nose was a device that spat out tiny darts drawn from an
interior magazine. At first these were almost invisibly tiny, but as the view
continued to zoom, the hull of the tagging aerostat grew until it resembled the
gentle curve of a planet's horizon, and the darts became more clearly visible.
They were hexagonal in crosssection, like pencil stubs. When they were shot out
of the tag stat's nose, they sprouted cruel barbs at the nose and a simple
empennage at the tail.
"The
suspect had experienced a ballistic interlude earlier in the evening,"
Miss Pao said, "regrettably not filmed, and relieved himself of excess
velocity by means of an ablative technique." Miss Pao was outdoing
herself. Judge Fang raised an eyebrow at her, briefly hitting the pause button.
Chang,
Judge Fang's other assistant, rotated his enormous, nearly spherical head in
the direction of the defendant, who was looking very small as he stood before
the court. Chang, in a characteristic gesture, reached up and rubbed the palm
of his hand back over the short stubble that covered his head, as if he could
not believe he had such a bad haircut. He opened his sleepy, slitlike eyes just
a notch, and said to the defendant, "She say you have road rash."
The
defendant, a pale asthmatic boy, had seemed too awed to be scared through most
of this. Now the corners of his mouth twitched. Judge Fang noticed with
approval that he controlled the impulse to smile.
"Consequently,"
Miss Pao said, "there were lapses in his Nanobar integument. An unknown
number of tag mites passed through these openings and embedded themselves in
his clothing and flesh. He discarded all of his clothing and scrubbed himself
vigorously at a public shower before returning to his domicile, but three
hundred and fifty tag mites remained in his flesh and were later extracted
during the course of our examination. As usual, the tag mites were equipped
with inertial navigation systems that recorded all of the suspect's subsequent
movements."
The
big cine feed was replaced by a map of the Leased Territories with the
suspect's movements traced out with a red line. This boy did a lot of wandering
about, even going into Shanghai on occasion, but he always came back to the
same apartment.
"After
a pattern was established, the tag mites automatically spored," Miss Pao
said. The image of the barbed dart altered itself, the midsection- which
contained a taped record of the dart's movements- breaking free and
accelerating into the void.
"Several
of the spores found their way to a sky-eye, where their contents were
downloaded and their serial numbers checked against police records. It was
determined that the suspect spent much of his time in a particular apartment.
Surveillance was placed on that apartment. One of the residents clearly matched
the suspect seen on the cine feed. The suspect was placed under arrest and
additional tag mites found in his body, tending to support our
suspicions."
"Oooh,"
Chang blurted, absently, as if he'd just remembered something important.
"What
do we know about the victim?" Judge Fang said.
"The
cine stat could track him only as far as the gates of New Atlantis," Miss
Pao said. "His face was bloody and swollen, complicating identification.
He had also been tagged, naturally- the tagger aerostat cannot make any
distinction between victim and perpetrator- but no spores were received; we can
assume that all of his tag mites were detected and destroyed by Atlantis/Shanghai's
immune system."
At
this point Miss Pao stopped talking and swiveled her eyes in the direction of
Chang, who was standing quiescently with his hands clasped behind his back,
staring down at the floor as if his thick neck had finally given way under the
weight of his head. Miss Pao cleared her throat once, twice, three times, and
suddenly Chang came awake. "Excuse me, Your Honor," he said, bowing
to Judge Fang. He rummaged in a large plastic bag and withdrew a gentleman's
top hat in poor condition. "This was found at the scene," he said,
finally reverting to his native Shanghainese.
Judge
Fang dropped his eyes to the tabletop and then looked up at Chang. Chang
stepped forward and placed the hat carefully on the table, giving it a little
nudge as if its position were not quite perfect. Judge Fang regarded it for a
few moments, then withdrew his hands from the voluminous sleeves of his robe,
picked it up, and flipped it over. The words JOHN PERCIVAL HACKWORTH were
written in gold script on the hatband.
Judge
Fang cast a significant look at Miss Pao, who shook her head. They had not yet
contacted the victim. Neither had the victim contacted them, which was
interesting; John Percival Hackworth must have something to hide. The
neo-Victorians were smart; why did so many of them get mugged in the Leased
Territories after an evening of brothel-crawling?
"You
have recovered the stolen items?" Judge Fang said. Chang stepped to the
table again and laid out a man's pocket watch. Then he stepped back, hands clasped
behind him, bent his neck again, and watched his feet, which could not contain
themselves from shuffling back and forth in tiny increments. Miss Pao was
glaring at him.
"There
was another item? A book, perhaps?" Judge Fang said. Chang cleared his
throat nervously, suppressing the urge to hawk and spit- an activity Judge Fang
had barred in his courtroom. He turned sideways and backed up one step,
allowing Judge Fang to view one of the spectators: a young girl, perhaps four
years old, sitting with her feet up on the chair so that her face was blocked
by her knees. Judge Fang heard the sound of a page turning and realized that
the girl was reading a book propped up on her thighs. She cocked her head this
way and that, talking to the book in a tiny voice.
"I
must humbly apologize to the Judge," Chang said in Shanghainese. "My
resignation is hereby proffered."
Judge
Fang took this with due gravity. "Why?"
"I
was unable to wrest the evidence from the young one's grasp," Chang said.
"I
have seen you kill adult men with your hands," Judge Fang reminded him. He
had been raised speaking Cantonese, but could make himself understood to Chang
by speaking a kind of butchered Mandarin.
"Age
has not been kind," Chang said. He was thirty-six.
"The
hour of noon has passed," said Judge Fang. "Let us go and get some
Kentucky Fried Chicken."
"As
you wish, Judge Fang," said Chang.
"As
you wish, Judge Fang," said Miss Pao.
Judge
Fang switched back to English. "Your case is very serious," he said
to the boy. "We will go and consult the ancient authorities. You will
remain here until we return."
"Yes,
sir," said the defendant, abjectly terrified. This was not the abstract
fear of a first-time delinquent; he was sweating and shaking. He had been caned
before.
The
House of the Venerable and Inscrutable Colonel was what they called it when
they were speaking Chinese. Venerable because of his goatee, white as the
dogwood blossom, a badge of unimpeachable credibility in Confucian eyes.
Inscrutable because he had gone to his grave without divulging the Secret of
the Eleven Herbs and Spices. It had been the first fast-food franchise
established on the Bund, many decades earlier. Judge Fang had what amounted to
a private table in the corner. He had once reduced Chang to a state of
catalepsis by describing an avenue in Brooklyn that was lined with fried
chicken establishments for miles, all of them ripoffs of Kentucky Fried
Chicken. Miss Pao, who had grown up in Austin, Texas, was less easily impressed
by these legends.
Word
of their arrival preceded them; their bucket already rested upon the table. The
small plastic cups of gravy, coleslaw, potatoes, and so on had been carefully
arranged. As usual, the bucket was placed squarely in front of Chang's seat,
for he would be responsible for consumption of most of it. They ate in silence
for a few minutes, communicating through eye contact and other subtleties, then
spent several minutes exchanging polite formal chatter.
"Something
struck a chord in my memory," Judge Fang said, when the time was right to
discuss business. "The name Tequila- the mother of the suspect and of the
little girl."
"The
name has come before our court twice before," Miss Pao said, and refreshed
his memory of two previous cases: one, almost five years ago, in which this
woman's lover had been executed, and the second, only a few months ago, a case
quite similar to this one.
"Ah,
yes," Judge Fang said, "I recall the second case. This boy and his
friends beat a man severely. But nothing was stolen. He would not give a
justification for his actions. I sentenced him to three strokes of the cane and
released him."
"There
is reason to suspect that the victim in that case had molested the boy's
sister," Chang put in, "as he has a previous record of such
accomplishments."
Judge
Fang fished a drumstick out of the bucket, arranged it on his napkin, folded
his hands, and sighed. "Does the boy have any filial relationships
whatsoever?"
"None,"
said Miss Pao.
"Would
anyone care to advise me?" Judge Fang frequently asked this question; he
considered it his duty to teach his subordinates.
Miss
Pao spoke, using just the right degree of cautiousness. "The Master says,
'The superior man bends his attention to what is radical. That being
established, all practical courses naturally grow up. Filial piety and
fraternal submission!- are they not the root of all benevolent actions?'
"How
do you apply the Master's wisdom in this instance?"
"The
boy has no father- his only possible filial relationship is with the State.
You, Judge Fang, are the only representative of the State he is likely to
encounter. It is your duty to punish the boy firmly- say, with six strokes of
the cane. This will help to establish his filial piety."
"But
the Master also said, 'If the people be led by laws, and uniformity sought to
be given them by punishments, they will try to avoid the punishments, but have
no sense of shame. Whereas, if they be led by virtue, and uniformity sought to
be given them by the rules of propriety, they will have the sense of shame, and
moreover will become good.'"
"So
you are advocating leniency in this case?" Miss Pao said, somewhat
skeptically.
Chang
chimed in: "'Mang Wu asked what filial piety was. The Master said,
"Parents are anxious lest their children should be sick."' But the
Master said nothing about caning."
Miss
Pao said, "The Master also said, 'Rotten wood cannot be carved.' And,
'There are only the wise of the highest class, and the stupid of the lowest
class, who cannot be changed.'"
"So
the question before us is: Is the boy rotten wood? His father certainly was. I
am not certain about the boy, yet."
"With
utmost respect, I would direct your attention to the girl," said Chang,
"who should be the true subject of our discussions. The boy may be lost;
the girl can be saved."
"Who
will save her?" Miss Pao said. "We have the power to punish; we are
not given the power to raise children."
"This
is the essential dilemma of my position," Judge Fang said. "The Mao
Dynasty lacked a real judicial system. When the Coastal Republic arose, a
judicial system was built upon the only model the Middle Kingdom had ever
known, that being the Confucian. But such a system cannot truly function in a
larger society that does not adhere to Confucian precepts. 'From the Son of
Heaven down to the mass of the people, all must consider the cultivation of the
person the root of everything besides.' Yet how am I to cultivate the persons
of the barbarians for whom I have perversely been given responsibility?"
Chang
was ready for this opening and exploited it quickly. "The Master stated in
his Great Learning that the extension of knowledge was the root of all other
virtues."
"I
cannot send the boy to school, Chang."
"Think
instead of the girl," Chang said, "the girl and her book."
Judge
Fang contemplated this for a few moments, though he could see that Miss Pao
badly wanted to say something.
"'The
superior man is correctly firm, and not firm merely,'"
Judge
Fang said. "Since the victim has not contacted the police seeking return
of his property, I will allow the girl to keep the book for her own
edification- as the Master said, 'In teaching there should be no distinction of
classes' I will sentence the boy to six strokes of the cane. But I will suspend
all but one of those strokes, since he has displayed the beginnings of
fraternal responsibility by giving the book to his sister. This is correctly
firm."
"I
have completed a phenomenoscopic survey of the book," Miss Pao said.
"It is not an ordinary book."
"I
had already surmised that it was a ractive of some sort," Judge Fang said.
"It
is considerably more sophisticated than that description implies. I believe
that it may embody hot I.P.," Miss Pao said.
"You
think that this book incorporates stolen technology?"
"The
victim works in the Bespoke division of Machine-Phase Systems. He is an
artifex."
"Interesting,"
Judge Fang said.
"Is
it worthy of further investigation?"
Judge
Fang thought about it for a moment, carefully wiping his fingertips on a fresh
napkin. "It is," he said.
Hackworth
presents the Primer to Lord Finkle-McGraw.
"Is
the binding and so on what you had in mind? Hackworth said.
"Oh,
yes," said Lord Finkle-McGraw. If I found it in an antiquarian bookshop,
covered with dust, I shouldn't give it a second glance."
"Because
if you were not happy with any detail," Hackworth said, "I could
recompile it." He had come in hoping desperately that Finkle-McGraw would
object to something; this might give him an opportunity to filch another copy
for Fiona. But so far the Equity Lord had been uncharacteristically complacent.
He kept flipping through the book, waiting for something to happen.
"It
is unlikely to do anything interesting just now," Hackworth said. "It
won't really activate itself until it bonds."
"Bonds?"
"As
we discussed, it sees and hears everything in its vicinity,"
Hackworth
said. "At the moment, it's looking for a small female. As soon as a little
girl picks it up and opens the front cover for the first time, it will imprint
that child's face and voice into its memory-"
"Bonding
with her. Yes, I see."
"And
thenceforth it will see all events and persons in relation to that girl, using
her as a datum from which to chart a psychological terrain, as it were.
Maintenance of that terrain is one of the book's primary processes. Whenever
the child uses the book, then, it will perform a sort of dynamic mapping from
the database onto her particular terrain."
"You
mean the database of folklore."
Hackworth
hesitated. "Pardon me, but not precisely, sir. Folklore consists of
certain universal ideas that have been mapped onto local cultures. For example,
many cultures have a Trickster figure, so the Trickster may be deemed a
universal; but he appears in different guises, each appropriate to a particular
culture's environment. The Indians of the American Southwest called him Coyote,
those of the Pacific Coast called him Raven. Europeans called him Reynard the
Fox. African-Americans called him Br'er Rabbit. In twentieth-century literature
he appears first as Bugs Bunny and then as the Hacker."
Finkle-McGraw
chuckled. "When I was a lad, that word had a double meaning. It could mean
a trickster who broke into things- but it could also mean an especially skilled
coder."
"The
ambiguity is common in post-Neolithic cultures," Hackworth said. "As
technology became more important, the Trickster underwent a shift in character
and became the god of crafts- of technology, if you will- while retaining the
underlying roguish qualities. So we have the Sumerian Enki, the Greek
Prometheus and Hermes, Norse Loki, and so on.
"In
any case," Hackworth continued, "Trickster/Technologist is just one
of the universals. The database is full of them. It's a catalogue of the
collective unconscious. In the old days, writers of children's books had to map
these universals onto concrete symbols familiar to their audience- like Beatrix
Potter mapping the Trickster onto Peter Rabbit. This is a reasonably effective
way to do it, especially if the society is homogeneous and static, so that all
children share similar experiences.
"What
my team and I have done here is to abstract that process and develop systems
for mapping the universals onto the unique psychological terrain of one child-
even as that terrain changes over time. Hence it is important that you not
allow this book to fall into the hands of any other little girl until Elizabeth
has the opportunity to open it up."
"Understood,"
said Lord Alexander Chung-Sik Finkle-McGraw.
"I'll
wrap it up myself, right now. Compiled some nice wrapping paper this
morning." He opened a desk drawer and took out a roll of thick, glossy
mediatronic paper bearing animated Christmas scenes: Santa sliding down the
chimney, the ballistic reindeer, the three Zoroastrian sovereigns dismounting
from their dromedaries in front of the stable. There was a lull while Hackworth
and Finkle-McGraw watched the little scenes; one of the hazards of living in a
world filled with mediatrons was that conversations were always being
interrupted in this way, and that explained why Atlantans tried to keep
mediatronic commodities to a minimum. Go
into a thete's house, and every object had moving pictures on it, everyone sat
around slackjawed, eyes jumping from the bawdy figures cavorting on the
mediatronic toilet paper to the big-eyed elves playing tag in the bathroom
mirror to . .
"Oh,
yes," Finkle-McGraw said. "Can it be written on? I should like to
inscribe it to Elizabeth."
"The
paper is a subclass of both input-paper and output-paper, so it possesses all
the underlying functionality of the sort of paper you would write on. For the
most part these functions are not used- beyond, of course, simply making marks
where the nib of the pen has moved across it.'
"You
can write on it," Finkle-McGraw translated with some asperity, "but
it doesn't think about what you're writing."
"Well,
my answer to that question must be ambiguous," Hackworth said. "The
Illustrated Primer is an extremely general and powerful system capable of more
extensive self-reconfiguration than most. Remember that a fundamental part of
its job is to respond to its environment. If the owner were to take up a pen
and write on a blank page, this input would be thrown into the hopper along
with everything else, so to speak."
"Can
I inscribe it to Elizabeth or not?" Finkle-McGraw demanded.
"Certainly,
sir."
Finkle-McGraw
extracted a heavy gold fountain pen from a holder on his desk and wrote in the
front of the book for a while.
"That
being done, sir, there remains only for you to authorise a standing purchase
order for the ractors."
"Ah,
yes, thank you for reminding me," said Finkle-McGraw, not very sincerely.
"I still would have thought that for all the money that went into this
project-"
"That
we might have solved the voice-generation problem to boot, yes sir,"
Hackworth said. "As you know, we took some stabs at it, but none of the
results were up to the level of quality you demand. After all of our
technology, the pseudo-intelligence algorithms, the vast exception matrices,
the portent and content monitors, and everything else, we still can't come
close to generating a human voice that sounds as good as what a real, live
ractor can give us."
"Can't
say I'm surprised, really," said Finkle-McGraw. "I just wish it were
a completely self-contained system."
"It
might as well be, sir. At any given time there are tens of millions of
professional ractors in their stages all over the world, in every time zone,
ready to take on this kind of work at an instant's notice. We are planning to
authorise payment at a relatively high rate, which should bring in only the
best talent. You won't be disappointed with the results."
Nell's
second experience with the Primer; the
story of Princess Nell in a nutshell.
Once upon a time there
was a little Princess named Nell who was imprisoned in a tall dark castle on an
island in the middle of a great sea, with a little boy named Harv, who was her
friend and protector. She also had four special friends named Dinosaur, Duck,
Peter Rabbit, and Purple.
Princess
Nell and Harv could not leave the Dark Castle, but from time to time a Raven
would come to visit them and tell them of the wonderful things over the sea in
the Land Beyond. One day the Raven helped Princess Nell escape from the castle,
but alas, poor Harv was too big and had to stay locked up behind the castle's
great iron door with twelve locks.
Princess
Nell loved Harv like a brother and refused to abandon him, so she and her
friends, Dinosaur, Duck, Peter, and Purple, traveled over the sea in a little
red boat, having many adventures, until they came to the Land Beyond. This was
divided into twelve countries each ruled by a Faery King or a Faery Queen. Each
King or Queen had a wonderful Castle, and each Castle was a Treasury containing
gold and jewels, and in each Treasury was a jeweled Key that would open one of
the twelve locks on the iron door of the Dark Castle.
Princess
Nell and her friends had many adventures as they visited each of the twelve
kingdoms and collected the twelve keys. Some they got by persuasion, some by
cleverness, and some they took in battle. By the end of the quest, some of
Nell's four friends had died, and some had gone their separate ways. But Nell
was not alone, for she had become a great heroine during her adventures.
In a great
ship, accompanied by many soldiers, servants, and elders, Nell traveled back
over the sea to the island of the Dark Castle. As she approached the iron door,
Harv saw her from the top of a tower and gruffly told her to go away, for
Princess Nell had changed so much during her Quest that Harv no longer
recognized her. "I have come to set you free," Princess Nell said.
Harv again told her to go away, saying that he had all the freedom he wanted
within the walls of the Dark Castle.
Princess
Nell put the twelve keys into the twelve locks and began to open them one by
one. When the rusty door of the castle finally creaked open, she saw Harv
standing with a bow at the ready, and an arrow drawn, pointed straight at her
heart. He let fly the arrow, and it struck her in the chest and would have
killed her except that she was wearing a locket Harv had given her many years
ago, before she left the castle. The arrow struck and shattered the locket. In
the same moment, Harv was cut down by an arrow from one of Princess Nell's
soldiers. Nell rushed to her fallen brother to comfort him and wept over his
body for three days and three nights.
When
finally she dried her eyes, she saw that the Dark Castle had become glorious;
for the river of tears that had flowed from her eyes had watered the grounds,
and beautiful gardens and forests had sprung up overnight, and the Dark Castle
itself was no longer dark, but a shining beacon filled with delightful things.
Princess
Nell lived in that castle and ruled over that island for the rest of her days,
and every morning she would go for a walk in the garden where Harv had fallen.
She had many adventures and became a great Queen, and in time she met and
married a Prince, and had many children, and lived happily ever after.
"What's
an adventure?" Nell said.
The
word was written across the page. Then both pages filled with moving pictures
of glorious things: girls in armor fighting dragons with swords, and girls
riding white unicorns through the forest, and girls swinging from vines,
swimming in the blue ocean, piloting rocket ships through space. Nell spent a
long time looking at all of the pictures, and after a while all of the girls
began to look like older versions of herself.
Judge
Fang visits his district; Miss Pao
arranges a demonstration; the case of
the stolen book takes on unexpected depth.
As Judge Fang
proceeded across the Causeway on his chevaline, accompanied by his assistants,
Chang and Miss Pao, he saw the Leased Territories wreathed in a mephitic fog.
The emerald highlands of Atlantis/Shanghai floated above the squalor. A host of
mirrored aerostats surrounded that lofty territory, protecting it from the
larger and more obvious sorts of intruders; from here, miles away, the
individual pods were of course not visible, but they could be seen in the
aggregate as a subtle gleam in the air, a vast bubble, perfectly transparent,
enveloping the sacrosanct territory of the Anglo-Americans, stretching this way
and that in the shifting winds but never tearing.
The
view was spoiled as they drew closer to the Leased Territories and entered into
their eternal fogs. Several times as they rode through the streets of the L.T.,
Judge Fang made a peculiar gesture: He curled the fingers of his right hand
into a cylinder, as though grasping an invisible stalk of bamboo. He cupped his
other hand beneath, forming a dark enclosed cavity, and then peeked into it
with one eye. When he stared into the pocket of air thus formed, he saw the
darkness filled with coruscating light- something like staring into a cavern
filled with fireflies, except that these lights came in all colors, and all of
the colors were as pure and clear as jewels.
People
who lived in the L.T. and who performed this gesture frequently developed a
feel for what was going on in the microscopic world. They could tell when
something was up. If the gesture was performed during a toner war, the result
was spectacular.
Today
it was nowhere near toner war levels, but it was fairly intense. Judge Fang
suspected that this had something to do with the purpose of this errand, which
Miss Pao had declined to explain.
They
ended up in a restaurant. Miss Pao insisted on a table out on the terrace, even
though it looked like rain. They ended up overlooking the street three stories
below. Even at that distance it was difficult to make out faces through the
fog.
Miss
Pao drew a rectangular package from her bag, wrapped up in Nanobar. She
unwrapped it and drew out two objects of roughly the same size and shape: a
book and a block of wood. She placed them side by side on the table. Then she
ignored them, turning her attention to the menu. She continued to ignore them
for several minutes more, as she and Chang and Judge Fang sipped tea, exchanged
polite chatter, and began to eat their meals.
"At
Your Honor's convenience," Miss Pao said, "I would invite you to
examine the two objects I laid on the table."
Judge
Fang was startled to notice that, while the block's appearance had not changed,
the book had become covered in a layer of thick gray dust, as if it had been
growing mildew for several decades.
"Oooh,"
Chang blurted, sucking a lengthy skein of noodles into his maw and bulging his
eyes in the direction of this peculiar exhibit.
Judge
Fang rose, walked around the table, and bent down for a closer look. The gray
dust was not uniformly distributed; it was much thicker toward the edges of the
book cover. He opened the book and was startled to notice that the dust had
infiltrated deep between the pages.
"This
is dust with a purpose in life," Judge Fang observed. Miss Pao glanced
significantly at the block of wood. Judge Fang picked it up and examined it on
all sides; it was clean. "This stuff is discriminating too!" Judge
Fang said.
"It
is Confucian toner," Chang said, finally choking down his noodles.
"It has a passion for books."
The
Judge smiled tolerantly and looked to Miss Pao for an explanation. "You
have examined this new species of mite, I take it?"
"It
is more interesting than that," Miss Pao said. "Within the last week,
not one but two new species of mite have appeared in the Leased Territories-
both programmed to seek out anything that looks like a book." She reached
into her bag again and handed her master a rolled-up piece of mediatronic
paper.
A
waitress scurried up and helped move the dishes and teacups aside. Judge Fang
unrolled the page and anchored it with various small items of faience. The
paper was divided into two panes, each containing a magnified view of a
microscopic device. Judge Fang could see that both were made to navigate
through the air, but beyond that, they could hardly have been more different.
One of them looked like a work of nature; it had several bizarre and elaborate
arms and sported four enormous, wildly involuted, scooplike devices, arranged
ninety degrees apart.
"The
eats of a bat!" Chang exclaimed, tracing their impossibly complex whorls
with the tip of a chopstick. Judge Fang said nothing but reminded himself that
this sort of quick insight was just the sort of thing Chang excelled at.
"It
appears to use echolocation, like a bat," Miss Pao admitted. "The
other one, as you can see, is of a radically different design." The other
mite looked like a spacecraft as envisioned by Jules Verne. It had a
streamlined, teardrop shape, a pair of manipulator arms folded neatly against
its fuselage, and a deep cylindrical cavity in the nose that Eudge Fang took to
be its eye.
"This
one sees light in the ultraviolet range," Miss Pao said. "Despite
their differences, each does the same thing: searches for books. When it finds
a book, it lands on the cover and :rawls to the edge, then creeps between the
pages and examines the internal structure of the paper."
"What
is it looking for?"
"There
is no way to tell, short of disassembling its internal computer system and
decompiling its program- which is difficult," Miss Pao said, with
characteristic understatement. "When it finds that it has been
investigating a normal book made of old-fashioned paper, it deactivates and
becomes dust."
"So
there are many dirty books in the Leased Territories now," Chang said.
"There
aren't that many books to begin with," Judge Fang said. Miss Pao and Chang
chuckled, but the Judge showed no sign that he had been making a joke; it was
just an observation. "What conclusions do you draw, Miss Pao?" the
Judge said.
"Two
different parties are searching the Leased Territories for the same book,"
Miss Pao said. She did not have to state that the target of this search was
probably the book stolen from the gentleman named Hackworth.
"Can
you speculate as to the identity of these parties?"
Miss
Pao said, "Of course, neither device carries a maker's mark. The bat-eared
one has Dr. X written all over it; most of its features appear to be evolved,
not engineered, and the Doctor's Flea Circus is nothing more than an effort to
collect evolved mites with useful features. At a first glance, the other device
could have come from any of the engineering works associated with major phyles-
Nippon, New Atlantis, Hindustan, the First Distributed Republic being prime
suspects. But on deeper examination I find a level of elegance-"
"Elegance?"
"Pardon
me, Your Honor, the concept is not easy to explain- there is an ineffable
quality to some technology, described by its creators as concinnitous, or
technically sweet, or a nice hack- signs that it was math with great care by
one who was not merely motivated but inspired. It is the difference between an
engineer and a hacker."
"Or
an engineer and an artifex?" Judge Fang said.
A
trace of a smile came across Miss Pao's face. "I fear that I have enmeshed
that little girl in a much deeper business than I ever imagined," Judge
Fang said. He rolled up the paper and handed it back to Miss Pao. Chang set the
Judge's teacup back in front oi him and poured more tea. Without thinking about
it, the Judge put his thumb and fingertips together and tapped them lightly
against the tabletop several times. This was an ancient gesture in China. The
story was that one of the early Emperors liked to dress as a commoner and
travel about the Middk Kingdom to see how the peasants were getting along.
Frequently, as he and his staff were sitting about the table in some inn, he
would pour tea for everyone. They could not kowtow to their lord without giving
away his identity, so they would make this gesture, using their hand to imitate
the act of kneeling. Now Chinese people used it to thank each other ai the
dinner table. From time to time, Judge Fang caught himself doing it: and
thought about what a peculiar thing it was to be Chinese in a world without an
Emperor.
He
sat, hands folded into sleeves, and thought about this and other issues for
several minutes, watching the vapor rise from his tea and forn into a fog as it
condensed round the bodies of micro-aerostats.
"Soon
we will obtrude upon Mr. Hackworth and Dr. X and learn more by observing their
reactions. I will consider the right way to sei about this. In the meantime,
let us concern ourselves with the girl. Chang, visit her apartment building and
see whether there has been any trouble there- suspicious characters hanging
about."
"Sir,
with all respect, everyone who lives in the girl's building is of suspicious
character."
"You
know what I mean," said the Judge with some asperity. "The building
should have a system for filtering nanosites from the air. If this system is
working properly, and if the girl does not take the book out of her building,
then she should go unnoticed by these." The Judge drew a streak through
the dust on the book's cover and smeared the toner between his fingers.
"Speak with the landlord of her building, and let him know that his
air-filtering system is due for an inspection, and that this is genuine, not
just a solicitation for a bribe."
"Yes,
sir," Chang said. He pushed his chair back, rose, bowed, and strode out of
the restaurant, pausing only to extract a toothpick from the dispenser by the
exit. It would have been acceptable for him to finish his lunch, but Chang had,
in the past, evinced concern for the girl's welfare, and apparently wanted to
waste no time.
"Miss
Pao, plant recording surveillance devices in the girl's flat. At first we will
change and review the tapes every day. If the book is not detected soon, we
will begin changing them every week."
"Yes,
sir," Miss Pao said. She slipped on her phenomenoscopic spectacles.
Colored light reflected from the surfaces of her eyes as she lost herself in
some kind of interface. Judge Fang refilled his tea, cupped it in the palm of
his hand, and went for a stroll round the edge of the terrace. He had much more
important things to think about than this girl and her book; but he suspected
that from now on he would be thinking about little else.
Description
of Old Shanghai; situation of the
Theatre Parnasse; Miranda's occupation.
Before the
Europeans got their hooks into it, Shanghai had been a walled village on the
Huang Pu River, a few miles south of its confluence with the estuary of the
Yangtze. Much of the architecture was very sophisticated Ming Dynasty stuff,
private gardens for rich families, a shopping street here and there concealing
interior slums, a rickety, vertiginous teahouse rising from an island in the
center of a pond. More recently the wall had been torn down and a sort of
beltway built on its foundations. The old French concession wrapped around the
north side, and in that neighborhood, on a corner looking across the ring road
into the old city, the Theatre Parnasse had been constructed during the late
1800s. Miranda had been working there for five years, but the experience had
been so intense that it often seemed more like five days.
The
Parnasse had been built by Europeans back when they were serious and
unapologetic about their Europeanness. The facade was classical: a
three-quarter-round portico on the streetcorner, supported by Corinthian
columns, all done in white limestone. The portico was belted by a white
marquee, circa 1990, outlined by tubes of purple and pink neon. It would have
been easy enough to tear it off and replace it with something mediatronic, but
they enjoyed hauling the bamboo ladders out from the set shop and snapping the
black plastic letters into place, advertising whatever they were doing tonight.
Sometimes they would lower the big mediatronic screen and show movies, and
Westerners would come from all over Greater Shanghai, dressed up in their
tuxedos and evening gowns, and sit in the dark watching Casablanca or
Dances With
Wolves. And at least twice a month, the Parnasse
Company would actually get out on stage and do it: become actors rather than
ractors for a night, lights and greasepaint and costumes. The hard part was
indoctrinating the audience; unless they were theatre buffs, they always wanted
to run up on stage and interact, which upset the whole thing. Live theatre was
an ancient and peculiar taste, roughly on par with listening to Gregorian
chants, and it didn't pay the bills. They paid the bills with ractives.
The
building was tall and narrow, making the most of precious Shanghai real estate,
so the proscenium had a nearly square aspect ratio, like an old-fashioned
television. Above it was the bust of some forgotten French actress, supported
on gilt wings, flanked by angels brandishing trumpets and laurel wreaths. The
ceiling was a circular fresco depicting Muses disporting themselves in flimsy
robes. A chandelier hung from the center; its incandescent bulbs had been
replaced by new things that didn't burn out, and now it cast light evenly onto
the rows of tiny, creaking seats closely packed together on the main floor.
There were three balconies and three stories of private boxes, two on the left
side and two on the right side of each level. The fronts of the boxes and
balconies were all painted with tableaux from classical mythology, the
predominant color there as elsewhere being a highly French robin's-egg blue.
The
theatre was crammed with plasterwork, so that the faces of cherubs, overwrought
Roman gods, impassioned Trojans, and such were always poking out of columns and
soffits and cornices, catching you by surprise. Much of this work was spalled
from bullets fired by high-spirited Red Guards during Cultural Revolution
times. Other than the bullet holes, the Parnasse was in decent shape, though
sometime in the twentieth century great blackiron pipes had been anchored
vertically alongside the boxes and horizontally before the balconies so that
spotlights could be bolted on. Nowadays the spotlights were coin-size disks-
phased-array devices that carried their own batteries- and could be stuck up
anywhere and controlled by radio. But the pipes were still there and always
required a lot of explaining when tourists came through.
Each
of the twelve boxes had its own door, and a curtain rail curving around the
front so that the occupants could get some privacy between acts. They'd
mothballed the curtains and replaced them with removable soundproof screens,
unbolted the seats, and stored them in the basement. Now each box was a private
egg-shaped room just the right size to serve as a body stage. These twelve
stages generated seventy-five percent of the cash flow of the Theatre Parnasse.
Miranda
always checked into her stage half an hour early to run a diagnostic on her tat
grid. The 'sites didn't last forever- static electricity or cosmic rays could
knock them out, and if you let your instrument go to pot out of sheer laziness,
you didn't deserve to call yourself a ractor.
Miranda
had decorated the dead walls of her own stage with posters and photos of role
models, largely actresses from twentieth-century passives. She had a chair in
'the corner for roles that involved sitting down. There was also a tiny coffee
table where she set down her triple latte, a two-liter bottle of mineral water,
and a box of throat lozenges. Then she peeled down to a black leotard and
tights, hanging her street clothes on a tree by the door. Another ractor might
have gone nude, worn street clothes, or tried to match her costume to the role
she'd be playing, if she were lucky enough to know in advance. At the moment,
though, Miranda never knew. She had standing bids on Kate in the ractive
version of Taming
of the Shrew (which was a butcherous kludge, but popular
among a certain sort of male user); Scarlett O'Hara in the ractive Gone With the Wind; a
double agent named Ilse in an espionage thriller set on a train passing through
Nazi Germany; and Rhea, a neo-Victorian damsel in distress in Silk Road,
an adventure-comedy-romance ractive set on the wrong side of contemporary Shanghai.
She'd created that role. After the good review had come in ("a remarkably
Rhea-listic portrayal by newcomer Miranda Redpath!") she had played little
else for a couple of months, even though her bid was so steep that most users
opted for one of the understudies or contented themselves with watching
passively for one-tenth the price. But the distributor had botched the PR
targeting when they tried to take it beyond the Shanghai market, and so now Silk Road was
in limbo while various heads rolled.
Four
leading roles was about as many as she could keep in her head at once. The
prompter made it possible to play any role without having seen it before, if
you didn't mind making an ass of yourself. But Miranda had a reputation now and
couldn't get away with shoddy work. To fill in the blanks when things got slow,
she also had standing bids, under another name, for easier work: mostly
narration jobs, plus anything having to do with children's media.
She
didn't have any kids of her own, but she still corresponded with the ones she'd
taken care of during her governess days. She loved racting with children, and
besides it was good exercise for the voice, saying those silly little rhymes
just right. "Practice Kate from Shrew," she
said, and the Miranda-shaped constellation was replaced by a dark-haired woman
with green, feline eyes, dressed in some costume designer's concept of what a
rich woman in the Italian Renaissance would be likely to wear. Miranda had
large bunny eyes while Kate had cat eyes, and cat eyes were used differently
from bunny eyes, especially when delivering a slashing witticism. Carl
Hollywood, the company's founder and dramaturge, who'd been sitting in
passively on her Shrews,
had suggested that she needed more work in this area. Not many payers enjoyed
Shakespeare or even knew who he was, but the ones who did tended to be very
high on the income scale and worth catering to. Usually this kind of argument
had no effect on Miranda, but she'd been finding that some of these (rich
sexist snob asshole) gentlemen were remarkably good ractors. And any
professional could tell you that it was a rare pleasure to ract with a payer
who knew what he was doing. . . .
The Shift
comprised the Prime Times for London, the East Coast, and the West Coast. In
Greenwich Time, it started around nine P.M., when Londoners were finishing
dinner and looking for entertainment, and wound up about seven A.M., when
Californians were going to bed. No matter what time zones they actually lived
in, all ractors tried to work during those hours. In Shanghai's time zone, The
Shift ran from about five A.M. to midafternoon, and Miranda didn't mind doing
overtime if some well-heeled Californian wanted to stretch a ractive late into
the night. Some of the ractors in her company didn't come in until later in the
day, but Miranda still had dreams of living in London and craved attention from
that city's sophisticated payers. So she always came to work early.
When
she finished her warmups and went on. she found a bid already waiting for her.
The casting agent, which was a semiautonomous piece of software, had assembled
a company of nine payers, enough to ract all the guest roles in First Class to Geneva,
which was about intrigue among rich people on a train in Nazi-occupied France,
and which was to ractives what The Mousetrap was to
passive theatre. It was an ensemble piece: nine guest roles to be assumed by
payers, three somewhat larger and more glamorous host roles to be assumed by
payees like Miranda. One of the characters was, unbeknownst to the others, an
Allied spy.
Another
was a secret colonel in the SS, another was secretly Jewish, another was a
Cheka agent. Sometimes there was a German trying to defect to the Allied side.
But you never knew which was which when the ractive started up; the computer
switched all the roles around at random.
It
paid well because of the high payer/payee ratio. Miranda provisionally accepted
the bid. One of the other host roles hadn't been filled yet, so while she
waited, she bid and won a filler job. The computer morphed her into the face of
an adorable young woman whose face and hair looked typical of what was current
in London at the moment; she wore the uniform of a British Airways ticket
agent. "Good evening, Mr. Oremland," she gushed, reading the
prompter. The computer disped it into an even perkier voice and made subtle
corrections in her accent.
"Good
evening, er, Margaret," said the jowly Brit staring out of a pane on her
mediatron. He was wearing half-glasses, had to squint to make out her nametag.
His tie was loose on his chest, a gin and tonic in one hairy fist, and he liked
the looks of this Margaret. Which was almost guaranteed, since Margaret had
been morphed up by a marketing computer in London that knew more about this
gentleman's taste in girlflesh than he would like to think.
"Six
months without a vacation!? How boring," Miranda/Margaret said. "You
must be doing something terribly important," she continued, facetious
without being mean, the two of them sharing a little joke.
"Yes,
I suppose even making lots of money does become boring after a while," the
man returned, in much the same tone.
Miranda
glanced over at the casting sheet for First Class to Geneva.
She'd be pissed if this Mr. Oremland got overly talkative and forced her to
pass on the bigger role. Though he did seem a reasonably clever sort. "You
know, it's a fine time to visit Atlantan West Africa, and the airship Gold Coast is
scheduled to depart in two weeks- shall I book a stateroom for you? And a
companion perhaps?"
Mr.
Oremland seemed iffy. "Call me old-fashioned," he said, "but
when you say Africa, I think AIDS and parasites."
"Oh,
not in West Africa, sir, not in the new colonies. Would you like a quick
tour?"
Mr.
Oremland gave Miranda/Margaret one long, searching, horny look, sighed, checked
his watch, and seemed to remember that she was an imaginary being. "Thank
you just the same," he said, and cut her off. Just in time too; the
playbill for Geneva
had just filled up. Miranda only had a few seconds to switch
contexts and get herself into the character of Ilse before she found herself
sitting in a first-class coach of a midtwentieth-century passenger train,
staring into the mirror at a blond, blue-eyed, high-cheekboned ice queen.
Unfolded
on her dressing-table was a letter written in Yiddish. So tonight she was the
secret Jew. She tore the letter into tiny pieces and fed them out her window,
then did the same with a couple of Stars of David that she rooted out of her
jewelry case.
This
thing was fully ractive, and there was nothing to prevent other characters from
breaking into her coach and going through her possessions. Then she finished
putting on her makeup and choosing her outfit, and went to the dining car for
dinner. Most of the other characters were already in here. The nine amateurs
were stiff and stilted as usual, the two other professionals were circulating
among them, trying to loosen them up, break through that self-consciousness and
get them into their characters.
Geneva ended
up dragging on for a good three hours. It was nearly ruined by one of the
payers, who had clearly signed up exclusively for the purpose of maneuvering
Ilse into bed. He turned out to be the secret SS colonel too; but he was so
hell-bent on fucking Ilse that he spent the whole evening out of character.
Finally Miranda lured him into the kitchen in the back of the dining car,
shoved a foot-long butcher knife into his chest, and left him in the fridge.
She had played this role a couple of hundred times and knew the location of
every potentially lethal object on the train.
After
a ractive it was considered good form to go to the Green Room, a virtual pub
where you could chat out-of-character with the other ractors. Miranda skipped
it because she knew that the creep would be waiting for her there.
Next
was a lull of an hour or so. Primetime in London was over, and New Yorkers were
still eating dinner. Miranda went to the bathroom, ate a little snack, and
picked up a few kiddy jobs. Kids on the West Coast were getting back from
school and jumping right 'into the high-priced educational ractives that their
parents made available to them. These things created a plethora of extremely
short but fun roles; in quick succession, Miranda's face was morphed into a
duck, a bunny, a talking tree, the eternally elusive Carmen Sandiego, and the
repulsively cloying Doogie the Dinosaur. Each of them got a couple of lines at
most: "That's right! B stands for balloon! I like to play with balloons,
don't you, Matthew?" "Sound it
out, Victoria! You can do it!"
"Soldier ants have larger and stronger jaws than their worker
counterparts and play a key role in defending the nest from
predators." "Please don't
throw me into that briar patch, Br'er Fox!" "Hello, Roberta! I've been missing you all
day. How was your field trip to Disneyland?" "Twentieth-century airships were filled
with flammable hydrogen, expensive helium, or inefficient hot air, but our
modern versions are filled literally with nothing at all. High-strength
nanostructures make it possible to pump all the air from an airship's envelope
and fill it with a vacuum. Have you ever been on an airship, Thomas?"
Nell's
further experiences with the Primer; the origin of Princess Nell.
"Once
upon a time there was a little Princess named Nell who was imprisoned in a tall
dark castle on an island-"
"Why?"
"Nell
and Harv had been locked up in the Dark Castle by their evil stepmother."
"Why
didn't their father let them out of the Dark Castle?"
"Their
father, who had protected them from the whims of the wicked stepmother, had
gone sailing over the sea and never come back."
"Why
did he never come back?"
"Their
father was a fisherman. He went out on his boat every day. The sea is a vast
and dangerous place, filled with monsters, storms, and other dangers. No one
knows what fate befell him. Perhaps it was foolish of him to sail into such
danger, but Nell knew better than to fret over things she could not
change."
"Why
did she have a wicked stepmother?"
"Nell's
mother died one night when a monster came out of the sea and entered their
cottage to snatch Nell and Harv, who were just babies. She fought with the
monster and slew it, but in so doing suffered grievous wounds and died the next
day with her adopted children still nestled in her bosom."
"Why
did the monster come from the sea?"
"For
many years, Nell's father and mother badly wanted children but were not so
blessed until one day, when the father caught a mermaid in his net. The mermaid
said that if he let her go, she would grant him a wish, so he wished for two
children, a boy and a girl.
"The
next day, while he was out fishing, he was approached by a mermaid carrying a
basket. In the basket were the two little babies, just as he had requested,
wrapped up in cloth of gold. The mermaid cautioned him that he and his wife
should not allow the babies to cry at night."
"Why
were they in gold cloth?"
"They
were actually a Princess and a Prince who had been in a shipwreck. The ship
sank, but the basket containing the two babies bobbed like a cork on the ocean
until the mermaids came and found them. They took care of those two babies
until they found a good parent for them.
"He
took the babies back to the cottage and presented them to his wife, who swooned
for joy. They lived happily together for some time, and whenever one of the
babies cried, one of the parents would get up and comfort it. But one night
father did not come home, because a storm had pushed his little red fishing
boat far out to sea. One of the babies began to cry, and the mother got up to
comfort it. But when the other began to cry as well, there was nothing she
could do, and shortly the monster came calling.
"When
the fisherman returned home the next day, he found his wife's body lying beside
that of the monster, and both of the babies unharmed. His grief was very great,
and he began the difficult task of raising both the children.
"One
day, a stranger came to his door. She said that she had been cast out by the
cruel Kings and Queens of the Land Beyond and that she needed a place to sleep
and would do any kind of work in exchange. At first she slept on the floor and
cooked and cleaned for the fisherman all day long, but as Nell and Harv got
bigger, she began to give them more and more chores, until by the time their
father disappeared, they toiled from dawn until long after nightfall, while
their stepmother never lifted a finger."
"Why
didn't the fisherman and his babies live in the castle to protect them from the
monster?"
"The
castle was a dark forbidding place on the top of a mountain. The fisherman had
been told by his father that it had been built many ages ago by trolls, who
were still said to live there. And he did not have the twelve keys."
"Did
the wicked stepmother have the twelve keys?"
"She
kept them buried in a secret place as long as the fisherman was around, but
after he sailed away and did not come back, she had Nell and Harv dig them up
again, along with a quantity of jewels and gold that she had brought with her
from the Land Beyond. She bedecked herself with the gold and jewels, then
opened up the iron gates of the Dark Castle and tricked Nell and Harv into
going inside. As soon as they were in, she slammed the gates shut behind them
and locked the twelve locks. 'When the sun goes down, the trolls will have you
for a snack!' she cackled."
"What's
a troll?"
"A
scary monster that lives in holes in the ground and comes out after dark."
Nell
started to cry. She slammed the book closed, ran to her bed, gathered her
stuffed animals up in her arms, started chewing on her blanket, and cried for a
while, considering the question of trolls.
The
book made a fluttering sound. Nell saw it opening in the corner of her eye and
looked over cautiously, afraid she might see a picture of a troll. But instead,
she saw two pictures. One was of Princess Nell, sitting on the grass with four
dolls gathered in her arms. Facing it was a picture of Nell surrounded by four
creatures: a big dinosaur, a rabbit, a duck, and a woman in a purple dress with
purple hair.
The
book said, "Would you like to hear the story of how Princess Nell made
some friends in the Dark Castle, where she least expected it, and how they
killed all of the trolls and made it a safe place to live?"
"Yes!"
Nell said, and scooted across the floor until she was poised above the book.
Judge
Fang pays a visit to the Celestial Kingdom; tea served in an ancient
setting; a "chance" encounter
with Dr. X
Judge Fang was
not afflicted with the Westerner's inability to pronounce the name of the man
known as Dr. X, unless a combined Cantonese/New York accent counted as a speech
impediment. In his discussions with his trusted subordinates he had fallen into
the habit of calling him Dr. X anyway.
He
had never had cause to pronounce the name at all, until recently. Judge Fang
was district magistrate for the Leased Territories, which in turn were part of
the Chinese Coastal Republic.
Dr.
X almost never left the boundaries of Old Shanghai, which was part of a
separate district; more to the point, he stuck to a small but anfractuous
subregion whose tendrils were seemingly ramified through every block and
building of the ancient city. On the map, this region looked like the root
system of a thousand-year-old dwarf tree; its border must have been a hundred
kilometers long, even though it was contained within a couple of square
kilometers. This region was not part of the Coastal Republic; it styled itself
as the Middle Kingdom, a living vestige of Imperial China, prohibitively the oldest
and greatest nation of the world.
The
tendrils went even farther than that; Judge Fang had known this for a long
time. Many of the gang members running around the Leased Territories with Judge
Fang's cane marks across their asses had connections on the mainland that could
ultimately be traced back to Dr. X. It was rarely useful to dwell upon this
fact; if it hadn't been Dr. X, it would have been someone else. Dr. X was
unusually clever at taking advantage of the principle of grith, or right of refuge,
which in the modern usage simply meant that Coastal Republic officials like
Judge Fang could not enter the Celestial Kingdom and arrest someone like Dr. X.
So usually when they bothered to trace a criminal's higher connections at all,
they simply drew an arrow up the page to a single character, consisting of a
box with a vertical slash drawn down through the middle. The character meant
Middle, as in Middle Kingdom, though for Judge Fang it had come to mean,
simply, trouble.
At
the House of the Venerable and Inscrutable Colonel and other Judge Fang
hangouts, the name of Dr. X had been pronounced more frequently in recent
weeks. Dr. X had tried to bribe everyone on Judge Fang's hierarchy except for
the Judge himself. Of course, the overtures had been made by people whose
connection with Dr. X was tenuous in the extreme, and had been so subtle that
most of those approached had not even realized what was happening until, days
or weeks later, they had suddenly sat up in bed exclaiming, "He was trying
to bribe me!
I must tell Judge Fang!"
If
not for grith, this might have made for a merry and stimulating couple of
decades, as Judge Fang atched his wits against those of the Doctor, a worthy
adversary at last and a welcome break from smelly, larcenous barbarian whelps.
As it was, Dr. X's machinations were of purely abstract interest. But they were
no less interesting for that, and many days, as Miss Pao proceeded through the
familiar line of patter about sky-eyes, heuristic mugging detection, and tagger
aerostats, Judge Fang found his attention wandering across town to the ancient
city, to the hong of Dr. X.
It
was said that the Doctor frequently took tea in the morning at an old teahouse
there, and so it was that one morning Judge Fang happened to drop in on the
place. It had been built, centuries ago, in the center of a pond. Swarms of
fire-colored fish hung just beneath the surface of the khaki water, glowing
like latent coals, as Judge Fang and his assistants, Miss Pao and Chang,
crossed the bridge.
There
was a Chinese belief that demons liked to travel only in straight lines. Hence
the bridge zigzagged no fewer than nine times as it made its way to the center
of the pond. The bridge was a demon filter, in other words, and the teahouse
demon-free, which seemed of only limited usefulness if it still hosted people
like Dr. X. But for Judge Fang, raised in a city of long straight avenues, full
of straight talkers, it was useful to be reminded that from the point of view
of some people, including Dr. X, all of that straightness was suggestive of
demonism; more natural and human was the ever-turning way, where you could
never see round the next corner, and the overall plan could be understood only
after lengthy meditation.
The
teahouse itself was constructed of unfinished wood, aged to a nice gray. It
looked rickety but evidently wasn't. It was narrow and tall, two stories high
with a proud winglike roof. One entered through a low narrow door, built by and
for the chronically undernourished. The interior had the ambience of a rustic
cabin on a lake. Judge Fang had been here before, in mufti, but today he had
thrown a robe over his charcoal-gray pinstripe suit- a reasonably subtle
brocade, funereal by comparison with what people used to wear in China. He also
wore a black cap embroidered with a unicorn, which in most company would
probably be lumped in with rainbows and elves but here would be understood for
what it was, an ancient symbol of acuity. Dr. X could be relied upon to get the
message.
The
teahouse staff had had plenty of time to realize he was coming as he negotiated
the endless turns in the causeway. A manager of sorts and a couple of
waitresses were arrayed before the door, bowing deeply as he approached.
Judge
Fang had been raised on Cheerios, burgers, and jumbo burritos bulging with
beans and meat. He was just a bit less than two meters in height. His beard was
unusually thick, and he had been letting it grow out for a couple of years now,
and his hair fell down past the tips of his shoulder blades. These elements,
plus the hat and robe, and in combination with the power reposed in him by the
state, gave him a certain presence of which he was well aware.
He
tried not to be overly satisfied with himself, as this would have gone against
all Confucian precepts. On the other hand, Confucianism was all about
hierarchy, and those who were in high positions were supposed to comport
themselves with a certain dignity. Judge Fang could turn it on when he needed
to. He used it now to get himself situated at the best table on the first
floor, off in the corner with a nice view out the tiny old windows into the neighboring Ming-era garden.
He was still in the Coastal Republic, in the middle of the Twenty-first century. But he could have been
in the Middle Kingdom of yore, and for all intents and purposes, he was.
Chang
and Miss Pao separated themselves from their master and requested a table on
the second floor, up a narrow and alarming stairway, leaving Judge Fang in
peace whilst also making their presence forcibly known to Dr. X, who happened
to be up there right now, as he always was at this time in the morning, sipping
tea and chatting with his venerable homeboys.
When
Dr. X made his way down half an hour later, he was nonetheless delighted and
surprised to see the moderately famous and widely respected Judge Fang sitting
all by his lonesome staring out at the pond, its schools of fish flickering
lambently. When he approached the table to tender his respects, Judge Fang
invited him to take a seat, and after several minutes of sensitive negotiations
over whether this would or would not be an unforgivable intrusion on the
magistrate's privacy, Dr. X finally, gratefully, reluctantly, respectfully took
a seat.
There
was lengthy discourse between the two men on which of them was more honored to
be in the company of the other, followed by exhaustive discussion of the
relative merits of the different teas offered by the proprietors, whether the
leaves were best picked in early or late April, whether the brewing water
should be violently boiling as the pathetic gwailos always
did it, or limited to eighty degrees Celsius.
Eventually,
Dr. X got around to complimenting Judge Fang on his cap, especially on the
embroidery work. This meant that he had noticed the unicorn and understood its
message, which was that Judge Fang had seen through all of his efforts at
bribery. Not long afterward, Miss Pao came down and regretfully informed the
Judge that his presence was urgently required at a crime scene in the Leased Territories.
To spare Judge Fang the embarrassment of having to cut short the conversation,
Dr. X was approached, moments later, by one of his staff, who whispered
something into his ear. The Doctor apologized for having to take his leave, and
the two men then got into a very genteel argument over which one of them was
being more inexcusably rude, and then over which would precede the other across
the bridge. Judge Fang ended up going first, because his duties were deemed
more pressing, and thus ended the first meeting between the Judge and Dr. X.
The Judge was quite happy; it had all gone just as planned.
Hackworth
receives an unexpected visit from Inspector Chang.
Mrs. Hull had to
shake the flour out of her apron to answer the door. Hackworth, working in his
study, assumed it was a mere delivery until she appeared in his doorway,
harrumphing lightly, holding a salver with a single card centered on it:
Lieutenant Chang. His organization was called, in traditional Chinese
general-to-specific order, China Coastal Republic Shanghai New Chusan Leased
Territories District Magistrate Office.
"What
does he want?"
"To
give you your hat back."
"Send
him in," Hackworth said, startled.
Mrs.
Hull dawdled significantly. Hackworth glanced into a mirror and saw himself
reaching for his throat, checking the knot on his necktie. His smoking jacket
was hanging loose, and he wrapped it tight and retied the sash. Then he went to
the parlor.
Mrs.
Hull led Lieutenant Chang into the parlor. He was a burly, ungainly fellow with
a short buzz cut. Hackworth's top hat, looking rather ill-used, could be seen
indistinctly through a large plastic bag clenched in his hand. "Lieutenant
Chang," Mrs. Hull announced, and Chang bowed at Hackworth, smiling a bit
more than seemed warranted.
Hackworth
bowed back. "Lieutenant Chang."
"I
will not disturb you for long, I promise," Chang said in clear but
unrefined English. "During an investigation- details not relevant here- we
got this from a suspect. It is marked your property. Much the worse for wear-
please accept it."
"Well
done, Lieutenant," said Hackworth, receiving the bag and holding it up to
the light. "I did not expect to see it again, even in such a battered
condition."
"Well,
these boys do not have respect for a good hat, I am afraid," said
Lieutenant Chang.
Hackworth
paused, not knowing what one was supposed to say at this point. Chang just
stood there, seeming more at ease in Hackworth's parlor than Hackworth was. The
first exchange had been simple, but now the East/West curtain fell between them
like a rusty cleaver.
Was
this part of some official procedure? Was it a solicitation for a tip? Or just
Mr. Chang being a nice guy?
When
in doubt, end the visit sooner rather than later. "Well," said
Hackworth, "I don't know and don't care what you arrested him for, but I
commend you for having done so."
Lieutenant
Chang did not get the hint and realize it was time to leave. On the contrary,
he seemed just a bit perplexed now, where before everything had been so simple.
"I cannot help being
curious," Chang said, "what gave you the idea that anyone had been
arrested?"
Hackworth
felt a spear pass through his heart.
"You're a police lieutenant holding what appears to be an evidence
bag," he said. "The implication is clear."
Lieutenant
Chang looked at the bag, laboriously perplexed. "Evidence? It is just a
shopping bag- to protect your hat from the rain. And I am not here in my
official capacity."
Another
spear, at right angles to the first one. "Though," Chang continued,
"if some criminal activity has taken place of which I was not made aware,
perhaps I should recharacterize this visit.
Spear
number three; now Hackworth's pounding heart sat at the origin of a bloody
coordinate system plotted by Lieutenant Chang, conveniently pinned and exposed
for thorough examination. Chang's English was getting better all the time, and
Hackworth was beginning to think that he was one of those Shanghainese who had
spent much of his life in Vancouver, New York, or London. "I had assumed
that the gentleman's hat had simply been misplaced or perhaps blown off by a
gust of wind. Now you say criminals were involved!" Chang looked as though
he had never, to this day, suspected the existence of criminals in the Leased
Territories. Then shock was transcended by wonder as he segued, none too
subtly, into the next phase of the trap.
"It
was not important," Hackworth said, trying to derail Chang's relentless
train of thought, sensing that he and his family were tied to the tracks. Chang
ignored him, as if so exhilarated by the workings of his mind that he could not
be distracted.
"Mr.'
Hackworth, you have given me an idea. I have been trying to solve a difficult
case- a mugging that took place a few days ago. The victim was an unidentified
Atlantan gentleman."
"Don't
you have tag mites for that kind of thing?"
"Oh,"
Lieutenant Chang said, sounding rather downhearted, "tag mites are not
very reliable. The perpetrators took certain precautions to prevent the mites
from attaching. Of course, several mites attached themselves to the victim. But
before we could track him, he made his way to New Atlantis Clave, where your
superb immune system destroyed those mites. So his identity has remained a
mystery." Chang reached into his breast pocket and pulled out a folded
sheet of paper. "Mr. Hackworth, please tell me whether you recognize any
of the figures in this clip."
"I'm
actually rather busy- " Hackworth said, but Chang unfolded the paper in
front of him and gave it a command in Shanghainese. Initially the page was
covered with static Chinese characters. Then a large panel in the middle opened
up and began to play back a cine feed.
Watching
himself getting mugged was one of the most astonishing things Hackworth had
ever seen. He could not stop watching it. The feed went to slow motion, and
then out came the book. Tears came to Hackworth's eyes, and he made an effort
not to blink lest he dislodge them. Not that it really mattered, since
Lieutenant Chang was standing rather close to him and could no doubt see
everything.
Chang
was shaking his head in wonderment. "So it was you, Mr. Hackworth. I had
not made the connection. So many nice things, and such a vicious beating. You
have been the victim of a very serious crime!"
Hackworth
could not speak and had nothing to say anyway. "It is striking to
me," Chang continued, "that you did not bother to report this serious
crime to the magistrate! For some time now we have been reviewing this tape,
wondering why the victim- a respectable gentleman- did not step forward to
assist us with our inquiries. So much effort wasted," Chang fretted. Then
he brightened up. "But it's all water under the bridge, I suppose. We have
one or two of the gang in custody, on an unrelated crime, and now I can charge them
with your mugging as well. Of course, we will require your testimony."
"Of
course."
"The
items that were taken from you?"
"You
saw it."
"Yes.
A watch chain with various items, a fountain pen, and-"
"That's
it."
Chang
seemed just a bit nonplussed, but more than that he seemed deeply satisfied,
suffused by a newly generous spirit. "The book does not even bear
mentioning?"
"Not
really."
"It
looked like an antique of some sort. Quite valuable, no?"
"A
fake. That sort of thing is popular with us. A way to build an
impressive-seeming library without going broke."
"Ah,
that explains it," said Mr. Chang, growing more satisfied by the minute.
If Hackworth provided him any more reassurance on the matter of the book, he
would no doubt curl up on the sofa and fall asleep. "Still, I should
mention the book in my official report- which will be shared with New Atlantis
authorities, as the victim in this case belonged to that phyle."
"Don't,"
said Hackworth, finally turning to look Chang in the eye for the first time.
"Don't mention it."
"Ah,
I cannot imagine your motive for saying this," Chang said, "but I
have little leeway in the matter. We are closely monitored by our
supervisors."
"Perhaps
you could simply explain my feelings to your supervisor."
Lieutenant
Chang received this suggestion with a look of wild surmise. "Mr.
Hackworth, you are a very clever fellow- as I already gathered from your
demanding and very responsible position- but I am ashamed to tell you that your
excellently devious plan may not work. My supervisor is a cruel taskmaster with
no regard for human feelings. To be quite frank- and I tell you this in all
confidence- he is not entirely without ethical blemishes."
"Ah,"
Hackworth said, "so if I am following you-"
"Oh,
no, Mr. Hackworth, it is I who am following you."
"-the
appeal to sympathy won't work, and we will have to sway him using another
strategy, perhaps related to this ethical blind spot."
"That
is an approach that had not occurred to me."
"Perhaps
you should do some thinking, or even some research, as to what level and type
of inducement might be required," Hackworth said, suddenly walking toward
the exit. Lieutenant Chang followed him. Hackworth hauled his front door open
and allowed Chang to retrieve his own hat and umbrella from the rack.
"Then simply get back to me and spell it out as plainly and simply as you
can manage. Good night, Lieutenant Chang."
As
he rode his bicycle toward the gate on his way back to the Leased Territories,
Chang was exultant over the success of tonight's research. Of course, neither
he nor Judge Fang was interested in extracting bribes from this Hackworth; but
Hackworth's willingness to pay served as proof that the book did, in fact,
embody stolen intellectual property. But then he bridled his emotions,
remembering the words of the philosopher Tsang to Yang Fu upon the latter's
appointment to chief criminal judge: "The rulers have failed in their
duties, and the people consequently have been disorganized for a long time. When
you have found out the truth of any accusation, be grieved for and pity them,
and do not feel joy at your own ability."
Not
that Chang's abilities had even been tested this evening; nothing could be
easier than getting the New Atlantans to believe that Chinese police were
corrupt.
Miranda
takes an interest in an anonymous client.
Miranda
scanned her balance sheet at the end of one month and discovered that her
leading source of income was no longer Silk Road or Taming of the Shrew-
it was that storybook about Princess Nell. In a way that was surprising,
because kid stuff usually didn't pay well, but in another way it wasn't-
because she had been spending an incredible amount of time in that ractive
lately.
It
had started small: a story, just a few minutes long, involving a dark castle, a
wicked stepmother, and a gate with twelve locks. It would have been
forgettable, except for two things: It paid much better than most kid work,
because they were specifically looking for highly rated actresses, and it was
rather dark and weird by the standards of contemporary children's literature.
Not many people were into that whole Grimm Brothers scene anymore.
She
collected a few ucus for her trouble and forgot about it. But the next day, the
same contract number came up on her mediatron again. She accepted the job and
found herself reading the same story, except that it was longer and more
involved, and it kept backtracking and focusing in on tiny little bits of
itself, which then expanded into stories in their own right.
Because
of the way that the ractive was hooked up, she didn't get direct feedback from
her counterpart on the other end. She assumed it was a little girl. But she
couldn't hear the girl's voice. Miranda was presented with screens of text to
be read, and she read them. But she could tell that this process of probing and
focusing was being directed by the girl. She had seen this during her governess
days. She knew that on the other end of this connection was a little girl
insatiably asking why. So she put a little gush of enthusiasm into her voice at
the beginning of each line, as if she were delighted that the question had been
asked.
When
the session was over, the usual screen came up telling her how much she'd made,
the contract number, and so on. Before she signed off on it, she checked the
little box labelled MARK HERE IF YOU WOULD LIKE A CONTINUING RELATIONSHIP WITH
THIS CONTRACT. The relationship box, they called it, and it only came up with
higher quality ractives, where continuity was important. The disping process
worked so well that any ractor, male or female, bass or soprano, would sound
the same to the end user. But discriminating customers could of course tell
ractors apart anyway because of subtle differences in style, and once they had
a relationship with one performer, they liked to keep it. Once Miranda checked
the box and signed off, she'd get first crack at any more Princess Nell jobs.
Within
a week she was teaching this girl how to read. They'd work on letters for a
while and then wander off into more stories about Princess Nell, stop in the
middle for a quick practical demonstration of basic math, return to the story,
and then get sidetracked with an endless chain of "why this?" and
"why that?" Miranda had spent a lot of time with kiddie ractives,
both as a child and as a governess, and the superiority of this thing was
palpable- like hefting an antique silver fork when you'd been eating with
plastic utensils for twenty years, or slithering into a tailor-made evening
gown when you were used to jeans.
These
and other associations came into Miranda's mind on any of the rare moments when
she came into contact with something of Quality, and if she didn't make a
conscious effort to stop the process, she would end up remembering just about
everything that had happened to her during the first years of her life- the
Mercedes taking her to private school, the crystal chandelier that would ring
like fairy bells when she climbed up on the huge mahogany dinner table to tickle
it, her paneled bedroom with the four-poster bed with the silk-and-goosedown
duvet. For reasons still unspecified, Mother had moved them far away from all
of that, into what passed for poverty these days. Miranda only remembered that,
when she had been physically close to Father, Mother had watched them with more
vigilance than seemed warranted.
A
month or two into the relationship, Miranda groggily signed off from a long
Princess Nell session and was astounded to notice that she'd been going for
eight hours without a break. Her throat was raw, and she hadn't been to the loo
in hours. She had made a lot of money. And the time in New York was something
like six in the morning, which made it seem unlikely that the little girl lived
there.
She
must be in a time zone not many hours different from Miranda's, and she must
sit there playing with that ractive storybook all day long instead of going to
school like a little rich girl should. It was slim evidence to go on, but
Miranda never needed much evidence to confirm her belief that rich parents were
just as capable of fucking with their children's minds as anyone.
Further
experiences with the Primer; Princess Nell and Harv in the Dark Castle.
Harv was a
clever boy who knew about trolls, and so as soon as he knew that they had been
locked up inside the Dark Castle by their wicked stepmother, he told Nell that
they must go out and gather all the firewood they could find.
Rummaging
in the Great Hall of the castle, he found a suit of armor holding a battle-axe.
"I will chop down some trees with this," he said, "and you must
go out and gather kindling."
"What's
kindling?" Nell asked.
An
illustration of the castle appeared. In the center was a tall building with
many towers that rose up into the clouds. Around it was an open space where
trees and plants grew, and around that was the high wall that held them
prisoner.
The
illustration zoomed in on an open grassy area and became very detailed. Harv
and Nell were trying to build a fire. There was a pile of wet logs Harv had
chopped up. Harv also had a rock, which he was striking against the butt of a
knife. Sparks flew out and were swallowed up by the wet logs.
"You
start the fire, Nell," Harv said, and left her alone.
Then
the picture stopped moving, and Nell realized, after a few minutes, that it was
fully ractive now. She picked up the rock and the knife and began to whack them
together (actually she was just moving her empty hands in space, but in the
illustration Princess Nell's hands did the same thing). Sparks flew, but there
was no fire.
She
kept at it for a while, getting more and more frustrated, until tears came to
her eyes. But then one of the sparks went awry and landed in some dry grass. A
little curl of smoke rose up and died out.
She
experimented a bit and learned that dry yellow grass worked better than green
grass. Still, the fire never lasted for more than a few seconds.
A
gust of wind came up and blew a few dry leaves in her direction. She learned
that the fire could spread from dry grass to leaves. The stem of a leaf was
basically a small dry twig, so that gave her the idea to explore a little grove
of trees and look for some twigs. The grove was densely overgrown, but she
found what she was looking for beneath an old dead bush.
"Good!"
Harv said, when he came back and found her approaching with an armload of small
dry sticks. "You found some kindling. You're a smart girl and a good
worker."
Soon
they had built up a roaring bonfire. Harv chopped down enough trees to make sure
that they could keep it going until sunrise, and then he and Nell fell asleep,
knowing that trolls would not dare approach the fire. Still, Nell did not sleep
very well, for she could hear the mutterings of the trolls off in the darkness
and see the red sparks of their eyes. She thought she heard another sound too:
muffled voices crying for help.
When the
sun came up, Nell explored the Dark Castle, looking for the source of the
voices, but found nothing. Harv spent the whole day chopping wood. The day before,
he had cut down a third of the trees, and this day he cut down another third.
That night,
Nell again heard the voices, but this time they seemed to be shouting,
"Look in the trees! Look in the trees!"
The next
morning, she went into the remaining grove of trees and explored it even as
Harv was cutting the last of them down. Again she found nothing.
Neither one
of them slept well that night, for they knew that they were burning the last of
their wood, and that the next night they would have no protection from the
trolls. Nell heard the voices again, and this time they seemed to be shouting,
"Look under the ground! Look under the ground!"
Later,
after the sun came up, she went exploring again and found a cave whose entrance
had been shut up by trolls. When she opened the cave, she found four dolls: a
dinosaur, a duck, a rabbit, and a woman with long purple hair. But she did not
see anything living that could have made the voices.
Nell and
Harv went into the Dark Castle itself that night and shut themselves up in a
room high in one tower and pushed heavy furniture against the door, hoping that
it would keep the trolls at bay. The room had one tiny window, and Nell stood
next to it watching the sun go down, wondering if she would see it rise again.
Just as the last glimmer of red light disappeared beneath the horizon, she felt
a puff of air at her back and turned around to see an astonishing sight: The
stuffed animals had turned into real creatures!
There was a
great scary dinosaur, a duck, a clever little bunny rabbit, and a woman in a
purple gown with purple hair. They explained to Princess Nell that her wicked
stepmother was an evil sorceress in the Land Beyond, and that the four of them
had long ago sworn to defeat her evil plans. She had placed an enchantment on
them, so that they were dolls in the daytime but returned to their normal
selves at night. Then she had imprisoned them in this castle, where the trolls
had shut them up inside a cave. They thanked Nell for releasing them.
Then Nell
told them her own story. When she mentioned how she and Harv had been plucked
from the ocean wrapped in cloth of gold, the woman named Purple said,
"This means that you are a true Princess, and so we pledge our undying
loyalty to you." And all four of them bent down on one knee and swore an
oath to defend Princess Nell to the death.
Dinosaur,
who was the fiercest of them all, mounted a campaign to stamp out the trolls,
and within a few days they had all been driven away. Thereafter Nell was no
longer troubled in her sleep, for she knew that the scary trolls, who had once
given her bad dreams, had been replaced by her four night friends.
The
torture chamber of Judge Fang; a
barbarian is interrogated; dark events
in the interior of China; an unignorable summons from Dr. X
Judge
Fang didn't torture people frequently. This was for several reasons. Under the
new system of Confucian justice, it was no longer necessary for every criminal
to sign a confession before a sentence was carried out; all that was needed was
for the magistrate to find him guilty on the strength of the evidence. This
alone relieved the Judge of having to torture many of the people who came
before his bench, though he was often tempted to force confessions from
insolent Western thetes who refused to take responsibility for their own
actions. Furthermore, modern surveillance equipment made it possible to gather
information without having to rely on (sometimes reticent) human witnesses as
the magistrates of yore had done.
But
the man with the red dreadlocks was a very reluctant witness indeed, and
unfortunately the information locked up in his brain was unique. No airborne
cine aerostat or microscopic surveillance mite had recorded the data Judge Fang
sought. And so the magistrate had decided to revert to the time-honored methods
of his venerable predecessors.
Chang
strapped the prisoner (who would only identify himself as a Mr. PhyrePhox) to a
heavy X-shaped rack that was normally used for canings. This was purely a
humanitarian gesture; it would prevent PhyrePhox from thrashing wildly around
the room and injuring himself. Chang also stripped the prisoner from the waist
down and situated a bucket under his organs of elimination. In so doing he
happened to expose the only actual injury that the prisoner would suffer during
this entire procedure: a tiny, neat scab in the base of the spine, where the
court physician had thrust in the spinal tap the previous afternoon, and
introduced a set of nanosites- nanotechnological parasites- under the
supervision of Miss Pao. In the ensuing twelve hours, the 'sites had migrated
up and down the prisoner's spinal column, drifting lazily through the
cerebrospinal fluid, and situated themselves on whatever afferent nerves they
happened to bump up against. These nerves, used by the body to transmit
information such as (to name only one example) excruciating pain to the brain,
had a distinctive texture and appearance that the 'sites were clever enough to
recognize. It is probably superfluous to mention that these 'sites had one
other key feature, namely the ability to transmit bogus information along those
nerves.
That
tiny scab, just above the buttocks, always drew Judge Fang's attention when he
presided over one of these affairs, which fortunately was not more than a few
times a year. PhyrePhox, being a natural redhead, had deathly pale skin.
"Cool!"
the prisoner suddenly exclaimed, swiveling his head around in a spray of
dreadlocks, trying as best he could to look down and back over his freckled shoulder.
"I got this feeling of, like, stroking some, like, really soft fur or
something against my left inner thigh. That is so bitching! Do it again, man!
Whoa, wait a minute! Now it's the same feeling, but it's like on the sole of my
right foot!"
"The
attachment of the nanosites to the nerves is an aleatory process- we never know
which nanosite will end up where. The sensations you are experiencing now are a
way for us to take inventory, as it were. Of course, nothing is actually
happening in your thigh or foot; it all takes place within the spinal column,
and you would feel it even if your legs had been amputated."
"That's
really weird," PhyrePhox exclaimed, his pale green eyes going wide with
amazement. "So you could even, like, torture a basket case." His eye
and cheek twitched on one side. "Damn! Feels like someone's tickling my
face now. Hey, cut it out!" A grin came over his face. "Oh, no! I'll
tell you everything! Just don't tickle me! Please!"
Chang
was first stunned and then furious at the prisoner's breach of decorum and made
a move toward a rack of canes mounted to the wall. Judge Fang steadied his
assistant with a firm hand on the shoulder; Chang swallowed his anger and took
a deep breath, then bowed apologetically.
"You
know, PhyrePhox," Judge Fang said, "I really appreciate the moments
of levity and even childlike wonder that you are injecting into this process.
So often when we strap people to the torture rack, they are unpleasantly tense
and hardly any fun at all to be around."
"Hey,
man, I'm into new experiences. I get lots of experience points for this,
huh?"
"Experience
points?"
"It's
a joke. From swords-and-sorcery ractives. See, the more experience points your
character earns, the more power he gets."
Judge
Fang straightened one hand and snapped it backward past his head, making a
whooshing sound like a low-flying fighter plane. "The reference escaped
me," he explained for the benefit of Chang and Miss Pao, who did not
recognize the gesture.
"Feels
like there's something tickling my right eardrum now," the prisoner said,
snapping his head back and forth.
"Good!
That means a nanosite happened to attach itself to the nerve running from your
eardrum into your brain. We always consider it an omen of good fortune when this
happens," Judge Fang said, "as pain impulses delivered into this
nerve make a particularly deep impression on the subject. Now, I will ask Miss
Pao to suspend this process for a few minutes so that I can have your full
attention."
"Cool,"
said the prisoner.
"Let's
review what we have so far. You are thirty-seven years old. Almost twenty years
ago, you co-founded a CryptNet node in Oakland, California. It was a very early
node- number 178. Now, of course, there are tens of thousands of nodes."
A
hint of a smile from the prisoner. "You almost got me there," he
said. "No way am I going to tell you how many nodes there are. Of course,
no one really knows anyway."
"Very
well," Judge Fang said. He nodded to Chang, who made a mark on a sheet of
paper. "We will save that inquiry for the latter phase of the
investigation, which will commence in a few minutes.
"Like
all other CryptNet members," Judge Fang continued, "you started out
at the first level and made your way up from there, as the years went by, to
your current level of- what?"
PhyrePhox
smirked and shook his head knowingly. "I'm sorry, Judge Fang, but we've
been through this. I can't deny I started out at level one- I mean, that's,
like, obvious- but anything beyond that point is speculation."
"It's
only speculation if you don't tell us," Judge Fang said, controlling a
momentary spark of annoyance. "I suspect you of being at least a
twenty-fifth-level member."
PhyrePhox
got a serious look on his face and shook his head, jangling the shiny, colorful
fragments of glass and metal worked into his dreadlocks. "That is so
bogus. You should know that the highest level is ten. Anything beyond that is,
like, a myth. Only conspiracy theorists believe in levels beyond ten. CryptNet
is just a simple, innocuous tuple-processing collective, man."
"That
is, of course, the party line, which is only believed by complete idiots,"
Judge Fang said. "In any case, returning to your previous statement, we
have established that over the next eight years, Node 178 did a prosperous
business- as you said, processing tuples. During this time you worked your way
up the hierarchy to the tenth level. Then you claim to have severed your
connection with CryptNet and gone into business for yourself, as a
mediagrapher. Since then, you have specialized in war zones. Your photo, cine,
and sound collages from the battlegrounds of China have won prizes and been
accessed by hundreds of thousands of media consumers, though your work is so
graphic and disturbing that mainstream acceptance has eluded you."
"That's
your opinion, man."
Chang
stepped forward, visibly clenching the many stout muscles that enwreathed his
big, bony, close-cropped head. "You will address the magistrate as Your
Honor!" he hissed.
"Chill
out, man," PhyrePhox said. "Jeez, who's torturing whom here?"
Judge
Fang exchanged a look with Chang. Chang, out of sight of the prisoner, licked
one index finger and made an imaginary mark in the air: Score one for
PhyrePhox.
"Many
of us who are not part of CryptNet find it hard to understand how that
organization can survive its extremely high attrition rate. Over and over
again, first-level CryptNet novices work their way up the hierarchy to the
tenth and supposedly highest level, then drop out and seek other work or simply
fade back into the phyles from which they originated."
PhyrePhox
tried to shrug insouciantly but was too effectively restrained to complete the
maneuver.
Judge
Fang continued, "This pattern has been widely noted and has led to
speculation that CryptNet contains many levels beyond the tenth, and that all
of the people pretending to be ex-CryptNet members are, in fact, secretly
connected to the old network; secretly in communication with all of the other
nodes; secretly working their way up to higher and higher levels within
CryptNet even while infiltrating the power structures of other phyles and
organizations. That CryptNet is a powerful secret society that has spread its
tendrils high into every phyle and corporation in the world."
"That
is so paranoid."
"Normally
we do not concern ourselves with these matters, which may be mere paranoid
ravings as you aver. There are those who would claim that the Chinese Coastal
Republic, of which I am a servant, is riddled with secret CryptNet members. I
myself am skeptical of this. Even if it were true, it would only matter to me
if they committed crimes within my jurisdiction."
And
it could scarcely make any difference anyway, Judge Fang added to himself,
given that the Coastal Republic is completely riddled with corruption and
intrigue under the best of circumstances. The darkest and most powerful
conspiracy in the world would be chewed up and spat out by the scheming
corporate warlords of the Coastal Republic.
Judge
Fang realized that everyone was looking at him, waiting for him to continue.
"You
were spacing out, Your Honor," PhyrePhox said.
Judge
Fang had been spacing out quite a bit lately, usually while pondering this very
subject. Corrupt and incompetent government was hardly a new development in
China, and the Master himself had devoted many parts of the Analects to
advising his followers in how they should comport themselves while working in
the service of corrupt lords. "A superior man indeed is Chu Po-yu! When
good government prevails in his state, he is to be found in office. When bad
government prevails, he can roll his principles up and keep them in his
breast." One of the great virtues of Confucianism was its suppleness.
Western political thought tended to be rather brittle; as soon as the state
became corrupt, everything ceased to make sense. Confucianism always retained
its equilibrium, like a cork that could float as well in spring water or raw
sewage.
Nevertheless,
Judge Fang had recently been plagued with doubts as to whether his life made
any sense at all in the context of the Coastal Republic, a nation almost
completely devoid of virtue. If the Coastal Republic had believed in the
existence of virtue, it could at least have aspired to hypocrisy.
He
was getting off the track here. The issue was not whether the Coastal Republic
was well-governed. The issue was trafficking in babies.
"Three
months ago," Judge Fang said, "you arrived in Shanghai via airship
and, after a short stay, proceeded into the interior via a hovercraft on the
Yangtze. Your stated mission was to gather material for a mediagraphic
documentary concerning a new criminal gang"- here Judge Fang referred to
his notes- "called the Fists of Righteous Harmony."
"It
ain't no small-time triad," PhyrePhox said, smiling exultantly. "It's
the seeds of a dynastic rebellion, man."
"I've
reviewed the media you transmitted back to the outside world on this
subject," Judge Fang said, "and will make my own judgment. The
prospects of the Fists are not at issue here."
PhyrePhox
was not at all convinced; he raised his head and opened his mouth to explain to
Judge Fang how wrong he was, then thought better of it, shook his head
regretfully, and acquiesced.
"Two
days ago," Judge Fang continued, "you returned to Shanghai in a riverboat
badly overloaded with several dozen passengers, most of them peasants fleeing
from famine and strife in the interior." He was now reading from a
Shanghai Harbormaster document detailing the inspection of the boat in
question. "I note that several of the passengers were women carrying
female infants under three months of age. The vessel was searched for
contraband and admitted into the harbor." Judge Fang did not need to point
out that this meant practically nothing; such inspectors were notoriously unobservant,
especially when in the presence of distractions such as envelopes full of
money, fresh cartons of cigarettes, or conspicuously amorous young passengers.
But the more corrupt a society was, the more apt its officials were to brandish
pathetic internal documents such as this one as if they were holy writ, and
Judge Fang was no exception to this rule when it served a higher purpose.
"All of the passengers, including the infants, were processed in the usual
way, records taken of retinal patterns, fingerprints, etc. I regret to say that
my esteemed colleagues in the Harbormaster's Office did not examine these
records with their wonted diligence, for if they had, they might have noticed
large discrepancies between the biological characteristics of the young women
and their alleged daughters, suggesting that none of them were actually related
to each other. But perhaps more pressing matters prevented them from noticing
this." Judge Fang let the unspoken accusation hang in the air: that the
Shanghai authorities were themselves not out of reach of CryptNet influence.
PhyrePhox visibly tried to look ingenuous.
"A
day later, during a routine investigation of organized crime activity in the
Leased Territories, we placed a surveillance device in an allegedly vacant
apartment thought to be used for illegal activities and were startled to hear
the sound of many small infants. Constables raided the place immediately and
found twenty-four female infants, belonging to the Han racial group, being
cared for by eight young peasant women, recently arrived from the countryside.
Upon interrogation these women said that they had been recruited for this work
by a Han gentleman whose identity has not been established, and who has not
been found. The infants were examined. Five of them were on your boat, Mr.
PhyrePhox- the biological records match perfectly."
"If
there was a baby-smuggling operation associated with that boat," PhyrePhox
said, "I had nothing to do with it."
"We
have interrogated the boat's owner and captain," Judge Fang said,
"and he asserts that this voyage was planned and paid for by you, from
beginning to end."
"I
had to get back to Shanghai somehow, so I hired the boat. These women wanted to
go to Shanghai, so I was cool about letting them come along."
"Mr.
PhyrePhox, before we start torturing you, let me explain to you my state of
mind," Judge Fang said, coming close to the prisoner so that they could
look each other in the eye. "We have examined these babies closely. It
appears that they were well cared for- no malnourishment or signs of abuse.
Why, then, should I take such an interest in this case?
"The
answer has nothing to do, really, with my duties as a district magistrate. It
doesn't even relate to Confucian philosophy per se. It is a racial thing, Mr.
PhyrePhox. That a European man is smuggling Han babies to the Leased
Territories- and thence, I would assume, out to the world beyond- triggers
profound, I might even say primal emotions within me and many other Chinese
persons.
"During
the Boxer Rebellion, the rumor was spread that the orphanages run by European
missionaries were in fact abattoirs where white doctors scooped the eyes out of
the heads of Han babies to make medicine for European consumption. That many
Han believed these rumors accounts for the extreme violence to which the
Europeans were subjected during that rebellion. But it also reflects a
regrettable predisposition to racial fear and hatred that is latent within the
breasts of all human beings of all tribes.
"With
your baby-smuggling operation you have stumbled into the same extremely
dangerous territory. Perhaps these little girls are destined for comfortable
and loving homes in non-Han phyles. That is the best possible outcome for you-
you will be punished but you will live. But for all I know, they are being used
for organ transplants- in other words, the baseless rumors that incited
peasants to storm the orphanages during the Boxer Rebellion may in fact be
literally true in your case. Does this help to clarify the purpose of this
evening's little get-together?"
At
the beginning of this oration, PhyrePhox had been wearing his baseline facial
expression- an infuriatingly vacant half-grin, which Judge Fang had decided was
not really a smirk, more a posture of detached bemusement. As soon as Judge
Fang had mentioned the eyeballs, the prisoner had broken eye contact, lost the
smile, and become more and more pensive until, by the end, he was actually
nodding in agreement. He kept on nodding for a minute longer, staring fixedly
at the floor. Then he brightened and looked up at the Judge. "Before I
give you my answer," he said, "torture me."
Judge
Fang, by a conscious effort, remained poker-faced. So PhyrePhox twisted his
head around until Miss Pao was within his peripheral vision. "Go
ahead," the prisoner said encouragingly, "give me a jolt."
Judge
Fang shrugged and nodded to Miss Pao, who picked up her brush and swept a few
quick characters across the mediatronic paper spread out on the writing table
before her. As she neared the end of this inscription, she slowed and finally
looked up at the Judge, then at PhyrePhox as she drew out the final stroke.
At
this point PhyrePhox should have erupted with a scream from deep down in his
viscera, convulsed against the restraints, voided himself at both ends, then
gone into shock (if he had a weak constitution) or begged for mercy (if
strong). Instead he closed his eyes, as if thinking hard about something,
tensed every muscle in his body for a
few moments, then gradually relaxed, breathing deeply and deliberately. He
opened his eyes and looked at Judge Fang. "How's that?" the prisoner
said. "Would you like another demonstration?"
"I
think I have the general idea," Judge Fang said. "One of your
highlevel CryptNet tricks, I suppose. Nanosites embedded in your brain,
mediating its interchanges with the peripheral nervous system. It would make
sense for you to have advanced telęsthetic systems permanently installed. And a
system that could trick your nerves into thinking that they were somewhere else
could also trick them into thinking that they were not experiencing pain."
"What
can be installed can be removed," Miss Pao observed.
"That
won't be necessary," Judge Fang said, and nodded to Chang. Chang stepped
toward the prisoner, drawing a short sword. "We'll start with fingers and
proceed from there."
"You're
forgetting something," the prisoner said. "I have already agreed to
give you my answer."
"I'm
standing here," the Judge said, "I'm not hearing an answer. Is there
a reason for this delay?"
"The
babies aren't being smuggled anywhere," PhyrePhox said. "They stay
right here. The purpose of the operation is to save their lives."
"What
is it, precisely, that endangers their lives?"
"Their
own parents," PhyrePhox said. "Things are bad in the interior, Your
Honor. The water table is gone. The practice of infanticide is at an all-time
high."
"Your
next goal in life," Judge Fang said, "will be to prove all of this to
my satisfaction."
The
door opened. One of Judge Fang's constables entered the room and bowed deeply
to apologize for the interruption, then stepped forward and handed the
magistrate a scroll. The Judge examined the seal; it bore the chop of Dr. X.
He
carried it to his office and unrolled it on his desk. It was the real thing,
written on rice paper in real ink, not the mediatronic stuff.
It
occurred to the Judge, before he even read this document, that he could take it
to an art dealer on Nanjing Road and sell it for a year's wages. Dr. X,
assuming it was really he who had brushed these characters, was the most
impressive living calligrapher whose work Judge Fang had ever seen. His hand
betrayed a rigorous Confucian grounding- many decades more study than Judge
Fang could ever aspire to- but upon this foundation the Doctor had developed a
distinctive style, highly expressive without being sloppy. It was the hand of
an elder who understood the importance of gravity above all else, and who,
having first established his dignity, conveyed most of his message through
nuances. Beyond that, the structure of the inscription was exactly right, a
perfect balance of large characters and small, hung on the page just so, as if
inviting analysis by legions of future graduate students.
Judge
Fang knew that Dr. X controlled legions of criminals ranging from spankable
delinquents up to international crime lords; that half of the Coastal Republic
officials in Shanghai were in his pocket; that within the limited boundaries of
the Celestial Kingdom, he was a figure of considerable importance, probably a
blue-button Mandarin of the third or fourth rank; that his business connections
ran to most of the continents and phyles of the wide world and that he had
accumulated tremendous wealth. All of these things paled in comparison with the
demonstration of power represented by this scroll. I can pick up a brush at
any time, Dr. X was saying, and toss off a work of art
that can hang on the wall beside the finest calligraphy of the Ming Dynasty.
By sending the
Judge this scroll, Dr. X was laying claim to all of the heritage that Judge
Fang most revered. It was like getting a letter from the Master himself. The
Doctor was, in effect, pulling rank. And even though Dr. X nominally belonged
to a different phyle- the Celestial Kingdom- and, here in the Coastal Republic,
was nothing more than a criminal, Judge Fang could not disregard this message
from him, written in this way, without abjuring everything he most respected-
those principles on which he had rebuilt his own life after his career as a
hoodlum in Lower Manhattan had brought him to a dead end. It was like a summons
sent down through the ages from his own ancestors.
He
spent a few minutes further admiring the calligraphy. Then he rolled the scroll
up with great care, locked it in a drawer, and returned to the interrogation
room.
"I
have received an invitation to dine on Dr. X's boat," he said. "Take
the prisoner back to the holding cell. We are finished for today."
A
domestic scene; Nell's visit to the
playroom; misbehavior of the other children;
the Primer displays new capabilities;
Dinosaur tells a story.
In the morning Mom would put on her maid
uniform and go to work, and Tad would wake up sometime later and colonize the
sofa in front of the big living-room mediatron. Harv would creep around the
edges of the apartment, foraging for breakfast, some of which he'd bring back
to Nell. Then Harv would usually leave the apartment and not come back until
after Tad had departed, typically in late afternoon, to chill with his
homeboys. Mom would come home with a little plastic bag of salad that she'd
taken from work and a tiny injector; after picking at the salad, she'd put the
injector against her arm for a moment and then spend the rest of the evening
watching old passives on the mediatron. Harv would drift in and out with some
of his friends. Usually he wasn't there when Nell decided to go to sleep, but
he was there when she woke up. Tad might come home at any time of the night,
and he'd be angry if Mom wasn't awake.
One
Saturday, Mom and Tad were both home at the same time and they were on the
couch together with their arms around each other and Tad was playing a silly
game with Mom that made Mom squeal and wiggle. Nell kept asking Mom to read her
a story from her magic book, and Tad kept shoving her away and threatening to
give her a whipping, and finally Mom said, "Get out of my fucking hair,
Nell!" and shoved Nell out the door, telling her to go to the playroom for
a couple of hours.
Nell
got lost in the hallways and started crying; but her book told her a story
about Princess Nell getting lost in the endless corridors of the Dark Castle,
and how she found her way out by using her wits, and this made Nell feel safe-
as though she could never be really lost when she had her book with her.
Eventually Nell found the playroom. It was on the first floor of the building.
As usual, there were lots of kids there and no parents. There was a special
space off to the side of the playroom where babies could sit in strollers and crawl
around on the floor. Some mommies were in there, but they told her she was too
big to play in that room. Nell went back to the big playroom, which was full of
kids who were much bigger than Nell.
She
knew these kids; they knew how to push and hit and scratch. She went to one
corner of the room and sat with her magic book on her lap, waiting for one kid
to get off the swing. When he did, she put her book in the corner and climbed
onto the swing and started trying to pump her legs like the big kids did, but
she couldn't get the swing to go. Then a big kid came and told her that she was
not allowed to use the swing because she was too little. 'When Nell didn't get
off right away, the kid shoved her off. Nell tumbled into the sand, scratching
her hands and knees, and ran back toward the corner crying.
But
a couple of other kids had found her magic book and started kicking it around,
making it slide back and forth across the floor like a hockey puck.. Nell ran
up and tried to pick the book off the floor, but it slid too fast for her to
catch it. The two kids began kicking it back and forth between them and finally
tossing it through the air. Nell ran back and forth trying to keep up with the
book. Soon there were four kids playing keep-away and six others standing
around watching and laughing at Nell. Nell couldn't see things though because
her eyes were full of tears, snot was running out of her nose, and her ribcage
only quivered when she tried to breathe. Then one of the kids screamed and
dropped the book. Quickly another darted in to grab it, and he screamed too.
Then a third.
Suddenly
all the kids were silent and afraid. Nell rubbed the tears out of her eyes and
ran over toward the book again, and this time the kids didn't throw it away
from her; she picked it up and cradled it against her chest. The kids who'd
been playing keep-away were all in the same pose: arms crossed over chests,
hands wedged into armpits, jumping up and down like pogo sticks and screaming
for their mothers.
Nell
sat in the corner, opened the book, and started to read. She did not know all
of the words, but she knew a lot of them, and when she got tired, the book
would help her sound out the words or even read the whole story to her, or tell
it to her with moving pictures just like a cine.
After
the trolls had all been driven away, the castle yard was not a pretty sight to
see. It had been unkempt and overgrown to begin with. Harv had had no choice
except to chop down all the trees, and during Dinosaur's great battle against the
trolls, many of the remaining plants had been torn up.
Dinosaur
stood and surveyed it in the moonlight. "This place reminds me of the
Extinction, when we had to wander for days just to find something to eat,"
he said.
D I N O S A U R ' S T A L E
There were
four of us traveling through a landscape much like this one, except that
instead of stumps, all the trees were burned. The particular part of the world
had become dark and cold for a while after the comet struck, so that many of
the plants and trees died; and after they died, they dried out, and then it was
just a matter of time before lightning caused a great forest fire. The four of
us were traveling across this great burned-out country looking for food, and
you can guess we were very hungry. Never mind why we were doing it; back then,
if things got bad where you were, you just got up and went until things got
better.
Besides me
there was Utahraptor, who was smaller than me, but very quick, with great
curving claws on his feet; with one kick he could cut another dinosaur open
like ripe fruit.
Then there
was Ankylosaurus, who was a slow plant-eater, but dangerous; he was protected
all around by a bony shell like a turtle's, and on the end of his tail was a
big lump of bone that could dash out the brains of any meat-eating dinosaur
that came too close. Finally there was Pteranodon, who could fly. All of us
traveled together in a little pack. To be perfectly honest, our band had
formerly consisted of a couple of hundred dinosaurs, most of them duck-billed
plant-eaters, but Utahraptor and I had been forced to eat most of these- just a
few a day, of course, so that they didn't notice at first, as they were not
very intelligent.
Finally
their number had dwindled to one, a gaunt and gamy fellow named Everett, whom
we tried to stretch out for as long as we could. During those last few days,
Everett was constantly looking around for his companions. Like all
plant-eaters, he had eyes in the side of his head and could see in almost all
directions. Everett seemed to think that if he could just swivel his head
around in the right direction, a big healthy pack of duck-bills would suddenly
rotate into view. At the very end, I think that Everett may have put two and
two together; I saw him blink in surprise once, as if the light had finally
gone on in his head, and the rest of that day he was very quiet, as if all of
his half-dozen or so neurons were busy working out the implications. After
that, as we continued across this burned country where Everett had nothing to
eat, he became more and more listless and whiny until finally Utahraptor lost
his temper, lashed out with one leg, and there was Everett's viscera sitting
there on the ground like a sack of groceries.
Then there
was simply nothing to do except eat him. I got most of him as usual, though
Utahraptor kept darting in around my ankles and snatching up choice bits, and
from time to time Pteranodon would swoop in and grab a whorl of intestine.
Ankylosaurus stood off to the side and watched. For a long time we'd taken him
for an idiot, because he would always just squat there watching us divide up
those duck-bills, munching stupidly on the erratic horsetail, never saying
much. In retrospect, maybe he was just a taciturn sort. He must have worked out
that we would very much like to eat him, if only we could locate some chink in
his armor.
If only we
had! For many days after Everett had become just another scat on our tracks,
Utahraptor and Pteranodon and I trudged across that dead landscape eyeing Ankylosaurus,
drooling down our chins as we imagined the unspeakably tender morsels that must
lie nestled inside that armored shell. He must have been hungry too, and no
doubt his morsels were getting less fat and tender by the day. From time to
time we would encounter some sheltered hollow where unfamiliar green plants
were poking their shoots through the black and gray debris, and we would
encourage Ankylosaurus to stop, take his time, and eat all he wanted.
"No,
really! We don't mind waiting for you!" He would always fix his tiny
little side-mounted eyes on us and look at us balefully as he grazed. "How
was your dinner, Anky?" we'd say, and he'd grumble something like,
"Tastes like iridium as usual," and then we'd go another couple of
days without exchanging a word.
One day we
reached the edge of the sea. The salt water lapped up onto a lifeless beach
strewn with the bones of extinct sea creatures, from tiny trilobites all the
way up to plesiosaurs. Behind us was the desert we'd just crossed. To the south
was a range of mountains that would have been impassable even if half of them
hadn't been erupting volcanoes. And north of us we could see snow dusting the
tops of the hills, and we all knew what that meant: If we went in that
direction, we'd soon freeze to death.
So we were
stuck there, the four of us, and though we didn't have mediatrons and cine
aerostats in those days, we all pretty much knew what was up: We were the last
four dinosaurs on earth. Pretty soon we would be three, and then two, and then one,
and then none at all, and the only question left to settle was in what order
we'd go. You might think this would be awful and depressing, but it wasn't
really that bad; being dinosaurs, we didn't spend a lot of time pondering the
imponderables, if you know what I mean, and in a way it was kind of fun waiting
to see how it would all work out. There was a general assumption on all hands,
I think, that Ankylosaurus would be the first to go, but Utah and I would have
killed each other in an instant.
So we all
kind of faced off on the beach there, Utahraptor and Ankylosaurus and I in a
neat triangle with Pteranodon hovering overhead.
After we
had been facing off there for some hours, I noticed out of the corner of my eye
that the banks to the north and south seemed to be moving, as if they were
alive. Suddenly there was a thundering and rushing sound in the air all around
us, and I couldn't help looking up, though I kept one sharp eye on Utahraptor.
The world had been such a quiet and dead place for so long that we were
startled by any noise or movement, and now it seemed that the air and ground
had come alive once more, just as in the old days before the comet.
The noise
in the air was caused by a great flock of teensy-tiny Pteranodons, though
instead of smooth reptilian skin their wings were covered with oversize scales,
and they had toothless, bony beaks instead of proper mouths. These miserable
things- these airborne crumbs- were swarming all around Pteranodon, getting in
his eyes, pecking at his wings, and it was all he could do to keep airborne.
As I
mentioned, I was keeping one eye on Utahraptor as always, and to my surprise he
suddenly turned away and ran up onto the north slope, with an eagerness that
could be explained only by the availability of food. I followed him, naturally,
but pulled up short. Something was wrong. The ground on the north slope was
covered with a moving carpet that swarmed around Utahraptor's feet. Focusing my
eyes, which frankly were not very good, I saw that this carpet actually
consisted of thousands of tiny dinosaurs whose scales had grown very long and
slender and numerous- in short, they were furry. I had been seeing these
quadrupedal hors d'oeuvres dodging around under logs and rocks for the last few
million years and always taken them for an especially ill-conceived mutation. But suddenly there were thousands of them, and
this at a time when there were only four dinosaurs left in the whole world. And
they seemed to be working together. They were so tiny that Utahraptor had no
way to get them into his mouth, and whenever he stopped moving for an instant,
they swarmed onto his legs and tail and nipped at his flesh. A plague of
shrews. I was so confounded that I stopped in my tracks.
That was a
mistake, for soon I felt a sensation in my legs and tail like millions of
pinpricks. Turning around, I saw that the south slope was covered with ants,
millions of them, and they had apparently decided to eat me. Meanwhile
Ankylosaurus was bellowing and swinging his bony ball around without effect,
for the ants were swarming on his body as well.
Well,
before long the shrews and the ants and the birds started to run into each
other and have skirmishes of their own, and so at that point they called a
truce. The King of the Birds, the King of the Shrews, and the Queen of the Ants
all got together on top of a rock to parley. In the meantime they left us
dinosaurs alone, seeing that we were trapped in any case.
The
situation struck me as unfair, so I approached the rock where these despicable
micro-monarchs were chattering away, a mile a minute, and spoke: "Yo!
Aren't you going to invite the King of the Reptiles?"
They looked
at me like I was crazy.
"Reptiles
are obsolete," said the King of the Shrews.
"Reptiles
are just retarded birds," said the King of the Birds, "and so I am
your King, thank you very much."
There's
only zero of you," said the Queen of the Ants. In ant arithmetic, there
are only two numbers: Zero, which means anything less than a million, and Some.
"You can't cooperate, so even if you were King, the title would be
meaningless."
"Besides,"
said the King of the Shrews, "the purpose of this summit conference is to
decide which of our kingdoms shall eat which dinosaur, and we do not suppose
that the King of the Dinosaurs, even if there were such a thing, would be able
to participate constructively." Mammals always talked this way to show off
their oversize brains- which were basically the same as ours, but burdened with
a lot of useless extra business on top- useless, I should say, but darn tasty.
"But
there are three kingdoms and four dinosaurs," I pointed out. Of course
this was not true in ant arithmetic, so the Queen of the Ants immediately began
to make a fuss. In the end I had to go over among the ants and crush them with
my tail until I had killed a few million, which is the only way that you can
get an ant to take you seriously.
"Surely
three dinosaurs would be enough to give all of your subjects a square
meal," I said. "May I suggest that the birds peck Pteranodon to the
bone, the shrews tear Utahraptor limb from limb, and the ants feast on the
corpse of Ankylosaurus?"
The three
monarchs appeared to be considering this suggestion when Utahraptor sped up in
a huff. "Excuse me, Your Royal Highnesses, but who appointed this fellow
king? I am just as qualified to be king as he." In short order, Pteranodon
and Ankylosaurus also laid claim to the throne. The King of the Shrews, the
King of the Birds, and the Queen of the Ants told us all to shut up, and then
conferred amongst themselves for a few minutes. Finally the King of the Shrews
stepped forward. "We have reached a decision," he said. "Three
dinosaurs will be eaten, and one, the King of the Reptiles, will be spared; all
that remains is for one of you to demonstrate that you are superior to the
other three and deserve to wear the crown."
"Very
well!" I said, and turned on Utahraptor, who began backing away from me,
hissing and swiping the air with his giant claws. If I could dispatch
Utahraptor with a frontal assault, Pteranodon would swoop down to steal some of
the carrion, and I could ambush her then; having fortified myself by eating the
other two, I might be strong enough to overcome Ankylosaurus.
"No,
no, no!" screamed the King of the Shrews. "This is just the kind of
thing I was talking about when I said you reptiles were obsolete. It's not
about who is the biggest and baddest anymore."
"It's
about cooperation, organization, regimentation," said the Queen of the
Ants.
"It's
about brains," said the King of the Shrews.
"It's
about beauty, glory, dazzling flights of inspiration!" said the King of
the Birds.
This
precipitated another stridulent dispute among the two Kings and the Queen.
Everyone got very short-tempered, and there probably would have been serious
trouble if the tide had not come in and washed a few whale carcasses and dead
elasmosaurs onto the beach. As you can imagine, we fell upon these gifts with
abandon, and while I was eating my fill, I also managed to swallow innumerable birds,
shrews, and ants who were feasting on the same pieces of meat as I.
After
everyone had filled their bellies and calmed down somewhat, the Kings and the
Queen resumed their discussions. Finally the King of the Shrews, who seemed to
be the designated spokesmonarch, stepped forward again.
"We
cannot come to an agreement as to which of you should be the King of the
Reptiles, so each of our nations, Birds, Mammals, and Ants, will put each of
you to a trial, and then we will gather again and put it to a vote. If the vote
results in a tie, we will eat all four of you and bring the Kingdom of Reptiles
to an end."
We drew
lots, and I was chosen to go among the ants for the first round of trials. I
followed the Queen into the midst of her army, picking my way slowly until the
Queen said, "Step lively, lung-breather! Time is food! Don't worry about
those ants beneath your feet- you can't possibly kill more than zero!" So
from then on, I just walked normally, though my claws became slick with crushed
ants. We traveled south for a day or two and then stopped on a stream bank.
"South of here is the territory of the King of the Cockroaches. Your first
task is to bring me the head of the King."
Looking
across the river, I could see that the entire countryside was swarming with an
infinite number of cockroaches, more than I could ever stomp; and even if I
could stomp them all, there must be more below the ground, which was doubtless
where the King lived.
I waded
across the river and traveled through the Kingdom of the Cockroaches for three
days until I crossed another river and entered into the Kingdom of the Bees.
This place was greener than any I'd seen for a while, with many wildflowers,
and bees swarmed everywhere taking nectar back to their nests, which were as
big as houses.
This gave
me an idea. I toppled several hollow trees filled with honey, dragged them back
to the Kingdom of the Cockroaches, split them open, and made sticky honey
trails leading down toward the ocean. The cockroaches followed the trails down
to the water's edge, where the waves broke over their heads and drowned them.
For three days I kept watch over the beach as the number of cockroaches
dwindled, and finally on the third day the King of the Roaches emerged from his
throne room to see where everyone had gone. I coaxed him onto a leaf and
carried him back north across the river and into the Kingdom of the Ants, much
to the amazement of the Queen.
Next I was
put into the care of the King of the Birds. He and his chirping, chattering army
led me up into the mountains, up above the snowline, and I was sure that I
would freeze to death. But as we continued up, it suddenly became warmer, which
I did not understand until I realized that we were approaching a live volcano.
We finally stopped at the edge of a red-hot lava flow half a mile wide. In the
center of the flow, a tall black rock stood out like an island in the middle of
a river.
The King of
the Birds plucked one golden feather from his tail and gave it to a soldier,
who took it in his beak, flew over the lava, and left that feather on the very
top of the black rock.
By the time
that soldier flew back, he was half roasted from the heat radiating from the
lava-and don't think my mouth didn't water! "Your job," said the
King, "is to bring me that feather."
Now, this
was clearly unfair, and I protested that the birds were obviously trying to
favor Pteranodon. This kind of argument might have worked with ants or even
shrews; but the King of the Birds would hear none of it. For them, virtue
consisted in being birdlike, and fairness didn't enter into it.
Well, I
stood on the edge of that lava flow until my skin smoked, but I couldn't see
how to reach that feather. Finally I decided to give up. I was walking away,
cutting my feet on the sharp rock, when suddenly it hit me: The rock I'd been
standing on, this whole time, was nothing other than lava that had gotten cold
and solidified.
This was
high in the mountains, where glaciers and snowfields soared above me like
palace walls. I climbed up onto a particularly steep slope and began pounding
the snow with my tail until I started an avalanche. Millions of tons of ice and
snow thundered down onto the lava flow, throwing up a tremendous blast of
steam. For three days and nights I could not see the claws in front of my face
for all of the steam, but on the third day it finally cleared away, and I saw a
bridge of hardened lava running straight to that black rock. I scampered across
(to the extent that a dinosaur can scamper), snatched that golden feather, ran
back, and stood in the snow for a while cooling my feet off. Then I marched
back to the King of the Birds, who was, of course, astonished.
Next I
found myself in the care of the mammals, who were almost all shrews. They led
me up into the foothills, to the mouth of a great cave. "Your job,"
said the King of the Shrews, "is to wait here for Dojo and then defeat him
in single combat." Then all the shrews went away and left me there alone.
I waited in
front of that cave for three days and three nights, which gave me plenty of
time to scope the place out. At first I was rather cocky about this challenge,
for it seemed the easiest of the three; while I had no idea who or what Dojo
was, I knew that in all the world I had never met my equal when it came to
single combat. But on the first day, sitting there on my tail waiting for Dojo,
I noticed a sprinkling of small glittering objects on the ground, and examining
them carefully I realized that they were, in fact, scales. To be precise, they
were dinosaur scales, which I recognized as belonging to Pteranodon,
Ankylosaurus, and Utahraptor, and they appeared to have been jarred loose from
their bodies by powerful impacts.
On the
second day I prowled around the vicinity and found tremendous gashes in tree
trunks, which had undoubtedly been made by Utahraptor as he slashed wildly at
Dojo; other trees that had been snapped off entirely by the club at the end of
the tail of Ankylosaurus; and long scratches in the earth made by the talons of
Pteranodon as she dove again and again at some elusive opponent. At this point,
I became concerned. It was clear that all three of my opponents had fought Dojo
and lost, so if I lost also (which was inconceivable), I would be even with the
others; but the rules of the contest stated that in the event of a tie, all
four dinosaurs would be eaten, and the Kingdom of Reptiles would be no more. I
spent the night fretting about who or what the terrible Dojo was.
On the
third day nothing happened, and I began wondering whether I should go into the
cave and look for Dojo. So far the only living thing I had seen around here was
a black mouse that occasionally darted out from the rocks at the cave's
entrance, foraging for a bit of food. The next time I saw that mouse, I said (speaking
softly so as not to scare it), "Say, mouse! Is there anything back inside
that cave?"
The black
mouse sat up on its haunches, holding a huckleberry between its little hands
and nibbling on it.
"Nothing
special," he said, "just my little dwelling. A fireplace, some tiny
pots and pans, a few dried berries, and the rest is full of skeletons."
"Skeletons?"
I said. "Of other mice?"
"There
are a few mouse skeletons, but mostly they are dinosaurs of one kind or
another, primarily meat-eaters."
"Who
have become extinct because of the comet," I suggested.
"Oh,
pardon me, sir, but I must respectfully inform you that the deaths of these
dinosaurs are unrelated to the comet."
"How
did they die, then?" I asked.
"I
regret to say that I killed them all in self-defense."
"Ah,"
I said, not quite believing it, "then you must be . . "Dojo the
Mouse," he said, "at your service."
"I am
terribly sorry to have bothered you, sir," I said, using my best manners,
for I could see that this Dojo was an unusually polite sort, "but your
fame as a warrior has spread far and wide, and I have come here humbly to seek
your advice on how I may become a better warrior myself; for it has not escaped
my notice that in the postcomet environment, teeth like carving knives and six
tons of muscle may be in some sense outmoded."
What
follows is a rather long story, for Dojo had much to teach me and he taught it
slowly. Sometime, Nell, I will teach you everything I learned from Dojo; all
you need do is ask.
But on the
third day of my apprenticeship, when I still had not learned anythingexcept
humility, good manners, and how to sweep out the cave, I asked Dojo if he would
be interested in playing a game of tic-tac-toe. This was a common sport among
dinosaurs. We would scratch it out in the mud. (Many paleontologists have been
baffled to find tic-tac-toe games littering prehistoric excavations and have
chalked it up to the local workers they hire to do their digging and hauling.)
In any
case, I explained the rules of the game to Dojo, and he agreed to give it a
try. We went down to the nearest mud flat, and there, in plain view of many
shrews, I played a game of tic-tac-toe with Dojo and vanquished him, although I
will confess it was touch-and-go for a while. It was done; I had defeated Dojo
in single combat.
The next
morning I excused myself from Dojo's cave and went back down to the beach,
where the other three dinosaurs had already gathered, looking much the worse
for wear as you can imagine. The King of the Shrews, the King of the Birds, and
the Queen of the Ants converged on us with all their armies and crowned me King
of the Reptiles, or Tyrannosaurus Rex as we used to say. Then they ate the
other three dinosaurs as agreed. Besides me, the only reptiles left were a few
snakes, lizards, and turtles, who continue to be my obedient subjects.
I could
have lived a luxurious life as King, but by now, Dojo had taught me humility,
and so I went back to his cave immediately and spent the next few million years
studying his ways. All you need do is ask, Nell, and I will pass his knowledge
on to you.
Judge
Fang goes for a dinner cruise with a Mandarin; they visit a mysterious
ship; a startling discovery; a trap is
sprung.
Dr.
X's boat was not the traditional sort of wallowing pleasure barge that was fit
only for the canals and shallow lakes of the Yangtze's sodden delta; it was a
real ocean-going yacht built on Western lines. Judging from the delicacies that
began to make their way up to the foredeck shortly after Judge Fang came
aboard, the vessel's galley had been retrofitted with all the accoutrements of
a professional Chinese kitchen: umbrella-size woks, gas burners like howling
turbojets, and extensive storage lockers for innumerable species of fungi as
well as bird nests, shark fins, chicken feet, fcetal rats, and odds and ends of
many other species both rare and ubiquitous. The courses of the meal were
small, numerous, and carefully timed, served up in an array of fine porcelain
that could have filled several rooms of the Victoria and Albert Museum,
delivered with the precision of surgical air strikes by a team of waiters.
Judge
Fang got to eat this way only when someone really important was trying to taint
him, and though he had never knowingly allowed his judicial judgment to be
swayed, he did enjoy the chow.
They
began with tea and some preliminary courses on the foredeck of the yacht, as it
made its way down the Huang Pu, with the old European buildings of the Bund on
the left, lit up eerily by the wash of colored light radiating from the
developments of Pudong, which rose precipitously from the bank on the right. At
one point, Dr. X had to excuse himself belowdecks for a few moments.
Judge
Fang strolled to the very bow of the yacht, nestled himself into the acute
angle formed by the converging rails, let the wind tug at his beard, and
enjoyed the view. The tallest buildings in Pudong were held up by huge
aerostats-vacuumfilled ellipsoids hundreds of stories above street level, much
wider than the buildings they supported, and usually covered with lights. Some
of these extended out over the river itself. Judge Fang rested his elbows
carefully on the rail to maintain his balance, then tilted his head back so
that he was staring straight up at the underside of one such, pulsing with
oversaturated colored light. The trompe l'oeil was enough to make him dizzy,
and so he quickly looked down. Something thumped against the hull of the yacht,
and he looked into the water to see a human corpse wrapped up in a white sheet,
blundering along a foot or two beneath the surface, dimly luminescent in the
light from the building overhead.
In
time the yacht made its way out into the estuary of the Yangtze, only a few
miles from the East China Sea at this point, miles wide, and much colder and
rougher. Judge Fang and Dr. X repaired to a dining cabin belowdecks with
panoramic windows that mostly just reflected back the light of the candles and
lanterns around the table. Not long after they had taken their seats, the yacht
accelerated powerfully, first shooting forward and then leaping up out of the
water before resuming its steady, level motion. Judge Fang realized that the
yacht was actually a hydrofoil, which had been merely idling along on her hull
while they had enjoyed the city view but which had now climbed up out of the
water.
The
conversation so far had consisted almost entirely of formal courtesies. This
had eventually led them into a discussion of Confucian philosophy and
traditional culture, clearly a subject of interest to both of them. Judge Fang
had complimented the Doctor on his sublime calligraphy, and they talked about
that art for a while. Then, obligatorily returning the compliment, Dr. X told
the Judge how superbly he was executing his duties as magistrate, particularly
given the added difficulty of having to deal with barbarians.
"Your
handling of the affair of the girl and the book was, in particular, a credit to
your abilities," Dr. X said gravely.
Judge
Fang found it interesting that the boy who had actually stolen the book was not
mentioned. He supposed that Dr. X was referring not so much to the criminal
case as to Judge Fang's subsequent efforts to protect the girl.
"This
person is grateful, but all credit should go to the Master," Judge Fang
said. "The prosecution of this case was founded entirely upon his
principles, as you might have seen, had you been able to do us the honor of
joining our discussion of the matter at the House of the Venerable and
Inscrutable Colonel."
"Ah,
it is indeed a misfortune that I could not attend," the Doctor said,
"as it would, no doubt, have helped to improve my own, so imperfect
understanding of the Master's principles." "I meant no such
insinuation-rather, that the Doctor might have guided me and my staff to a more
nearly adequate resolution of the affair than we were, in fact, able to
devise."
"Perhaps
it would have been good fortune for both of us for me to have been present in
the Colonel's house on that day," Dr. X said, returning neatly to
equilibrium. There was silence for a few minutes as a new course was brought
out, plum wine poured by the waiter.
Then
Dr. X continued, "One aspect of the case on which I would have been
particularly eager to consult your wisdom would have been the disposition of
the book."
So
he was still stuck on that book. Though it had been weeks since Dr. X had
released any more of those book-hunting mites into the airspace of the Leased
Territories, Judge Fang knew that he was still offering a nice bounty to anyone
who could tell him the whereabouts of the book in question. Judge Fang was
beginning to wonder whether this obsession with the book might be a symptom of
a general decline in the Doctor's mental powers.
"Your
advice on the subject would have been of inestimable value to me," Judge
Fang said, "as this aspect of the case was particularly troublesome for a
Confucian judge. If the item of stolen property had been anything other than a
book, it would have been confiscated. But a book is different-it is not just a
material possession but the pathway to an enlightened mind, and thence to a
well-ordered society, as the Master stated many times."
"I
see," said Dr. X, slightly taken aback. He seemed genuinely thoughtful as
he stroked his beard and stared into the flame of a candle, which had suddenly
begun to flicker and gyrate chaotically. It seemed as though the Judge had
raised a novel point here, which deserved careful consideration. "Better
to leave the book in the hands of one who could benefit from its wisdom, than
to let it remain, inert, in a police warehouse."
"That
was my no doubt less than perfect conclusion, hastily arrived at," Judge
Fang said.
Dr.
X continued to ponder the matter for a minute or so. "It does credit to
your professional integrity that you are able to focus so clearly upon the case
of one small person."
"As
you will no doubt appreciate, being a far more accomplished scholar than I, the
interests of the society come first. Beside that, the fate of one little girl
is nothing. But other things being equal, it is better for society that the
girl is educated than that she remain ignorant."
Dr.
X raised his eyebrows and nodded significantly at this. The subject did not
come up again during the rest of the meal. He assumed that the hydrofoil was
swinging around in a lazy circle that would eventually take them back to the
mouth of the Huang Pu. But when the engines were throttled back and the craft
settled back onto its hull and began to rock with the waves again, Judge Fang
could not see any lights outside the windows. They were nowhere near Pudong,
nor any other inhabited land as far as he could tell.
Dr.
X gestured out the window at nothing and said, "I have taken the liberty
of arranging this visit for you. It touches upon a case that has recently come
under your purview and also has to do with a subject that seems of particular
interest to you and which we have already discussed this evening."
When
Judge Fang followed his host out onto the deck, he was finally able to make out
their surroundings. They were on the open ocean, with no land in sight, though
the urban glow of Greater Shanghai could clearly be seen to the west. It was a
clear night with a nearly full moon that was illuminating the hull of an
enormous ship nearby. Even without the moonlight this vessel would have been
noticeable for the fact that it blocked out all of the stars in one quadrant of
the sky.
Judge
Fang knew next to nothing about ships. He had toured an aircraft carrier in his
youth, when it docked for a few days at Manhattan. He suspected that this ship
was even larger. It was almost entirely dark except for pinpricks of red light
here and there, suggesting its size and general shape, and a few horizontal
lines of yellow light shining out the windows of its superstructure, many
stories above their heads.
Dr.
X and Judge Fang were conveyed on board this vessel by a small crew who came
out to meet them in a launch. As it drew alongside the Doctor's yacht, the
Judge was startled to realize that its crew consisted entirely of young women.
Their accents marked them as belonging to an ethnic subgroup, common in the
Southeast, that lived almost entirely on the water; but even if they had not
spoken, Judge Fang would have inferred this from their nimble handling of the
boat.
Within
a few minutes, Dr. X and Judge Fang had been conveyed aboard the giant vessel
through a hatch set into the hull near the waterline. Judge Fang noted that
this was not an old-fashioned steel vessel; it was made of nanotechnological
substances, infinitely lighter and stronger. No matter compiler in the world
was large enough to compile a ship, so the shipyards in Hong Kong had compiled
the pieces one by one, bonded them together, and slid them down the ways into
the sea, much as their pre-Diamond Age predecessors had done.
Judge
Fang had been expecting that the ship would be some kind of bulk carrier,
consisting almost entirely of huge compartments, but the first thing he saw was
a long corridor running parallel to the keel, seemingly the length of the entire
ship. Young women in white, pink, or occasionally blue dresses and sensible
shoes bustled back and forth along this corridor entering into and emerging
from its innumerable doors.
There
was no formal welcome, no captain or other officers. As soon as the boat girls
had assisted them on board, they bowed and took their leave. Dr. X began to
amble down the corridor, and Judge Fang followed him. The young women in the
white dresses bowed as they approached, then continued on their way, having no
time to waste on advanced formalities. Judge Fang had the general sense that
they were peasant women, though none of them had the deep tans that were
normally a mark of low social status in China. The boat girls had worn blue, so
he gathered that this color identified people with nautical or engineering
duties. In general, the ones in the pink dresses were younger and slenderer
than the ones in the white dresses. The tailoring was different too; the pink
dresses closed up the middle of the back, the white ones had two zippers
symmetrically placed in the front.
Dr.
X chose a door, apparently at random, swung it open, and held it for Judge
Fang. Judge Fang bowed slightly and stepped through it into a room about the
dimensions of a basketball court, though with a lower ceiling. It was quite
warm and humid, and dimly lit. The first thing he saw was more girls in white
dresses, bowing to him. Then he realized that the room was otherwise filled
with cribs, hundreds of cribs, and that each crib had a perfect little girl baby
in it. Young women in pink bustled back and forth with diapers. From place to
place, a woman sat beside a crib, the front of her white dress unzipped,
breast-feeding a baby.
Judge
Fang felt dizzy. He was not willing to acknowledge the reality of what he saw.
He had mentally prepared himself for tonight's meeting with Dr. X by reminding
himself, over and over, that the Doctor was capable of any trickery, that he
could not take anything he saw at face value. But as many first-time fathers
had realized in the delivery room, there was something about the sight of an
actual baby that focused the mind. In a world of abstractions, nothing was more
concrete than a baby.
Judge
Fang whirled on his heel and stormed out of the room, brushing rudely past Dr.
X. He picked a direction at random and walked, strode, ran down the corridor,
past five doors, ten, fifty, then stopped for no particular reason and burst
through another door.
It
might as well have been the same room.
He
felt almost nauseous and had to take stern measures to keep tears from his
eyes. He ran out of the room and stormed through the ship for some distance,
going up several stairways, past several decks. He stepped into another room,
chosen at random, and found the floor covered with cribs, evenly spaced in rows
and columns, each one containing a sleeping one-year-old, dressed in fuzzy pink
jammies with a hood and a set of mouse ears, each one clutching an identical
white security blanket and nestled up with a stuffed animal. Here and there, a young
woman in a pink dress sat on the floor on a bamboo mat, reading a book or doing
needlework.
One
of these women, close to Judge Fang, set her needlework down, rearranged
herself into a kneeling position, and bowed to him. Judge Fang gave her a
perfunctory bow in return, then padded over to the nearest crib. A little girl
with astonishingly thick eyelashes lay there, deeply asleep, breathing
regularly, her mouse ears sticking out through the bars of the crib, and as
Judge Fang stood and stared at her, he imagined that he could hear the
breathing of all the children on this ship at once, combined into a gentle sigh
that calmed his heart. All of these children, sleeping so peacefully;
everything must be okay. It was going to be fine.
He
turned away and saw that the young woman was smiling at him. It was not a
flirting smile or a silly girlish smile but a calm and confident smile. Judge
Fang supposed that wherever Dr. X was on this ship, he must be smiling in much
the same way at this moment. . . .
When Dr. X
started the cine, Judge Fang recognized it right away: This was the work of the
mediagrapher PhyrePhox, who was still, as far as he knew, languishing in a
holding cell in downtown Shanghai.
The
setting was an outcropping of stones amid a dun, dust-scoured vastitude,
somewhere in the interior of China. The camera panned across the surrounding
waste, and Judge Fang did not have to be told that these had once been fertile
fields, before the water table had been drained out from under them.
A
couple of people approached, kicking up a plume of dust as they walked,
carrying a small bundle. As they drew closer, Judge Fang could see that they
were horrifyingly gaunt, dressed in dirty rags. They came to the center of the
rocky outcropping and laid the bundle on the ground, then turned and walked
away. Judge Fang turned away from the mediatron and dismissed it with a wave of
the hand; he did not have to see it to know that the bundle was a baby,
probably female.
"This
scene could have happened anytime in the history of China," Dr. X said.
They were sitting in a rather spartan wardroom in the vessel's superstructure.
"It has always been done with us. The great rebellions of the 1800's were
fueled by throngs of angry young men who could not find wives. In the darkest
days of the Mao Dynasty's birth control policy, two hundred thousand little
ones were exposed in this fashion"-he gestured toward the frozen image on
the mediatron-"each year. Recently, with the coming of civil war and the
draining of the Celestial Kingdom's aquifers, it has once again become common.
The difference is that now the babies are collected. We have been doing it for
three years."
"How
many?" Judge Fang said.
"A
quarter of a million to date," Dr. X said. "Fifty thousand on this
ship alone."
Judge
Fang had to set his teacup down for a few moments while he grappled with this
notion. Fifty thousand lives on this ship alone.
"It
won't work," Judge Fang said finally. "You can raise them this way
until they are toddlers, perhaps-but what happens when they are older and
bigger, and must be educated and given space to run around and play?"
"It
is indeed a formidable challenge," Dr. X said gravely, "but I trust
you will take to heart the words of the Master: 'Let every man consider virtue as
what devolves on himself. He may not yield the performance of it even to his
teacher.' I wish you good fortune, Magistrate."
This
statement had much the same effect as if Dr. X had hit the Judge over the head
with a board: startling, yes, but the full impact was somehow delayed.
"I'm
not sure if I follow you, Doctor."
Dr.
X crossed his wrists and held them up in the air. "I surrender. You may
take me into custody. Torture will not be necessary; I have already prepared a
signed confession."
Judge
Fang had not hitherto realized that Dr. X had such a well-developed sense of
humor. He decided to play along. "As much as I would like to bring you to
justice, Doctor, I am afraid that I cannot accept your surrender, as we are out
of my jurisdiction."
The
Doctor nodded to a waiter, who swung the cabin door open to let in a cool
breeze-and a view of the gaudy waterfront of the Leased Territories, suddenly
no more than a mile away from them. "As you can see, I have ordered the
ships to come into your jurisdiction, Your Honor," Dr. X said. He gestured
invitingly out the door.
Judge
Fang stepped out onto an open gangway and looked over the rail to see four
other giant ships following in this one's wake. Dr. X's reedy voice came out
through the open door. "You may now take me, and the crew of these ships,
to prison for the crime of baby-smuggling. You may also take into custody these
ships-and all quarter-million of the little mice on board. I trust you can find
qualified caregivers somewhere within your jurisdiction."
Judge
Fang gripped the rail with both hands and bowed his head. He was very close to
clinical shock. It would be perfectly suicidal to call the Doctor's bluff. The
concept of having personal responsibility for so many lives was terrifying
enough in and of itself. But to think of what would eventually become of all of
these little girls in the hands of the corrupt officialdom of the Coastal
Republic.
Dr.
X continued, "I have no doubt that you will find some way to care for
them. As you have demonstrated in the case of the book and the girl, you are
too wise a magistrate not to understand the importance of proper upbringing of
small children. No doubt you will exhibit the same concern for each one of
these quarter of a million infants as you did for one little barbarian
girl."
Judge
Fang stood up straight, whirled, and strode back through the door. "Shut
the door and leave the room," he said to the waiter. When he and the
Doctor were alone together, Judge Fang faced Dr. X, descended to his knees,
bent forward, and knocked his forehead against the deck three times.
"Please,
Your Honor!" Dr. X exclaimed, "it is I who should be doing honor to
you in this way."
"For
some time I have been contemplating a change of career," Judge Fang said,
rising to an upright kneeling position. He stopped before continuing and
thought it through once more. But Dr. X had left him no way out. It would have
been uncharacteristic of the Doctor to spring a trap that could be escaped.
As
the Master had said, The
mechanic, who wishes to do his work well, must first sharpen his tools. When
you are living in any state, take service with the most worthy among its great
officers, and make friends of the most virtuous among its scholars.
"Actually,
I am satisfied with my career, but dissatisfied with my tribal affiliation. I
have grown disgusted with the Coastal Republic and have concluded that my true
home lies in the Celestial Kingdom. I have often wondered whether the Celestial
Kingdom is in need of magistrates, even those as poorly qualified as I."
"This
is a question I will have to take up with my superiors," Dr. X said.
"However, given that the Celestial Kingdom currently has no magistrates
whatsoever and therefore no real judicial system, I deem it likely that some role
can be found for one with your superb qualifications."
"I
see now why you desired the little girl's book so strongly," Judge Fang
said. "These young ones must all be educated."
"I
do not desire the book itself so much as I desire its designer-the artifex
Hackworth," Dr. X said. "As long as the book was somewhere in the
Leased Territories, there was some hope that Hackworth could find it-it is the
one thing he desires most. If I could have found the book, I could have
extinguished that hope, and Hackworth would then have had to approach me,
either to get the book back or to compile another copy."
"You
desire some service from Hackworth?"
"He
is worth a thousand lesser engineers. And because of various hardships over the
last few decades, the Celestial Kingdom does not have even that many lesser
engineers; they have all been lured away by the promise of riches in the
Coastal Republic."
"I
will approach Hackworth tomorrow," Judge Fang said. "I will inform
him that the man known to the barbarians as Dr. X has found the lost copy of
the book."
"Good,"
Dr. X said, "I shall expect to hear from him."
Hackworth's
dilemma; an unanticipated return to the
hong of Dr. X; hitherto unseen ramifications of Dr. X's premises; a criminal is brought to justice.
Hackworth
had some time to run through the logic of the thing one more time as he waited
in the front room of Dr. X's hong, waiting for the old man to free himself up
from what sounded like a twelve-way cine conference. On his first visit here he'd
been too nervous to see anything, but today he was settled cozily in the
cracked leather armchair in the corner, demanding tea from the help and
thumbing through Dr. X's books. It was such a relief to have nothing to lose.
Since that deeply alarming visit from Chang, Hackworth had been at his wits'
end. He had made an immense cock-up of the whole thing. Sooner or later his
crime would come out and his family would be disgraced, whether or not he gave
money to Chang. Even if he somehow managed to get the Primer back, his life was
ruined.
When
he had received word that Dr. X had won the race to recover the lost copy of
the Primer, the thing had turned from bad to farcical. He had cut a day at work
and gone for a long hike in the Royal Ecological Conservatory. By the time he
had returned home, sunburned and pleasantly exhausted, he had been in a much
better mood. That Dr. X had the Primer actually improved his situation.
In
exchange for the Primer, the Doctor would presumably want something from
Hackworth. In this case, it was not likely to be a mere bribe, as Chang had
hinted; all of the money Hackworth had, or was ever likely to make, could not
be of interest to Dr. X. It was much more likely that the Doctor would want
some sort of a favor-he might ask Hackworth to design something, to do a little
bit of consulting work, as it were. Hackworth wanted so badly to believe this
that he had bolstered the hypothesis with much evidence, real and phantasmal,
during the latter part of his hike. It was well-known that the Celestial
Kingdom was desperately far behind in the nanotechnological arms race; that Dr.
X himself devoted his valuable time to rooting through the debris of the New
Atlantan immune system proved this. Hackworth's skills could be of measureless value
to them.
If
this were true, then Hackworth had a way out. He would do some job for the
Doctor. In exchange, he would get the Primer back, which was what he wanted
more than anything. As part of the deal, Dr. X could no doubt find some way to
eliminate Chang from Hackworth's list of things to worry about; Hackworth's
crime would never be known to his phyle. . . .
Victorians and
Confucians alike had learned new uses for the foyer, anteroom, or whatever it
was called, and for the old etiquette of visiting cards. For that matter, all
tribes with sophistication in nanotech understood that visitors had to be
carefully examined before they could be admitted into one's inner sanctum, and
that such examination, carried out by thousands of assiduous reconnaissance
mites, took time. So elaborate waiting-room etiquette had flourished, and
sophisticated people all over the world understood that when they called upon
someone, even a close friend, they could expect to spend some time sipping tea
and perusing magazines in a front room infested with unobtrusive surveillance
equipment.
One
entire wall of Dr. X's front room was a mediatron. Cine feeds, or simple
stationary graphics, could be digitally posted on such a wall just as posters
and handbills had been in olden times. Over time, if not removed, they tended
to overlap each other and build up into an animated collage.
Centered
on Dr. X's media wall, partly concealed by newer clips, was a cine clip as
ubiquitous in northern China as the face of Mao-Buddha's evil twin-had been in
the previous century. Hackworth had never sat and watched it all the way
through, but he'd glimpsed it so many times, in Pudong taxicabs and on walls in
the Leased Territories, that he knew it by heart. Westerners called it Zhang at the Shang.
The
setting was the front of a luxury hotel, one of the archipelago of Shangri-Las
strung up the Kowloon-Guangzhou superhighway. The horseshoe drive was paved
with interlocking blocks, brass door handles gleamed, thickets of tropical
flowers sprouted from boat-size planters in the lobby. Men in business suits
spoke into cellphones and checked their watches, white-gloved bellhops sprinted
into the drive, pulled suitcases from the trunks of red taxicabs, wiped them
down with clean moist cloths.
The
horseshoe drive was plugged into an eight-lane thoroughfare-not the highway,
but a mere frontage road-with a spiked iron fence running down the center to
keep pedestrians from crossing in midblock. The pavement, new but already
crumbling, was streaked with red dust washed down out of the devastated hills
of Guangdong by the latest typhoon.
Traffic
suddenly became thin, and the camera panned upstream: Several lanes had been
blocked by a swarm of bicycles. Occasionally a red taxi or Mercedes-Benz would
squeeze by along the iron fence and burst free, the driver holding down the
horn button so furiously that he might detonate the air bag. Hackworth could
not hear the sound of the horn, but as the camera zoomed in on the action, it
became possible to see one driver take his hand off the horn and turn back to
shake his finger at the mob of bicyclists.
When
he saw who was pedaling the lead bicycle, he turned away nauseous with fear,
and his hand collapsed into his lap like a dead quail.
The
leader was a stocky man with white hair, sixtyish but pumping away vigorously
on an unexceptional black bicycle, wearing drab worker's clothes. He moved it
down the street with deceptive speed and pulled into the horseshoe drive. An
embolism of bicycles formed on the street as hundreds tried to crowd in the
narrow entrance. And here came another classic moment: The head bellhop skirted
his stand-up desk and ran toward the bicyclist, waving him off and hurling
abuse in Cantonese-until he got about six feet away and realized he was looking
at Zhang Han Hua.
At
this point Zhang had no job title, being nominally retired- an ironical conceit
that the Chinese premiers of the late twentieth century and early twenty-first
had perhaps borrowed from American Mafia bosses. Perhaps they recognized that
job titles were beneath the dignity of the most powerful man on earth. People
who had gotten this close to Zhang claimed that they never thought about his
temporal power-the armies, the nuclear weapons, the secret police.
All
they could think about was the fact that, during the Great Cultural Revolution,
at the age of eighteen, Zhang Han Hua had led his cell of Red Guards into
hand-to-hand combat with another cell that they deemed insufficiently fervid,
and that, at the conctusion of the battle, Zhang had feasted on the raw flesh
of his late adversaries. No one could stand face-to-face with Zhang without
imagining the blood streaming down his chin.
The
bellhop collapses to his knees and begins literally kowtowing. Zhang looks
disgusted, hooks one of his sandaled feet under the bellhop's collarbone, and
prods him back upright, then speaks a few words to him in the hillbilly accent
of his native Fujien. The bellhop can hardly bow enough on his way back into
the hotel; displeasure registers on Zhang's face-all he wants is some fast
service. During the next minute or so, progressively higher-ranking hotel
officials cringe out the door and abase themselves in front of Zhang, who
simply ignores them, looking bored now. No one really knows whether Zhang is a
Confucianist or a Maoist at this point in his life, but at this moment it makes
no difference: for in the Confucian view of society, as in the Communist,
peasants are the highest class and merchants the lowest. This hotel is not for
peasants.
Finally
a man in a black business suit emerges, preceded and pursued by bodyguards. He
looks angrier than Zhang, thinking that he must be the victim of some
unforgivable practical joke. This is a merchant among merchants: the fourteenth
richest man in the world, the third richest in China. He owns most of the real
estate within half an hour's drive of this hotel. He does not break his stride
as he steps into the drive and recognizes Zhang; he walks straight up to him
and asks him what he wants, why the old man has bothered to come down from
Beijing and interfere with his business on his foolish bicycle ride.
Zhang
simply steps forward and speaks a few words into the rich man's ear.
The
rich man takes a step back, as if Zhang has punched him in the chest. His mouth
is open, revealing flawless white teeth, his eyes are not focused. After a few
moments, he takes another two steps back, which gives him enough room for his
next maneuver: He stoops, puts one knee down, then the other, bends forward at
the waist until he is on all fours, then settles himself down full-length on
the nicely interlocked pavingstones. He puts his face on the pavement. He
kowtows to Zhang Han Hua. . . .
One by one the
Dolbyized voices in the next room signed off until only Dr. X and another
gentleman were left, haggling about something desultorily, taking long breaks
between volleys of tweeter-busting oratory to stoke pipes, pour tea, or
whatever these people did when they were pretending to ignore each other. The
discussion petered out rather than building to a violent climax as Hackworth
had secretly, mischievously been hoping, and then a young fellow pulled the
curtain aside and said, "Dr. X will see you now."
Dr.
X was in a lovely, generous mood probably calculated to convey the impression
that he'd always known Hackworth would be back. He rustled to his feet, shook
Hackworth's hand warmly, and invited him out to dinner "at a place
nearby," he said portentously, "of utmost discretion.',
It
was discreet because one of its cozy private dining rooms was connected
directly to one of the back rooms of Dr. X's establishment, so that one could
reach it by walking down a sinous inflated Nanobar tube that would have
stretched to half a kilometer long if you extricated it from Shanghai, took it
to Kansas, and pulled on both ends. Squinting through the translucent walls of
the tube as he assisted Dr. X to dinner, Hackworth cloudily glimpsed several
dozen people pursuing a range of activities in some half-dozen different
buildings, through which Dr. X had apparently procured some kind of
right-of-way. Finally it spat them out into a nicely furnished and carpeted
dining room, which had been retrofitted with a powered sliding door. The door
opened just as they were sitting down, and Hackworth was almost knocked off
balance as the tube sneezed nanofiltered wind; a beaming four-foot-tall
waitress stood in the doorway, closing her eyes and leaning forward against the
anticipated wind-blast. In perfect San Fernando Valley English she said, "Would
you like to hear about our specials?"
Dr.
X was at pains to reassure Hackworth that he understood and sympathized with
his situation; so much so that Hackworth spent much of the time wondering
whether Dr. X had already known about it. "Say no more, it is taken care
of," Dr. X finally said, cutting Hackworth off in midexplanation, and
after that Hackworth was unable to interest Dr. X in the topic anymore. This
was reassuring but unsettling, as he could not avoid the impression that he had
just somehow agreed to a deal whose terms had not been negotiated or even
thought about. But Dr. X's whole affect seemed to deliver the message that if
you were going to sign a Faustian bargain with an ancient and inscrutable
Shanghainese organized-crime figure, you could hardly do better than the
avuncular Dr. X, who was so generous that he would probably forget about it
altogether, or perhaps just stow the favor away in a yellowed box in one of his
warrens. By the end of the lengthy meal, Hackworth was so reassured that he had
almost forgotten about Lieutenant Chang and the Primer altogether.
Until,
that is, the door slid open again to reveal Lieutenant Chang himself.
Hackworth
hardly recognized him at first, because he was dressed in a much more
traditional outfit than usual: baggy indigo pajamas, sandals, and a black
leather skullcap that concealed about seventy-five percent of his knotlike
skull. Also, he had begun to grow his whiskers out. Most alarmingly, he had a
scabbard affixed to his belt, and the scabbard had a sword in it.
He
stepped into the room and bowed perfunctorily to Dr. X, then turned to face
Hackworth.
"Lieutenant
Chang?" Hackworth said wealdy.
"Constable
Chang," said the interloper, "of the district tribunal of
Shanghai." And then he said the Chinese words that meant Middle Kingdom.
"I
thought you were Coastal Republic."
"I
have followed my master to a new country," Constable Chang said. "I
must regretfully place you under arrest now, John Percival Hackworth."
"On
what charge?" Hackworth said, forcing himself to chuckle as if this were
all a big practical joke among close friends.
"That
on the - day of -, 21-, you did bring stolen intellectual property into the
Celestial Kingdom-specifically, into the hong of Dr. X-and did use that property
to compile an illegal copy of a certain device known as the Young Lady's Illustrated
Primer."
There
was no point in claiming that this was not true. "But I have come here
this evening specifically to regain possession of that same device,"
Hackworth said, "which is in the hands of my distinguished host here.
Certainly you are not intending to arrest the distinguished Dr. X for
trafficking in stolen property."
Constable
Chang looked expectantly toward Dr. X. The Doctor adjusted his robes and adopted
a radiant, grandfatherly smile. "I am sorry to tell you that some
reprehensible person has apparently provided you with wrong information,"
he said. "In fact, I have no idea where the Primer is located."
The
dimensions of this trap were so vast that Hackworth's mind was still reeling
through it, bouncing haplessly from one wall to another, when he was hauled
before the district magistrate twenty minutes later. They had set up a
courtroom in a large, ancient garden in the interior of Old Shanghai. It was an
open square paved with flat gray stones. At one end was a raised building open
to the square on one side, covered with a sweeping tile roof whose corners
curved high into the air and whose ridgeline was adorned with a clay frieze
portraying a couple of dragons facing off with a large pearl between them.
Hackworth realized, dimly, that this was actually the stage of an open-air
theatre, which enhanced the impression that he was the sole spectator at an
elaborate play written and staged for his benefit.
A judge sat before a low, brocade-covered
table in the center of the stage, dressed in magnificent robes and an imposing
winged hat decorated with a unicorn emblem. Behind him and off to one side
stood a small woman wearing what Hackworth assumed were phenomenoscopic
spectacles. When Constable Chang had pointed to a spot on the gray flagstones
where Hackworth was expected to kneel, he ascended to the stage and took up a
position flanking the Judge on the other side. A few other functionaries were
arranged on the square, mostly consisting of Dr. X and members of his retinue,
arranged in two parallel lines forming a tunnel between Hackworth and the
Judge.
Hackworth's
initial surge of terror had worn off. He had now entered into morbid
fascination with the incredible dreadfulness of his situation and the
magnificent performance staged by Dr. X to celebrate it. He knelt silently and
waited in a stunned, hyper-relaxed state, like a pithed frog on the dissection
table.
Formalities
were gone through. The Judge was named Fang and evidently came from New York.
The charge was repeated, somewhat more elaborately. The woman stepped forward
and introduced evidence: a cine record that was played on a large mediatron
covering the back wall of the stage. It was a film of the suspect, John
Percival Hackworth, slicing a bit of skin from his hand and giving it to (the
innocent) Dr. X, who (not knowing that he was being gulled into committing a
theft) extracted a terabyte of hot data from a cocklebur-shaped mite, and so
on, and so on.
"The
only thing that remains is to prove that this information was, indeed,
stolen-though this is strongly implied by the suspect's behavior," Judge
Fang said. In support of this assertion, Constable Chang stepped forward and
told the story of his visit to Hackworth's flat.
"Mr.
Hackworth," said Judge Fang, "would you like to dispute that this
property was stolen? If so, we will hold you here while a copy of the
information is supplied to Her Majesty's Police; they can confer with your
employer to determine whether you did anything dishonest. Would you like us to
do that?"
"No,
Your Honour," Hackworth said.
"So
you are not disputing that the property was stolen, and that you deceived a
subject of the Celestial Kingdom into colluding with your criminal
behavior?"
"I
am guilty as charged, Your Honour," Hackworth said, "and I throw
myself on the mercy of the court."
"Very
well," Judge Fang said, "the defendant is guilty. The sentence is
sixteen strokes of the cane and ten years' imprisonment."
"Goodness
gracious!" Hackworth murmured. Inadequate as this was, it was the only
thing that came to him.
"Insofar
as the strokes of the cane are concerned, since the defendant was motivated by
his filial responsibility to his daughter, I will suspend all but one, on one
condition."
"Your
Honour, I shall endeavour to comply with whatever condition you may choose to
impose."
"That
you supply Dr. X with the decryption key to the data in question, so that
additional copies of the book may be made available to the small children
crowding our orphanages."
"This
I will gladly do," Hackworth said, "but there are complications.,,
"I'm
waiting," Judge Fang said, not sounding very pleased. Hackworth got the
impression that this business about the caning and the Primer was a mere
prelude to something bigger, and that the Judge just wanted to get through it.
"In
order for me to weigh the seriousness of these complications," Hackworth
said, "I will need to know how many copies, approximately, Your Honour intends
to make."
"In
the range of hundreds of thousands."
Hundreds of thousands! "Please
excuse me, but does Your Honour understand that the book is engineered for
girls starting around the age of four?"
"Yes."
Hackworth
was taken aback. Hundreds of thousands of children of both sexes and all ages
would not have been difficult to believe. Hundreds of thousands of
four-year-old girls was hard for the mind to grasp. Just one of them was quite
a handful. But it was, after all, China.
"The
magistrate is waiting," Constable Chang said.
"I
must make it clear to Your Honour that the Primer is, in large part, a
ractive-that is, it requires the participation of adult ractors. While one or
two extra copies might go unnoticed, a large number of them would overwhelm the
built-in system provided for paying for such services."
"Then
part of your responsibility will be to make alterations in the Primer so that
it is suitable for our requirements-we can make do without those parts of the
book that depend heavily on outside ractors, and supply our own ractors in some
cases," Judge Fang said.
"This
should be feasible. I can build in automatic voice-generation capabilities-not
as good, but serviceable." At this point, John Percival Hackworth, almost
without thinking about it and without appreciating the ramifications of what he
was doing, devised a trick and slipped it in under the radar of the Judge and
Dr. X and all of the other people in the theatre, who were better at noticing
tricks than most other people in the world. "While I'm at it, if it
pleases the court, I can also," Hackworth said, most obsequiously,
"make changes in the content so that it will be more suitable for the
unique cultural requirements of the Han readership. But it will take some
time."
"Very
well," said Judge Fang, "all but one stroke of the cane are
suspended, pending the completion of these alterations. As for the ten years of
imprisonment, I am embarrassed to relate that this district, being very small,
does not have a prison, and so the suspect will have to be released this
evening after the business with the cane is finished. But rest assured, Mr.
Hackworth, that your sentence will be served, one way or another."
The
revelation that he would be released to his family this very evening hit
Hackworth like a deep lungful of opium smoke. The caning went by quickly and
efficiently; he did not have time to worry about it, which helped a little. The
pain sent him straight into shock. Chang pulled his flaccid body off the rack
and bore him over to a hard cot, where he lay semiconscious for a few minutes.
They brought him tea-a nice Keemun with distinct lavender notes.
Without
further ado he was escorted straight out of the Middle Kingdom and into the
streets of the Coastal Republic, which had never been more than a stone's throw
away from him during all of these proceedings, but which might as well have
been a thousand miles and a thousand years distant. He made his way straight to
a public matter compiler, moving in a broad-based gait, with tiny steps, bent
over somewhat, and compiled some first-aid supplies- painkillers and some
hęmocules that supposedly helped to knit wounds together.
Thoughts
about the second part of the sentence, and how he might end up serving it, did
not come back to him until he was halfway back across the Causeway, borne
swiftly on autoskates, the wind keening through the fabric of his trousers and
inflaming the laceration placed neatly across his buttocks, like the track of a
router. This time, he was surrounded by a flock of hornet-size aerostats flying
in an ellipsoidal formation all around him, hissing gently and invisibly
through the night and waiting for an excuse to swarm.
This
defensive system, which had seemed formidable to him when he compiled it, now
seemed like a pathetic gesture. It might stop a youth gang. But he had
insensibly transcended the plane of petty delinquents and moved into a new
realm, ruled by powers almost entirely hidden from his ken, and knowable to the
likes of John Percival Hackworth only insofar as they perturbed the
trajectories of the insignificant persons and powers who happened to be in his
vicinity. He could do naught but continue falling through the orbit that had
been ordained for him. This knowledge relaxed him more than anything he had
learned in many years, and when he returned home, he kissed the sleeping Fiona,
treated his wounds with more therapeutic technology from the M.C., covered them
with pajamas, and slid beneath the covers. Drawn inward by Gwendolyn's dark
radiant warmth, he fell asleep before he had even had time to pray.
More
tales from the Primer; the story of
Dinosaur and Dojo; Nell learns a thing
or two about the art of self-defense;
Nell's mother gets, and loses, a worthy suitor; Nell asserts her position
against a young bully.
She
loved all of her four companions, but her favorite had come to be Dinosaur. At
first she'd found him a little scary, but then she'd come to understand that
though he could be a terrible warrior, he was on her side and he loved her. She
loved to ask him for stories about the old days before the Extinction, and
about the time he had spent studying with the mouse Dojo.
There
were other students too . . . said the book, speaking in
Dinosaur's voice, as Nell sat by herself in the corner of the playroom.
.
. . In those days we had no humans, but we did have monkeys, and one day a
little girl monkey came to the entrance of our cave looking quite lonely. Dojo
welcomed her inside, which surprised me because I thought Dojo only liked
warriors. When the little monkey saw me, she froze in terror, but then Dojo
flipped me over his shoulder and bounced me off the walls of the cave a few
times to demonstrate that I was fully under control. He made her a bowl of soup
and asked her why she was wandering around the forest all by herself.
The monkey,
whose name was Belle, explained that her mother and her mother's boyfriend had
kicked her out of the family tree and told her to go swing on the vines for a
couple of hours. But the bigger monkeys hogged all the vines and wouldn't let
Belle swing, so Belle wandered off into the forest looking for companionship
and got lost, finally stumbling upon the entrance to Dojo's cave.
"You
may stay with us for as long as you like," Dojo said.
"All
we do here is play games, and you are invited to join our games if it pleases
you."
"But I
am supposed to be home soon," Belle complained. "My mother's
boyfriend will give me a whipping otherwise."
"Then
I will show you the way from your family tree to my cave and back," Dojo
said, "so that you can come here and play with us whenever your mother
sends you out."
Dojo and I
helped Belle find her way back through the forest to her family tree. On our
way back to the cave, I said, "Master, I do not understand."
"What
seems to be the trouble?" Dojo said.
"You
are a great warrior, and I am studying to become a great warrior myself. Is
there a place in your cave for a little girl who just wants to play?"
"I'll
be the judge of who does and doesn't make a warrior," Dojo said.
"But
we are so busy with our drills and exercises," I said. "Do we have
time to play games with the child, as you promised?"
"What
is a game but a drill that's dressed up in colorful clothing?" Dojo said.
"Besides, given that, even without my instruction, you weigh ten tons and
have a cavernous mouth filled with teeth like butcher knives, and that all
creatures except me flee in abject terror at the mere sound of your footsteps,
I do not think that you should begrudge a lonely little girl some
play-time."
At this I
felt deeply ashamed, and when we got home, I swept out the cave seven times
without even being asked. A couple of days later, when Belle came back to our
cave looking lonely and forlorn, we both did our best to make her feel welcome.
Dojo began playing some special games with her, which Belle enjoyed so much
that she kept coming back, and believe it or not, after a couple of years of
this had gone by, Belle was able to flip me over her shoulder just as well as
Dojo.
Nell laughed to think of a
little girl monkey flipping a great dinosaur over her shoulder. She went back
one page and reread the last part more carefully:
A couple of
days later, when Belle came back to our cave looking lonely and forlorn, we
both did our best to make her feel welcome. Dojo made a special meal in his
kitchen out of rice, fish, and vegetables and made sure that she ate every
scrap. Then he began playing a special game with her called somersaults.
An
illustration materialized on the facing page. Nell recognized the open space in
front of the entrance to Dojo's cave. Dojo was sitting up on a high rock giving
instructions to Dinosaur and Belle. Dinosaur tried to do a somersault, but his
tiny front arms could not support the weight of his massive head, and he fell
flat on his face. Then Belle gave it a try and did a perfect somersault.
Nell
tried it too. It was confusing at first, because the world kept spinning around
her while she did it. She looked at the illustration in the book and saw Belle
doing exactly what Nell had done, making all of the same mistakes. Dojo
scampered down from his rock and explained how Belle could keep her head and
body straight. Nell followed the advice as she gave it another try, and this
time it felt better. Before her time was up, she was doing perfect somersaults
all over the playground. When she went back to the apartment, Mom wouldn't let
her in at first, so she did somersaults up and down the hall for a while.
Finally Mom let her in, and when she saw that Nell had gotten sand in her hair
and shoes down at the playground, she gave her a spanking and sent her to bed
without any food.
But
the next morning she went to the M.C. and asked it for the special meal Dojo
made for Belle. The M.C. said it couldn't really make fish, but it could make
nanosurimi, which was kind of like fish. It could make rice too. Vegetables
were a problem. Instead it gave her some green paste she could eat with a
spoon. Nell told the M.C. that this was her Belle food and that she was going
to have it all the time from now on, and after that the M.C. always knew what
she wanted.
Nell
didn't call it her magic book anymore, she called it by the name printed plain
as day on the title page, which she'd only been able to read recently:
YOUNG LADY'S ILLUSTRATED PRIMER a
Propędeutic Enchiridion in which is told the tale of Princess Nell and
her various friends, kin, associates, &c.
The
Primer didn't speak to her as often as it used to. She had found that she could
often read the words more quickly than the book spoke them, and so she usually
ordered it to be silent. She often put it under her pillow and had it read her
bedtime stories, though, and sometimes she even woke up in the middle of the
night and heard it whispering things to her that she had just been dreaming
about.
Tad
had long since vanished from their home, though not before giving Mom a broken
nose. He'd been replaced by Shemp, who had been replaced by Todd, who had given
way to Tony. One day the Shanghai Police had come to arrest Tony, and he had
plugged one of them right in the living room with his skull gun, blowing a hole
in the guy's stomach so that intestines fell out and trailed down between his
legs. The other policemen nailed Tony with a Seven Minute Special and then
dragged their wounded comrade out into the hallway, while Tony, bellowing like
a cornered, rabid animal, ran into the kitchen and grabbed a knife and began
hacking at his chest where he thought the Seven Minute Special had gone into
his body. By the time the seven minutes had gone by and the policemen burst
back into the apartment, he had dug a hole in his pectoral muscle all the way
down to his ribs. He menaced the cops with his bloody knife, and the cop in
charge punched in some numbers on a little black box in his hand, and Tony
buckled and screamed as a single cookie-cutter detonated inside his thigh. He
dropped the knife. The cops rushed in and shrink-wrapped him, then stood around
his body, mummified in glistening plastic, and kicked him and stomped him for a
minute or two, then finally cut a hole in the plastic so Tony could breathe.
They
bonded four handles onto the shrink-wrap and then carried him out between them,
leaving Nell to clean up the blood in the kitchen and the living room. She wasn't
very good at cleaning things up yet and ended up smearing it around. When Mom
got home, she screamed and cried for a while and then spanked Nell for making a
mess. This made Nell sad, and so she went to her room and picked up the Primer
and made up a story of her own, about how the wicked stepmother had made
Princess Nell clean up the house and had spanked her for doing it wrong. The
Primer made up pictures as she went along. By the time she was finished, she
had forgotten about the real things that had happened and remembered only the
story she had made up.
After
that, Mom swore off men for a while, but after a couple of months she met a guy
named Brad who was actually nice. He had a real job as a blacksmith in the New
Atlantis Clave, and one day he took Nell to work with him and showed her how he
nailed iron shoes onto the hooves of the horses. This was the first time Nell
had actually seen a horse, and so she did not pay much attention to Brad and
his hammers and nails. Brad's employers had a giant house with vast green
fields, and they had four kids, all bigger than Nell, who would come out in
fancy clothes and ride those horses.
But
Mom broke up with Brad; she didn't like craftsmen, she said, because they were
too much like actual Victorians, always spouting all kinds of crap about how
one thing was better than another thing, which eventually led, she explained,
to the belief that some people were better than others. She took up with a guy
named Burt who eventually moved in with them. Burt explained to Nell and Harv
that the house needed discipline and that he intended to provide it, and after
that he spanked them all the time, sometimes on the butt and sometimes on the
face. He spanked Mom a lot too.
Nell
was spending much more time at the playground, where it was easier for her to
do all of the exercises that Dojo was teaching to Belle. She also played games
with the other kids sometimes. One day she was playing tetherball with a friend
of hers and kept beating her every time. Then a boy came up, a boy bigger than
either Nell or her friend, and insisted that he be allowed to play. Nell's
friend gave up her place, and then Nell played against the boy, whose name was
Kevin. Kevin was a big solid boy who was proud of his bulk and his strength,
and his philosophy of tetherball was winning through intimidation. He would
grab the ball, wind up melodramatically, baring his teeth and getting his face
bright red, then smash the ball with a windmill punch, complete with sound
effects that always showered the ball with spit. The performance was so
impressive that many children just stood and watched it in awe, afraid to get
in the way of the tetherball, and after that Kevin would just keep smashing the
ball faster and faster on each revolution while vomiting profanity at his
opponent. Nell knew that Kevin's mom had lived with a lot of the same guys that
Nell's mom had lived with; he frequently sported black eyes that he certainly
hadn't gotten on the playground.
Nell
had always been afraid of Kevin. But today when he wound up for his big serve,
he just looked silly; kind of like Dinosaur did sometimes when sparring with
Belle. The ball swung toward her, dewy with spit and not really going all that
fast. Kevin was shouting things at her, calling her a cunt and other words, but
for some reason Nell didn't hear it and didn'tcare, she just lunged toward the
ball and punched it hard, putting her whole body behind her knuckles in a
straight line, just as Dojo taught. She hit the ball so hard, she didn't even
feel it; it shot up in a wide arc that took it behind and above Kevin's head,
and after that all she had to do was give it a few more slaps as it whizzed by,
and she'd won the game.
"Two
out of three," Kevin said, and they played again, with the same result.
Now all the kids were laughing at Kevin, and he lost his temper, turned bright
red, and charged at Nell.
But
Nell had watched Kevin use this tactic on other kids, and she knew that it only
worked because usually the kids were too scared to move. Dojo had explained to
Belle that the best way to fight Dinosaur was simply to get out of his way and
let his own strength defeat him, so that's what Nell did with Kevin: stepped
aside at the last minute, made one foot into a hook, and tripped him.
Kevin
smashed tremendously into a swingset, gathered himself up, and charged a second
time. Nell dodged him and tripped him again.
"Okay,"
Kevin said, "you win." He approached Nell holding out his right hand
to shake. But Nell had seen this one too, and she knew it was a trick. She
reached out with her right hand as if she were going to shake. But as Kevin was
groping at this bait, every muscle in his arm tense, Nell turned her palm
toward the floor and drew her hand down, then back across the middle of her
body. She was watching Kevin as she did this and saw that his eyes were
tracking her hand, mesmerized. She continued to move her hand around in a long
ellipse, turning her palm upward, thrusting it forward, poking her fingers into
Kevin's staring eyes.
He
put his hands to his face. She kicked him between the legs as hard as she
could, taking her time and striking the target precisely. As he bent over, she
grabbed his hair and kneed him in the face, then shoved him down on his butt
and left him there, too surprised, for the moment, to start bawling.
Hackworth
lunches in distinguished company; a
disquisition on hypocrisy; Hackworth's
situation develops new complications.
Hackworth
arrived at the pub first. He got a pint of porter at the bar, cask-conditioned
stuff from the nearby Dovetail community, and strolled around the place for a
few minutes while he waited. He had been fidgeting at his desk all morning and
enjoyed the opportunity to stretch his legs. The place was done up like an
ancient London publican house circa World War II, complete with fake bomb
damage to one corner of the structure and taped X's over each windowpane-which
only made Hackworth think of Dr. X. Autographed photos of British and American
airmen were stuck up on the walls here and there, along with other miscellany
recalling the heyday of Anglo-American cooperation:
SEND
a gun TO DEFEND A BRITISH HOME British civilians, faced with threat of
invasion, desperately need arms for the defense of their homes. YOU CAN AID
American Committee for Defense of British Homes
Bowler
hats hung in clusters from poles and wall hooks all over the room, like great
bunches of black grapes. A lot of engineers and artifexes seemed to come to
this place. They hunched over pints of beer at the bar and delved into
steak-and-kidney pies at the little tables, chatting and chuckling. There was
nothing prepossessing about the place or its patrons, but Hackworth knew that
the odds and ends of nanotechnological lore collected in the heads of these
middle-class artisans was what ultimately kept New Atlantis wealthy and secure.
He had to ask himself why he hadn't been satisfied with simply being one of
them. John Percival Hackworth projected his thoughts into matter and did it
better than anyone else in this place. But he had felt the need to go beyond
that-he had wanted to reach beyond mere matter and into someone's soul. Now,
whether he wanted to or not, he was going to reach hundreds of thousands of
souls.
The
men at the tables watched him curiously, then nodded politely and looked away
when he caught their eye. Hackworth had noticed a full-lane Rolls-Royce parked
in front of the place on his way in. Someone important was here, evidently in a
back room. Hackworth and everyone else in the place knew it, and they were all
in a heightened state of alertness, wondering what was up.
Major
Napier rode up on a standard-issue cavalry chevaline and came in at noon on the
dot, pulling off his officer's hat and exchanging a hilarious greeting with the
barkeep. Hackworth recognized him because he was a hero, and Napier recognized
Hackworth for reasons left provocatively unspecified.
Hackworth
translated his pint to the left and exchanged a vigorous handshake with Major
Napier in front of the bar. They strolled toward the back of the place,
exchanging some hearty, forgettable, balderdashladen banter. Napier stepped
nimbly in front of him and pulled open a small door in the back wall. Three
steps led down into a little snuggery with mullioned windows on three sides and
a single copper-covered table in the middle. A man was sitting by himself at
the table, and as Hackworth descended the steps, he realized, that it was Lord
Alexander Chung-Sik Finkle-McGraw, who stood up, returned his bow, and greeted
him with a warm and hearty handshake, taking such evident measures to put
Hackworth at ease that, in some respects, the opposite result was achieved.
More
banter, a bit more restrained. A waiter came in; Hackworth ordered a steak
sandwich, today's special, and Napier simply nodded to the waiter to indicate
his complete agreement, which Hackworth took as a friendly gesture.
Finkle-McGraw declined to eat anything.
Hackworth
was not really hungry anymore. It was clear that Royal Joint Forces Command had
figured out at least some of what had happened, and that Finkle-McGraw knew
about it too. They had decided to approach him privately instead of simply
lowering the boom on him and drumming him out of the phyle. This should have
filled him with boundless relief, but it didn't. Things had seemed so simple
after his prosecution in the Celestial Kingdom. Now he suspected they were
about to get infinitely more complicated.
"Mr.
Hackworth," Finkle-McGraw said after the pleasantries had petered out,
speaking in a new tone of voice, a the-meeting-will- come-to-order sort of
voice, "please favour me with your opinion of hypocrisy.
"Excuse
me. Hypocrisy, Your Grace?"
"Yes.
You know."
"It's
a vice, I suppose."
"A
little one or a big one? Think carefully-much hinges upon the answer."
"I
suppose that depends upon the particular circumstances."
"That
will never fail to be a safe answer, Mr. Hackworth," the Equity Lord said
reproachfully. Major Napier laughed, somewhat artificially, not knowing what to
make of this line of inquiry.
"Recent
events in my life have renewed my appreciation for the virtues of doing things
safely," Hackworth said. Both of the others chuckled knowingly.
"You
know, when I was a young man, hypocrisy was deemed the worst of vices,"
Finkle-McGraw said. "It was all because of moral relativism. You see, in
that sort of a climate, you are not allowed to criticise others-after all, if
there is no absolute right and wrong, then what grounds is there for
criticism?"
Finkle-McGraw
paused, knowing that he had the full attention of his audience, and began to
withdraw a calabash pipe and various related supplies and implements from his
pockets. As he continued, he charged the calabash with a blend of leather-brown
tobacco so redolent that it made Hackworth's mouth water. He was tempted to
spoon some of it into his mouth.
"Now,
this led to a good deal of general frustration, for people are naturally
censorious and love nothing better than to criticise others' shortcomings. And
so it was that they seized on hypocrisy and elevated it from a ubiquitous
peccadillo into the monarch of all vices. For, you see, even if there is no
right and wrong, you can find grounds to criticise another person by
contrasting what he has espoused with what he has actually done. In this case, you
are not making any judgment whatsoever as to the correctness of his views or
the morality of his behaviour-you are merely pointing out that he has said one
thing and done another. Virtually all political discourse in the days of my
youth was devoted to the ferreting out of hypocrisy.
"You
wouldn't believe the things they said about the original Victorians. Calling
someone a Victorian in those days was almost like calling them a fascist or a
Nazi."
Both
Hackworth and Major Napier were dumbfounded. "Your Grace!" Napier
exdaimed. "I was naturally aware that their moral stance was radically
different from ours- but I am astonished to be informed that they actually condemned the
first Victorians."
"Of
course they did," Finkle-McGraw said.
"Because
the first Victorians were hypocrites," Hackworth said, getting it.
Finkle-McGraw
beamed upon Hackworth like a master upon his favored pupil. "As you can
see, Major Napier, my estimate of Mr. Hackworth's mental acuity was not
ill-founded."
"While
I would never have supposed otherwise, Your Grace," Major Napier said,
"it is nonetheless gratifying to have seen a demonstration." Napier
raised his glass in Hackworth's direction.
"Because
they were hypocrites," Finkle-McGraw said, after igniting his calabash and
shooting a few tremendous fountains of smoke into the air, "the Victorians
were despised in the late twentieth century. Many of the persons who held such
opinions were, of course, guilty of the most nefandous conduct themselves, and
yet saw no paradox in holding such views because they were not hypocrites
themselves-they took no moral stances and lived by none."
"So
they were morally superior to the Victorians-" Major Napier said, still a
bit snowed under.
"-even
though-in fact, because-they
had no morals at all." There was a moment of silent, bewildered
head-shaking around the copper table.
"We
take a somewhat different view of hypocrisy," Finkle-McGraw continued.
"In the late-twentieth-century Weltanschauung, a
hypocrite was someone who espoused high moral views as part of a planned
campaign of deception-he never held these beliefs sincerely and routinely
violated them in privacy. Of course, most hypocrites are not like that. Most of
the time it's a spirit-is-willing, flesh-is-weak sort of thing."
"That
we occasionally violate our own stated moral code," Major Napier said,
working it through, "does not imply that we are insincere in espousing
that code."
"Of
course not," Finkle-McGraw said. "It's perfectly obvious, really. No
one ever said that it was easy to hew to a strict code of conduct. Really, the
difficulties involved-the missteps we make along the way-are what make it
interesting. The internal, and eternal, struggle,
between our base impulses and the rigorous demands of our own moral system is
quintessentially human. It is how we conduct ourselves in that struggle that
determines how we may in time be judged by a higher power." All three men
were quiet for a few moments, chewing mouthfuls of beer or smoke, pondering the
matter.
"I
cannot help but infer," Hackworth finally said, "that the present
lesson in comparative ethics-which I thought was nicely articulated and for
which I am grateful-must be thought to pertain, in some way, to my
situation."
The
other men raised their eyebrows in a not very convincing display of mild
astonishment. The Equity Lord turned toward Major Napier, who took the floor
briskly and cheerfully. "We do not know all the particulars of your
situation-as you know, Atlantan subjects are entitled to polite treatment from
all branches of H.M.'s Joint Forces unless they violate the tribal norms, and
that means, in part, that we don't go round putting people under high-res
surveillance just because we are curious about their, er, avocations.
In an era when everything can be surveiled, all we have left is politeness.
However, we do quite naturally monitor comings and goings through the border.
And not long ago, our curiosity was piqued by the arrival of one Lieutenant
Chang of the District Magistrate's Office. He was also clutching a plastic bag
containing a rather battered top hat. Lieutenant Chang proceeded directly to
your flat, spent half an hour there, and departed, minus the hat."
he
steak sandwiches arrived at the beginning of this bit of exposition. Hackworth
began messing about with condiments, as if he could belittle the importance of
this conversation by paying equal attention to having just the right goodies on
his sandwich. He fussed with his pickle for a while, then began examining the
bottles of obscure sauces arrayed in the center of the table, like a sommelier
appraising a wine cellar.
I
had been mugged in the Leased Territories," Hackworth said absently,
"and Lieutenant Chang recovered my hat, somewhat later, from a
ruffian." He had fixed his gaze, for no special reason, on a tall bottle
with a paper label printed in an ancient crabbed typeface. "MCWHORTER'S
ORIGINAL CONDIMENT" was written large, and everything
else was too small to read. The neck of the bottle was also festooned with
black-and-white reproductions of ancient medals awarded by pre-Enlightenment
European monarchs at exhibitions in places like Riga. Just a bit of violent
shaking and thwacking ejected a few spurts of the ochre slurry from the
pore-size orifice at the top of the bottle, which was guarded by a quarter-inch
encrustation. Most of it hit his plate, and some impacted on his sandwich.
Yes,"
Major Napier said, reaching into his breast pocket and taking out a folded
sheet of smart foolscap. He told it to uncrease itself on the table and prodded
it with the nib of a silver fountain pen the size of an artillery shell.
"Gatehouse records indicate that you do not venture into the L.T. often,
Mr. Hackworth, which is certainly understandable and speaks well of your
judgment. There have been two forays in recent months. On the first of these,
you left in midafternoon and returned late at night bleeding from lacerations
that seemed to have been recently incurred, according to the"- Major
Napier could not repress a tiny smile-"evocative description logged by the
border patrol officer on duty that night. On the second occasion, you again
left in the afternoon and returned late, this time with a single deep
laceration across the buttocks-not visible, of course, but picked up by
surveillance."
Hackworth
took a bite of his sandwich, correctly anticipating that the meat would be
gristly and that he would have plenty of time to think about his situation
while his molars subdued it. He did have plenty of time, as it turned out; but
as frequently happened to him in these situations, he could not bring his mind
to bear on the subject at hand. All he could think about was the taste of the
sauce. If the manifest of ingredients on the bottle had been legible, it would
have read something like this: Water, blackstrap molasses, imported habanero
peppers, salt, garlic, ginger, tomato puree, axle grease, real hickory smoke,
snuff, butts of clove cigarettes, Guinness Stout fermentation dregs, uranium
mill tailings, muffler cores, monosodium glutamate, nitrates, nitrites,
nitrotes and nitrutes, nutrites, natrotes, powdered pork nose hairs, dynamite,
activated charcoal, match-heads, used pipe cleaners, tar, nicotine, singlemalt
whiskey, smoked beef lymph nodes, autumn leaves, red fuming nitric acid,
bituminous coal, fallout, printer's ink, laundry starch, drain deaner, blue
chrysotile asbestos, carrageenan, BHA, BHT, and natural flavorings.
He
could not help smiling at his own complete haplessness, both now and on the
night in question. "I will concede that my recent trips to the Leased
Territories have not left me disposed to make any more." This comment
produced just the right sort of clubby, knowing smiles from his interlocutors.
Hackworth continued, "I saw no reason to report the mugging to Atlantan authorities-"
"There
was no reason," Major Napier said. "Shanghai Police might have been
interested, though."
"Ah.
Well, I did not report it to them either, simply because of their
reputation."
This
bit of routine wog-bashing would have elicited naughty laughter from most.
Hackworth was struck by the fact that neither Finkle-McGraw nor Napier rose to
the bait.
"And
yet," Napier said, "Lieutenant Chang belied that reputation, did he
not, when he went to the trouble of bringing your hat-now worthless-to you in
person, when he was off-duty, rather than simply mailing it or for that matter
throwing it away."
"Yes,"
Hackworth said, "I suppose he did."
"We
found it rather singular. While we would not dream of enquiring into the
particulars of your conversation with Lieutenant Chang, or of prying into your
affairs in any other way, it did occur to some suspicious minds here-ones that
have perhaps been exposed to the Oriental milieu for too long-that Lieutenant
Chang's intentions might not be entirely honourable, and that he might bear
watching. At the same time, for your own protection, we decided to keep a
motherly eye on you during any later sojourns beyond the dog pod grid."
Napier did some more scrawling on his paper. Hackworth watched his pale blue
eyes jumping back and forth as various records materialized on its surface.
"You
took one more trip to the Leased Territories-actually, across the Causeway,
across Pudong, into the old city of Shanghai," Napier said, "where
our surveillance machinery either malfunctioned or was destroyed by
countermeasures. You returned several hours later with a chunk taken out of
your arse." Napier suddenly slapped the paper down on his desk, looked up
at Hackworth for the first time in quite a while, blinking his eyes a couple of
times as he refocused, and relaxed against the sadistically designed wooden
back of his chair. "Hardly the first time that one of H.M. subjects has
gone for a nocturnal prowl on the wild side and come back having suffered a
beating-but normally the beatings are much less severe, and normally they are
bought and paid for by the victim. My assessment of you, Mr. Hackworth, is that
you are not interested in that particular vice."
"Your
assessment is correct, sir," Hackworth said, a bit hotly. This
self-vindication left him in the position of having to provide some better
explanation of the puckered cicatrice running across his buttocks. Actually, he
didn't have to explain anything-this was an informal luncheon, not a police
interrogation-but it would not do much for his already tatterdemalion
credibility if he let it pass without comment. As if to emphasize this fact,
both of the other men were now silent for some time.
"Do
you have any more recent intelligence about the man named Chang?"
Hackworth asked.
"It
is singular that you should ask. As it happens, the whilom Lieutenant; his
colleague, a woman named Pao; and their superior, a magistrate named Fang, all
resigned on the same day, about a month ago. They have resurfaced in the Middle
Kingdom."
"You
must have been struck by the coincidence-that a judge who is in the habit of
caning people enters the service of the Middle Kingdom, and shortly thereafter,
a New Atlantan engineer returns from a visit to said clave bearing marks of
having been caned."
"Now
that you mention it, it is quite striking," Major Napier said.
The
Equity Lord said, "It might lead one to conclude that the engineer in
question owed some debt to a powerful figure within that clave, and that the
judicial system was being used as a sort of collection agency."
Napier
was ready for his leg of the relay. "Such an engineer, if one existed,
might be surprised to know that John Zaibatsu is intensely curious about the
Shanghainese gentleman in question- an honest-to-god Mandarin of the Celestial
Kingdom, if he is who we think he is-and that we have been trying for some
time, with little success, to obtain more information about his activities. So,
if the Shanghainese gentleman were to request that our engineer partake in
activities that we would normally consider unethical or even treasonous, we
might take an uncharacteristically forgiving stance. Provided, that is, that
the engineer kept us well-informed."
"I
see. Would that be something like being a double agent, then?" Hackworth
said.
Napier
winced, as if he were being caned himself. "It is a crashingly unsubtle
phrase. But I can forgive your using it in this context."
"Would
John Zaibatsu then make some kind of formal commitment to this
arrangement?"
"It
is not done that way," Major Napier said.
"I
was afraid of that," Hackworth said.
"Typically
such commitments are superfluous, as in most cases the party has very little
choice in the matter."
"Yes,"
Hackworth said, "I see what you mean."
"The
commitment is a moral one, a question of honour," Finkle-McGraw said.
"That such an engineer falls into trouble is evidence of mere hypocrisy on
his part. We are inclined to overlook this sort of routine caducity. If he goes
on to behave treasonously, then that of course is a different matter; but if he
plays his role well and provides information of value to Her Majesty's Joint
Forces, then he has rather deftly parlayed a small error into a grand act of
heroism. You may be aware that it is not unusual for heroes to receive
knighthoods, among other more tangible rewards."
For
a few moments, Hackworth was too startled to speak. He had expected exile and
perhaps deserved it. Mere forgiveness was more than he could have hoped for.
But Finkle-McGraw was giving him the opportunity for something much greater: a
chance to enter the lower ranks of the nobility. An equity stake in the tribal
enterprise. There was only one answer he could make, and he blurted it out
before he had time to lose his nerve.
"I
thank you for your forbearance," he said, "and I accept your
commission. Please consider me to be at Her Majesty's service from this moment
forward."
"Waiter!
Bring some champagne, please," Major Napier called.
"I
believe we have something to celebrate."
From
the Primer, the arrival of a sinister Baron; Burt's disciplinary
practices; the plot againstthe
Baron; practical application of ideas
gleaned from the Primer; flight.
Outside the
Dark Castle, Nell's wicked stepmother continued to live as she pleased and to
entertain visitors. Every few weeks a ship would sail over the horizon and
anchor in the little bay where Nell's father had once kept his fishing boat.
An
important fellow would be rowed ashore by his servants and would live in the
house with Nell's stepmother for a few days, weeks, or months. In the end, she
always got into shouting arguments with her visitors, which Nell and Harv could
hear even through the thick walls of the Dark Castle, and when the visitor had
gotten sick of it, he would row back out to his ship and sail away, leaving the
wicked Queen heartbroken and sobbing on the shore. Princess Nell, who had hated her stepmother at first, came to
feel sorry for her in a way and to realize that the Queen was locked into a
prison of her own making, even darker and colder than the Dark Castle itself.
One day a
barkentine with red sails appeared in the bay, and a red-headed man with a red
beard came to shore. Like the other visitors, he moved in with the Queen and
lived with her for a time. Unlike the others, he was curious about the Dark
Castle and would ride up to its gates every day or two, rattle the door
handles, and walk all around it, staring at its high walls and towers.
In the
third week of the man's visit, Nell and Harv were astonished to hear the twelve
locks on the gate being opened, one by one. In walked the red-headed man. When
he saw Nell and Harv, he was just as astonished as they were. "Who are
you?" he demanded in a low, gruff voice.
Princess
Nell was about to answer, but Harv stopped her. "You are the visitor
here," he said. "Identify yourself."
At this,
the man's face turned almost as red as his hair, and he strode forward and
struck Harv across the face with his mailed fist. "I am Baron Jack,"
he said, "and you may consider that my calling card." Then, just for
spite, he aimed a kick at Princess Nell; but his foot in its heavy metal armor
was too slow, and Princess Nell, remembering the lessons Dinosaur had taught
her, dodged it easily. "You must be the two brats the Queen told me about,"
he said. "You were supposed to be dead by now-eaten up by trolls. Well,
tonight you shall be, and tomorrow the castle will be mine!" He seized
Harv and began to bind his arms with a stout rope. Princess Nell, forgetting
her lessons, tried to stop him, and in a flash he had grabbed her by the hair
and tied her up as well. Soon both of them were lying helpless on the ground.
"We'll see how well you can fight off the trolls tonight!" Baron Jack
said, and giving each of them a slap and a kick just for spite, he strode off
through the gate and locked the twelve locks again.
Princess
Nell and Harv had a long wait until the sun went down and her Night Friends
came to life and untied her and Harv. Princess Nell explained that the evil
Queen had a new lover who intended to take the Dark Castle for himself.
"We
must fight him," Purple said.
Princess
Nell and all the other friends were startled to hear these words, for usually
Purple was patient and wise and counseled against fighting. "There are
many shades of gray in the world," she explained, "and many times
when the hidden way is best; but some things are purely evil and must be fought
to the death."
"If he
were but a man, I could crush him with one foot," Dinosaur said, "but
not during the daytime; and even at night, the Queen is a sorceress, and her
friends have mickle powers. We will need a plan."
That
night there was hell to pay. Kevin, the boy whom Nell had defeated over
tetherball, had learned everything he knew about being a bully from none other
than Burt, because Burt had lived with Kevin's mom for a while and might even
have been Kevin's dad, so Kevin went to Burt and told him that he'd been beaten
up by Harv and Nell acting together. That night, both Harv and Nell got the
worst spanking of their lives. It went on so long that finally Mom tried to
step in and get Burt to calm down. But Burt slapped Mom across the face and
shoved her down on the floor. Finally, Harv and Nell ended up in their room
together. Burt was in the living room having a few beers and getting into a
Burly Scudd ractive. Mom had run out of the apartment, and they had no idea
where she was.
One
of Harv's eyes was swollen shut, and one hand was not working. Nell was
terribly thirsty, and when she went to pee, it came out red. Also she had burns
on her arms from Burt's cigarettes, and the pain just kept getting worse.
They
could sense Burt's movements through the wall, and they could hear the Burly
Scudd ractive. Harv could tell when Burt had gone to sleep because a
single-user ractive eventually went into pause mode if the user stopped
racting. When they were sure Burt was sleeping, they stole into the, kitchen to
get some medicine from the M.C.
Harv
got a bandage for his wrist and a cold-pack for his eye, and he asked the M.C.
for something to put on their cuts and burns so they wouldn't get infected. The
M.C. displayed a whole menu of mediaglyphs for different kinds of remedies.
Some of them were premiums, which you had to pay money for, and there were a
few freebies. One of the freebies was a cream that came in a tube, like
toothpaste. They took it back to their room and took turns spreading it on each
other's cuts and burns.
Nell
lay quietly in bed until she could tell that Harv had gone to sleep. Then she
got out the Young
Lady's Illustrated Primer.
When
Baron Jack came back to the castle the following day, he was angry to find the
ropes piled on the ground, and no bones cracked and gnawed by trolls. He
stormed into the castle with drawn sword, bellowing that he would kill Harv and
Princess Nell himself; but entering into the dining room, he stopped in
wonderment as he saw a great feast that had been laid out on the table for him:
loaves of brown bread, pots of fresh butter, roasted fowl, a suckling pig,
grapes, apples, cheese, broth, and wine. Standing next to the table were Harv
and Princess Nell, dressed in servants' uniforms.
"Welcome
to your castle, Baron Jack," Princess Nell said. "As you can see, we
your new servants have prepared a small snack that we hope will be to your
liking." Actually, Duck had prepared all of the food, but as this was the
daytime, she had turned back into a little toy along with all the other Night
Friends.
Baron
Jack's anger subsided as his greedy eyes traveled over the feast. "I will
try a few bites," he said, "but if any of the food is not perfect, or
if you do not serve me to my liking, I'll have your heads spiked on the gates
of the castle like that!" and he snapped his fingers in Harv's face.
Harv looked
angry and was about to blurt out something terrible, but Princess Nell
remembered the words of Purple, who said that the hidden way was best, and she
said in a sweet voice, "For imperfect service we would deserve nothing
better."
Baron Jack
began to eat, and such was the excellence of Duck's cooking that once he
started, he could barely stop himself. He sent Harv and Nell scurrying back to
the kitchen again and again to bring him more food, and though he constantly
found fault with them and rose from his chair to give them beatings, he had apparently
decided that they were worth more to him alive than dead.
"Sometimes
he would burn their skin with cigarettes too," Nell whispered. The letters
changed on the page of the Primer.
"Princess
Nell's pee-pee turned red too," Nell said, "because the Baron was a
very bad man. And his real name wasn't Baron Jack. His real name was
Burt." As Nell spoke the words, the story changed in the Primer.
"And
Harv couldn't use his arm because of the wrist, so he had to carry everything
with one hand, and that's because Burt was a bad man and he hurt it really
bad," Nell said.
After
a long silence, the Primer began to speak again, but the lovely voice of the
Vicky woman who told the story sounded thick and hoarse all of a sudden and
would stumble in the middle of sentences.
Baron
Burt ate all day, until finally the sun went down.
"Bar
the doors," said a high squeaking voice, "or the trolls will be after
us!"
These words
came from a little man in a suit and top hat who had just scurried through the
doors and was now eyeing the sunset nervously.
"Who
is that pipsqueak interrupting my dinner!?" roared Baron Burt.
"This
is our neighbor," Princess Nell said. "He comes to visit us in the
evening. Please let him sit by the fire."
Baron Burt
looked a bit suspicious, but at this moment Harv set a delicious strawberry
cheesecake in front of him, and he forgot about the little man entirely, until
a few minutes later, when the high squeaking voice piped up again: There once was a Baron named Burt Who was so tough he couldn't be hurt And could wrestle a bear; but I think After two or three drinks Like a child he'd throw up on his shirt.
"Who
dares mock the Baron!?" bellowed Baron Burt, and looked down to see the
new visitor leaning insouciantly on his walking stick and raising a glass as if
to toast his health. Your Majesty, don't
be upset And please feel free now to
get Into bed; for it's been a long
day And you're in a bad way And your trousers you're soon going to wet.
"Bring
me a cask of ale!" shouted Baron Burt. "And bring another for this
upstart, and we'll see who can hold his drink."
Harv rolled
two casks of strong ale into the room. Baron Burt raised one to his lips and
drained it in single pull. The little man on the floor then did the same.
Two skins
of wine were then brought, and once again both Baron Burt and the little man
easily finished them. Finally, two bottles of strong liquor were brought, and
the Baron and the little man took turns drinking one swallow at a time until
the bottles were empty. The Baron was confounded by the small man's ability to
drink; but there he stood, upright and sober, while Baron Burt was becoming
very drunk.
Finally the
little man pulled a small bottle from his pocket and said, For a young man, ale is fine While grown-ups much prefer wine Liquor's a thing That's fit for a king But it's kid stuff compared to moonshine.
The little
man uncorked the bottle and took a drink, then handed it to Baron Burt. The
Baron took one swallow and fell asleep instantly in his chair.
"Mission
accomplished," said the little man, sweeping off his top hat with a deep
bow, revealing a set of long furry ears-for he was none other than Peter in
disguise.
Princess
Nell ran back to the kitchen to tell Dinosaur, who was sitting by the fire with
a long wooden pole, poking it in the coals and turning it round and round to
make the point very sharp. "He's asleep!" she whispered.
Miranda,
sitting in her stage at the Parnasse, felt an overwhelming sense of relief as
her next line appeared on the prompter. She took a deep breath before she
delivered it, closed her eyes, settled her mind, tried to put herself there in
the Dark Castle. She looked deep into Princess Nell's eyes and sold the line
with every scrap of talent and technique she had.
"Good!"
said Dinosaur. "Then the time has come for you and Harv to flee from the
Dark Castle! You must be as stealthy as you can. I will come out later and join
you."
Please get out of there.
Please run away. Get out of that chamber of horrors where you've been living,
Nell, and get to an orphanage or a police station or something, and I will find
you. No matter where you are, I'll find you.
Miranda had it
worked out already: she could compile an extra mattress, put Nell on the floor of
her bedroom and Harv in the living room of her flat. If only she could figure
out who the hell they were.
Princess
Nell hadn't responded. She was thinking, which was the wrong thing to do right
now. Get
out. Get out.
"Why are
you putting that stick in the fire?"
"It
is my duty to see that the evil Baron never troubles you again," Miranda
said, reading from the prompter.
"But
what are you going to do with that stick?"
Please don't do this. It's
not the time to ask why. "You must make
haste!" Miranda read, trying once again to sell the line as best she
could. But Princess Nell had been playing with the Primer for a couple of years
now and had gotten in the habit of asking endless questions.
"Why
are you making the stick sharper?"
"This
is how Odysseus and I took care of the Cyclops,"
Dinosaur
said. Shit.
It's going all wrong.
"What's
Cyclops?" Nell said.
A
new illustration grew on the next page, facing the illustration of Dinosaur by
the fire. It was a picture of a one-eyed giant herding some sheep.
Dinosaur
told the story of how Odysseus killed the Cyclops with a pointed stick, just as
he was about to do to Baron Burt. Nell insisted on hearing what happened after
that. One story led to another. Miranda tried to tell the stories as fast as
she could, tried to put a tone of boredom and impatience into her voice, which
wasn't easy because she was actually on the verge of panic. She had to get Nell
out of that apartment before Burt woke up from his drunk.
The
eastern sky was beginning to glow . . .
Shit. Get out of there,
Nell! . . .
Dinosaur
was just in the middle of telling Princess Nell about a witch who turned men
into swine when suddenly, poof, he turned back into a stuffed animal. The sun
had come up.
Nell
was a bit startled by this turn of events, and closed the Primer for a while,
and sat in the dark listening to Harv wheeze and Burt snore in the next room.
She'd been looking forward to the moment when Dinosaur would kill Baron Burt,
just as Odysseus had done to the Cyclops. But now it wasn't going to happen.
Baron Burt would wake up, realize he'd been tricked, and hurt them worse.
They'd
be stuck in the Dark Castle forever.
Nell
was tired of being in the Dark Castle. She knew it was time to get out. She
opened the Primer.
"Princess Nell knew what she had to
do," Nell said. Then she closed the Primer and left it on her pillow.
Even
if she hadn't learned how to read pretty well, she would have had no trouble
finding what she wanted just by using the M.C.'s mediaglyphics. It was a thing
she'd seen people use in the old passives, a thing she'd seen when Mom's old
boyfriend Brad had taken her to visit the horse barn in Dovetail. It was called
a screwdriver, and you could have the M.C. make them in all different shapes:
long, short, fat, skinny.
She
had it make one that was very long and very skinny. When it was finished, it
made the hissing sound that it always made, and she thought she heard Burt
stirring on the sofa.
She
peeked into the living room. He was still lying there, his eyes closed, but his
arms were moving around. His head turned from side to side once, and she could
see a glimmer between his half-opened eyelids.
He
was about to wake up and hurt her some more.
She
held the screwdriver out in front of her like a lance and ran straight toward
him.
At
the last instant she faltered. The tool went astray and skidded across his
forehead, leaving a trail of red stitches. Nell was so horrified that she
dropped it and jumped back Burt was shaking his head violently back and forth.
He
opened his eyes and looked right at Nell. Then he put his hand to his forehead
and brought it back all bloody. He sat up on the sofa, still uncomprehending.
The screwdriver rolled off and bounced on the floor. He picked it up and found the
tip bloody, then fixed his eyes on Nell, who had shrunk into the corner of the
room. Nell knew that she had done the wrong thing. Dinosaur had told her to run
away, and she had pestered him with questions instead.
"Harv!"
she said. But her voice came out all dry and squeaky, like a mouse's. "We
must fly!"
"Yeah,
you're gonna fly all right," Burt said swinging his feet around to the
floor. "Right out the fucking window you're gonna fly."
Harv
came out. He was carrying his nunchuks under his injured arm and the Primer in
his good hand. The book hung open to an illustration of Princess Nell and Harv
running away from the Dark Castle with Baron Burt in pursuit. "Nell, your
book talked to me," he said. "It said we should run away." Then
he saw Burt rising from the sofa with the bloody screwdriver in his hand.
Harv
didn't bother with the nunchuks. He bolted across the room and dropped the
Primer, freeing his good hand to fling the front door open. Nell, who had been
frozen in a nearby corner for some time, shot toward the door like a bolt
finally loosed from a crossbow, snatching up the Primer as she ran past it.
They ran into the hallway with Burt only a few paces behind.
The
lobby with the elevators was some distance away from them. On impulse, Nell stopped
and dropped to a crouch in Burt's path. Harv turned toward her, terrified.
"Nell!" he cried. Burt's pumping legs struck Nell in the side. He
spun forward and landed hard on the hallway floor, skidding for a short
distance.
This
brought him to the feet of Harv, who had turned to face him and deployed his
nunchuks. Harv went upside Burt's head a few times, but he was panicked and
didn't do a very good job of it. Burt groped with one hand and managed to catch
the chain that joined the halves of the weapon. Nell had gotten to her feet by
this point and ran up Burt's back; she lunged forward and sank her teeth into
the fleshy base of Burt's thumb. Something fast and confusing happened, Nell
was rolling on the floor, Harv was dragging her back to her feet, she reached
back to snatch up the Primer, which she had dropped again. They made it into
the emergency stairs and began to skitter down the tunnel of urine, graffiti,
and refuse, jumping over the odd slumbering body. Burt entered the stairwell in
pursuit, a couple of flights behind them. He tried to make a shortcut by
vaulting over the banister as he had seen and done in ractives, but his drunk
body didn't do it as well as a media hero, and he tumbled down one flight,
cursing and screaming, now rabid with pain and anger. Nell and Harv kept
running.
Burt's
pratfall gave them enough of a lead to make it to the ground floor. They ran
straight across the lobby and into the street. It was the wee hours of the
morning, and there was almost no one out here, which was slightly unusual;
normally there would have been decoys and lookouts for drug sellers. But
tonight there was only one person on the whole block: a bulky Chinese man with
a short beard and close-cropped hair, wearing traditional indigo pajamas and a
black leather skullcap, standing in the middle of the street with his hands
stuck in his sleeves. He gave Nell and Harv an appraising look as they ran
past. Nell did not pay him much attention. She just ran as fast as she could.
"Nell!"
Harv was saying. "Nell! Look"
She
was afraid to look. She kept running.
"Nell,
stop and look." Harv cried. He sounded exultant.
Finally
Nell ran around the corner of a building, stopped, turned, and peeked back
cautiously.
She
was looking down the empty street past the building where she had lived her
whole life. At the end of the street was a big mediatronic advertising display
currently running a big Coca-Cola ad, in the ancient and traditional red used
by that company. Silhouetted against it were two men: Burt and the big
round-headed Chinese man.
They
were dancing together.
No,
the Chinese man was dancing. Burt was just staggering around like a drunk.
No,
the Chinese man was not dancing, but doing some of the exercises that Dojo had
taught Nell about. He moved slowly and beautifully except for some moments when
every muscle in his body would join into one explosive movement. Usually these
explosions were directed toward Burt.
Burt
fell down, then struggled up to his knees.
The
Chinese man gathered himself together into a black seed, rose into the air,
spun around, and unfolded like a blooming flower. One of his feet struck Burt
on the point of his chin and seemed to accelerate all the way through Burt's
head. Burt's body fell back to the pavement like a few gallons of water sloshed
out of a bucket.
The
Chinese man became very still, settled his breathing, adjusted his skullcap and
the sash on his robe. Then he turned his back to
Nell
and Harv and walked away down the middle of the street.
Nell
opened her Primer. It was showing a picture of Dinosaur, seen in silhouette
through a window in the Dark Castle, standing over the corpse of Baron Burt
with a smoking stake in his claws. Nell said, "The little boy and the
little girl were running away to the Land Beyond."
Hackworth
departs from Shanghai; his speculations
as to the possible motives of Dr. X.
Would-be
passengers skidded to a halt on the saliva-slickened floor of the Shanghai
Aerodrome as the announcer brayed the names of great and ancient Chinese cities
into his microphone. They set bags down, shushed children, furrowed brows,
cupped hands around ears, and pursed lips in utter bewilderment. None of this
was made any easier by the extended family of some two dozen just-arrived
Boers, women in bonnets and boys in heavy coarse farmer's pants, who had
convened by one of the gates and begun to sing a hymn of thanksgiving in thick
hoarse voices.
When
the announcer called out Hackworth's flight (San Diego with stops in Seoul,
Vladivostok, Magadan, Anchorage, Juneau, Prince Rupert, Vancouver, Seattle,
Portland, San Francisco, Santa Barbara, and Los Angeles), he apparently decided
that it was beneath his dignity, above his abilities, or both to speak Korean,
Russian, English, French, Coast Salish, and Spanish in the same sentence, and
so he just hummed into the microphone for a while as if, far from being a
professional announcer, he were a shy, indifferent vocalist hidden within in a
vast choir.
Hackworth
knew perfectly well that hours would pass before he actually found himself on
an airship, and that having achieved that milestone, he might have to wait
hours more for its actual departure. Nonetheless, he had to say good-bye to his
family at some point, and this seemed no worse a time than any other.
Holding
Fiona (so big and solid now!) in the crook of one arm, and holding hands with
Gwen, he pushed insistently across a rip tide of travelers, beggars,
pickpockets, and entrepreneurs trading in everything from bolts of real silk to
stolen intellectual property.
Finally
they reached a corner where a languid eddy had separated itself from the flow
of people, and where Fiona could safely be set down.
He
turned first to Gwen. She still looked as stunned and vacant as she had, more
or less consistently, since he told her that he had received a new assignment
"whose nature I am not at liberty to disclose, save to say that it
concerns the future, not merely of my department, nor of John Zaibatsu, but of
that phyle into which you had the good fortune to have been born and to which I
have sworn undying loyalty," and that he was making a trip "of
indefinite duration" to North America. It had been increasingly clear of
late that Gwen simply didn't get it. At first, Hackworth had been annoyed by
this, viewing it as a symptom of hitherto unevidenced intellectual
shortcomings. More recently, he had come to understand that it had more to do
with emotional stance. Hackworth was embarking on a quest of sorts here, real
Boy's Own Paper stuff, highly romantic. Gwen hadn't been raised on the proper
diet of specious adventure yarns and simply found the whole concept
unfathomable. She did a bit of rote sniffling and tear-wiping, gave him a quick
kiss and a hug, and stepped back, having completed her role in the ceremony
with nothing close to enough histrionics. Hackworth, feeling somewhat
disgruntled, squatted down to face Fiona.
His
daughter seemed to have a better intuitive grasp of the situation; she had been
up several times a night recently, complaining of bad dreams, and on the way to
the Aerodrome she had been perfectly quiet. She stared at her father with large
red eyes.
Tears
came to Hackworth's eyes, and his nose began to run. He blew his nose
plangently, held the handkerchief over his face for a moment, and composed
himself.
Then
he reached into the breast pocket of his overcoat and drew out a flat package,
wrapped up in mediatronic paper of spring wildflowers bending in a gentle
breeze. Fiona brightened up immediately, and Hackworth could not help chudding,
not for the first time, at the charming susceptibility of small people to frank
bribery. "You will forgive me for ruining the surprise," he said,
"by telling you that this is a book, my darling. A magic book. I made it
for you, because I love you and could not think of a better way to express that
love. And whenever you open its pages, no matter how far away I might be, you
will find me here."
"Thank
you ever so much, Father," she said, taking it with both hands, and he
could not help himself from sweeping her up in both arms and giving her a great
hug and a kiss. "Good-bye, my best
beloved, you will see me in your dreams," he whispered into her tiny,
flawless ear, and then he set her free, spun around, and walked away before she
could see the tears that had begun to run down his face.
Hackworth
was a free man now, wandering through the Aerodrome in an emotional stupor, and
only reached his flight by participating in the same flock instinct that all
the natives used to reach theirs. 'Whenever he saw more than one gwailo heading
purposefully in one direction, he followed them, and then others started
following him, and thus did a mob of foreign devils coalesce among a hundred
times as many natives, and finally, two hours after their ffight was supposed
to leave, they mobbed a gate and climbed aboard the airship Hanjin Takhoma-which
might or might not have been their assigned vessel, but the passengers now had
a sufficient numerical majority to hijack it to America, which was the only
thing that really counted in China.
He
had received a summons from the Celestial Kingdom. Now he was on his way to the
territory still known vaguely as America. His eyes were red from crying over
Gwen and Fiona, and his blood was swarming with nanosites whose functions were
known only to Dr. X; Hackworth had lain back, closed his eyes, rolled up his
sleeve, and hummed "Rule, Atlantis" while Dr. X's physicians (at
least he hoped they were physicians) shoved a fat needle into his arm. The
needle was fed by a tube that ran directly into a special fitting on the matter
compiler; Hackworth was plugged directly into the Feed, not the regulation
Atlantan kind but Dr. X's black-market kiudge. He could only hope that they'd
given it the right instructions, as it would be a shame to have a washing
machine, a mediatronic chopstick, or a kilo of China 'White materialize in his
arm. Since then, he'd had a few attacks of the shivers, suggesting that his
immune system was reacting to something Dr. X had put in there. His body would
either get used to it or (preferably) destroy the offending nanosites.
The
airship was a dromond, the largest class of noncargo vessel. It was divided
into four classes. Hackworth was second from the bottom, in third. Below that
was steerage, which was for migrating thetes, and for sky-girls, prostitutes of
the air. Even now, these were bribing their way past the conductors and into
the third-class lounge, making eyes at Hackworth and at the white-shirted sararimen who
tended to travel this way. Those gentlemen had grown up in one crowded Dragon
or another, where they knew how to generate a sort of artificial privacy field
by determinedly ignoring each other. Hackworth had arrived at the point where
he frankly didn't care, and so he stared directly at these men, front-line
soldiers of their various microstates, as each one primly folded his navy blue
suit jacket and elbow-crawled into a coffinlike microcabin like a GI squirming
under a roll of concertina wire, accompanied or not by a camp follower.
Hackworth
pointlessly wondered whether he was the only one of this ship's some two
thousand passengers who believed that prostitution (or anything)
was immoral. He did not consider this question in a selfrighteous way, more out
of rueful curiosity; some of the sky-girls were quite fetching. But as he
dragged his body into his microberth, he suffered another attack of the
shivers, reminding him that even if his soul had been willing, his flesh was
simply too weak.
Another
possible explanation for the chills was that Dr. X's nanosites were seeking out
and destroying the ones that H.M. Joint Forces had put in there, waging a turf
war inside his body, and his immune system was doing overtime trying to pick up
the carnage.
Hackworth
unexpectedly fell asleep before the dromond had even pulled away from her
mooring mast, and had dreams about the murderous implements he had seen
magnified on Dr. X's mediatron during his first visit. In the abstract they
were frightening enough. Having a few million of them in his veins didn't do
much for his peace of mind. In the end it wasn't as bad as knowing your blood
was full of spirochetes, which people used to live with for decades. Amazing
what a person could get used to.
When
he settled into bed, he heard a small chime, like faery bells. It was coming
from the little pen dangling from his watch chain, and it meant that he had
mail. Perhaps a thank-you note from Fiona. He couldn't sleep anyway, and so he
took out a sheet of mediatronic paper and spoke the commands that transferred
the mail from the pen charm onto the page.
He
was disappointed to note that it was printed, not handwritten; some kind of
official correspondence, and not, unfortunately, a note from Fiona. When he
began to read it, he understood that it wasn't even official. It wasn't even
from a human. It was a notification sent back to him automatically by a piece
of machinery he had set into motion two years ago. The central message was
wreathed in pages of technical gibberish, maps, graphs, and diagrams. The message
was:
T
H E Y OUNG L ADY'S I L L U S T R A T E D PR I M E R HAS BEEN FOUND.
It
was accompanied by an animated, three-dimensional map of New Chusan with a red
line drawn across it, starting in front of a rather seedy looking high-rise
apartment building in the Leased Territory called Enchantment and making its
way erratically around the island from there.
Hackworth
laughed until his neighbors pounded on the adjoining walls and asked him to
shut up.
Nell
and Harv at large in the Leased Territories; encounter with an inhospitable
security pod: a revelation about the Primer.
The
Leased Territories were too valuable to leave much room for Nature, but the
geotects of Imperial Tectonics Limited had heard that trees were useful for
cleaning and cooling the air, and so they had built in green belts along the
borders between sectors. In the first hour that they lived free in the streets,
Nell glimpsed one of those green belts, though it looked black at the time. She
broke away from Harv and ran toward it down a street that had developed into a
luminescent tunnel of mediatronic billboards. Harv chased her, just barely
matching her speed because he had gotten a worse spanking than she had. They
were almost the only people on the street, certainly the only ones moving
purposefully, and so, as they ran, the messages on the billboards pursued them
like starving wolves, making sure they understood that if they used cerrain
ractives or took certain drugs, they could rely on being able to have sex with certain
unrealistically perfect young persons. Some of the billboards made an even more
elemental pitch, selling the sex directly. The mediatrons on this street were
exceptionally large because they were made to be seen clearly from the heaths,
bluffs, terraces, and courts of the New Atlantis Clave, miles up the mountain.
Unremitting
exposure to this kind of thing produced mediatron burnout among the target
audience. Instead of turning them off and giving people a break for once, the
proprietors had joined in an arms race of sorts, trying to find the magic image
that would make people ignore all the other adverts and fix raptly on theirs.
The obvious step of making their mediatrons bigger than the others had been
taken about as far as it could go. Quite some time ago the content issue had
been settled: tits, tires, and explosions were the only things that seemed to
draw the notice of their supremely jaded focus groups, though from time to time
they would play the juxtaposition card and throw in something incongruous, like
a nature scene or a man in a black turtleneck reading poetry. Once all the
mediatrons were a hundred feet high and filled with tits, the only competitive
strategy that hadn't already been pushed to the redline was technical tricks:
painfully bright flashes, jump-cuts, and simulated 3-D phantoms that made bluff
charges toward specific viewers who didn't seem to be paying enough attention.
It
was down a mile-long gallery of these stimuli that Nell made her unexpected
breakaway, looking from Harv's increasingly distant point of view like an ant
scuttling across a television screen with the intensity and saturation turned
all the way up, violently changing course from time to time as she was menaced
by a virtual pitch-daemon lunging at her from the false parallax of a moving
z-buffer, flaring like a comet against a bogus firmament of video black She
knew that they were fake and in most cases didn't even recognize the products
they were pitching, but her life had taught her everything about dodging. She
couldn't not dodge.
They
hadn't figured out a way to make the adverts come at you headon, and so she
maintained a roughly consistent direction down the middle of the street until
she vaulted an energy-absorbing barrier at its end and vanished into the
forest. Harv followed her a few seconds later, though his arm didn't support
vaulting and so he ended up hurtling ignominiously over the top, like a hyped
autoskater who hadn't seen the barrier at all, just body-kissed it full tilt.
"Nell!" he was already hollering, as he came to rest in a nest of
colorful discarded packaging materials. "You can't stay in here! You can't
stay in the trees, Nell!"
Nell
had already worked her way deep into the woods, or as deep as you could get in
a narrow green belt made to separate one Leased Territory from another. She
fell down a couple of times and banged her head on a tree until, with childish
adaptivity, she realized that she was on one of those surfaces that wasn't flat
like a floor, street, or sidewalk. The ankles would actually have to show some
versatility here. It was like one of those places she had read about in the
Illustrated Primer, a magical zone where the fractal dimension of the terrain
had been allowed to struggle off the pin, bumps supporting smaller copies of
themselves, repeat until microscopic, throw dirt over it, and plant some of
those creepy new Douglas firs that grow as fast as bamboo. Nell soon
encountered a big Doug that had blown down in a recent typhoon, popping its own
rootball out of the ground and thereby excavating a handy depression that
invited nestling. Nell jumped in.
For
a few minutes she found it strangely hilarious that Harv could not find her.
Their flat had only two hiding places, both closets, and so their traditional
exploits in the hide-and-go-seek field had provided them with minimal
entertainment value and left them wondering what the big deal was anyway about
that stupid game.
But
now, here in the dark woods, Nell was beginning to get it. "Do you give
up?" she finally said, and then Harv found her.
He
stood at the edge of the rootball pit and demanded that she come out. She
refused. Finally he clambered down, though to an eye more critical than Nell's
it might have looked as if he were falling. Nell jumped into his lap before he
could get up. "We gotta go," he said.
"I
want to stay here. It's nice," Nell said.
"You
ain't the only one who thinks so," Harv said. "That's why they got
pods here."
"Pods?"
"Aerostats.
For security."
Nell
was delighted to hear it and could not fathom why her brother spoke of security
with such dread in his voice.
A
soprano turbojet seemed to bear down on them, fading in and out as it tacked
through the flora. The creepy apparatus Dopplered down a couple of notes as it
came to a stop directly above them. They couldn't see more than the odd glint
of colored light, picked up by whatever-itwas from the distant mediatrons. A
voice, flawlessly reproduced and just a hair too loud, came out of it:
"Visitors are welcome to stroll through this park at any time. We hope you
have enjoyed your stay. Please inquire if you need directions, and this unit
will assist you."
"It's
nice," Nell said.
"Not
for long," Harv said. "Let's get out of here before it gets
pissed."
"I
like it here."
Bluish
light exploded out of the aerostat. They both hollered as their irises
convulsed. It was hollering right back at them: "Allow me to light your
way to the nearest exit!"
"We're
running away from home," Nell explained. But Harv was scrambling up out of
the hole, yanking Nell behind him with his good hand.
The
thing's turbines screeched briefly as it made a bluff charge. In this fashion
it herded them briskly toward the nearest street.
When
they had finally climbed over a barrier and gotten their feet back on concreta
firma, it snapped off its light and zoomed off without so much as a
fare-thee-well.
"It's
okay, Nell, they always do that."
"Why?"
"So
this place don't fill up with transients."
"What's
that?"
"That's
what we are, now," Harv explained.
"Let's
go stay with your buds!" Nell said. Harv had never introduced Nell to any
of his buds before, she knew them only as children of earlier epochs knew
Gilgamesh, Roland, or Superman.
She
was under the impression that the streets of the Leased Territories were rife
with Harv's buds and that they were more or less all-powerful.
Harv's
face squirmed for a while, and then he said, "We gotta talk about your
magic book."
"The
Young
Lady's Illustrated Primer?"
"Yeah,
whatever it's called."
"Why
must we talk about it?"
"Huh?"
Harv said in the dopey voice he affected whenever Nell talked fancy.
"Why
do we gotta talk about it?" Nell said patiently.
"There's
something I never told you about that book, but I gotta tell you now,"
Harv said. "Come on, let's keep moving, or some creep's gonna come hassle
us." They headed toward the main street of Lazy Bay Towne, which was the
Leased Territory into which the pod had ejected them. The main street curved
along the waterfront, separating a beach from a very large number of drinking
establishments fronted with lurid, bawdy mediatrons.
"I
don't want to go that way," Nell said, remembering that last gauntlet of
electromagnetic pimps. But Harv grabbed her wrist and hobbled downhill, pulling
her behind.
"It's
safer than being in the back streets. Now let me tell you about that book. My
buds and I pinched it and some other stuff from a Vicky we rolled. Doc told us
to roll him."
"Doc?"
"This
Chinese guy who runs the Flea Circus. He said we should roll him, and make sure
we made it good so it'd get picked up on the monitors."
"What
does that mean?"
"Never
mind. He also said he wanted us to lift something from this Vicky- a certain
package about yay big." Harv formed right angles with his thumbs and index
fingers and defined the vertices of a rectangle, book-size. "Gave us to
understand it was valuable. Well, we didn't find any such package. We did find
a shitty old book on him, though. I mean, it looked old and fine, but no one
reckoned it could be the thing Doc was looking for, since he's got lots of
books. So I took it for you.
"Well,
a week or two later, Doc wants to know where is the package, and we told him
this story. When he heard about that book, he flipped and told us that the book
and the package were one and the same.. By that time, you were already playing
with that book all night and all day, Nell, and I couldn't bear to take it away
from you, so I lied. I told him I threw the book down on the sidewalk when I
saw it was junk, and if it wasn't still there, then someone else must have come
along and picked it up. Doc was pissed, but he fell for it.
"That's
why I never brought my buds to the flat. If anyone finds out you still have
that book, Doc'll kill me."
"What
should we do?"
Harv
got a look on his face like he'd rather not talk about it. "For starters,
let's get some free stuff."
They
took a sneaky and indirect route to the waterfront, staying as far as possible
from the clusters of drunks winding through the constellation of incandescent
bordellos like cold dark clumps of rock wending their way through a bright
nebula of young stars.
They
made their way to a public M.C. on a streetcorner and picked out items from the
free menu: boxes of water and nutri-broth, envelopes of sushi made from
nanosurimi and rice, candy bars, and packages about the size of Harv's hand,
festooned with implausible block letter promises ("REFLECTS 99% OF
INFRARED!") that folded out into huge crinkly metallized blankets. Nell
had been noticing a lot of rough shapes strewn around on the beach like giant
chrome-plated larva. Must be fellow transients wrapped up in these selfsame. As
soon as they had scored the goodies, they ran down to the beach and picked out
their own spot. Nell wanted one closer to the surf, but Harv made some very
well-considered observations about the inadvisability of sleeping below high
tide. They trudged along the seawall for a good mile or so before finding a
relatively abandoned bit of beach and wrapped themselves up in their blankets
there. Harv insisted that one of them had to stay awake at all times to act as
a sentry. Nell had learned all about this kind of thing from her virtual
adventures in the Primer, and so she volunteered to stay up first.
Harv
went to sleep pretty soon, and Nell opened up her book. At times like this, the
paper glowed softly and the letters stood out crisp and black, like tree
branches silhouetted against a full moon.
Miranda's
reactions to the evening's events;
solace from an unexpected quarter;
from the Primer, the demise of a hero, flight to the Land Beyond, and the lands of King Magpie.
The Theatre Parnasse had a rather nice bar,
nothing spectacular, just a sort of living room off the main floor, with the
bar itself recessed into one wall. The old furniture and pictures had been
looted by the Red Guards and later replaced with post-Mao stuff that was not as
fine. The management kept the booze locked up when the ractors were working,
not sharing any romantic notions about substance-abusing creative geniuses.
Miranda stumbled down from her box, fixed herself a club soda, and settled into
a plastic chair. She put her shaking hands together like the covers of a book
and then buried her face in them. After a few deep breaths she got tears to
come, though they came silently, a temporary letting-off-steam cry, not the
catharsis she was hoping for. She hadn't earned the catharsis yet, she knew,
because what had happened was just the first act. Just the initial incident, or
whatever they called it in the books.
"Rough
session?" said a voice. Miranda recognized it, but just barely: It was
Carl Hollywood, the dramaturge, in effect her boss. But he didn't sound like a
gruff son of a bitch tonight, which was a switch.
Carl
was in his forties, six and a half feet tall, massively built and given to
wearing long black coats that almost swept the floor. He had long wavy blond
hair drawn back from his forehead and affected a sort of King Tut beard. Either
he was celibate, or else he believed that the particulars of his sexual
orientation and needs were infinitely too complex to be shared with those he
worked with. Everyone was scared shitless of him, and he liked it that way; he
couldn't do his job if he was buddies with all of the ractors.
She
heard his cowboy boots approaching across the bare, stained Chinese rug. He
confiscated her club soda. "Don't want to drink this fizzy stuff when
you're having a cry. It'll come out your nose. You need something like tomato
juice-replace those lost electrolytes. I tell you what," he said, rattling
his tremendous keychain, "I'll break the rules and fix you an
honest-to-god bloody mary. Usually I make 'em with tabasco, which is how we do
it where I'm from. But since your mucus membranes are already irritated enough,
I'll just make a boring one."
By
the time he was finished with this oration, Miranda had gotten her hands away
from her face at least. She turned away from him.
"Kind
of funny racting in that little box, ain't it," Carl said, "kind of
isolating. Theatre didn't used to be that way."
"Isolating?
Sort of," Miranda said. "I could use a little more isolation
tonight."
"You
telling me to leave you alone, or-"
"No!"
Miranda said, sounding desperate to herself. She brought her voice to heel
before continuing. "No, that's not how I meant it. It's just that you
never know what role you're going to play. And some of the roles can cut pretty
deep. If someone handed me a script for what I just did and asked me if I were
interested in the part, I'd refuse it."
"Was
it a porn thing?" Carl Hollywood said. His voice sounded a bit strangled.
He was angry all of a sudden. He had stopped in the middle of the room,
clenching her bloody mary as if he might pop the glass in his fist.
"No.
It wasn't like that," Miranda said. "At least, it wasn't porn in the
sense you're talking about," Miranda said, "though you never know
what turns people on."
"Was
the payer looking to get turned on?"
"No.
Absolutely not," Miranda said. Then, after a long time, she said, "It
was a kid. A little girl."
Carl
gave her a searching look, then remembered his manners and glanced away,
pretending to appraise the carving on the front of the bar.
"So
the next question is," Miranda said after she'd steadied herself with a
few gulps of the drink, "why I should get so upset over a kiddie
ractive."
Carl
shook his head. "I wasn't going to ask it."
"But
you're wondering."
"What
I'm wondering about is my problem," Carl said. "Let's concentrate on
your problems for now." He frowned, sat down across from her and ran his
hand back through his hair absent-mindedly. "Is this that big
account?" He had access to her spreadsheets; he knew how she'd been
spending her time.
"Yeah."
"I've
sat in on a few of those sessions."
"I
know you have."
"Seems
different from normal kiddie stuff. The education is there, but it's darker.
Lots of unreconstructed Grimm Brothers content. Powerful."
"Yeah."
"It's
amazing to me that one kid can spend that much time-"
"Me
too." Miranda took another swallow, then bit off the end of the celery
stick and chewed awhile, stalling. "What it comes down to," she said,
"is that I'm raising someone's kid for them."
Carl
looked her straight in the eye for the first time in a while. "And some
heavy shit just went down," he said.
"Some
very heavy shit, yes."
Carl
nodded.
"It's
so heavy," Miranda said, "that I don't even know if this girl is
alive or dead."
Carl
glanced up at the fancy old clock on the wall, its face yellowed from a century
and a half's accumulation of tar and nicotine. "If she's alive," he
said, "then she probably needs you."
"Right,"
Miranda said. She stood up and headed for the exit. Then, before Carl could
react, she spun on the ball of her foot, bent down, and kissed him on the
cheek.
"Aw,
stop it," he said.
"See
you later, Carl. Thanks." She ran
up the narrow staircase heading for her box.
Baron
Burt lay dead upon the floor of the Dark Castle. Princess Nell was terrified of
the blood that gushed from his wound, but she approached him bravely and
plucked the keychain with the twelve keys from his belt. Then she gathered up
her Night Friends, tucking them into a little knapsack, and hurriedly packed a
picnic lunch while Harv gathered up blankets and ropes and tools for their journey.
They were
walking across the courtyard of the Dark Castle, heading for the great gate
with its twelve locks, when suddenly the evil Queen appeared before them, as
tall as a giant, wreathed in lightning and thunder-clouds! Tears gushed from
her eyes and turned to blood as they rolled down her cheeks. "You have
taken him away from me!" she cried. And Nell understood that this was a
terrible thing for her wicked stepmother, because she was weak and helpless
without a man. "For this," the Queen continued, "I shall curse
you to remain locked up in this Dark Castle forever!" And she reached down
with one hand like talons and snatched the keychain from Princess Nell's hand.
Then she turned into a great vulture and flew away across the ocean toward the
Land Beyond.
"We
are lost!" Harv cried. "Now we shall never escape from this
place!" But Princess Nell did not lose hope. Not long after the Queen had
vanished over the horizon, another bird came flying toward them. It was the
Raven, their friend from the Land Beyond, who frequently came to visit them and
to entertain them with stories of far-off countries and famous heroes.
"Now is your chance to escape," said the Raven. "The evil Queen
is engaged in a great battle of sorcery with the Faery Kings and Queens who
rule the Land Beyond. Throw a rope out of yon arrow-slit, and climb down to
freedom."
Princess
Nell and Harv climbed the stairway into one of the bastions flanking the Dark
Castle's main gate. These had narrow windows where in olden times soldiers should
shoot arrows down at invaders. Harv tied one end of a rope to a hook in the
wall and threw it out one of these slits. Princess Nell threw her Night Friends
out, knowing that they would land harmlessly below. Then she climbed out
through the slit and down the rope to freedom.
"Follow
me, Harv!" she cried. "All is well down here, and it is a much
brighter place than you can possibly imagine!"
"I
cannot," he said. "I am too big to pass through the slit." And
he began to throw out the loaves of bread, pieces of cheese, wineskins, and
pickles that they had packed for their lunch.
"Then
I will come back up the rope and stay with you," Princess Nell said
generously.
"No!"
Harv said, and reeled in the rope, trapping Nell on the outside.
"But I
will be lost without you!" Princess Nell cried.
"That's
your stepmother talking," Harv said. "You are a strong, smart, and
brave girl and can do fine without me."
"Harv
is right," said the Raven, flying overhead. "Your destiny is in the
Land Beyond. Hurry, lest your stepmother return and trap you here."
"Then
I will go to the Land Beyond with my Night Friends," said Princess Nell,
"and I will find the twelve keys, and I will come back here one day and
free you from this Dark Castle."
"I'm
not holding my breath," Harv said, "but thanks anyway."
Down on the
shore was a little boat that Nell's father had once used to row around the
island. Nell climbed in with her Night Friends and began to row.
Nell rowed
for many hours until her back and shoulders ached. The sun set in the west, the
sky became dark, and it became harder to make out the Raven against the
darkling sky. Then, much to her relief, her Night Friends came alive as they
always did. There was plenty of room in the boat for Princess Nell, Purple, Peter,
and Duck, but Dinosaur was so big that he nearly swamped it; he had to sit in
the bow and row while the others sat in the stern trying to balance his weight.
They moved
much faster with Dinosaur's strong rowing; but early in the morning a storm
blew up, and soon the waves were above their heads, above even Dinosaur's head,
and rain was coming down so fast that Purple and Princess Nell had to bail
using Dinosaur's shiny helmet as a bucket. Dinosaur threw out all of his armor
to lighten the load, but it soon became evident that this was not enough.
"Then
I shall do my duty as a warrior," Dinosaur said. "My usefulness to
you is finished, Princess Nell; from now, you must listen to the wisdom of your
other Night Friends and use what you have learned from me only when nothing
else will work." And he dove into the water and disappeared beneath the
waves. The boat bobbed up like a cork. An hour later, the storm began to
diminish, and as dawn approached, the ocean was smooth as glass, and filling
the western horizon was a green country vaster than anything Princess Nell had
ever imagined: the Land Beyond.
Princess
Nell wept bitterly for lost Dinosaur and wanted to wait on the shore in case he
had clung to a piece of flotsam or jetsam and drifted to safety.
"We must not dawdle here," Purple
said, "lest we be seen by one of King Magpie's sentries."
"King
Magpie?" said Princess Nell.
"One
of the twelve Faery Kings and Queens. This shore is part of his domain,"
Purple said. "He has a flock of starlings who watch his borders."
"Too
late!" cried sharp-eyed Peter. "We are discovered!" At that
moment, the sun rose, and the Night Friends turned back into stuffed animals.
A solitary
bird was diving toward them out of the morning sky. When it drew closer, Princess
Nell saw that it was not one of King Magpie's starlings after all; it was their
friend the Raven. He landed on a branch above her head and cried,
"Good
news! Bad news! Where shall I start?"
"With
the good news," Princess Nell said.
"The
wicked Queen lost the battle. Her power has been broken by the other
twelve."
"What
is the bad news?" "Each of them took one of the twelve keys as spoil
and locked it up in his or her royal treasury. You will never be able to
collect all twelve."
"But I
am sworn to get them," said Princess Nell, "and Dinosaur showed me
last night that a warrior must hold to her duty even if it leads her into
destruction. Show me the way to the castle of King Magpie; we will get his key
first."
She plunged
into the forest and, before long, found a dirt road that the Raven said would
lead her toward King Magpie's castle. After a break for lunch she started down
this road, keeping one sharp eye on the sky.
There
followed a funny little chapter in which Nell encountered the footprints of
another traveler on the road, who was soon joined by another traveler, and
another. This continued until nightfall, when Purple examined the footprints
and informed Princess Nell that she had been walking in circles all day.
"But I
have followed the road carefully," Nell said.
"The
road is one of King Magpie's tricks," Purple said. "It is a circular
road. In order to find his castle, we must put on our thinking-caps and use our
own brains, for everything in this country is a trick of one kind or
another."
"But
how can we find his castle if all of the roads are made to deceive us?"
Peter Rabbit said.
"Nell,
do you have your sewing-needle?" Purple said. "Yes," said Nell,
reaching into her pocket and taking out her mending kit.
"Peter,
do you have your magic stone?" Purple continued.
"Yes,"
Peter said, taking it out of his pocket. It did not look magic, being just a
gray lump, but it had the magic property of attracting small bits of metal.
"And
Duck, can you spare a cork from one of the lemonade bottles?"
"This
one's almost empty," Duck said.
"Very
well. I will also need a bowl of water," Purple said, and collected the
three items from her three friends.
Nell
read on into the Primer, learning about how Purple made a compass by magnetizing
the needle, thrusting it through the cork, and floating it in the bowl of
water. She read about their three-day journey through the land of King Magpie,
and of all the tricks it contained-animals that stole their food, quicksand,
sudden rainstorms, appetizing but poisonous berries, snares, and pitfalls set
to catch uninvited guests. Nell knew that if she wanted, she could go back and
ask questions about these things later and spend many hours reading about this
part of the adventure. But the important part seemed to be the discussions with
Peter that ended each day's journey.
Peter
Rabbit was their guide through all of these perils. His eyes were sharp from
eating carrots, and his giant ears could hear trouble coming from miles away.
His quivering nose sniffed out danger, and his mind was too sharp for most of
King Magpie's tricks. Before long they had reached the outskirts of King
Magpie's city, which did not even have a wall around it, so confident was King
Magpie that no invader could possibly pass through all of the traps and
pitfalls in the forest.
Princess
Nell in the city of King Magpie; hyena
trouble; the story of Peter; Nell deals
with a stranger.
The city of King Magpie
was more frightening to Princess Nell than any wilderness, and she would have
sooner trusted her life to the wild beasts of the forest than to many of its
people.
They tried
to sleep in a nice glade of trees in the middle of the city, which reminded
Princess Nell of the glades on the Enchanted Isle. But before they could even
make themselves comfortable, a hissing hyena with red eyes and dripping fangs
came and chased them all away.
"Perhaps
we can sneak back into the glade after it gets dark, when the hyena will not
see us," Nell suggested.
"The
hyena will always see us, even in the dark, because it can see the infrared
light that comes out of our bodies," Purple said.
Eventually,
Nell, Peter, Duck, and Purple found a place to camp in a field where other poor
people lived. Duck set up a little camp and lit a fire, and they had some soup
before going to bed. But try as she might, Princess Nell could not sleep.
She saw
that Peter Rabbit could not sleep either; he only sat with his back to the fire
looking off into the darkness.
"Why
are you looking into the darkness and not into the fire as we do?" Nell
asked.
"Because
the darkness is where danger comes from," Peter said, "and from the
fire comes only illusion. When I was a little bunny running away from home,
that is one of the first lessons I learned."
Peter
went on to tell his own story, just as Dinosaur had earlier in the Primer. It
was a story about how he and his brothers had run away from home and fallen
afoul of various cats, vultures, weasels, dogs, and humans who tended to see
them, not as intrepid little adventurers but as lunch. Peter was the only one
of them who had survived, because he was the cleverest of them all.
I made up
my mind that one day I would avenge my brothers," Peter said.
"Did
you?"
"Well,
that's a long story in itself."
"Tell
it to me!" Princess Nell said.
But before
Peter could launch into the next part of his story, they became aware of a
stranger who was approaching them. "We should wake up Duck and
Purple," Peter said.
"Oh,
let them sleep," Princess Nell said. "They can use the rest, and this
stranger doesn't look so bad."
"What
does a bad stranger look like exactly?" Peter said.
"You
know, like a weasel or a vulture," Princess Nell said.
"Hello,
young lady," said the stranger, who was dressed in expensive clothes and
jewelry. "I couldn't help noticing that you are new to beautiful Magpie
City and down on your luck. I can't sit in my comfortable, warm house eating my
big, tasty meals without feeling guilty, knowing that you are out here suffering.
Won't you come with me and let me take care of you?"
"I
won't leave my friends behind," said Princess Nell. "Of course not-I
wasn't suggesting that," the stranger said. "Too bad they're asleep.
Say, I have an idea! You come with me, your rabbit friend stays awake here to
keep an eye on your sleeping friends, and I'll show you my place-y'know, prove
to you that I'm not some kind of creepy stranger who's trying to take advantage
of you, like you see in all those dumb kids' stories that only little babies
read. You're not a little baby, are you?"
"No, I
don't think so," Princess Nell said.
"Then
come with me, give me a fair hearing, check me out, and if I turn out to be an
okay guy, we'll come back and pick up the rest of your little group. Come on,
time's a wasting!"
Princess
Nell found it very hard to say no to the stranger.
"Don't
go with him, Nell!" Peter said. But in the end, Nell went with him anyway.
In her heart she knew it was wrong, but her head was foolish, and because she
was still just a little girl, she did not feel she could say no to a grownup
man.
At
this point the story became very ractive. Nell stayed up for a while in the
ractive, trying different things. Sometimes the man gave her a drink, and she
fell asleep. But if she refused to take the drink, he would grab her and tie
her up. Either way, the man always turned out to be a pirate, or else he would
sell Princess Nell to some other pirates who would keep her and not let her go.
Nell tried every trick she could think of, but it seemed as though the ractive
were made in such a way that, once she'd made the decision to go away with the
stranger, nothing she could do would prevent her from becoming a slave to the
pirates.
After
the tenth or twelfth iteration she dropped the book into the sand and hunched
over it, crying. She cried silently so Harv wouldn't wake up. She cried for a
long time, seeing no reason to stop, because she felt that she was trapped now,
just like Princess Nell in the book.
"Hey,"
said a man's voice, very soft. At first Nell thought it was coming out of the
Primer, and she ignored it because she was angry at the Primer.
"What's
wrong, little girl?" said the voice. Nell tried to look up toward the
source, but all she saw was fat colored light from the mediatrons filtered
through tears. She rubbed her eyes, but her hands had sand on them. She got
panicky for a moment, because she had realized there was definitely someone
there, a grownup man, and she felt blind and helpless.
Finally
she got a look at him. He was squatting about six feet away from her, a safe
enough distance, watching her with his forehead all wrinkled up, looking
terribly concerned.
"There's
no reason to be crying," he said. "It can't be that bad."
"Who
are you?" Nell said.
"I'm
just a friend who wants to help you. C'mon," he said, cocking his head
down the beach. "I need to talk to you for a second, and I don't want to
wake up your friend there."
"Talk
to me about what?"
"How
I can help you out. Now, come on, do you want help or
not?"
"Sure,"
Nell said.
"Okay.
C'mon then," the stranger said, rising to his feet. He took a step toward
Nell, bent down, and held out one hand. Nell reached for him with her left and
at the last minute flung a handful of sand into his face with her right. "Fuck!"
the stranger said. "You little bitch, I'm gonna get you for that."
The
nunchuks were, as always, under Harv's head. Nell yanked them out and turned
back toward the stranger, spinning her whole body around and snapping her wrist
at the last moment just as Dojo had taught her. The end of the nunchuk struck
the stranger's left kneecap like a steel cobra, and she heard something crack.
The stranger screamed, astonishingly loud, and toppled into the sand.
Nell
spun the nunchuks around, working them up to a hum, and drew a bead on his
temporal bone. But before she could strike, Harv grabbed her wrist. The free
end of the weapon spun around out of control and bonked her on the eyebrow,
splitting it open and giving her a total-body ice-cream headache. She wanted to
throw up.
"Good
one, Nell," he said, "but now's the time to get the hell out of
here."
She
snatched up the Primer. The two of them ran off down the beach, jumping over
the silver larvae that glittered noisily in the mediatronic light. "The cops
are probably gonna be after us now," Harv said. "We gotta go
somewhere."
"Grab
one of those blankets," Nell said. "I have an idea."
They
had left their own silvery blanket behind. A discarded one was overflowing from
a wastebasket by the seawall, so Harv snatched it as they ran by and crumpled
it into a wad.
Nell
led Harv back to the little patch of forest. They found their way to the little
cavity where they had stopped earlier. This time, Nell spread the blanket over
both of them, and they tucked it in all around themselves to make a bubble.
They waited quietly for a minute, then five, then ten. From time to time they
heard the thin whine of a pod going by, but they always kept on going, and
before they knew it they were asleep.
Mysterious
souvenir from Dr. X; Hackworth's arrival
in Vancouver; the Atlantan quarter of
that city; he acquires a new mode of conveyance.
Dr.
X had dispatched a messenger to the Shanghai Aerodrome with instructions to
seek out Hackworth. The messenger had sidled up next to him while he was
addressing a piss-trough, greeted him cheerfully, and taken a piss himself.
Then the two men had exchanged business cards, accepting them with both hands
and a slight bow.
Hackworth's
card was about as flashy as he was. It was white, with his name stamped out in
rather severe capitals. Like most cards, it was made of smart paper and had
lots of memory space left over to store digitized information. This particular
copy contained a matter compiler program descended from the one that had
created the original Young
Lady's Illustrated Primer. This revision used
automatic voice generation algorithms instead of relying on professional
ractors, and it contained all of the hooks that Dr. X's coders would need to
translate the text into Chinese.
The
Doctor's card was more picturesque. It had a few Hanzi characters scrawled
across it and also bore Dr. X's chop. Now that paper was smart, chops were
dynamic. The stamp infused the paper with a program that caused it to run a
little graphics program forever. Dr. X's chop depicted a poxy-looking gaffer
with a conical hat slung on his back, squatting on a rock in a river with a
bamboo pole, hauling a fish out of the water-no wait, it wasn't a fish, it was
a dragon squirming on the end of the line, and just as you realized it, the
gaffer turned and smiled at you insolently. This kitschy tableau then
freeze-framed and morphed cleverly into the characters representing Dr. X's
name. Then it looped back to the beginning.
On
the back of the card were a few mediaglyphs indicating that it was, in fact, a
chit: that is to say, a totipotent program for a matter compiler, combined with
sufficient ucus to run it. The mediaglyphs indicated that it would run only on
a matter compiler of eight cubic meters or larger, which was enormous, and
which made it obvious he was not to use it until he reached America.
He
debarked from the Hanjin
Takhoma at Vancouver, which besides having the most
scenic airship moorage in the world, boasted a sizable Adantan clave. Dr. X
hadn't given him a specific destination-just the chit and a flight number-so
there didn't seem any point in staying aboard all the way to the end of the
line. From here he could always bullet-train down the coast if necessary.
The
city itself was a sprawling bazaar of claves. Consequently it was generously
supplied with agoras, owned and managed by Protocol, where citizens and
subjects of different phyles could convene on neutral ground and trade,
negotiate, fornicate, or whatever. Some of the agoras were simply open plazas
in the classical tradition, others looked more like convention centers or
office buildings. Many of Old Vancouver's pricier and more view-endowed
precincts had been acquired by the Hong Kong Mutual Benevolent Society or the Nipponese,
and the Confucians owned the tallest office building in the downtown area. East
of town in the fertile delta of the Fraser River, the Slays and the Germans
were both supposed to have large patches of Lebensraum staked
out, surrounded by grids of somewhat nastier than usual security pods.
Hindustan had a spray of tiny claves all over the metropolitan area.
The
Atlantis clave climbed out of the water half a mile west of the university, to
which it was joined by a causeway. Imperial Tectonics had made it look like
just another island, as if it had been sitting there for a million years. As
Hackworth's rented velocipede took him over the causeway, cool salt air flowing
through his stubble, he began to relax, finding himself once again on home
territory. On an emerald green playing field above the breakwater, young boys
in short pants were knotted into a scrum, playing at fieldball.
On
the opposite side of the road was the girls' school, which had its own playing
field of equal size, except that this one was surrounded by a dense twelve-foot
hedge so that the girls could run around in very little or skin-tight clothing
without giving rise to etiquette problems. He hadn't slept well in his
microberth and wouldn't have minded checking into the guest hostel and taking a
nap, but it was only eleven in the morning and he couldn't see wasting the day.
So he rode his velocipede to the center of town, stopped in at the first pub he
saw, and had lunch. The bartender gave him directions to the Royal Post Office,
which was just a few blocks away.
The
post office was a big one, sporting a variety of matter compilers, including a
ten-cubic-meter model directly adjacent to the loading dock. Hackworth shoved
Dr. X's chit into its reader and held his breath. But nothing dramatic
happened; the display on the control panel said that this job was going to take
a couple of hours.
Hackworth
killed most of the time wandering around the clave. The middle of town was
smallish and quickly gave way to leafy neighborhoods filled with magnificent
Georgian, Victorian, and Romanesque homes, with the occasional rugged Tudor
perched on a rise or nestled into a verdant hollow. Beyond the homes was a belt
of gentrified farms mingled with golf courses and parks. He sat down on a bench
in one flowery public garden and unfolded the sheet of mediatronic paper that
was keeping track of the movements of the original copy of the Young Lady's Illustrated
Primer. It seemed to have spent some time in a
green belt and then made its way up the hill in the general direction of the
New Atlantis Clave.
Hackworth
took out his fountain pen and wrote a short letter addressed to Lord
Finkle-McGraw.
Your
Grace,
Since
accepting the trust you have reposed in me, I have endeavoured to be perfectly
frank, serving as an open conduit for all information pertaining to the task at
hand. In that spirit, I must inform you that two years ago, in my desperate
search for the lost copy of the Primer, I initiated a search of the Leased
Territories . . . (&c., &c.)
Please
find enclosed a map and other data regarding the recent movements of this book,
whose whereabouts were unknown to me until yesterday. I have no way of knowing
who possesses it, but given the book's programming, I suspect it to be a young
thete girl, probably between the ages of five and seven. The book must have
remained indoors for the last two years, or else my systems would have detected
it. If these suppositions are correct, and if my invention has not fallen
desperately short of intentions, then it is safe to assume that the book has
become an important part of the girl's life . . .
He
went on to write that the book should not be taken from the girl if this were
the case; but thinking about it a bit more carefully, he scribbled out that
part of the letter and it vanished from the page. It was not Hackworth's role
to tell Finkle-McGraw how to manage affairs. He signed the letter and
dispatched it.
Half
an hour letter, his pen chimed again and he checked his mail.
Hackworth,
Message
received. Better late than never. Can't wait to meet the girl.
Yours
&c.
Finkle-McGraw
When
Hackworth got back to the post office and looked through the window of the big
matter compiler, he saw a large machine taking shape in the dim red light. Its
body had already been finished and was now rising slowly as its four legs were
compiled underneath. Dr. X had provided Hackworth with a chevaline.
Hackworth
noted, not without approval, that this one's engineers had put a high priority
on the virtues of simplicity and strength and a low priority on comfort and
style. Very Chinese. No effort was made to disguise it as a real animal. Much
of the mechanical business in the legs was exposed so that you could see how
the joints and pushrods worked, a little like staring at the wheels of an old
steam locomotive. The body looked gaunt and skeletal. It was made of
star-shaped connectors where five or six cigarette-size rods would come
together, the rods and connectors forming into an irregular web that wrapped
around into a geodesic space frame. The rods could change their length.
Hackworth knew from seeing the same construction elsewhere that the web could
change its size and shape to an amazing degree while providing whatever
combination of stiffness and flexibility the controlling system needed at the
moment. Inside the space frame Hackworth could see aluminum-plated spheres and
ellipsoids, no doubt vacuum-filled, containing the mount's machinephase guts:
basically some rod logic and an energy source.
The
legs compiled quickly, the complicated feet took a little longer. When it was
finished, Hackworth released the vacuum and opened the door. "Fold,"
he said. The chevaline's legs buckled, and it lay down on the floor of the M.C.
Its space frame contracted as much as it could, and its neck shortened.
Hackworth bent down, laced his fingers through the space frame, and lifted the
chevaline with one hand. He carried it through the lobby of the post office,
past bemused customers, and out the door onto the street.
"Mount,"
he said. The chevaline rose into a crouch. Hackworth threw one leg over its
saddle, which was padded with some kind of elastomeric stuff, and immediately
felt it shoving him into the air.
His
feet left the ground and flailed around until they found the stirrups. A lumbar
support pressed thoughtfully on his kidneys, and then the chevaline trotted
into the street and began heading back toward the causeway.
It
wasn't supposed to do that. Hackworth was about to tell it to stop. Then he
figured out why he'd gotten the chit at the last minute:
Dr.
X's engineers had been programming something into this mount's brain, telling
it where to take him.
"Name?"
Hackworth said.
"Unnamed,"
the chevaline said.
"Rename
Kidnapper," Hackworth said.
"Name
Kidnapper," said Kidnapper; and sensing that it was reaching the edge of
the business district, it started to canter. Within a few minutes they were
blasting across the causeway at a tantivy. Hackworth turned back toward
Atlantis and looked for pursuing aerostats; but if Napier was tracking him, he
was doing so with some subtlety.
A
morning stroll through the Leased Territories; Dovetail; a congenial Constable.
High
up the mountain before them, they could see St. Mark's Cathedral and hear its
bells ringing changes, mostly just tuneless sequences of notes, but sometimes a
pretty melody would tumble out, like an unexpected gem from the permutations of
the I Ching.
The
Diamond Palace of Source Victoria glittered peach and amber as it caught the
sunrise, which was still hidden behind the mountain. Nell and Harv had slept
surprisingly well under the silver blanket, but they had not by any means slept
late. The martial reveille from the Sendero Clave had woken them, and by the
time they hit the streets again, Sendero's burly Korean and Incan evangelists
were already pouring out of their gate into the common byways of the Leased
Territories, humping their folding mediatrons and heavy crates of little red
books. "We could go in there, Nell," Harv said, and Nell thought he
must be joking. "Always plenty to eat and a warm cot in Sendero."
"They
wouldn't let me keep my book," Nell said.
Harv
looked at her, mildly startled. "How do you know? Oh, don't tell me, you
learned it from the Primer."
"They
only have one book in Sendero, and it tells them to burn all the other
books."
As
they climbed toward the green belt, the way got steeper and Harv started
wheezing. From time to time he would stop with his hands on his knees and cough
in high hoarse bursts like the bark of a seal. But the air was cleaner up here,
they could tell by the way it felt going down their throats, and it was colder
too, which helped.
A
band of forest surrounded the high central plateau of New Chusan. The clave
called Dovetail backed right up against this green belt and was no less densely
wooded, though from a distance it had a finer texture-more and smaller trees,
and many flowers.
Dovetail
was surrounded by a fence made of iron bars and painted black. Harv took one
look at it and said it was a joke if that was all the security they had. Then
he got to noticing that the fence was lined with a greensward about a stone's
throw in width, smooth enough for championship croquet. He raised his eyebrows
significantly at Nell, implying that any unauthorized personnel who tried to
walk across it would be impaled on hydraulic stainless-steel spikes or shot
through with cookiecutters or rent by robot dogs.
The
gates to Dovetail stood wide open, which deeply alarmed Harv. He got in front
of Nell lest she try to run through them. At the boundary line, the pavement
changed from the usual hard-but-flexible, smoothbut-high-traction nanostuff to
an irregular mosaic of granite blocks.
The
only human in evidence was a white-haired Constable whose belly had created a
visible divergence between his two rows of brass buttons. He was bent over
using a trowel to extract a steaming turd from the emerald grass. Circumstances
suggested that it had come from one of two corgis who were even now slamming
their preposterous bodies into each other not far away, trying to roll each
other over, which runs contrary to the laws of mechanics even in the case of
corgis that are lean and trim, which these were not.
This
struggle, which appeared to be only one skirmish in a conflict of epochal
standing, had driven all lesser considerations, such as guarding the gate, from
the combatants' sphere of attention, and so it was the Constable who first
noticed Nell and Harv. "Away with you!" he hollered cheerfully
enough, waving his redolent trowel down the hill. "We've no work for such
as you today! And the free matter compilers are all down by the
waterfront."
The
effect of this news on Harv was contrary to what the Constable had intended,
for it implied that sometimes there was work for such as
him. He stepped forward alertly. Nell took advantage of this to run out from
behind him. "Pardon me, sir," she called, "we're not here for
work or to get free things, but to find someone who belongs to this
phyle."
The
Constable straightened his tunic and squared his shoulders at the appearance of
this little girl, who looked like a thete but talked like a Vicky. Suspicion
gave way to benevolence, and he ambled toward them after shouting a few
imprecations at his dogs, who evidently suffered from advanced hearing loss.
"Very well," he said. "Who is it that you're looking for?"
"A
man by the name of Brad. A blacksmith. He works at a stable in the New Atlantis
Clave, taking care of horses."
"I
know him well," the Constable said. "I'd be glad to ring him for you.
You're a . . . friend of his, then?"
"We
should like to think that he remembers us favorably," Nell said. Harv
turned around and made a face at her for talking this way, but the Constable
was eating it up.
"It's
a brisk morning," the Constable said. "Why don't you join me inside
the gatehouse, where it's nice and cozy, and I'll get you some tea."
On
either side of the main gate, the fence terminated in a small stone tower with
narrow diamond-paned windows set deeply into its walls. The Constable entered
one of these from his side of the fence and then opened a heavy wooden door
with huge wrought-iron hinges, letting Nell and Harv in from their side. The
tiny octagonal room was cluttered with fine furniture made of dark wood, a shelf
of old books, and a small cast-iron stove with a red enamel kettle on top,
pocked like an asteroid from ancient impacts, piping out a tenuous column of
steam. The Constable directed them into a pair of wooden chairs. Trying to
scoot them back from the table, they discovered that each was ten times the
weight of any other chair they'd seen, being made of actual wood, and thick
pieces of it too.
They
were not especially comfortable, but Nell liked sitting in hers nevertheless,
as something about its size and weight gave her a feeling of security. The
windows on the Dovetail side of the gatehouse were larger, and she could see
the two corgi dogs outside, peering in through the lead latticework,
flabbergasted that they had, through some enormous lacuna in procedure, been
left on the outside, wagging their tails somewhat uncertainly, as if, in a
world that allowed such mistakes, nothing could be counted on.
The
Constable found a wooden tray and carried it about the room, cautiously
assembling a collection of cups, saucers, spoons, tongs, and other tea-related
armaments. When all the necessary tools were properly laid out, he manufactured
the beverage, hewing closely to the ancient procedure, and set it before them.
Resting
on a counter by the window was an outlandishly shaped black object that Nell
recognized as a telephone, only because she had seen them on the old passives
that her mother liked to watch- where they seemed to take on a talismanic
significance out of proportion to what they actually did. The Constable picked
up a piece of paper on which many names and strings and digits had been
hand-written. He turned his back to the nearest window, then leaned backward
over the counter so as to bring most of him closer to its illumination. He
tilted the paper into the light and then adjusted the elevation of his own chin
through a rather sweeping arc, converging on a position that placed the lenses
of his reading spectacles between pupil and page. Having maneuvered all of
these elements into the optimal geometry, he let out a little sigh, as though
the arrangement suited him, and peered up over his glasses at Nell and Harv for
a moment, as if to suggest that they could learn some valuable tricks by
keeping a sharp eye on him. Nell watched him, fascinated not least because she
rarely saw people in spectacles.
The
Constable returned his attention to the piece of paper and scanned it with a
furrowed brow for a few minutes before suddenly calling out a series of several
numbers, which sounded random to his visitors but seemed both deeply
significant and perfectly obvious to the Constable.
The
black telephone sported a metal disk with finger-size holes bored around its
edge. The Constable hooked the phone's handset over his epaulet and then began
to insert his finger into various of these holes, using them to torque the disk
around against the countervailing force of a spring. A brief but exceedingly
cheerful conversation ensued. Then he hung up the telephone and clasped his
hands over his belly, as if he had accomplished his assigned tasks so
completely that said extremities were now superfluous decorations.
"It'll
be a minute," he said. "Please take your time, and don't scald
yourselves on that tea. Care for some shortbread?"
Nell
was not familiar with this delight. "No thank you, sir," she said,
but Harv, ever pragmatic, allowed as he might enjoy some.
Suddenly
the Constable's hands found a new reason for existence and began to busy
themselves exploring the darker corners of old wooden cupboards here and there
around the little room. "By the way," he said absent-mindedly, as he
pursued this quest, "if you had in mind actually passing through the
gate, that is to say, if you wanted to visit Dovetail, as you
would be abundantly welcome to do, then you should know a few things about our
rules. He stood up and turned toward them, displaying a tin box labeled
SHORTBREAD.
"To
be specific, the young gentleman's chocky sticks and switchblade will have to
come out of his trousers and lodge here, in the loving care of me and my
colleagues, and I will have to have a good long look at that monstrous chunk of
rod logic, batteries, sensor arrays, and what-haveyou that the young lady is
carrying in her little knapsack, concealed, unless I am mistaken, in the guise
of a book. Hmmm?" And the Constable turned toward them with his eyebrows
raised very high on his forehead, shaking the plaid box.
Constable
Moore, as he introduced himself, examined Harv's weapons with more care than
really seemed warranted, as if they were relics freshly exhumed from a pyramid.
He took care to compliment Harv on their presumed effectiveness, and to
meditate aloud on the grave foolishness of anyone's messing about with a young
fellow like Harv. The weapons went into one of the cupboards, which Constable
Moore locked by talking to it. "And now the book, young lady," he
said to Nell, pleasantly enough.
She
didn't want to let the Primer out of her hands, but she remembered the kids at
the playroom who had tried to take it from her and been shocked, or something,
for their trouble. So she handed it over. Constable Moore took it very
carefully in both hands, and a tiny little moan of appreciation escaped his
lips. "I should inform you that sometimes it does rather nasty things to
people who, as it supposes, are trying to steal it from me," Nell said,
then bit her lip, hoping she hadn't implied that Constable Moore was a thief.
"Young
lady, I should be crestfallen if it didn't."
After
Constable Moore had turned the book over in his hands a few times,
complimenting Nell on the binding, the gold script, the feel of the paper, be
set it down gingerly on the table, first rubbing his hand over the wood to
ensure no tea or sugar had earlier been spilled there. He wandered away from
the table and seemed to stumble at random upon an oak-and-brass copier that sat
in one of the obtuse corners of the octagonal room. He happened upon a few
pages in its output tray and went through them for a bit, from time to time
chuckling ruefully. At one point he looked up at Nell and shook his head
wordlessly before finally saying, "Do you have any idea . . ." but
then he just chuckled again, shook his head, and went back to the papers.
"Right,"
he finally said, "right." He fed the papers back into the copier and
told it to destroy them. He thrust his fists into his trouser pockets and
walked up and down the length of the room twice, then sat down again, looking
not at Nell and Harv and not at the book, but somewhere off into the distance.
"Right," he said. "I will not confiscate the book during your
stay in Dovetail, if you follow certain conditions. First of all, you will not
under any circumstances make use of a matter compiler. Secondly, the book is
for your use, and your use only. Third, you will not copy or reproduce any of
the information contained in the book. Fourth, you will not show the book to
anyone here or make anyone aware of its existence. Violation of any of these
conditions will lead to your immediate expulsion from Dovetail and the
confiscation and probable destruction of the book. Do I make myself
clear?"
"Perfectly
clear, sir," Nell said. Outside, they heard the thrudalump thrudalump of
an approaching horse.
A
new friend; Nell sees a real horse; a ride through Dovetail; Nell and Harv are separated.
The
person on the horse was not Brad, it was a woman Nell and Harv didn't know. She
had straight reddish-blond hair, pale skin with thousands of freckles, and
carrot-colored eyebrows and eyelashes that were almost invisible except when
the sun grazed her face. "I'm a friend of Brad's," she said.
"He's at work. Does he know you?"
Nell
was about to pipe up, but Harv shushed her with a hand on her arm and gave the
woman a somewhat more abridged version than Nell might have provided. He
mentioned that Brad had been "a friend of" their mother's for a
while, that he had always treated them kindly and had actually taken them to
the NAC to see the horses. Not far into the story, the blank expression on the
woman's face was replaced by one that was somewhat more guarded, and she
stopped listening. "I think Brad told me about you once," she finally
said when Harv had wandered into a blind alley. "I know he remembers you.
So what is it that you would like to happen now?"
This
was a poser. Nell and Harv had settled into a habit of concentrating very
strongly on what they would like not to happen. They
were baffled by options, which to them seemed like dilemmas. Harv left off
clutching Nell's arm and took her hand instead. Neither of them said anything.
"Perhaps," Constable Moore finally
said, after the woman had turned to him for a cue, "it would be useful for
the two of you to set awhile in some safe, quiet place and gather your
thoughts."
"That
would do nicely, thank you," Nell said.
"Dovetail
contains many public parks and gardens . .
"Forget
it," the woman said, knowing her cue when she heard it. "I'll take
them back to the Milihouse until Brad gets home. Then," she said
significantly to the Constable, "we'll figure something out."
The
woman stepped out of the gatehouse briskly, not looking back at Nell and Harv.
She was tall and wore a pair of loose khaki trousers, much worn at the knees
but hardly at all in the seat, and splotched here and there with old
unidentifiable stains. Above that she wore a very loose Irish fisherman's
sweater, sleeves rolled up and safety-pinned to form a dense woolen torus
orbiting each of her freckled forearms, the motif echoed by a whorl of cheap
silver bangles on each wrist. She was muttering something in the direction of
her horse, an Appaloosa mare who had already swung her neck down and begun to
nuzzle at the disappointingly close-cropped grass inside the fence, looking for
a blade or two that had not been marked by the assiduous corgis. When she
stopped to stroke the mare's neck, Nell and Harv caught up with her and learned
that she was simply giving a simplified account of what had just happened in
the gatehouse, and what was going to happen now, all delivered rather
absent-mindedly, just in case the mare might want to know.
For
a moment Nell thought that the mare might actually be a chevaline dressed up in
a fake horse skin, but then it ejected a stream of urine the dimensions of a
fencepost, glittering like a light saber in the morning sun and clad in a torn
cloak of steam, and Nell smelled it and knew the horse was real. The woman did
not mount the horse, which she had apparently ridden bareback, but took its
reins as gently as if they were cobwebs and led the horse on. Nell and Harv
followed, a few paces behind, and the woman walked across the green for some
time, apparently organizing things in her mind, before finally tucking her hair
behind her ear on one side and turning toward them. "Did Constable Moore
talk to you about rules at all?"
"What
rules?" Harv blurted before Nell could get into it in a level of detail
that might have cast a negative light on them. Nell marveled for the hundredth
time at her brother's multifarious trickiness, which would have done Peter
himself proud.
"We
make things," the woman said, as if this provided a nearly perfect and
sufficient explanation of the phyle called Dovetail. "Brad makes
horseshoes. But Brad's the exception because mostly he provides services
relating to horses. Doesn't he, Eggshell?" the woman added for the mare's
benefit. "That's why he had to live down in the L.T. for a while, because
there was disagreement as to whether grooms, butlers, and other service
providers fit in with Dovetail's charter. But we had a vote and decided to let
them in. This is boring you, isn't it? My name's Rita, and I make paper."
"You
mean, in the M.C.?"
This
seemed like an obvious question to Nell, but Rita was surprised to hear it and
eventually laughed it off. "I'll show you later. But what I was getting at
is that, unlike where you've been living, everything here at Dovetail was made
by hand. We have a few matter compilers here. But if we want a chair, say, one
of our craftsmen will put it together out of wood, just like in ancient
times."
"Why
don't you just compile it?" Harv said. "The M.C. can make wood."
"It
can make fake wood," Rita said, "but some people don't like fake
things."
"Why
don't you like fake things?" Nell asked.
Rita
smiled at her. "It's not just us. It's them," she said, pointing up
the mountain toward the belt of high trees that separated Dovetail from New
Atlantis territory.
Light
dawned on Harv's face. "The Vickys buy stuff from you!" he said.
Rita
looked a little surprised, as if she'd never heard them called Vickys before.
"Anyway, what was I getting at? Oh, yeah, the point is that everything
here is unique, so you have to be careful with it."
Nell
had a rough idea of what unique was, but Harv didn't, and so Rita explained it
for a while as they walked through Dovetail. At some length it dawned on both
Nell and Harv that Rita was actually trying to tell them, in the most
bewilderingly circumspect way imaginable, that she didn't want them -to run
around and break stuff. This approach to child behavior modification was so at
odds with everything they knew that, in spite of Rita's efforts to be pleasant,
the conversation was blighted by confusion on the children's part and
frustration on hers. From time to time her freckles vanished as her face turned
red.
Where
Dovetail had streets, they were paved with little blocks of stone laid close
together. The vehicles were horses, chevalines, and velocipedes with fat knobby
tires. Except for one spot where a number of buildings clustered together
around a central green, houses were widely spaced and tended to be very small
or very large. All of them seemed to have nice gardens though, and from time to
time Nell would dart off the road to smell a flower. At first Rita would watch
her nervously, telling her not to pick any of the flowers as they belonged to
other people.
At
the end of a road was a wooden gate with a laughably primitive latch consisting
of a sliding plank, glossy with use. Past the gate, the road became a very
rough mosaic of flagstones with grass growing between them. It wound between undulating
pastures where horses and the occasional dairy cow grazed and eventually
terminated at a great three-story stone building perched on the bank of a river
that ran down the mountain from the New Atlantis Clave.
A
giant wheel grew out of the side of the building and spun slowly as the river
pushed on it. A man stood outside before a large chopping-block, using a
hatchet with an exceptionally wide blade to split thin wedges of red wood from
a log. These were piled into a wicker basket that was hauled up on a rope by a
man who stood on the roof, replacing some of the old gray shingles with these
new red ones.
Harv
was paralyzed with wonder at this exhibition and stopped walking. Nell had seen
much the same sort of process at work in the pages of her Primer. She followed
Rita over to a long low building where the horses lived.
Most
of the people did not live in the Millhouse proper but in a couple of long
outbuildings, two stories each, with workshops below and living quarters above.
Nell was a little surprised to see that Rita did not actually live with Brad.
Her apartment and her shop were each twice the size of Nell's old flat and
filled with fine things of heavy wood, metal, cotton, linen, and porcelain
that, as Nell was beginning to understand, had all been made by human hands,
probably right here in Dovetail.
Rita's
shop had great kettles where she would brew thick fibrous stew. She spread the
stew thinly over screens to draw out the water and flattened it with a great
hand-cranked press to make paper, thick and roughedged and subtly colored from
the thousands of tiny fibers wending through it. When she had a stack of paper
made, she would take it next door to a shop with a sharp oily smell, where a
bearded man with a smudged apron would run it through another big hand-cranked
machine. When it came out of this machine, it had letters on the top, giving
the name and address of a lady in New Atlantis.
Since
Nell had been decorous so far and not tried to stick her fingers into the
machinery and not driven anyone to distraction with her questions, Rita gave
her leave to visit some of the other shops, as long as she asked permission at
each one. Nell spent most of the day making friends with various shopowners: a
glassblower, a
jeweler, a cabinetmaker, a weaver, even a.
toymaker who gave her a tiny wooden doll in a calico dress.
Harv
spent a while bothering the men who were putting shingles on the roof, then
wandered about in the fields for most of the day, kicking small rocks from
place to place, generally scoping out the boundaries and general condition of
the community centered on the Millhouse. Nell checked in on him from time to
time. At first he looked tense and skeptical, then he relaxed and enjoyed it,
and finally, late in the afternoon, he became surly and perched himself on a
boulder above the running stream, tossing pebbles into it, chewing his
thumbnail, and thinking.
Brad
came home early, riding a bay stallion straight down the mountain from the New
Atlantis Clave, angling through the green belt and piercing the dog pod grid
with scant consequences as the authorities knew him. Harv approached him with a
formal mien, harrumphing phlegm out of the way as he prepared to offer up an
explanation and a plea. But Brad's eyes merely glanced over Harv, settled on
Nell, appraised her for a moment, then looked away shyly. The verdict was that
they could stay the night, but all else depended on legal niceties that were
beyond his powers.
"Have
you done anything the Shanghai Police might find interesting?" Brad asked
Harv gravely. Harv said no, a simple no without the usual technicalities,
provisos, and subclauses.
Nell
wanted to tell Brad everything. But she had been noticing how, in the Primer,
whenever someone asked Peter Rabbit a direct question of any kind, he always
lied.
"To
look at our green fields and big houses, you might think we're on Atlantis turf
here," Brad said, "but we're under Shanghai jurisdiction just like
the rest of the Leased Territories. Now usually the Shanghai Police don't come
around, because we are peaceable folk and because we have made certain
arrangements with them. But if it were known that we were harboring runaway
gang members-"
"'Nuff
said," Harv blurted. It was clear that he had already worked all of this
out in his head as he sat on the riverbank and was only waiting for the adults
to catch up with his logic. Before Nell understood what was going on, he came
up to her and gave her a hug and a kiss on the lips. Then he turned away from
her and began running across a green field, down toward the ocean. Nell ran
after him, but she could not keep up, and finally she fell down in a stand of
bluebells and watched Harv dissolve into a curtain of tears. When she could no
longer see him, she curled up sobbing, and in time Rita came and gathered her
up in her strong arms and carried her slowly back across the field to the
Millhouse where the steady wheel rolled.
Orphans
of the Han are exposed to the benefits of modern educational technology; Judge Fang reflects on the fundamental
precepts of Confucianism.
The
orphanage ships had built-in matter compilers, but they could not, of course,
be hooked up to Sources. Instead they drew their supplies of matter from
cubical containers, rather like tanks of atoms arranged very precisely. These
containers could be loaded on board with cranes and hooked up to the matter
compilers in the same way that Feed lines would be if they resided on shore.
The ships put in to Shanghai frequently, offloaded empty containers, and took
new ones on board-their hungry populations were fed almost exclusively on
synthetic rice produced by the matter compilers.
There
were seven ships now. The first five had been named after the Master's Five
Virtues, and after that they had taken to naming them after major Confucian
philosophers. Judge Fang flew out to the one named (as best it could be
translated into English) Generosity of Soul, personally
carrying the M.C. program in the sleeve of his garment. This was the very ship
he had visited on the eventful night of his boat ride with Dr. X, and ever
since then he had somehow felt closer to these fifty thousand little mice than
any of the other quarter-million in the other vessels.
The
program was written to work in a bulk compiler, extruding dozens of Primers
each cycle. When the first batch was finished, Judge Fang plucked out one of
the new volumes, inspected its cover, which had the appearance of marbled jade,
flipped through the pages admiring the illustrations, and cast a critical eye
over the calligraphy.
Then
he carried it down a corridor and into a playroom where a few hundred little
mice were running around, blowing off steam. He caught the eye of one girl and
beckoned her over. She came, reluctantly, chivvied along by an energetic
teacher who alternated between smiling to the girl and bowing to Judge Fang.
He
squatted so that he could look her in the eye and handed her the book. She was
much more interested in the book than in Judge Fang, but she had been taught
the proper formalities and bowed and thanked him. Then she opened it up. Her
eyes got wide. The book began to talk to her. To Judge Fang the voice sounded a
bit dull, the rhythm of the speech not exactly right. But the girl didn't care.
The girl was hooked.
Judge
Fang stood up to find himself surrounded by a hundred little girls, all facing
toward the little jade book, standing on tiptoes, mouths open.
Finally
he had been able to do something unambiguously good with his position. In the
Coastal Republic it wouldn't have been possible; in the Middle Kingdom, which
hewed to the words and spirit of the Master, it was simply part of his duties.
He
turned and left the room; none of the girls noticed, which was just as well, as
they might have seen a quiver in his lip and a tear in his eye. As he made his
way through the corridors toward the upper deck where his airship awaited him,
he reviewed for the thousandth time the Great Learning, the kernel of the
Master's thought: The
ancients who wished to demonstrate illustrious virtue throughout the kingdom,
first ordered well their own states. Wishing to order well their states, they
first regulated their families. Wishing to regulate their families, they first
cultivated their persons. Wishing to cultivate their persons, they first
rectified their hearts. Wishing to rectify their hearts, they first sought to
be sincere in their thoughts. Wishing to be sincere in their thoughts, they
first extended to the utmost their knowledge. Such extention of knowledge lay
in the investigation of things. . . . From the Son of Heaven down to the mass
of the people, all must consider the cultivation of the person the root of
everything besides.
Hackworth
receives an ambiguous message; a ride
through Vancouver; tattooed woman and
totem poles; he enters the hidden world of the Drummers.
Kidnapper
had a glove compartment of sorts hollowed into the back of its neck. As he was
riding across the causeway, Hackworth opened it up because he wanted to see
whether it was large enough to contain his bowler without folding, bending,
spindling, or mutilating the exquisite hyperboloid of its brim. The answer was
that it was just a wee bit too small. But Dr. X had been thoughtful enough to
toss in some snacks: a handful of fortune cookies, three of them to be exact.
They looked good. Hackworth picked one and snapped it open. The strip of paper
bore some kind of gaudily animated geometric pattern, long strands of something
tumbling end over end and bouncing against one another. It looked vaguely familiar:
These were supposed to be yarrow stalks, which Taoists used for divination. But
instead of forming a hexagram of the I Ching, they began falling into place,
one after another, in such a way as to form letters in the pseudo-Chinese
typeface used in the logos of onestar Chinese restaurants. When the last one
had bounced into place, the fortune read:
SEEK THE
ALCHEMIST.
"Thanks
ever so much, Dr. X," Hackworth snapped. He continued to watch the fortune
for a while, hoping that it would turn into something a little more
informative, but it was dead, just a piece of litter now and forever.
Kidnapper
slowed to a canter and cruised purposefully through the university, then turned
north and crossed a bridge into the peninsula that contained most of Vancouver
proper. The chevaline did a perfectly good job of not stepping on anyone, and
Hackworth soon learned to stop worrying and trust its instincts. This left his
eyes free to wander through the sights of Vancouver, which had not been
advisable when he'd come this way on the velocipede. He had not noticed,
before, the sheer maddening profusion of the place, each person seemingly an
ethnic group of one, each with his or her own costume, dialect, sect, and
pedigree. It was as if, sooner or later, every part of the world became India
and thus ceased to function in any sense meaningful to straight-arrow Cartesian
rationalists like John Percival Hackworth, his family and friends.
Shortly
after passing the Aerodrome they reached Stanley Park, an unruined peninsula
several miles around, which had, thank God, been forked over to Protocol and
kept much as it had always been, with the same Douglas firs and mossy red
cedars that had been growing there forever. Hackworth had been here a few times
and had a vague idea of how it was laid out: restaurants here and there, paths
along the beach, a zoo and aquarium, public playing fields.
Kidnapper
took him for a nice lope along a pebbly beach and then somewhat abruptly
bounded up a slope, for that purpose switching into a gait never used by any
real horse. Its legs shortened, and it clawed its way surefootedly up the
forty-five-degree surface like a mountain lion. An alarmingly quick zigzag
through a stand of firs brought them into an open grassy area. Then Kidnapper
slowed to a mere walk, as if it were a real horse that had to be cooled down
gradually, and took Hackworth into a semicircle of old totem poles.
A
young woman was here, standing before one of the poles with her hands clasped
behind her back, which would have given her an endearingly prim appearance if
she had not been stark naked and covered with constantly shifting mediatronic
tattoos. Even her hair, which fell loosely to her waist, had been infiltrated
with some kind of nanosite so that each strand's color fluctuated from place to
place according to a scheme not just now apparent to Hackworth. She was looking
intently at the carving of a totem pole and apparently not for the first time,
for her tattoos were done in much the same style.
The
woman was looking at a totem pole dominated by a representation of an orca,
head down and tail up, dorsal fin projecting horizontally out of the pole and
evidently carved from a separate piece of wood. The orca's blowhole had a human
face carved around it. The face's mouth and the orca's blowhole were the same
thing. This promiscuous denial of boundaries was everywhere on the totem poles
and on the woman's tattoo: The staring eyes of a bear were also the faces of
some other sort of creature. The woman's navel was also the mouth of a human
face, much like the orca's blowhole, and sometimes that face became the mouth
of a larger face whose eyes were her nipples and whose goatee was her pubic
hair. But as soon as he'd made out one pattern, it would change into something
else, because unlike the totem poles the tattoo was dynamic and played with
images in time the same way that the totem poles did in space.
"Hello,
John," she said. "It's too bad I loved you because you had to
leave."
Hackworth
tried to find her face, which should have been easy, it being the thing in the
front of her head; but his eyes kept snagging on all the other little faces
that came and went and flowed into one another, time-sharing her eyes, her
mouth, even her nostrils. And he was starting to recognize patterns in her hair
too, which was more than he could handle. He was pretty sure he had just caught
a glimpse of Fiona in there.
She
turned her back on him, her hair spinning out momentarily like a twirling
skirt, and for that instant he could see through it and begin to make sense of
the image. He was positive that somewhere in there he'd seen Gwen and Fiona
walking along a beach.
He
dismounted from Kidnapper and followed her on foot. Kidnapper followed him
silently. They walked across the park for half a mile or so, and Hackworth kept
his distance because when he got too close to her, the images in her hair
bewildered his eyes. She took him to a wild stretch of beach where immense
Douglas fir logs lay scattered around. As Hackworth clambered over the logs
trying to keep up with the woman, he occasionally caught a handhold that
appeared to have been carved by someone long ago.
The
logs were palimpsests. Two of them rose from the water's edge, not quite
vertical, stuck like darts into the impermanent sand. Hackworth walked between
them, the surf crashing around his knees. He saw weathered intimations of faces
and wild beasts living in the wood, ravens, eagles, and wolves tangled into
organic skeins. The water was bitterly cold on his legs, and he whooped in a
couple of breaths, but the woman kept walking; the water was up past her waist
now, and her hair was floating around her so that the translucent images once
again became readable. Then she vanished beneath a collapsing wave two meters
high.
The
wave knocked Hackworth on his backside and washed him along for a short
distance, flailing his arms and legs. When he got his balance back, he sat
there for a few moments, letting smaller waves embrace his waist and chest,
waiting for the woman to come up for a breath. But she didn't.
There
was something down there. He rolled up onto his feet and tramped straight into
the ocean. Just as the waves were coming up into his face, his feet contacted
something hard and smooth that gave way beneath him. He was sucked downward as
the water plunged into a subterranean void. A hatch slammed shut above his
head, and suddenly he was breathing air again. The light was silver.
He
was sitting in water up to his chest, but it rapidly drained away, drawn off by
some kind of a pumping system, and then he found himself looking down a long
silvery tunnel. The woman was descending it, a stone's throw ahead of him.
Hackworth
had been in a few of these, normally in more industrial settings. The .entrance
was dug into the beach, but the rest of it was a floating tunnel, a tube full
of air, moored to the bottom. It was a cheap way to make space; the Nipponese
used these things as sleeping quarters for foreign guest workers. The walls
were made of membranes that drew oxygen from the surrounding seawater and
ejected carbon dioxide, so that seen from a fish's point of view, the tunnels
steamed like hot pasta on a cold steel plate as they excreted countless
microbubbles of polluted CO2. These things extruded themselves into the water like
the roots that grew out of improperly stored potatoes, forking from time to
time, carrying their own Feeds forward so that they could be extended on
command. They were empty and collapsed to begin with, and when they knew they
were finished, they inflated themselves with scavenged oxygen and grew rigid.
Now
that the cold water had drained out of Hackworth's ears, he could hear a deep
drumming that he'd mistaken at first for the crash of the surf overhead; but
this had a steadier beat that invited him forward.
Down
the tunnel Hackworth walked, following the woman, and as he went the light grew
dimmer and the tunnel narrower. He suspected that the walls of the tunnel had
mediatronic properties because he kept seeing things from the corners of his
eyes that were no longer there when he snapped his head around. He'd assumed
that he would soon reach a chamber, a swelling in the tunnel where this woman's
friends would sit pounding on enormous kettledrums, but before reaching any
such thing, he came to a place where the tunnel had gone completely dark, and
he had to crouch to his knees and feel his way along. When he touched the taut
but yielding wall of the tunnel with his knees and his hands, he felt the
drumming in his bones and realized that audio was built into the stuff; the
drumming could be anywhere, or it could be recorded. Or maybe it was a lot
simpler than that, maybe the tubes happened to transmit sound well, and
somewhere else in the tunnel system, people were just pounding on the walls.
His
head contacted the tunnel. He dropped to his belly and began to crawl along.
Swarms of tiny sparkling lights kept lunging past his face, and he realized
that they were his hands; light-emitting nanosites had become embedded in his
flesh. They must have been put there by Dr. X's physician; but they had not
come alight until he entered these tunnels.
If
the woman hadn't already come through here, he would have given up at this
point, thinking it a dead end, a busted tunnel that had failed to expand. The
drumming was now coming into his ears and bones from all sides. He could not
see a thing, though from time to time he thought he caught a glimmer of
flickering yellow light.
The
tunnel undulated slightly in the deep currents, rivers of bitterly cold water
swirling along the floor of the straits. Whenever he allowed his mind to
wander, reminding himself that he was deep below the surface of the ocean here,
he had to stop and force himself not to panic. Concentrate on the nice
airfilled tunnel, not what surrounds it.
There
was definitely light ahead. He found himself in a swelling in the tube, just
wide enough to sit up in, and rolled over on his back for a moment to rest. A
lamp was burning in here, a bowl filled with some kind of melting hydrocarbon
that left no ash or smoke. The mediatronic walls had animated scenes on them,
barely visible in the flickering light: animals dancing in the forest.
He
followed the tubes for some period of time that was quite long but difficult to
estimate. From time to time he would come to a chamber with a lamp and more
paintings. As he crawled through the long perfectly black tunnels, he began to
experience visual and auditory hallucinations, vague at first, just random
noise knocking around in his neural net, but increasingly well-resolved and
realistic.
The
hallucinations had a dreamlike quality in which things he'd actually seen
recently, such as Gwen and Fiona, Dr. X, the airship, the boys playing
fieldball, were mingled with images so alien he scarcely recognized them. It
troubled him that his mind was taking something as dear to him as Fiona and
blending her into a farrago of alien sights and ideas.
He
could see the nanosites in his skin. But for all he knew, he might have a
million more living in his brain now, piggybacking on axons and dendrites,
sending data to one another in flashes of light. A second brain intermingled
with his own.
There
was no reason that information could not be relayed from one such nanosite to
another, through his body and outward to the nanosites in his skin, and from
there across the darkness to others. What would happen when he came close to
other people with similar infestations?
When
he finally reached the grand chamber, he could not really tell whether it was
reality or another machine-made hallucination. It was shaped like a flattened
ice-cream cone, a domed ceiling above a gently sloping conical floor. The
ceiling was a vast mediatron, and the floor served as an amphitheatre.
Hackworth spilled into the room abruptly as the drumming reached a crescendo.
The floor was slick, and he slid down helplessly until he reached the central
pit. He rolled onto his back and saw a fiery scene sprawling across the dome
above, and in his peripheral vision, covering the floor of the theatre, a
thousand living constellations pounding on the floor with their hands.
Bred
and born in the Foreign regions beyond, there is much in the administration of
the Celestial Dynasty that is not perfectly comprehensible to the Barbarians,
and they are continually putting forced constructions on things of which it is
difficult to explain to them the real nature. -Qiying
PART THE
SECOND
Hackworth
has a singular experience; the rite of the Drummers.
In
a cavernous dark space lit by many small fires, a young woman, probably not
much more than a girl, stands on a pedestal naked except for an elaborate paint
job, or maybe it is a total-body mediatronic tattoo. A crown of leafy branches
is twined around her head, and she has thick voluminous hair spreading to her
knees. She is clutching a bouquet of roses to her breast, the thorns indenting
her flesh. Many people, perhaps thousands, surround her, drumming madly,
sometimes chanting and singing.
Into
the space between the girl and the watchers, a couple of dozen men are
introduced. Some come running out of their own accord, some look as if they've
been pushed, some wander in as if they've been walking down the street (stark
naked) and gone in the wrong door. Some are Asian, some European, some African.
Some have to be prodded by frenzied celebrants who charge out of the crowd and
shove them here and there. Eventually they form a circle around the girl, and
then the drumming builds to a deafening crescendo, speeds up until it devolves
into a rhythmless hailstorm, and then suddenly, instantly, stops.
Someone
wails something in a high, purposeful, ululating voice. Hackworth can't
understand what this person is saying. Then there is a single massive drumbeat.
More wailing. Another drumbeat. Again. The third drumbeat establishes a
ponderous rhythm. This goes on for a while, the beat slowly speeding up. After
a certain point the wailer no longer stops between beats, he begins to weave
his rap through the bars in a sort of counterpoint. The ring of men standing around
the girl begin to dance in a very simple shuffling motion, one way and then the
other way around the girl. Hackworth notes that all of them have erections,
sheathed in brightly colored mediatronic condoms-rubbers that actually make
their own light so that the bobbing boners look like so many cyalume wands
dancing through the air.
The
drumbeats and the dancing speed up very slowly. The erections tell Hackworth
why this is taking so long: He's watching foreplay here. After half an hour or
so, the excitement, phallic and otherwise, is unbearable. The beat is now a
notch faster than your basic pulse rate, lots of other beats and counterrhythms
woven through it, and the chanting of the individual singer has become a wild
semi-organized choral phenomenon. At some point, after seemingly nothing has
happened for half an hour, everything happens at once: The drumming and
chanting explode to a new, impossible level of intensity. The dancers reach
down, grip the flaccid reservoir tips of their radioactive condoms, stretch
them out.
Someone
runs out with a knife and cuts off the tips of the condoms in a freakish parody
of circumcision, exposing the glans of each man's penis. The girl moves for the
first time, tossing her bouquet up in the air like a bride making her move
toward the limo; the roses fountain, spinning end over end, and come down
individually among the dancers, who snatch them out of the air, scrabble for
them on the floor, whatever. The girl faints, or something, falling backward,
arms out, and is caught by several of the dancers, who hoist her body up over
their heads and parade her around the circle for a while, like a crucified body
just crowbarred off the tree. She ends up flat on her back on the ground, and
one of the dancers is between her legs, and in a very few thrusts he has
finished. A couple of others grab his arms and yank him out of there before
he's even had a chance to tell her he'll still love her in the morning, and
another one is in there, and he doesn't take very long either-all this foreplay
has got these guys in hair-trigger mode. The dancers manage to rotate through
in a few minutes. Hackworth can't see the girl, who's completely hidden, but
she's not struggling, as far as he can tell, and they don't seem to be holding
her down. Toward the end, smoke or steam or something begins to spiral up from
the middle of the orgy. The last participant grimaces even more than the
average person who's having an orgasm, and yanks himself back from the woman,
grabbing his dick and hopping up and down and hollering in what looks like
pain. That's the signal for all of the dancers to jump back away from the
woman, who is now kind of hard to make out, just a fuzzy motionless package
wrapped in steam.
Flames
erupt from several locations, all over her body, at once, seams of lava
splitting open along her veins and the heart itself erupting from her chest
like ball lightning. Her body becomes a burning cross spread out on the floor,
the bright apex of an inverted cone of turbulent steam and smoke. Hackworth
notices that the drumming and chanting have completely stopped. The crowd
observes a long moment of silence while the body burns. Then, when the last of
the flames have died out, an honor guard of sorts descends from the crowd: four
men in black body paint with white skeletons painted on top of that. He notes
that the woman was lying on a square sheet of some kind when she burned. Each
of the guys grabs a corner of the sheet. Her remains tumble into the center,
powdery ash flies, flecks of red-hot coals spark. The skeleton men carry the
remains over to a fifty-five-gallon steel drum and dump it in. There is a burst
of steam and lots of sizzling noises as the hot coals contact some kind of
liquid that was in the drum. One of the skeleton men picks up a long spoon and
gives the mix a stir, then dips a cracked and spalled University of Michigan
coffee mug into it and takes a long drink.
The
other three skeleton men each drink in their turn. By now, the spectators have
formed a long queue. One by one they step forward. The leader of the skeleton
men holds the mug for them, gives each one a sip. Then they all wander off,
individually or in small, conversing groups. Show's over.
Nell's
life at Dovetail; developments in the
Primer; a trip to the New Atlantis
Clave; she is presented to Miss
Matheson; new lodgings with an
"old" acquaintance.
Nell
lived in the Millhouse for several days. They gave her a little bed under the
eaves on the top floor, in a cozy place only she was tiny enough to reach. She
had her meals with Rita or Brad or one of the other nice people she knew there.
During the days she would wander in the meadow or dangle her feet in the river
or explore the woods, sometimes going as far as the dog pod grid. She always
took the Primer with her. Lately, it had been filled with the doings of
Princess Nell and her friends in the city of King Magpie.
It
kept getting more like a ractive and less like a story, and by the end of each
chapter she was exhausted from all the cleverness she had expended just to get
herself and her friends through another day without falling into the clutches
of pirates or of King Magpie himself.
In
time, she and Peter came up with a very tricky plan to sneak into the castle,
create a diversion, and seize the magic books that were the source of King
Magpie's power. This plan failed the first time, but the next day, Nell turned
the page back and tried it again, this time with a few changes. It failed
again, but not before Princess Nell and her friends had gotten a little farther
into the castle. The sixth or seventh time, the plan worked perfectly-while
King Magpie was locked in a battle of riddles with Peter Rabbit (which Peter
won), Purple used a magic spell to smash open the door to his secret library,
which was filled with books even more magical than the Young Lady's Illustrated
Primer. Hidden inside one of those books was a
jeweled key. Princess Nell took the key, and Purple made off with several of
King Magpie's magic books while she was at it.
They
made a breathtaking escape across a river into the next country, where King
Magpie could not chase them, and camped in a nice meadow for a few days,
resting. During the daytime, when the others were just stuffed animals,
Princess Nell would peruse some of the new magic books that Purple had stolen.
When she did, its image in the illustration would zoom toward her until it
filled the page, and then the Primer itself would become that magical book
until she decided to put it away.
Nell's
favorite book was a magical Atlas which she could use to explore any land, real
or imaginary. During the nighttime, Purple spent most of her time reading a
very large, crusty, worn, stained, burnt tome entitled PANTECHNICON.
This book had a built-in hasp with a padlock. Whenever Purple wasn't using it,
she locked it shut. Nell asked to see it a few times, but Purple told her she
was too young to know such things as were written in this Book.
During
this time, Duck as usual made herself busy around the camp, tidying up and
fixing their meals, doing laundry on the rocks by the river, and mending their
clothes that had become ragged during their wanderings. Peter became restless.
He was quick with words, but he had not learned the trick of reading, and so
the books from King Magpie's library were of no use to him save as nest-lining
material. He got into the habit of exploring the surrounding forests,
particularly the ones to the north. At first he would be gone for a few hours
at a time, but once he stayed away all night and did not come back until the
following noon. Then he began to go on trips for several days at a time.
Peter
vanished into the north woods one day, staggering under a heavy pack, and
didn't come back at all. . . .
Nell was in the
meadow one day, gathering flowers, when a fine lady- a Vicky- came riding
toward her on a horse. When she drew closer, Nell was surprised to see that the
horse was Eggshell and the lady was Rita, all dressed up in a long dress like
the Vicky ladies wore, with a riding hat on her head, and riding sidesaddle of
all things.
"You
look pretty," Nell said.
"Thank
you, Nell," Rita said. "Would you like to look like this too, for a
little while? I have a surprise for you."
One
of the ladies who lived in the Millhouse was a milliner, and she had made Nell
a dress, sewing it all together by hand. Rita had brought this dress with her,
and she helped Nell change into it, right there in the middle of the meadow.
Then she braided Nell's hair and even tucked some tiny wildflowers into it.
Finally she helped Nell climb up on top of Eggshell with her and began riding
back toward the Millhouse.
"You
will have to leave your book here today," Rita said.
"Why?"
"I'm
taking you through the grid, into New Atlantis Clave," Rita said.
"Constable Moore told me that I should not on any account allow you to
carry your book through the grid. He said it would only stir things up. I know
you're about to ask me why, Nell, but I don't have an answer."
Nell
ran upstairs, tripping over her long skirts a couple of times, and left the
Primer in her little nook. Then she climbed back on Eggshell with Rita. They
rode over a little stone bridge above the water-wheel and through the woods,
until Nell could hear the faint afflatus of the security aerostats. Eggshell slowed
to a walk and pushed gingerly through the field of shiny hovering teardrops.
Nell even reached out and touched one, then snapped her hand back, even though
it hadn't done anything except push back. The reflection of her face slithered
backward across the surface of this pod as they went by.
They
rode across the territory of New Atlantis for some time without seeing anything
other than trees, wildflowers, brooks, the occasional squirrel, or deer.
"Why
do the Vickys have such a big clave?" Nell asked.
"Don't
ever call them Vickys," Rita said.
"Why?"
"It's
a word that people who don't like them use to describe them in kind of a bad,
unfriendly way," Rita said.
"Like
a pejorative term?" Nell said.
Rita
laughed, more nervous than amused. "Exactly."
"Why
do the Atlantans have such a big clave?"
"Well,
each phyle has a different way, and some ways are better suited to making money
than others, so some have a lot of territory and others don't."
"What
do you mean, a different way?"
"To
make money you have to work hard-to live your life in a certain way. The
Atlantans all live that way, it's part of their culture. The Nipponese too. So
the Nipponese and the Atlantans have as much money as all the other phyles put
together."
"Why
aren't you an Atlantan?"
"Because
I don't want to live that way. All the people in Dovetail like to make
beautiful things. To us, the things that the Atlantans do- dressing up in these
kinds of clothes, spending years and years in school-are irrelevant. Those
pursuits wouldn't help us make beautiful things, you see. I'd rather just wear
my blue jeans and make paper."
"But
the M.C. can make paper," Nell said.
"Not
the kind that the Atlantans like."
"But
you make money from your paper only because the Atlantans make money from
working hard," Nell said.
Rita's
face turned red and she said nothing for a little while. Then, in a tight
voice, she said, "Nell, you should ask your book the meaning of the word discretion."
They
came across a riding-trail dotted with great mounds of horse manure, and began
following it uphill. Soon the trail was hemmed in between dry stone walls,
which Rita said that one of her friends in Dovetail had made. Forest gave way
to pastures, then lawns like jade glaciers, and great houses on hilltops,
surrounded by geometric hedges and ramparts of flowers. The trail became a
cobblestone road that adopted new lanes from time to time as they rode into
town. The mountain kept rising up above them for some distance, and on its
green summit, half veiled behind a thin cloud layer, Nell could see Source
Victoria.
From
down in the Leased Territories, the New Atlantis Clave had always looked clean
and beautiful, and it was certainly those things. But Nell was surprised at how
cool the weather was here compared to the L.T. Rita explained that the
Atlantans came from northern countries and didn't care for hot weather, so they
put their city high up in the air to make it cooler.
Rita
turned down a boulevard with a great flowery park running down the middle. It
was lined with red stone row-houses with turrets and gargoyles and beveled
glass everywhere. Men in top hats and women in long dresses strolled, pushed
perambulators, rode horses or chevalines. Shiny dark green robots, like
refrigerators tipped over on their sides, hummed down the streets at a
toddler's walking pace, squatting over piles of manure and inhaling them.
From
place to place there was a messenger on a bicycle or an especially fancy
personage in a black, full-lane car. Rita stopped Eggshell in front of a house
and paid a little boy to hold the reins. From the saddlebags she took a sheaf
of new paper, all wrapped up in special wrapping-paper that she'd also made.
She carried it up the steps and rang the bell. The house had a round tower on the
front, lined with bow windows with stained-glass inserts above them, and
through the windows and the lace curtains Nell could see, on different stories,
crystal chandeliers and fine plates and dark brown wooden bookcases lined with
thousands and thousands of books.
A
parlormaid let Rita in the door. Through the window, Nell could see Rita
putting a calling-card on a silver tray held out by the maid-a salver, they
called it. The maid carried it back, then emerged a couple of minutes later and
directed Rita into the back of the house.
Rita
didn't come back for half an hour. Nell wished she had the Primer to keep her
company. She talked to the little boy for a bit; his name was Sam, he lived in
the Leased Territories, and he put on a suit and took the bus here every
morning so that he could hang around on the street holding people's horses and
doing other small errands.
Nell
wondered whether Tequila worked in any of these houses, and whether they might
run into her by accident. Her chest always got a tight feeling when she thought
of her mother. Rita came out of the house. "Sorry," she said, "I
got out as fast as I could, but I had to stay and socialize. Protocol, you
know."
"Explain
protocol," Nell said. This was how she always talked to the Primer.
"At
the place we're going, you need to watch your manners. Don't say 'explain this'
or 'explain that.'
"Would
it impose on your time unduly to provide me with a concise explanation of the
term protocol?"
Nell said.
Again
Rita made that nervous laugh and looked at Nell with an expression that looked
like poorly concealed alarm. As they rode down the street, Rita talked about
protocol for a little bit, but Nell wasn't really listening because she was
trying to figure out why it was that, all of a sudden, she was capable of
scaring grownups like Rita.
They
rode through the most built-up part of town, where the buildings and gardens
and statues were all magnificent, and none of the streets were the same: Some
were crescents, some were courts, or circles or ovals, or squares surrounding
patches of greenery, and even the long streets turned this way and that. They
passed from there into a less built-up area with many parks and playing fields
and finally pulled up in front of a fancy building with ornate towers,
surrounded by a wrought-iron fence and a hedge. Over the door it said MISS
MATHESON'S ACADEMY OF THE THREE GRACES.
Miss
Matheson received them in a cozy little room. She was between eight hundred and
nine hundred years of age, Nell estimated, and drank tea from fancy
thimble-size cups with pictures painted on them. Nell tried to sit up straight
and be attentive, emulating certain proper young girls she had read about in
the Primer, but her eye kept wandering to the contents of the bookshelves, the pictures
painted on the tea service and the painting on the wall above Miss Matheson's
head, which depicted three ladies prancing about in a grove in diaphanous
attire.
"Our
rolls are filled, the term has already begun, and you have none of the
prerequisites. But you come with compelling recommendations," Miss
Matheson said after she had peered lengthily at her small visitor.
"Pardon
me, madam, but I do not understand," Nell said.
Miss
Matheson smiled, her face blooming into a sunburst of radiating wrinkles.
"It is not important. Let us only say that we have made room for you. This
institution makes it a practice to accept a small number of students who are
not New Atlantan subjects. The propagation of Atlantan memes is central to
our mission, as a school and as a society. Unlike some phyles, which propagate
through conversion or through indiscriminate exploitation of the natural
biological capacity that is shared, for better or worse, by all persons, we
appeal to the rational faculties. All children are born with rational
faculties, which want only development. Our academy has recently welcomed
several young ladies of extra-Atlantan extraction, and it is our expectation
that all will go on to take the Oath in due time."
"Pardon
me, madam, but which one is Aglaia?" Nell said, looking over Miss
Matheson's shoulder at the painting.
"I
beg your pardon?" Miss Matheson said, and initiated the procedure of
turning her head around to look, which at her age was a civil-engineering
challenge of daunting complexity and duration.
"As
the name of your school is the Three Graces, I have ventured to assume that
yonder painting depicts the same subject," Nell said, "since they
look more like Graces than Furies or Fates. I wonder if you would be so kind as
to inform me which of the ladies represents Aglaia, or brilliance."
"And
the other two are?" Miss Matheson said, speaking out of the side of her
mouth as she had almost got herself turned around by this point.
"Euphrosyne,
or joy, and Thalia, or bloom," Nell said.
"Would
you care to venture an opinion?" Miss Matheson said.
"The
one on the right is carrying flowers, so perhaps she is Thalia."
"I
would call that a sound assumption."
"The
one in the middle looks so happy that she must be Euphrosyne, and the one on
the left is lit up with rays of sunlight, so perhaps she is Aglaia."
"Well,
as you can see, none of them is wearing a nametag, and so we must satisfy
ourselves with conjecture," Miss Matheson said. "But I fail to see
any gaps in your reasoning. And no, I don't suppose they are Fates or
Furies." .
. .
"It's a
boarding school, which means many of the pupils live there. But you won't live
there," Rita said, "because it isn't proper." They were riding
Eggshell home through the woods.
"Why
isn't it proper?"
"Because
you ran away from home, which raises legal problems."
"Was
it illegal for me to run away?"
"In
some tribes, children are regarded as an economic asset of their parents. So if
one phyle shelters runaways from another phyle, it has a possible economic
impact which is covered under the CEP." Rita looked back at Nell,
appraising her coolly. "You have a sponsor of sorts in New Atlantis. I
don't know who. I don't know why. But it seems that this person cannot take the
risk of being the target of CEP legal action. Hence arrangements have been made
for you to stay in Dovetail for now.
"Now,
we know that some of your mother's boyfriends treated you badly, and so there
is sentiment in Dovetail to take you in. But we can't keep you at the Millstone
community, because if we got into a fracas with Protocol, it could sour our
relations with our New Atlantis clients. So it's been decided that you will
stay with the one person in Dovetail who doesn't have any clients here."
"Who's
that?"
"You've
met him," Rita said.
Constable
Moore's house was dimly lit and so full of old stuff that even Nell had to walk
sideways in some places. Long strips of yellowed rice paper, splashed with
large Chinese characters and pimpled with red chop marks, hung from a molding
that ran around the living room a foot or two beneath the ceiling. Nell
followed Rita around a corner into an even smaller, darker, and more crowded
room, whose main decoration was a large painting of a furious chap with a Fu
Manchu mustache, goatee, and tufts of whiskers sprouting in front of his ears
and trailing down below his armpits, wearing elaborate armor and chain mail
decorated with lion's faces. Nell stepped away from this fierce picture despite
herself, tripped over the drone of a large bagpipe splayed across the floor,
and crashed into a large beaten-copper bucket of sorts, which made tremendous
smashing noises. Blood welled quietly from a smooth cut on the ball of her
thumb, and she realized that the bucket was being used as a repository for a
collection of old rusty swords of various descriptions.
"You
all right?" Rita said. She was backlit with blue light coming in through a
pair of glass doors. Nell put her thumb in her mouth and picked herself up.
The
glass doors looked out on Constable Moore's garden, a riot of geraniums,
foxtails, wisteria, and corgi droppings. On the other side of a small
khaki-colored pool rose a small garden house. Like this one, it was built from
blocks of reddish-brown stone and roofed with rough-edged slabs of green-gray
slate. Constable Moore himself could be descried behind a screen of somewhat
leggy rhododendrons, hard at work with a shovel, continually harassed by the
ankle-biting corgis.
He
was not wearing a shirt, but he was wearing a skirt: a red plaid
number. Nell hardly noticed this incongruity because the corgis heard Rita
turning the latch on the glass doors and rushed toward them yapping, and this
drew out the Constable himself, who approached them squinting through the dark
glass, and once he was out from behind the rhodies, Nell could see that there
was something amiss with the flesh of his body. Overall he was well
proportioned, muscular, rather thick around the middle, and evidently in decent
health. But his skin came in two colors, which gave him something of a marbled
look. It was as though worms had eaten through his torso, carving out a network
of internal passageways that had later been backfilled with something that
didn't quite match.
Before
she could get a better look, he plucked a shirt from the back of a lawn chair
and shrugged it on. Then he subjected the corgis to a minute or so of
close-order drill, using a patch of moss-covered flagstones as parade ground,
and stringently criticizing their performance in tones loud enough to penetrate
through the glass doors. The corgis pretended to listen attentively. At the end
of the performance, Constable Moore burst in through the glass doors. "I
shall be with you momentarily," he said, and disappeared into a back room
for a quarter of an hour. When he returned, he was dressed in a tweed suit and
a rough-hewn sweater over a very fine-looking white shirt. The last article
looked too thin to prevent the others from being intolerably scratchy, but
Constable Moore had reached the age when men can subject their bodies to the
worst irritations-whiskey, cigars, woolen clothes, bagpipes-without feeling a
thing or, at least, without letting on.
"Sorry
to have burst in on you," Rita said, "but there was no answer when we
rang the bell."
"I
don't care," said Constable Moore, not entirely convincingly.
"There's a reason why I don't live up there." He pointed upward,
vaguely in the direction of the New Atlantis Clave. "Just trying to trace
the root system of some infernal vine back to its source. I'm afraid it might
be kudzu." The Constable narrowed his eyes as he spoke this word, and
Nell, not knowing what kudzu was, supposed that if kudzu were something that
could be attacked with a sword, burned, throttled, bludgeoned, or blown up, it
would not stand a chance for long in Constable Moore's garden-once, that is, he
got round to it.
"Can
I interest you in tea? Or"-this was directed to Nell- "some hot
chocolate?"
"Sounds
lovely, but I can't stay," Rita said.
"Then
let me see you to the door," Constable Moore said, standing up. Rita
looked a little startled by this abruptness, but in another moment she was
gone, riding Eggshell back toward the Millhouse.
"Nice
lady," Constable Moore muttered out in the kitchen.
"Fine
of her to do what she did for you. Really a very decent lady. Perhaps not the
sort who deals very well with children. Especially peculiar children."
"Am
I to live here now, sir?" Nell said.
"Out
in the garden house," he said, coming into the room with a steaming tray
and nodding through the glass windows and across the garden. "Vacant for
some time. Cramped for an adult, perfect for a child. The decor of this
house," he said, glancing around the room, "is not really suitable
for a young one."
"Who
is the scary man?" Nell said, pointing to the big painting.
"Guan
Di. Emperor Guan. Formerly a soldier named Guan Yu. He was never really an
emperor, but later on he became the Chinese god of war, and they gave him the
title just to be respectful. Terribly respectful, the Chinese-it's their best
and worst feature."
"How
could a man become a god?" Nell asked.
"By
living in an extremely pragmatic society," said Constable Moore after some
thought, and provided no further explanation. "Do you have the book, by
the way?"
"Yes,
sir."
"You
didn't take it through the border?"
"No,
sir, as per your instructions."
"That's
good. The ability to follow orders is a useful thing, especially if you're
living with a chap who's used to giving them." Seeing that Nell had gotten
a terribly serious look on her face, the Constable huffed and looked
exasperated. "It doesn't really matter, mind you! You have friends in high
places. It's just that we are trying to be discreet." Constable Moore
brought Nell her cup of cocoa. She needed one hand for the saucer and another
for the cup, so she took her hand out of her mouth.
"What
did you do to your hand?"
"Cut
it, sir."
"Let
me see that." The Constable took her hand in his and peeled the thumb away
from the palm. "Quite a nice little slash. Looks recent."
"I
got it from your swords."
"Ah,
yes. Swords are that way," the Constable said absently, then screwed up
his brow and turned back to Nell. "You did not cry," he said,
"and you did not complain."
"Did
you take all of those swords away from burglars?" Nell said.
"No-that
would have been relatively easy," Constable Moore said. He looked at her
for a while, pondering. "Nell, you and I will do just fine together,"
he said. "Let me get my first-aid kit."
Carl
Hollywood's activities at the Parnasse;
conversation over a milk shake;
explanation of the media system; Miranda perceives the futility of her
quest.
Miranda
found Carl Hollywood sitting fifth row center in the Parnasse, holding a big
sheet of smart foolscap on which he had scrawled blocking diagrams for their
next live production. He apparently had it crosslinked to a copy of the script,
because as she sidestepped her way down the narrow aisle, she could hear voices
rather mechanically reading lines, and as she came closer she could see the
little X's and 0's representing the actors moving around on the diagram of the
stage that Carl had sketched out.
The
diagram also included some little arrows along the periphery, all aimed inward.
Miranda realized that the arrows must be the little spotlights mounted to the
fronts of the balconies, and that Carl Hollywood was programming them.
She
rolled her head back and forth, trying to loosen up her neck, and looked up at
the ceiling. The angels or Muses or whatever they were, were all parading
around up there, accompanied by a few cherubs. Miranda thought of Nell. She
always thought of Nell.
The
script came to the end of its scene, and Carl paused it.
"You
had a question?" he asked, a bit absently.
"I've
been watching you work from my box."
"Naughty
girl. Should be making money for us."
"Where'd
you learn to do that stuff?"
"What-directing
plays?"
"No.
The technical stuff-programming the lights and so on."
Carl
turned around to look at her. "This may be at odds with your notion of how
people learn things," he said, "but I had to teach myself everything.
Hardly anyone does live theatre ar;Tmore, so we have to develop our own
technology. I invented all of the software I was just using."
"Did
you invent the little spotlights?"
"No.
I'm not as good at the nanostuff. A friend of mine in London came up with
those. We swap stuff all the time-my mediaware for his matterware."
"Well,
I want to buy you dinner somewhere," Miranda said, "and
I want you to explain to me how it all works."
"That's
a rather tall order," Carl said calmly, "but I accept the invitation.
. . .
"Okay, do
you want a complete grounding in the whole thing, starting with Turing
machines, or what?" Carl said pleasantly- humoring her. Miranda decided
not to become indignant. They were in a red vinyl booth at a restaurant near
the Bund that supposedly simulated an American diner on the eve of the Kennedy
assassination. Chinese hipsters-classic Coastal Republic types in their
expensive haircuts and sharp suits-were lined up on the rotating stools along
the lunch counter, sucking on their root beer floats and flashing wicked grins
at any young women who came in.
"I
guess so," Miranda said.
Carl
Hollywood laughed and shook his head. "I was being facetious. You need to
tell me exactly what you want to know. Why are you suddenly taking up an
interest in this stuff? Aren't you happy just making a good living from
it?"
Miranda
sat very still for a moment, hypnotized by the colorful flashing lights on a
vintage jukebox.
"This
is related to Princess Nell, isn't it?" Carl said.
"Is
it that obvious?"
"Yeah.
Now, what do you want?"
"I
want to know who she is," Miranda said. This was the most guarded way she
could put it. She didn't suppose that it would help matters to drag Carl down
through the full depth of her emotions.
"You
want to backtrace a payer," Carl said. It sounded terrible when he
translated it into that kind of language.
Carl
sucked powerfully on his milk shake for a bit, his eyes looking
over Miranda's shoulder to the traffic on the Bund. "Princess
Nell's a little kid, right?"
"Yes.
I would estimate five to seven years old."
His
eyes swiveled to lock on hers. "You can tell that?"
"Yes,"
she said, in tones that warned him not to question it.
"So
she's probably not paying the bill anyway. The payer is someone else. You need
to backtrace the payer and then, from there, track down Nell." Carl broke
eye contact again, shook his head, and tried unsuccessfully to whistle through
frozen lips. "Even the first step is impossible."
Miranda
was startled. "That seems pretty unequivocal. I expected to hear
'difficult' or 'expensive.' But-"
"Nope.
It's impossible. Or maybe"-Carl thought about it for a while-"maybe
'astronomically improbable' is a better way of putting it." Then he looked
mildly alarmed as he watched Miranda's expression change. "You can't just
trace the connection backward. That's not how media works."
"How
does media work, then?"
"Look
out the window. Not toward the Bund-check out Yan'an
Road."
Miranda
swiveled her head around to look out the big window, which was partly painted
over with colorful Coke ads and descriptions of blue plate specials. Yan'an
Road, like all of the major thoroughfares in Shanghai, was filled, from the shop
windows on one side to the shop windows on the other, with people on bicycles
and powerskates. In many places the traffic was so dense that greater speed
could be attained on foot. A few half-lane vehicles sat motionless, polished
boulders in a sluggish brown stream.
It
was so familiar that Miranda didn't really see anything. "What
am I looking for?"
"Notice
how no one's empty-handed? They're all carrying something."
Carl
was right. At a minimum, everyone had a small plastic bag with something in it.
Many people, such as the bicyclists, carried heavier loads.
"Now
just hold that image in your head for a moment, and think about how to set up a
global telecommunications network."
Miranda
laughed. "I don't have any basis for thinking about something like
that."
"Sure
you do. Until now, you've been thinking in terms of the telephone system in the
old passives. In that system, each transaction had two participants-the two
people having the conversation. And they were connected by a wire that ran through
a central switchboard. So what are the key features of this system?"
"I
don't know-I'm asking you," said Miranda.
"Number
one, only two people, or entities, can interact.
Number
two, it uses a dedicated connection that is made and then broken for the
purposes of that one conversation. Number three, it is inherently
centralized-it can't work unless there is a central switchboard."
"Okay,
I think I'm following you so far."
"Our
media system today-the one that you and I make our livings from-is a descendant
of the phone system only insofar as we use it for essentially the same
purposes, plus many, many more. But the key point to remember is that it is totally different
from the old phone system. The old phone system-and its
technological cousin, the cable TV system- tanked. It crashed and burned
decades ago, and we started virtually from scratch."
"Why?
It worked, didn't it?"
"First
of all, we needed to enable interactions between more than one entity. What do
I mean by entity? Well, think about the ractives. Think about First Class to Geneva.
You're on this train- so are a couple of dozen other people. Some of those
people are being racted, so in that case the entities happen to be human
beings. But others-like the waiters and porters-are just software robots.
Furthermore, the train is full of props: jewelry, money, guns, bottles of wine.
Each one of those is also a separate piece of software-a separate entity. In
the lingo, we call them objects. The train itself is another object, and so is the
countryside through which it travels.
"The
countryside is a good example. It happens to be a digital map of France. Where
did this map come from? Did the makers of First Class to Geneva send
out their own team of surveyors to make a new map of France? No, of course they
didn't. They used existing data-a digital map of the world that is available to
any maker of ractives who needs it, for a price of course. That digital map is
a separate object. It resides in the memory of a computer somewhere. Where exactly?
I don't know. Neither does the ractive itself. It doesn't matter. The
data might be in California, it might be in Paris, it might be down at the
corner-or it might be distributed among all of those places and many more. It
doesn't matter. Because our media system no longer works like the old system-
dedicated wires passing through a central switchboard. It works like
that." Carl pointed to the traffic on the street again.
"So
each person on the street is like an object?"
"Possibly.
But a better analogy is that the objects are people like us, sitting in various
buildings that front on the street. Suppose that we want to send a message to
someone over in Pudong. We write the message down on a piece of paper, and we
go to the door and hand it to the first person who goes by and say, 'Take this
to Mr. Gu in Pudong.' And he skates down the street for a while and runs into
someone on a bicycle who looks like he might be headed for Pudong, and says,
'Take this to Mr. Gu.' A minute later, that person gets stuck in traffic and
hands it off to a pedestrian who can negotiate the snarl a little better, and
so on and so on, until eventually it reaches Mr. Gu. When Mr. Gu wants to
respond, he sends us a message in the same way."
"So
there's no way to trace the path taken by a message."
"Right.
And the real situation is even more complicated. The media net was designed
from the ground up to provide privacy and security, so that people could use it
to transfer money. That's one reason the nationstates collapsed-as soon as the
media grid was up and running, financial transactions could no longer be
monitored by governments, and the tax collection systems got fubared. So if the
old IRS, for example, wasn't able to trace these messages, then there's no way
that you'll be able to track down Princess Nell."
"Okay,
I guess that answers my question," Miranda said.
"Good!"
Carl said brightly. He was obviously pleased that he'd been able to help
Miranda, and so she didn't tell him how his words had really made her feel. She
treated it as an acting challenge: Could she fool Carl Hollywood, who was
sharper about acting than just about anyone, into thinking that she was fine?
Apparently
she did. He escorted her back to her flat, in a hundred story
high-rise just across the river in Pudong, and she held it together long enough
to bid him good-bye, get out of her clothes, and run a bath. Then she climbed
into the hot water and dissolved in awful, wretched, blubbery, self-pitying
tears.
Eventually
she got it under control. She had to keep this in perspective. She could still
interact with Nell and still did, every day. And if she paid attention, sooner
or later she would find some way to penetrate the curtain. Barring that, she
was beginning to understand that Nell, whoever she was, had been marked out in
some way, and that in time she would become a very important person. Within a
few years, Miranda expected to be reading about her in the newspaper. Feeling
better, she got out of the bath and climbed into bed, getting a good night's
sleep so she'd be ready for her next day of taking care of Nell.
General
description of life with the Constable;
his avocations and other peculiarities;
a disturbing sight; Nell learns about his past; a conversation over dinner.
The
garden house had two rooms, one for sleeping and one for playing. The playing
room had a set of double doors, made of many small windows, that opened onto
Constable Moore's garden. Nell had been told to be careful with the little
windows, because they were made of real glass. The glass was bubbly and uneven,
like the surface of a pot of water just before it breaks into a boil, and Nell
liked to look at things through it because, even though she knew it was not as
strong as a common window, it made her feel safer, as though she were hiding
behind something.
The
garden itself was forever trying to draw the little house into it; many
vast-growing vines of ivy, wisteria, and briar rose were deeply engaged in the
important project of climbing the walls, using the turtleshell-colored copper
drainpipes, and the rough surfaces of the brick and mortar, as fingerholds. The
slate roof of the cottage was phosphorescent with moss. From time to time,
Constable Moore would charge into the breach with a pair of trimmers and cut
away some of the vines that so prettily framed the view through Nell's glass
doors, lest they imprison her.
During
Nell's second year living in the cottage, she asked the Constable if she might
have a bit of garden space of her own, and after an early phase of profound
shock and misgivings, the Constable eventually pulled up a few flagstones,
exposing a small
plot, and caused one of the Dovetail artisans to manufacture
some copper window boxes and attach them to the cottage walls. In the plot, Nell
planted some carrots, thinking about her friend Peter who had vanished so long
ago, and in the window boxes she planted some geraniums. The Primer taught her
how to do it and also reminded her to dig up a carrot sprout every few days and
examine it so that she could learn how they grew. Nell learned that if she held
the Primer above the carrot and stared at a certain page, it would turn into a
magic illustration that would grow larger and larger until she could see the
tiny little fibers that grew out of the roots, and the one-celled organisms
clinging to the fibers, and the mitochondria inside them. The same trick worked
on anything, and she spent many days examining flies' eyes, bread mold, and
blood cells that she got out of her own body by pricking her finger. She could
also go up on hilltops during cold clear nights and use the Primer to see the
rings of Saturn and the moons of Jupiter.
Constable
Moore continued to work his daily shift at the gatehouse. When he came home in
the evening, he and Nell would often dine together inside his house. At first
they got food straight from the M.C., or else the Constable would fry up
something simple, like sausage and eggs. During this period, Princess Nell and
the other characters in the Primer found themselves eating a lot of sausage and
eggs too, until Duck lodged a protest and taught the Princess how to cook
healthier food. Nell then got in the habit of cooking a healthy meal with salad
and vegetables, several afternoons a week after she got home from school. There
was some grumbling from the Constable, but he always cleaned up his plate and
sometimes washed the dishes.
The
Constable spent a lot of time reading books. Nell was welcome to be in his
house when he was doing this, as long as she was quiet. Frequently he would
shoo her out, and then he would get in touch with some old friend of his over
the big mediatron on the wall of his library. Usually Nell would just go back
to her little cottage during these times, but sometimes, especially if the moon
was full, she would wander around in the garden. This seemed larger than it
really was by virtue of being divided into many small compartments. On late
full-moon nights, her favorite place was a grove of tall green bamboo with some
pretty rocks strewn around. She would sit with her back against a rock, read
her Primer, and occasionally hear sound emanating from the inside of Constable
Moore's house as he talked on the mediatron: mostly deep bellowing laughter and
explosions of good-natured profanity. For quite some time she assumed that it
was not the Constable who was making these sounds, but rather whomever he was
talking to; because in her presence the Constable was always very polite and
reserved, albeit somewhat eccentric. But one night she heard loud moaning
noises coming from his house, and crept down out of the bamboo grove to see
what was happening.
From
her vantage point through the glass doors, she couldn't see the mediatron,
which was facing away from her. Its light illuminated the whole room, painting
the normally warm and cozy space with lurid flashing colors, and throwing long
jagged shadows. Constable Moore had shoved all the furniture and other
obstructions to the walls and rolled up the Chinese carpet to expose the floor,
which Nell had always assumed was made of oak, like the floor in her cottage;
but the floor was, in fact, a large mediatron itself, glowing rather dimly
compared to the one on the wall, and displaying a lot of rather high-resolution
material: text documents and detailed graphics with the occasional dine feed.
The Constable was down on his hands and knees amidst this, bawling like a
child, the tears collecting in the shallow saucers of his half-glasses and
spattering onto the mediatron, which illuminated them weirdly from below.
Nell wanted badly to go in and comfort him,
but she was too scared. She stood and watched, frozen in indecision, and
realized as she did so that the flashes of light coming from the mediatrons
reminded her of explosions-or rather pictures of explosions. She backed away
and went back into her little house.
Half
an hour later, she heard the unearthly noise of Constable Moore's bagpipes
emanating from the bamboo grove. In the past he had occasionally picked them up
and made a few squealing noises, but this was the first time she'd heard a
formal recital. She was not an expert on the pipes, but she thought he sounded
not bad. He was playing a slow number, a coronach, and it was so sad that it
almost tore Nell's heart asunder; the sight of the Constable weeping helplessly
on his hands and knees was not half so sad as the music he was playing now.
In
time he moved on to a faster and happier pibroch. Nell emerged from her cottage
into the garden. The Constable was just a silhouette slashed into a hundred
ribbons by the vertical shafts of the bamboo, but when she moved back and
forth, some trick of her eye reassembled the image. He was standing in a pool
of moonlight. He had changed clothes: now he was wearing his kilt, and a shirt
and beret that seemed to belong to some sort of a uniform. When his lungs were
empty, he would draw in a great breath, his chest would heave, and an array of
silvery pins and insignia would glimmer in the moonlight.
He
had left the doors open. She walked into the house, not bothering to be
stealthy because she knew that she could not possibly be heard over the sound
of the bagpipe.
The
wall and the floor were both giant mediatrons, and both had been covered with a
profusion of media windows, hundreds and hundreds of separate panes, like a
wall on a busy city street where posters and bills have been pasted up in such
abundance that they have completely covered the substrate. Some of the panes
were only as big as the palm of Nell's hand, and some of them were the size of
wall posters. Most of the ones on the floor were windows into written
documents, grids of numbers, schematic diagrams (lots of organizational trees),
or wonderful maps, drawn with breathtaking precision and clarity, with rivers,
mountains, and villages labeled in Chinese characters. As Nell surveyed this
panorama, she flinched once or twice from the impression that something small
was creeping along the floor; but there were no bugs in the room, it was just
an illusion created by small fluctuations in the maps and in the rows and
columns of numbers. These things were ractive, just like the words in the
Primer; but unlike the Primer, they were responding not to what Nell did but,
she supposed, to events far away.
When
she finally raised her gaze from the floor to view the mediatrons lining the
walls, she saw that most of the panes there were much larger, and most of them
carried dine feeds, and most of these had been frozen. The images were very
sharp and clear. Some of them were landscapes: a stretch of rural road, a bridge
across a dried-up river, a dusty village with flames bubbling from some of the
houses. Some of them were pictures of people: talking-head shots of Chinese men
wearing dirty uniforms with dark mountains, clouds of dust, or drab green
vehicles as backdrops.
In
one of the dine feeds, a man was lying on the ground, his dusty uniform almost
the same color as the dirt. Suddenly this image moved; the feed had not been
frozen like the others. Someone was walking past the camera: a Chinese man in
indigo pajamas, decorated with scarlet ribbons tied round his head and his
waist, though these had gone brown with grime. When he had passed out of
the frame, Nell focused on the other man, the one who was lying in the dust,
and she realized for the first time that he did not have a head.
Constable
Moore must have heard Nell's screaming over the sound of his bagpipes, for he
was in the room within a few moments, shouting commands to the mediatrons,
which all went black and became mere walls and a floor. The only image remaining
in the room now was the big painting of Guan Di, the god of war, who glowered
down upon them as always. Constable Moore was extremely ill at ease whenever
Nell showed any kind of emotion, but he seemed more comfortable with hysteria
than he was with, say, an invitation to play house or an attack of the giggles.
He picked Nell up, carried her across the room at arm's length, and set her
down in a deep leather chair. He left the room for a moment and came back with
a large glass of water, then carefully molded her hands around it. "You
must breathe deeply and drink water," he was saying, almost sotto voce; he
seemed to have been saying it for a long time.
She
was a little surprised to find that she did not cry forever, though a few
aftershocks came along and had to be managed in the same way. She kept trying
to say, "I can't stop crying," stabbing the syllables one at a time.
The
tenth or eleventh time she said this, Constable Moore said, "You can't
stop drying because you're all fucked up psychologically." He said it in a
kind of bored professional tone that might have sounded cruel; but to Nell it
was, for some reason, most reassuring.
"What
do you mean?" she said finally, when she čould speak without her throat
going all funny.
"I
mean you're a veteran, girl, just like me, and you've got scars"-he
suddenly ripped his shirt open, buttons flying and bouncing all over the room,
to reveal his particolored torso-"like I do. The difference is, I know I'm
a veteran. You persist in thinking you're just a little girl, like those bloody
Vickys you go to school with." . . .
From time to
time, perhaps once a year, he would turn down the offer of dinner, put that
uniform on, climb onto a horse, and ride off in the direction of the New
Atlantis Clave. The horse would bring him back in the wee hours of the morning,
so drunk he could barely remain in the saddle. Sometimes Nell would help get
him into bed, and after he had lapsed into unconsciousness, she could examine
his pins and medals and ribbons by candlelight. The ribbons in particular used
a fairly elaborate color-coding system.
But
the Primer had some pages in the back that were called the Encyclopędia, and by
consulting these, Nell was able to establish that Constable Moore was, or at
least had used to be, a brigadier general in the Second Brigade of the Third
Division of the First Protocol Enforcement Expeditionary Force. One ribbon
implied that he had spent some time as an exchange officer in a Nipponese
division, but his home division was apparently the Third. According to the
Encyclopędia, the Third was often known as the Junkyard Dogs or, simply, the
Mongrels, because it tended to draw its members from the White Diaspora:
Uitlanders, Ulster Loyalists, whites from Hong Kong, and rootless sorts from
all of the Anglo-American parts of the world.
One
of the pins on the Constable's uniform said that he had graduate-level training
in nanotechnological engineering. This was consistent with his belonging to the
Second Brigade, which specialized in nanotech warfare. The Encyclopędia said
that it had been formed some thirty years ago to tackle some nasty fighting in
Eastern Europe where primitive nanotech weapons were being employed.
A
couple of years later, the division had been sent off to South China in a
panic. Trouble had been brewing there since Zhang Han Hua had gone on his Long
Ride and forced the merchants to kowtow. Zhang had personally liberated several
lao gai damps, where slave laborers were hard at work making trinkets for
export to the West, smashing computer display screens with the massive
dragon's-head grip of his cane, beating the overseers into bloody heaps on the
ground. Zhang's "investigations" of various thriving businesses,
mostly in the south, had thrown millions of people out of work. They had gone
into the streets and raised hell and been joined by sympathetic units of the
People's Liberation Army. The rebellion was eventually put down by PLA units
from the north, but the leaders had vanished into the "concrete
countryside" of the Pearl Delta, and so Zhang had been forced to set up a
permanent garrison state in the south. The northern troops had kept order
crudely but effectively for a few years, until, one night, an entire division
of them, some 15,000 men, was wiped out by an infestation of nanosites.
The
leaders of the rebellion emerged from their hiding places, proclaimed the
Coastal Republic, and called for Protocol Enforcement troops to come in and
protect them. Colonel Arthur Hornsby Moore, a veteran of the fighting in Eastern
Europe, was brought in to command. He had been born in Hong Kong, left as a
small child when the Chinese took it over, spent much of his youth wandering
around Asia with his parents, and eventually settled in the British Isles. He
was picked for the job because he was fluent in Cantonese and not half bad in
Mandarin. Looking at the old cine clips in the Encyclopędia, Nell could see a
younger Constable Moore, the same man with more hair and fewer doubts.
The
Chinese Civil War began in earnest three years later, when the Northerns, who
didn't have access to nanotech, started lobbing nukes. Not long afterward, the
Muslim nations had finally gotten their act together and overrun much of
Xinjiang Province, killing some of the Han Chinese population and driving the
rest eastward into the maw of the civil war. Colonel Moore suffered an
extremely dire infestation of primitive nanosites and was removed from the
action and put on extended convalescent leave. By that time, the truce line
between the Celestial Kingdom and the Coastal Republic had been established.
Since
then, as Nell knew from her studies at the Academy, Lau Ge had succeeded Zhang
as the northern leader-the leader of the Celestial Kingdom. After a decent
interval had passed, he had thoroughly purged all remaining traces of Communist
ideology, denouncing it as a Western imperialist plot, and proclaimed himself
Chamberlain to the Throneless King. The Throneless King was Confucius, and Lau
Ge was now the highest-ranking of all the mandarins.
The
Encyclopędia did not say much more about Colonel Arthur Hornsby Moore, except
that he'd resurfaced as an adviser a few years later during some outbreaks of
nanotech terrorism in Germany, and later retired and became a security
consultant. In this latter capacity he had helped to promulgate the concept of
defense in depth, around which all modern cities, including Atlantis/Shanghai,
were built. .
. .
Nell cooked the
Constable an especially nice dinner one Saturday, and when they were finished
with dessert, she began to tell him about Harv and Tequila, and Harv's tales of
the incomparable Bud, their dear departed father. Suddenly it was about three
hours later, and Nell was still telling the Constable stories about Mom's
boyfriends, and the Constable was continuing to listen, reaching up
occasionally to fiddle with his white beard but otherwise displaying an
extremely grave and thoughtful countenance. Finally she got to the part about
Burt, and how Nell had tried to kill him with the screwdriver, and how he had chased
them down the stairs and apparently met his demise at the hands of the
mysterious round-headed Chinese gentleman. The Constable found this extremely
interesting and asked many questions, first about the detailed tactical
development of the screwdriver assault and then about the style of dancing used
by the Chinese gentleman, and what he was wearing.
"I
have been angry at my Primer ever since that night," Nell said.
"Why?"
said the Constable, looking surprised, though he was hardly more surprised than
Nell herself. Nell had said a remarkable number of things this evening
without having ever, to her memory, thought them first; or
at least she didn't believe
she had ever thought them before.
"I
cannot help but feel that it misled me. It made me suppose that killing Burt
would be a simple matter, and that it would improve my life; but when I tried
to put these ideas into practice . . ." She could not think of what to say
next.
".
. . the rest of your life happened," the Constable said. "Girl, you must
admit that your life with Burt dead has been an improvement on your life with
Burt alive."
"Yes."
"So
the Primer was correct on that point. Now, as to the fact that killing people
is a more complicated business in practice than in theory, I will certainly
concede your point. But I think it is not likely to be the only instance in
which real life turns out to be more complicated than what you have seen in the
book. This is the Lesson of the Screwdriver, and you would do well to remember
it. All it amounts to is that you must be ready to learn from sources other
than your magic book."
"But
of what use is the book then?"
"I
suspect it is very useful. You want only the knack of translating its lessons
into the real world. For example," the Constable said, plucking his napkin
from his lap and crushing it into the tabletop, "let us take something
very concrete, such as beating the bejesus out of people." He stood up and
tromped out into the garden. Nell ran after him. "I have seen you doing
your martial-arts exercises," he said, switching to a peremptory outdoor
voice, an addressing-the-troops voice. "Martial arts means beating the
bejesus out of people. Now, let us see you try your luck with me."
Negotiations ensued as Nell endeavored to establish whether the Constable was
serious. This being accomplished, she sat down on the flagstones and began
getting her shoes off. The Constable watched her with raised eyebrows.
"Oh,
that's very formidable," he said. "All evildoers had best be on the
lookout for little Nell-unless she happens to be wearing her bloody
shoes."
Nell
did a couple of stretching exercises, ignoring more derisive commentary from
the Constable. She bowed to him, and he waved his hand at her dismissively. She
got set into the stance that Dojo had taught her. In response, the Constable
moved his feet about an inch farther apart than they had been, and pooched his
belly out, which was apparently the chosen stance of some mysterious Scottish
fighting technique.
Nothing
happened for a long time except for a lot of dancing around. Nell danced, that
is, and the Constable blundered around desultorily. "What's this?" he
said. "All you know is defense?"
"Mostly,
sir," Nell said. "I do not suppose it was the Primer's intention to
teach me how to assault people."
"Oh,
what good is that?" the Constable sneered, and suddenly he reached out and
grabbed Nell by the hair- not hard enough to hurt. He held her for a few
moments, and then let her go. "Thus endeth the first lesson," he
said.
"You
think that I should cut my hair off?"
The
Constable looked terribly disappointed. "Oh, no," he said,
"never, ever, ever cut your hair off. If I grabbed you by your
wrist"- and he did- "would you cut your arm off?"
"No,
sir."
"Did
the Primer teach you that people would pull your hair?"
"No,
sir."
"Did
it teach you that your mother's boyfriends would beat you up, and your mother
not protect you?"
"No,
sir, except insofar as it told me stories about people who did evil."
"People
doing evil is a good lesson. What you saw in there a few weeks ago"-and by
this Nell knew he was referring to the headless soldier on the
mediatron-"is one application of that lesson, but it's too obvious to be
of any good. Ah, but your mother not protecting you from boyfriends-that has
some subtlety, doesn't it?
"Nell,"
the Constable continued, indicating through his tone of voice that the lesson
was concluding, "the difference between ignorant and educated people is
that the latter know more facts. But that has nothing to do with whether they
are stupid or intelligent. The difference between stupid and intelligent
people-and this is true whether or not they are well-educated-is that
intelligent people can handle subtlety. They are not baffled by ambiguous or
even contradictory situations-in fact, they expect them and are apt to become
suspicious when things seem overly straightforward.
"In
your Primer you have a resource that will make you highly educated, but it will
never make you intelligent. That comes from life. Your life up to this point
has given you all of the experience you need to be intelligent, but you have to
think about those experiences. If you don't think about them, you'll be
psychologically unwell. If you do think about them, you will become not merely
educated but intelligent, and then, a few years down the road, you will
probably give me cause to wish I were several decades younger."
The
Constable turned and walked back into his house, leaving Nell alone in the
garden, pondering the meaning of that last statement. She supposed it was the
sort of thing she might understand later, when she had become intelligent.
Carl
Hollywood returns from abroad; he and
Miranda discuss the status and future of her racting career.
Carl
Hollywood came back from a month-long trip to London, where he'd been visiting
old friends, catching some live theatre, and making face-to-face contacts with
some of the big ractive developers, hoping to swing some contracts in their
direction. When he got back, the whole company threw a party for him in the
theatre's little bar. Miranda thought she handled it pretty well.
But
the next day he cornered her backstage. "What's up?" he said.
"And I don't mean that in the usual offhanded way. I want to know what's
going on with you. Why have you switched to the evening shift during my
absence? And why were you acting so weird at the party?"
"Well,
Nell and I have had an interesting few months."
Carl
looked startled, stepped back half a pace, then sighed and rolled his eyes.
"Of
course, her altercation with Burt was traumatic, but she seems to have dealt
with it well."
"Who's
Burt?"
"I
have no idea. Someone who was physically abusing her. Apparently she managed to
find some kind of new living situation in short order, probably with the
assistance of her brother Harv, who has, however, not stayed with her-he's
stuck in the same old bad situation, while Nell has moved on to something
better."
"She
has? That's good news," said Carl, only half sarcastically.
Miranda
smiled at him. "See? That's exactly the kind of feedback I need. I don't
talk about this stuff to anyone because I'm afraid they'll think I'm mad. Thank
you. Keep it up."
"What
is Nell's new situation?" Carl Hollywood asked contritely.
"I
think she's in school somewhere. She appears to be learning new material that
isn't explicitly covered in the Primer, and she's developing more sophisticated
forms of social interaction, suggesting that she's spending more time around a
higher class of people."
"Excellent."
"She's
not as concerned with immediate issues of physical self-defense, so I gather
that she's in a safe living situation. However, her new guardian must be an
emotionally distant sort, because she frequently seeks solace
under the wings of Duck."
Carl
looked funny. "Duck?"
"One
of four personages who accompanies and advises Princess Nell. Duck embodies
domestic, maternal virtues. Actually, Peter and Dinosaur are now gone- both
male figures who embodied survival skills."
"Who's
the fourth one?"
"Purple.
I think she'll become a lot more relevant to Nell's life around puberty."
"Puberty?
You said Nell was between five and seven."
"So?"
"You
think you'll still be doing this-" Carl's voice wound down to a stop as he
worked out the implications.
"-for
at least six or eight years. Oh yes, I should certainly think so. It's a very
serious commitment, raising a child."
"Oh,
god!" Carl Hollywood said, and collapsed into a big, tatty, overstuffed
chair they kept backstage for such purposes.
"That's
why I've switched to the evening shift. Ever since Nell started going to
school, she's started using the Primer exclusively in the evening. Apparently
she's in a time zone within one or two hours of this one."
"Good,"
Carl muttered, "that narrows it down to about half of the world's
population."
"What's
the problem here?" Miranda said. "It's not like I'm not getting paid
for this."
Carl
gave her a good, dispassionate, searching look. "Yes. It brings
in adequate revenue."
Three
girls go exploring; a conversation
between Lord Finkle-McGraw and Mrs. Hackworth; afternoon at the estate.
Three
girls moved across the billiard-table lawn of a great manor house, circling and
swarming about a common center of gravity like gamboling sparrows. Sometimes they
would stop, turn inward to face one another, and engage in animated discussion.
Then they would suddenly take off running, seemingly free from the constraints
of inertia, like petals struck by a gust of spring wind.
They
wore long heavy wool coats over their dresses to protect them from the cool
damp air of New Chusan's high central plateau. They seemed to be making their
way toward an expanse of broken ground some half-mile distant, separated from
the great house's formal gardens by a gray stone wall splashed with bits of
lime green and lavender where moss and lichen had taken hold. The terrain
beyond the wall was a muted hazel color, like a bolt of Harris tweed that has
tumbled from the back of a wagon and come undone, though the incipient blooming
of the heather had flung a pale violet mist across it, nearly transparent but
startlingly vivid in those places where the observer's line of sight grazed the
natural slope of the terrain-if the word natural could properly
be applied to any feature of this island.
Otherwise
as light and free as birds, the girls were each weighed down by a small burden
that seemed incongruous in the present setting, for the efforts of the adults
to persuade them to leave their books behind had, as ever, been unavailing.
One
of the observers had eyes only for the little girl with long flamecolored hair.
Her connexion to that child was suggested by her auburn hair and eyebrows. She
was dressed in a hand-sewn frock of woven cotton, whose crispness betrayed its
recent provenance in a milliner's atelier in Dovetail. If the gathering had
included more veterans of that elongated state of low-intensity warfare known
as Society, this observation would have been keenly made by those soi-disant sentries
who stood upon the battlements, keeping vigil against bounders who would
struggle their way up the vast glacis separating wage slaves from Equity
Participants. It would have been duly noted and set forth in the oral tradition
that Gwendolyn Hackworth, though attractive, hard-waisted, and poised, lacked
the confidence to visit Lord Finkle-McGraw's house in anything other than a new
dress made for the occasion.
The
gray light suffusing the drawing room through its high windows was as gentle as
mist. As Mrs. Hackworth stood enveloped in that light, sipping beige tea from a
cup of translucent bone china, her face let down its guard and betrayed some
evidence of her true state of mind. Her host, Lord Finkle-McGraw, thought that
she looked drawn and troubled, though her vivacious comportment during the
first hour of their interview had led him to suppose otherwise.
Sensing
that his gaze had lingered on her face for longer than was strictly proper, he
looked to the three little girls ambling across the garden. One of the girls
had raven hair that betrayed her partly Korean heritage; but having established
her whereabouts as a sort of reference point, he shifted his attention to the
third girl, whose hair was about halfway through a natural and gradual
transition from blond to brown. This girl was the tallest of the three, though
all were of about the same age; and though she participated freely in all of
their lighthearted games, she rarely initiated them and, when left to her own
devices, tended toward a grave mien that made her seem years older than her
playmates. As the Equity Lord watched the trio's progress, he sensed that even
the style of her movement was different from the others'; she was lithe and
carefully balanced, while they bounded unpredictably like rubber balls on
rough-hewn stone.
The
difference was (as he realized, watching them more keenly) that Nell always
knew where she was going. Elizabeth and Fiona never did. This was a question
not of native intelligence (Miss Matheson's tests and observations proved that
much) but of emotional stance. Something in the girl's past had taught her,
most forcefully, the importance of thinking things through.
"I
ask you for a prediction, Mrs. Hackworth. Which one shall reach the moor
first?"
At
the sound of his voice, Mrs. Hackworth recomposed her face. "This sounds
like a letter to the etiquette columnist of the Times. If I try to flatter you
by guessing that it will be your granddaughter, am I implicitly accusing her of
impulsiveness?"
The
Equity Lord smiled tolerantly. "Let us set aside etiquette- a social
convention not relevant to this enquiry-and be scientific."
"Ah.
If only my John were here."
He is here, Lord
Finkle-McGraw thought, in each one of those books. But he
didn't say it. "Very well, I will expose myself to the risk of humiliation
by predicting that Elizabeth reaches the wall first; that Nell finds the secret
way through; but that your daughter is the first one to venture through
it."
"I'm
sure you could never be humiliated in my presence, Your Grace," Mrs.
Hackworth said. It was something she had to say, and he did not really hear it.
They
turned back to the windows. When the girls had reached to within a stone's
throw of the wall, they began to move toward it more purposefully. Elizabeth
broke free from the group, ran forward, and was the first to touch the cool
stones, followed a few paces later by Fiona. Nell was far behind, not having
altered her steady stride.
"Elizabeth
is a Duke's granddaughter, accustomed to having her way, and has no natural
reticence; she surges to the fore and claims the goal as her birthright,"
Finkle-McGraw explained. "But she has not really thought about what she is
doing."
Elizabeth
and Fiona both had their hands on the wall now, as if it were Home in a game of
tag. But Nell had stopped and was turning her head from side to side, surveying
the length of the wall as it clambered and tumbled over the increasingly rough
shape of the land. After some time she held out one hand, pointing at a section
of the wall a short distance away, and began to move toward it.
"Nell
stands above the fray and thinks," Finkle-McGraw said. "To the other
girls, the wall is a decorative feature, no? A pretty thing to run to and
explore. But not to Nell. Nell knows what a wall is. It is a knowledge that went
into her early, knowledge she doesn't have to think about. Nell is more
interested in gates than in walls. Secret hidden gates are particularly
interesting."
Fiona
and Elizabeth moved uncertainly, trailing their tiny pink hands across the damp
stone, unable to see where Nell was leading them. Nell strode across the grass
until she had reached a small declivity. She almost disappeared into it as she
clambered down toward the foundation of the wall.
"An
opening for drainage," Finkle-McGraw explained. "Please do not be
concerned. I happened to ride that way this morning. The current is only
ankle-deep, and the diameter of the culvert just right for eight-yearold girls.
The passage is several meters long-more promising than threatening, I should
hope."
Fiona
and Elizabeth moved cautiously, startled by Nell's discovery. All three of the
girls disappeared into the cleft. A few moments later, a blaze of fiery red
could be descried bouncing rapidly across the moor beyond the wall. Fiona
clambered up a small outcropping of rocks that marked the beginning of the
moor, and beckoned excitedly to her companions.
"The
secret passage is found by Nell, but she is cautious and patient. Elizabeth is
taken aback by her early impulsiveness-she feels foolish and perhaps even a bit
sullen. Fiona-"
"Fiona
sees a magical gateway to an enchanted kingdom, no doubt," Mrs. Hackworth
said, "and even now is crestfallen to find that you have not stocked the
premises with unicorns and dragons. She would not hesitate for a moment to fly
down that tunnel. This world is not where my Fiona wants to live, Your Grace.
She wants another world, where magic is everywhere, and stories come to life, and
..."
Her voice
trailed away, and she cleared her throat uncomfortably. Lord Finkle-McGraw
glanced at her and saw pain in her face, quickly masked. He understood the rest
of her sentence without hearing it: . . . and my husband is here with us.
A pair of
riders, a man and a woman, trotted up a gravel path that ran along the edge of
the gardens, through a pair of wrought-iron gates in the stone wall, which
opened for them. The man was Lord Finkle-McGraw's son Colin, the woman was his
wife, and they had ridden out onto the moor to keep an eye on their daughter
and her two little friends. Seeing that their supervision was no longer
required, Lord Finkle-McGraw and Mrs. Hackworth turned away from the window and
drew instinctively closer to a fire burning in a stone fireplace the size of a
garage.
Mrs.
Hackworth sat down in a small rocker, and the Equity Lord chose an old and
incongruously battered leather wing chair. A servant poured more tea. Mrs.
Hackworth set the saucer and cup in her lap, guarding it with her hands, and
collected herself.
"I
have been desirous of making certain enquiries regarding my husband's
whereabouts and activities, which have been a mystery to me almost since the
moment he departed," she said, "and yet I was led to believe, from
the very general and guarded statements he made to me, that the nature of those
activities is secret, and that, if Your Grace has any knowledge of them-and
that you do, is of course merely a convenient supposition on my part-you must
treat that knowledge with flawless discretion. It goes without saying, I trust,
that I would not use even my feeble powers of persuasion to induce you to
violate the trust reposed in you by a higher power."
"Let
us take it as a given that both of us will do what is honourable,"
Finkle-McGraw said with a reassuringly casual smile.
"Thank
you. My husband continues to write me letters, every week or so, but they are
extremely general, nonspecific, and perfunctory. But in recent months, these
letters have become full of strange images and emotions. They are-bizarre. I
have begun to fear for my husband's mental stability, and for the prospects of
any undertaking that relies upon his good judgment. And while I would not
hesitate to tolerate his absence for as long as is necessary for him to carry
out his duties, the uncertainty has become most trying for me."
"I
am not wholly ignorant of the matter, and I do not think I am violating any
trust when I say that you are not the only person who has been surprised by the
duration of his absence," Lord Finkle-McGraw said. "Unless I am very
much mistaken, those who conceived of his mission never imagined that it would
last for so long. It may ease your suffering in some small degree to know that
he is not thought to be in danger."
Mrs.
Hackworth smiled dutifully, and not for very long.
"Little
Fiona seems to handle her father's absence well."
"Oh,
but to Fiona, he has never been gone," Mrs. Hackworth said. "It is
the book, you see, that ractive book. When John gave it to her, just before he
departed, he said that it was magic, and that he would talk to her through it.
I know it's nonsense, of course, but she really believes that whenever she
opens that book, her father reads her a story and even plays with her in an
imaginary world, so that she hasn't really missed him at all. I haven't the
heart to tell her that it's nothing more than a computerized media
programme."
"I
am inclined to believe that, in this case, keeping her in ignorance is a very
wise policy," Finkle-McGraw said.
"It
has served her well thus far. But as time goes on, she is more and more flighty
and less disposed to concentrate on her schoolwork. She lives in a fantasy and
is happy there. But when she learns that the fantasy is just that, I fear it
will not go well for her."
"She
is hardly the first young lady to display signs of a vivid imagination," the
Equity Lord said. "Sooner or later they seem to turn out all right."
The
three little explorers, and their two adult outriders, returned to the great
house shortly. Lord Finkle-McGraw's desolate private moor was as alienated from
the tastes of little girls as single malt whiskey, Gothic architecture, muted
colors, and Bruckner symphonies. Once they had reached it and found that it was
not equipped with pink unicorns, cotton candy vendors, teen idol bands, or
fluorescent green water slides, they lost interest and began to gravitate
toward the house-which in and of itself was far from Disneyland, but in which a
practiced and assertive user like Elizabeth could find a few consolatory
nuggets, such as a full-time kitchen staff, trained in (among many other,
completely useless skills) the preparation of hot chocolate.
Having
come as close to the subject of John Percival Hackworth's
disappearance as they dared, and careened past it with no
damage except some hot faces and watery eyes, Lord Finkle-McGraw and Mrs.
Hackworth had withdrawn, by mutual consent, to cooler subjects.
The girls would come inside to drink some hot chocolate, and then it would be
time for the guests to repair to the quarters assigned them for
the day, where they could freshen up and dress for the main event: dinner.
"I
should be pleased to look after the other little girl-Nell-- until the dinner
hour," Mrs. Hackworth said. "I noticed that the gentleman who brought
her round this morning has not returned from the hunt."
The
Equity Lord chuckled as he imagined General Moore trying to help a little girl
dress for dinner. He was graceful enough to know his limits, and so he was
spending the day shooting on the remoter stretches of the estate. "Little
Nell has a talent for looking after herself and may not need or wish to accept
your most generous offer. But she might enjoy spending the interim with
Fiona."
"Forgive
me, Your Grace, but I am startled that you would consider leaving a child of
her age unattended for most of the afternoon."
"She
would not view it in that way, I assure you, for the same reason that little
Fiona does not think of her father as ever having left your house."
The
expression that passed over Mrs. Hackworth's face as she heard this statement
suggested less than perfect comprehension. But before she could explain to her
host the error of his ways, they were interrupted by the sound of a shrill and
bitter conflict making its way down the hall toward them. The door swung open
halfway, and Colin Finkle-McGraw appeared. His face was still ruddy from the
wind on the moor, and it bore a forced grin that was not terribly distant from
a smirk; though his brow knit up periodically as Elizabeth emitted an
especially piercing shriek of anger. In one hand he held a copy of the Young Lady's Illustrated
Primer. Behind him, Mrs. Finkle-McGraw could be
seen holding Elizabeth by the wrist in a grip that recalled the blacksmith's
tongs holding a dangerously hot ingot ready for smiting; and the radiant glow
of the little girl's face perfected that analogy. She had bent down so that her
face was level with Elizabeth's and was hissing something to her in a low and
reproaching tone.
"Sorry,
Father," the younger Finkle-McGraw said in a voice slathered with not very
convincing synthetic good humor. "Nap time, obviously." He nodded to
the other. "Mrs. Hackworth." Then his eyes returned to his father's
face and followed the Equity Lord's gaze downward to the book. "She was
rude to the servants, Father, and so we have confiscated the book for the rest
of the afternoon. It's the only punishment that seems to sink in-we employ it
with some frequency."
"Then
perhaps it is not sinking in as well as you suppose," Lord Finkle-McGraw
said, looking sad and sounding bemused. Colin Finkle-McGraw chose to interpret
this remark as a witticism targeted primarily at Elizabeth-but then, parents of
small children must perforce have an entirely different sense of irony than
unimpaired humankind.
"We
can't let her spend her life between the covers of your magical book, Father,
It is like a little interactive empire, with Elizabeth the empress, issuing all
sorts of perfectly bloodcurdling decrees to her obedient subjects. It's
important to bring her back to reality from time to time, so that she can get
some perspective."
"Perspective.
Very well, I shall look forward to seeing you and Elizabeth, with her new
perspective, at dinner."
"Good
afternoon, Father. Mrs. Hackworth," the younger man said, and closed the
door, a heavy masterpiece of the woodcarver's art and a fairly effective
decibel absorbant.
Gwendolyn
Hackworth now saw something in Lord Finkle-McGraw's face that made her want to
leave the room. After speeding through the obligatory pleasantries, she did.
She collected Fiona from the chimneycorner where she was cherishing the dregs
of her hot chocolate. Nell was there too, reading her copy of the Primer, and
Gwendolyn was startled to see that she had not touched her drink at all.
"What
is this?" she exclaimed in what she took to be an appropriately
sugary voice. "A little girl who doesn't like hot chocolate?"
Nell
was deeply absorbed in her book, and for a moment Gwendolyn thought that her
words had gone unheard. But a few beats later it became evident that the child
was merely postponing her response until she reached the end of a chapter. Then
she raised her eyes slowly from the page of the book. Nell was a reasonably
attractive girl in the way that almost all girls are before immoderate tides of
hormones start to make different parts of their faces grow out of proportion to
others; she had light brown eyes, glowing orange in the light of the fire, with
a kind of feral slant to them. Gwendolyn found it difficult to break her gaze;
she felt like a captured butterfly staring up through a magnifying lens into
the calm, keen eye of the naturalist.
"Chocolate
is fine," Nell said. "The question is, do I need it."
There
was a rather long pause in the conversation as Gwendolyn groped for something
to say. Nell did not seem to be awaiting a response; she had delivered her
opinion and was done with it.
"Well,"
Gwendolyn finally said, "if you should decide that there is anything you do need,
please know that I would be happy to assist you."
"Your
offer is most kind. I am in your debt, Mrs. Hackworth," Nell said. She
said it perfectly, like a princess in a book.
"Very
well. Good afternoon," Gwendolyn said. She took Fiona's hand and led her
upstairs. Fiona dawdled in a way that was almost perfectly calculated to annoy,
and responded to her mother's questions only with nods and shakes of the head,
because, as always, her mind was elsewhere. Once they had reached their
temporary quarters in the guest wing, Gwendolyn got Fiona settled into bed for
a nap, then sat down at an escritoire to work her way through some pending
correspondence. But now Mrs. Hackworth found that her own mind was elsewhere,
as she pondered these three very strange girls-the three smartest little girls
in Miss Matheson's Academy-each with her very strange relationship with her
Primer. Her gaze drifted away from the sheets of mediatronic paper scattered
about the escritoire, out the window, and across the moor, where a gentle
shower had begun to fall. She devoted the better part of an hour to worrying
about girls and Primers.
Then
she remembered an assertion that her host had made that afternoon, which she
had not fully appreciated at the time: These girls weren't any stranger than
any other girls, and to blame their behavior on the Primers was to miss the
point entirely. Greatly reassured, she took out her silver pen and began to
write a letter to her missing husband, who had never seemed so far away.
Miranda
receives an unusual ractive message; a
drive through the streets of Shanghai;
the Cathay Hotel; a sophisticated soirée; Carl Hollywood introduces her to two unusual
characters.
It
was a few minutes before midnight, and Miranda was about to sign off from the
evening shift and clear out of her body stage. This was a Friday night. Nell
had apparently decided not to pull an all-nighter this time.
On
school nights, Nell reliably went to bed between ten-thirty and eleven, but
Friday was her night to immerse herself in the Primer the way she had as a
small child, six or seven years ago, when all of this had started. Right now,
Nell was stuck in a part of the story that must have been frustrating for her,
namely, trying to puzzle out the social rituals of a rather bizarre cult of
faeries that had thrown her into an underground labyrinth. She'd figure it out
eventually-she always did-but not tonight.
Miranda
stayed onstage for an extra hour and a half, playing a role in a samurai
ractive fairly popular in Japan, in which she was a platinum blond missionary's
daughter abducted from Nagasaki by ronin. All she had to do was squeal a lot
and eventually be rescued by a good samurai. It was a pity she didn't speak
Nipponese and (beyond that) wasn't familiar with the theatrical style of that
nation, because supposedly they were doing some radical and interesting things
with karamaku-"empty
screen" or "empty act." Eight years ago, she would have taken
the onehour airship ride to Nippon and learned the language. Four years ago,
she at least would have been disgusted with herself for playing this stupid
role. But tonight she spoke her lines on cue, squealed and wriggled at the
right times, and took her money, along with a hefty tip and the inevitable mash
note from the payer-a middle-management type in Osaka who wanted to get to know
her better. Of course, the same technology that made it impossible for Miranda
to find Nell, made it impossible for this creep to find Miranda.
An
urgent job offer flashed over her screen just as she was putting her stuff
together. She checked the ENQUIRY screen; the job didn't pay
that much, but it was of very short duration. So she accepted it. She wondered
who was sending her urgent job offers; six years ago it had happened
frequently, but since she'd gone into her habit of working the evening shift
she had, in general, become just another interchangeable Western bimbo with an
unpronounceable name.
It
looked like some kind of weird bohemian art piece, some ractors'workshop
project from her distant past: a surreal landscape of abstract colored
geometric forms with faces occasionally rising out of flat surfaces to speak
lines. The faces were texture-mapped, as if wearing elaborately painted makeup,
or were sculpted to the texture of orange peels, alligator hide, or durian
fruit.
"We
miss her," said one of the faces, the voice a little familiar, but disped
into a weird ghostly echoing moan.
"Where
is she?" said another face, rather familiar in its shape.
"Why
has she abandoned us?" said a third face, and even through the
texture-mapping and the voice disping, Miranda recognized Carl Hollywood.
"If
only she would come to our party!" cried another one, whom Miranda
recognized as a member of the Parnasse Company named Christine
something-or-other.
The
prompter gave her a line: Sorry, guys, but I'm working late again tonight.
"Okay,
okay," Miranda said, "I'm going to ad lib. Where are you?"
"The
cast party, dummy!" said Carl. "There's a cab waiting for you
outside-we sprung for a half-laner!"
Miranda
pulled out of the ractive, finished tidying up the body stage, and left it open
so that some other member of the company could come in a few hours later and
work the gold shift. She ran down the helical gauntlet of plaster cherubs,
muses, and Trojans, across the lobby where a couple of bleary-eyed apprentice
ractors were cleaning up the debris from this evening's live performance, and
out the front doors. There in the street, illuminated by the queasy
pink-and-purple neon of the marquee, was a half-lane cab with its lights on.
She
was dully surprised when the driver headed toward the Bund, not toward the
midrise districts in Pudong, where tribeless, lower-income Westerners typically
had their flats. Cast parties usually happened in someone's living room.
Then
she reminded herself that the Parnasse was a successful theatre company
nowadays, that they had a whole building somewhere full of developers coming up
with new ractives, that the current production of Macbeth had cost a lot of
money. Carl had flown to Tokyo and Shenzhen and San Francisco seeking investors
and had not come back emptyhanded. The first month of performances was sold
out.
But
tonight, there had been a lot of empty seats in the house, because most of the
opening-night crowd was non-Chinese, and non-Chinese were nervous about going
out on the streets because of rumors about the Fists of Righteous Harmony.
Miranda
was nervous too, though she wouldn't admit it. The taxi turned a corner, and
its headlights swept across a knot of young Chinese men gathered in a doorway,
and as one of them lifted a cigarette to his mouth, she caught a glimpse of a
scarlet ribbon knotted around his wrist. Her chest clenched up, her heart
fluttered, and she had to swallow hard a few times. But the young men could not
see into the silvered windows of the cab. They did not converge on her,
brandishing weapons and crying "Sha! Sha!"
The
Cathay Hotel stood in the middle of the Bund, at the intersection with Nanjing
Road, the Rodeo Drive of the Far East. As far as Miranda could see-all the way
to Nanjing, maybe-it was lined with Western and Nipponese boutiques and
department stores, and the airspace above the street was besprent with
almond-size aerostats, each with its own cine camera and pattern-recognition
ware to watch for suspicious-looking congregations of young men who might be
Fist cells.
Like
all of the other big Western buildings on the waterfront, the Cathay was
outlined in white light, which was probably a good thing because otherwise it
wouldn't have looked like much. The exterior was bleak and dingy in the
daytime.
She
played a little game of chicken with the doorman. She strode toward the
entrance, confident that he'd haul the door open for her, but he stood there
with his hands clasped behind his back, staring back at her sullenly. Finally
he gave way and hauled the door open, though she had to break her stride so as
not to smash into
it.
George
Bernard Shaw had stayed here; Noel Coward had written a play here. The lobby
was high and narrow, Beaux Arts marble, glorious ironwork chandeliers, white
light from the Bund buildings filtering in through stained-glass arches. An
ancient jazz band was playing in the bar, slap bass over trashcan drums.
Miranda stood on tiptoe in the entrance, looking for the party, and saw nothing
except middle-aged Caucasian airship tourists slow-dancing and the usual lineup
of sharp young Chinese men along the bar, hoping she'd come in.
Eventually
she found her way up to the eighth floor, where all the fancy restaurants were.
The big banquet room had been rented out by some kind of garishly wealthy
organization and was full of men wearing intimidatingly sophisticated suits,
women wearing even more intimidating dresses, and the odd sprinkling of
Victorians wearing far more conservative-but still dapper and expensive- stuff.
The music was fairly restrained, just one tuxedoed Chinese man playing jazz on
a grand piano, but on a stage at one end of the room, a larger band was setting
up its equipment.
She
was just cringing away, wondering in what back room the scruffy actors' bash
might be found, when she heard someone calling her name from inside.
Carl
Hollywood was approaching, striding across the middle of the banquet hall like
he owned the place, resplendent in hand-tooled cowboy boots made of many supple
and exotic bird and reptile skins, wearing a vast raiment, sort of a cross
between a cape and a Western duster, that nearly brushed the floor, and that
made him look seven feet tall rather than a mere six and a half. His long blond
hair was brushed back away from his forehead, his King Tut beard was sharp and
straight as a hoe. He was gorgeous and he knew it, and his blue eyes were
piercing right through Miranda, holding her there in front of the open elevator
doors, through which she'd almost escaped.
He
gave her a big hug and whirled her around. She shrank against him, shielded
from the crowd in the banquet hall by his enveloping cloak. "I look like
shit," she said. "Why didn't you tell me it was going to be this kind
of a party?"
"Why
didn't you know?" Carl said. As a director, one of his talents was to ask
the most difficult imaginable questions.
"I
would have worn something different. I look like-"
"You
look like a young bohemian artiste," Carl said, stepping
back to examine her typically form-fitting black bodysuit, "who doesn't
give a shit about pretentious clothes, who makes everyone else in the room feel
overdressed, and who can get away with it because she's got that special
something."
"You
silver-tongued dog," she said, "you know that's bullshit."
"A
few years ago you would have sailed into that room with that lovely chin of
yours held up like a battering ram, and everyone would have stepped back to
look at you. Why not now?"
"I
don't know," Miranda said. "I think with this Nell thing, I've
incurred all the disadvantages of parenthood without actually getting to have a
child."
Carl
relaxed and softened, and Miranda knew she'd spoken the words he was looking
for. "C'mere," he said. "I want you to meet someone."
"If
you're going to try to fix me up with some wealthy son of a bitch-"
"Wouldn't
dream of it."
"I'm
not going to become a housewife who acts in her spare time."
"I
realize that," Carl said. "Now calm yourself for a minute."
Miranda was forcibly ignoring the fact that they were walking through the
middle of the room now. Carl Hollywood was drawing all of the attention, which
suited her. She exchanged smiles with a couple of ractors who had appeared in
the interactive invitation that had summoned her here; both of them were having
what looked like very enjoyable conversations with fine-looking people,
probably investors.
"Who
are you taking me to meet?"
"A
guy named Beck. An old acquaintance of mine."
"But
not a friend?"
Carl
adopted an uncomfortable grin and shrugged. "We've been friends sometimes.
We've also been collaborators. Business partners. This is how life works,
Miranda: After a while, you build up a network of people. You pass them bits of
data they might be interested in and vice versa. To me, he's one of those
guys."
"I
can't help wondering why you want me to meet him."
"I
believe," Carl said very quietly, but using some actor's trick so that she
could hear every word, "that this gentleman can help you find Nell. And
that you can help him find something he wants." And he stepped aside with
a swirl of cloak, pulling out a chair for her. They were in the corner of the
banquet hall. Sitting on the opposite side of the table, his back to a large
marble-silled window, the illuminated Bund and the mediatronic cacophony of
Pudong spilling bloody light across the glossy shoulder-pads of his suit, was a
young African man in dreadlocks, wearing dark glasses with minuscule circular
lenses held in some kind of ostentatiously complex metallic space grid. Sitting
next to him, but hardly noticed by Miranda, was a Nipponese businessman wearing
a dark formal kimono and smoking what smelled like an old-fashioned,
fully carcinogenic
cigar.
"Miranda,
this is Mr. Beck and Mr. Oda, both privateers. Gentlemen, Ms. Miranda
Redpath."
Both
men nodded in a pathetic vestige of a bow, but neither made a move to shake
hands, which was just as well- nowadays some amazing things could be
transferred through skin-to-skin contact. Miranda didn't even nod back to them;
she just sat down and let Carl scoot her in. She didn't like people who
described themselves as privateers. It was just a pretentious word for a thete-
someone who didn't have a tribe.
Either
that, or they really did belong to tribes-from the looks of them, probably some
weird synthetic phyle she'd never heard of-and, for some reason, were
pretending not to.
Carl
said, "I have explained to the gentlemen, without getting into any
details, that you would like to do the impossible. Can I get you something to
drink, Miranda?"
After
Carl Hollywood left, there was a rather long silence during which Mr. Beck
presumably stared at Miranda, though she could not tell because of the dark
glasses. Mr. Oda's primary function appeared to be that of nervous spectator,
as if he had wagered half of his net worth on whether Miranda or Mr. Beck would
speak first.
A
stratagem occurred to Mr. Oda. He pointed in the direction of the bandstand and
nodded significantly. "You like this band?" Miranda looked over at
the band, half a dozen men and women in an assortment of races. Mr. Oda's
question was difficult to answer because they had not yet made any music. She
looked back at Mr. Oda, who pointed significantly at himself.
"Oh.
You're the backer?" Miranda said.
Mr.
Oda withdrew a small glittering object from his pocket and slid it across the
table toward Miranda. It was a cloisonné pin shaped like a dragonfly. She had
noticed similar ones adorning several partygoers. She picked it up cautiously.
Mr. Oda tapped himself on the lapel and nodded, encouraging her to put it on.
She left it sitting there on the table for the time being.
"I'm
not seeing anything," Mr. Beck finally said, apparently for Mr. Oda's
benefit. "To a first approximation, she is clean."
Miranda
realized that Mr. Beck had been checking her out using some kind of display in
his phenomenoscopic glasses. Miranda was still trying to work out some kind of
unpleasant response when Mr. Oda leaned forward into his own cloud of cigar
smoke. "It is our understanding," he said, "that you wish to
make a connection. Your wish is very strong."
Privateers. The
word also implied that these gentlemen, at least in their own minds, had some
kind of an angle, some way of making money off of their own lack of tribal
affiliation.
"I've
been told that such things are impossible."
"It's
more correct to speak in probabilistic terms," said Mr. Beck. His accent
was more Oxford than anything else, with a Jamaican lilt, and a crispness that
owed something to India.
"Astronomically
improbable, then," Miranda said.
"There
you go," said Mr. Beck.
Now,
somehow, the ball had found its way into Miranda's court. "If you guys
think you've found a way to beat probability, why don't you go into the Vegas
ractives and make a fortune?"
Misters
Beck and Oda were actually more amused by that crack than she had expected them
to be. They were capable of irony. That was one good sign in the almost
overwhelming barrage of negative signals she'd been getting from them so far.
The
band started up, playing dance music with a good beat. The lights came down,
and the party began to glitter as light flashed from the dragonfly pins.
"It
wouldn't work," Mr. Beck said, "because Vegas is a game of pure
numbers with no human meaning to it. The mind doesn't interface to pure
numbers."
"But
probability is probability," Miranda said.
"What
if you have a dream one night that your sister is in a crash, and you contact
her the next day and learn that she broke up with her boyfriend?"
"It
could be a coincidence."
"Yes.
But not a very probable one. You see, maybe it's possible to beat probability,
when the heart as well as the mind is involved."
Miranda
supposed that neither Mr. Beck nor Mr. Oda understood the essential cruelty of
what they were saying. It was much better not to have any hope at all.
"Are you guys involved in some kind of religious thing?" she said.
Misters
Beck and Oda looked at each other significantly. Mr. Oda went into some
peculiar routine of tooth-sucking and throat-clearing that would probably
convey a torrent of information to another Nipponese person but meant nothing
to Miranda, other than giving her a general hint that the situation was rather
complicated.
Mr.
Beck produced an antique silver snufibox, or a replica of one, took out a pinch
of nanosite dust, and hoovered it up into one of his great circular nostrils,
then nervously scratched the underside of his nose. He slid his glasses way
down, exposing his big brown eyes, and stared distractedly over Miranda's
shoulder into the thick of the party, watching the band and the dancers'
reaction to it. He was wearing a dragonfly pin, which had begun to glow and to
flash gorgeous colored lights, like a fleet of police cars and firetrucks
gathered round a burning house.
The
band segued into a peculiar, tuneless, beatless miasma of noise, spawning lazy
convection currents in the crowd.
"How
do you guys know Carl?" Miranda said, hoping to break the ice a bit.
Mr.
Oda shook his head apologetically. "I have not had the pleasure of making
his acquaintance until recently."
"Used
to do thyuh-tuh
with him in London."
"You're
a ractor?"
Mr.
Beck snorted ironically. A variegated silk hankie flourished in his hand, and
he blew his nose quickly and cleanly like a practiced snufftaker. "I am a
technical boy," he said.
"You
program ractives?"
"That
is a subset of my activities."
"You
do lights and sets? Or digital stuff? Or nanotech?"
"Invidious
distinctions do not interest me. I am interested in one thing," said Mr.
Beck, holding up his index finger, topped with a very large but perfectly
manicured claw of a fingernail, "and that is use of tech to convey
meaning."
"That
covers a lot of areas nowadays."
"Yes,
but it shouldn't. That is to say that the distinctions between those areas are
bogus."
"What's
wrong with just programming ractives?"
"Nothing
at all," said Mr. Beck, "just as nothing is wrong with traditional
live theatre, or for that matter, sitting round a campfire telling stories,
like I used to enjoy on the beach when I was a lad. But as long as there are
new ways to be found, it is my job, as a technical boy, to find them. Your art,
lady, is racting. Searching for the new tech is mine."
The
noise coming from the band had begun to pulse irregularly. As they talked, the
pulses gathered themselves into beats and became steadier. Miranda turned
around to look at the people on the dance floor. They were all standing around
with faraway looks on their faces, concentrating on something. Their dragonfly
pins were flashing wildly now, joining in a coherent pulse of pure white on
each beat. Miranda realized that the pins were somehow patched into the
wearers' nervous systems and that they were talking to each other, creating the
music collectively. A guitarist began to weave an improvised melodic line
through the gradually coalescing pattern of sound, and the sound condensed
around it as all of the dancers heard the tune. They had a feedback loop going.
A young woman began to chant out some kind of tuneless rap that sounded
improvised. As she went on, she broke into melody. The music was still weird
and formless, but it was beginning to approach something you might hear on a
professional recording.
Miranda
turned back to face Mr. Beck. "You think you've invented a new way to
convey meaning with technology-"
"Medium."
"A
new medium, and that it can help me get what I want. Because when meaning is
involved, the laws of probability can be broken."
"There
are two misconceptions in your statement. One: I did not invent the medium.
Others did, perhaps for different purposes, and I have stumbled across it, or
actually just heard intimations.
"As
far as the laws of probability, my lady, these cannot be broken, any more than
any other mathematical principle. But laws of physics and mathematics are like
a coordinate system that runs in only one dimension. Perhaps there is another
dimension perpendicular to it, invisible to those laws of physics, describing
the same things with different rules, and those rules are written in our
hearts, in a deep place where we cannot go and read them except in our dreams."
Miranda
looked to Mr. Oda, hoping he'd wink or something, but he was staring into the
dance floor with a terribly serious expression, as though enfolded in deep
thoughts himself, nodding slightly. Miranda drew a deep breath and sighed.
When
she looked up at Mr. Beck again, he was watching her, noting her curiosity
about Mr. Oda. He turned one hand palm up and rubbed the ball of his thumb over
his fingertips.
So
Beck was the hacker and Oda was the backer. The oldest and most troublesome
relationship in the technological world.
"We
require a third participant," Mr. Beck said, dovetailing into her
thoughts.
"To
do what?" Miranda said, evasive and defensive at the same time.
"All
technomedia ventures have the same structure," said Mr. Oda, bestirring
himself for the first time in a while. By now a nice synergy had developed
between band and crowd, and a lot of dancing was going on-some intimidatingly
sophisticated stuff, and also some primal moshing. "Three-legged
tripod." Oda held up a fist and began to extend fingers as he enumerated
the same. Miranda noted that his fingers were gnarly and bent, as if they'd all
been broken frequently. Mr. Oda was, perhaps, a veteran practitioner of certain
martial arts now disdained by most Nipponese because of their lower-class
provenance. "Leg number one: new technological idea. Mr. Beck. Leg number
two: adequate financial backing. Mr. Oda. Leg number three: the artist."
Misters
Beck and Oda looked significantly at Miranda. She threw back her head and
managed a nice solid laugh, hitting that sweet spot down in her diaphragm. It
felt good. She shook her head, letting her hair swing back and forth across her
shoulders. Then she leaned forward across the table, shouting to be heard above
the band. "You guys must be desperate. I'm old hat, guys. There's half a
dozen ractors in this room with better prospects than me. Didn't Carl fill you
in? I've been holed up in a body stage for six years doing kid stuff. I'm not a
star."
"Star
means a master of conventional ractives, which are precisely the technology we
are trying to move beyond," said Mr. Beck, a bit scornful that she wasn't
getting it.
Mr.
Oda pointed to the band. "None of these people were professional
musicians-some not even amateurs. Musician skills are not relevant for
this-these people were new kinds of artists born too early."
"Almost too
early," Mr. Beck said.
"Oh,
my god," Miranda said, starting to get it. For the first time, she
believed that what Beck and Oda were talking about- whatever the hell it
was-was a real possibility. Which meant that she was ninety percent
convinced-though only Beck and Oda understood that.
It
was too loud to talk. A mosher backed into Miranda's chair and nearly fell over
her. Beck stood up, came round the table, and extended one hand, asking her to
dance. Miranda looked into the Dionysian revel filling the floor and understood
that the only way to be safe was to join it. She plucked her dragonfly pin from
the tabletop and followed Beck into the midst of the dance. As she pinned it
on, it began to flash, and she thought she heard a new strain woven into the
song.
From
the Primer, Princess Nell enters into
the lands of King Coyote.
All that
hot afternoon Nell toiled up the numberless switchbacks, occasionally reaching
into the bag that dangled at her waist, drawing out a handful of Purple's ashes
and scattering them behind her like seeds. Whenever she stopped to rest, she
could look out across the burnt desert she had just crossed: a tawny plain
scabbed with reddish-brown volcanic rock, patches of aromatic greenish-gray
shrubs clinging like bread mold to any parts that were sheltered from the
eternal wind. She had hoped that when she climbed the face of this mountain,
she would rise up above the dust, but it had followed her, coating her lips and
her toes. When she drew a breath through her nose, it only stung her parched
nostrils, and so she had given up trying to smell anything. But late in the
afternoon a cool moist draft spilled down the mountain and over her face. She
drew in a breath of it, hoping to catch some of the cold air before it trickled
down into the desert. It smelled of evergreens.
As she
climbed the switchbacks, she forded those delightful currents of air over and
over, so that as she rounded each hairpin turn in the trail, she had an
incentive to climb toward the next one. The little shrubs that clutched rocks
and cowered in cracks became bigger and more numerous, and flowers began to
appear, first tiny little white ones like handfuls of salt strewn over the
rocks, then larger blossoms, blue and magenta and brilliant orange, brimming
with scented nectar that attracted bees all fuzzy and yellow with stolen
pollen. Gnarled oaks and short dense evergreens cast tiny shadows across the
path. The skyline grew closer, and the turns in the path became wider as the
mountain became less steep. Nell rejoiced when the switchbacks ended and the
trail took off straight across an undulating mountaintop meadow thick with
purple-flowered heather and marked with occasional stands of tall firs. For a
moment she was afraid that this meadow was nothing more than a ledge, and that
she had more mountains to ascend; but then the path turned downhill, and
treading heavily as new muscles caught her descending weight, she half-ran
across a vast boulder, pocked with tiny pools of clear water and occasional
lozenges of wet snow, until she reached a point where it fell away from under
her and she skidded to a precarious stop, looking down like a peregrine falcon
over an immense country of blue lakes and green mountains, shrouded in a
whirling storm of silver mist.
Nell
turned the page and saw it, just as the book said. This was a twopage
illustration-a color painting, she reckoned. Any one part of it looked just as
real as a cine feed. But the geometry of the thing was funny, borrowing some
suprarealistic tricks from classical Chinese landscape painting; the mountains
were too steep, and they marched away forever into the distance, and if Nell
stared, she could see tall castles clinging to their impossibly precipitous
slopes, colorful banners waving from their flagpoles bearing heraldic devices
that were dynamic: The gryphons crouched, the lions roared, and she could see
all of these details, even though the castles should have been miles away;
whenever she looked at something it got bigger and turned into a different
picture, and when her attention wavered-when she blinked and shook her head-it
snapped back to the first view again.
She
spent a long time doing that, because there were dozens of castles at the very
least, and she got the feeling that if she kept looking and counting she might
look forever. But it wasn't all castles: there were mountains, cities, rivers,
lakes, birds and beasts, caravans, and travelers of all kinds.
She
spent a while staring at a group of travelers who had drawn their wagons into a
roadside meadow and set up a camp, clapping hands round a bonfire while one of
them played a reel on some small bellowspowered bagpipes, barely audible these
many miles away. Then she realized that the book hadn't said anything for a
long time. "What happened then?" she said.
The
Young
Lady's Illustrated Primer said nothing.
"Nell
looked for a safe way down," Nell essayed.
Her
vantage point began to move. A patch of snow swung into view. "No,
wait!" she said, "Nell stuffed some clean snow into her water
bottles."
In
the painting, Nell could see her bare pink hands scooping up snow and packing
it bit by bit into the neck of her bottle. When it was full, she put the cork
back in (Nell didn't have to specifr that) and began moving around on the rock,
looking for a place that wasn't so steep. Nell didn't have to explain that in
detail either; in the ractive, she searched the rock in a fairly rational way
and in a few minutes found a stairway chiseled into the rock, winding down the
mountain endlessly until it pierced a cloud layer far below. Princess Nell
began descending the steps, one at a time.
After
a while, Nell tried an experiment: "Princess Nell descended the stairs for
many hours."
This
triggered a series of dissolves like she'd seen on old passives: Her current
view dissolved into a closeup of her feet, trudging down a couple of steps,
which dissolved into a view from considerably farther down the mountain,
followed by a closeup of Princess Nell unscrewing her water bottle and drinking
melted snow; another view from farther down; Nell sitting down for a rest; a
soaring eagle; the approaching cloud layer; big trees; descending through the
mist; and finally, Nell tramping wearily down the last ten steps, which left
her in a clearing in a dark coniferous forest, carpeted with rust-colored pine
needles. It was twilight, and the wolves were beginning to howl. Nell made the
usual arrangements for the night, lit a fire, and curled up to sleep.
Having
reached a good stopping-place, Nell started to close the book. She'd have to
continue this later.
She
had just entered the land of the oldest and most powerful of all the Faery
Kings. The many castles on the mountains belonged to all of his Dukes and
Earls, and she suspected she would have to visit them all before she had gotten
what she'd come for. It was not a quick adventure for an early Saturday
morning. But just as she was clasping the book together, new words and an
illustration appeared on the page she'd been reading, and something about the
illustration made her open the book back up. It showed a crow perched on a tree
branch above Princess Nell, holding a necklace in its beak. It was eleven
jeweled keys strung on a golden chain.
Princess
Nell had been wearing it around her neck; apparently the next event in the
story was that this bird stole it while she was sleeping. Beneath the picture
was a poem, spoken by the crow from his perch: Castles, gardens, gold, and jewels Contentment signify, for fools Like Princess Nell; but those Who cultivate their wit Like King Coyote and his crows Compile their power bit by bit And hide it places no one knows.
Nell closed up
the book This was too upsetting to think about just now. She had been
collecting those keys for most of her life. The first she'd taken from King
Magpie just after she and Harv had arrived at Dovetail. She had picked up the
other ten one at a time during the years since then. She had done this by
traveling to the lands of the Faery Kings and Queens who owned those keys and
using the tricks she had learned from her Night Friends. Each key had come to
her in a different way.
One
of the hardest keys to get had belonged to an old Faery Queen who had seen
through every trick that Nell could think up and fought off every assault.
Finally, in desperation, Princess Nell had thrown herself on the mercy of that
Queen and told her the sad story of Harv locked up in the Dark Castle. The
Queen had fed Nell a nice bowl of chicken soup and handed over the key with a
smile.
Not
much later, Duck had encountered a nice young mallard on the road and flown
away with him to start a family. Purple and Princess Nell then traveled
together for several years, and on many a dark night, sitting around the
campfire under a full moon, Purple had taught Nell secret things from her magic
books and from the ancient lore she kept in her head.
Recently
they had traveled for a thousand miles on camelback across a great desert full
of djinns, demons, sultans, and caliphs and finally reached the great
onion-domed palace of the local Faery King- himself a djinn of great
power-who ruled over all the desert lands. Princess Nell had devised a
complicated plan to trick their way into the djinn's treasury. To carry it out,
she and Purple had to live in the city around the palace for a couple of years
and make many treks into the desert in search of magic lanterns, rings, secret
caverns, and the like.
Finally,
Princess Nell and Purple had penetrated to the djinn king's treasury and found
the eleventh key. But they had been surprised by the djinn himself, who
attacked them in the guise of a fire-breathing serpent. Purple had transformed
herself into a giant eagle with metallic wings and talons that could not be
burned- much to the surprise of Princess Nell, who had
never imagined that her companion possessed such power.
The
battle between Purple and the djinn raged for a day and a night, both
combatants transforming themselves into any number of fantastical creatures and
hurling all manner of devastating spells at each other, until finally the
mighty castle lay in ruins, the desert was scorched and blasted for many miles
around, and Purple and the djinn king both lay dead on the floor of what had
been the treasury.
Nell
had picked up the eleventh key from the floor, put it on her chain, cremated
Purple's body, and scattered her ashes across the desert as she walked, for
many days, toward the mountains and the green land, where the eleven keys had
now been stolen away from her.
Nell's
experiences at school; a confrontation with Miss Stricken; the rigors of Supplementary Curriculum; Miss
Matheson's philosophy of education; three friends go
separate ways.
AGLAIA
BRILLIANCE EUPHROSYNE JOY THALIA BLOOM
The names of the
three graces, and diverse artists' conceptions of the ladies themselves, were
chiseled, painted, and sculpted freely about the interior and exterior of Miss
Matheson's Academy. Nell could hardly look anywhere without seeing one of them
prancing across a field of wildflowers, distributing laurel wreaths to the
worthy, jointly thrusting a torch toward heaven, or shedding lambent effulgence
upon the receptive pupils.
Nell's
favorite part of the curriculum was Thalia, which was scheduled for an hour in
the morning and an hour in the afternoon.
When
Miss Matheson hauled once on the old bellrope dangling down from the belfry,
belting a single dolorous clang across the campus, Nell and the other girls in
her section would arise, curtsy to their teacher, walk in single file down the
corridor to the courtyard-then break into a chaotic run until they reached the
Hall of Physical Culture, where they would strip out of their heavy, scratchy
complicated uniforms and climb into lighter, looser, scratchy complicated
uniforms with more freedom of movement.
The
Bloom curriculum was taught by Miss Ramanujan or one of her assistants. Usually
they did something vigorous in the morning, like field hockey, and something
graceful in the afternoon, like ballroom dance, or peculiar, giggle-inducing
exercises in how to walk, stand, and sit like a Lady.
Brilliance
was Miss Matheson's department, though she mostly left it to her assistants,
occasionally wheeling in and out of various classrooms in an old
wood-and-wicker wheelchair. During the Aglaia period, the girls would get
together in groups of half a dozen or so to answer questions or solve problems
put to them by the teachers: For example, they counted how many species of plants
and animals could be found in one square foot of the forest behind the school.
They put on a scene from a play in Greek. They used a ractive simulation to
model the domestic economy of a Lakota band before and after the introduction
of horses. They designed simple machines with a nanopresence rig and tried to
compile them in the M.C. and make them work They wove brocades and made
porcelain as Chinese ladies used to do. And there was an ocean of history to be
learned: first biblical, Greek, and Roman, and then the history of many other
peoples around the world that essentially served as backdrop for History of the
English-Speaking Peoples.
The
latter subject was, curiously, not part of the Brilliance curriculum; it was
left firmly in the hands of Miss Stricken, who was mistress of Joy.
In
addition to two one-hour periods each day, Miss Stricken had the attention of
the entire assembled student body once in the morning, once at noon, and once
in the evening. During these times her basic function was to call the students
to order; publicly upbraid those sheep who had prominently strayed since the
last such assembly; disgorge any random meditations that had been occupying her
mind of late; and finally, in reverential tones, introduce Father Cox, the
local vicar, who would lead the students in prayer. Miss Stricken also had the
students all to herself for two hours on Sunday morning and could optionally
command their attention for up to eight hours on Saturdays if she came round to
the opinion that they wanted supplementary guidance.
The
first time Nell sat down in one of Miss Stricken's classrooms, she found that
her desk had perversely been left directly behind another girl's, so that she
was unable to see anything except for the bow in that girl's hair. She got up,
tried to skooch the desk, and found that it was fixed to the floor. All the
desks, in fact, were arranged in a perfectly regular grid, facing in the same
direction- which is to say, toward Miss Stricken or one of her two assistants,
Miss Bowlware and Mrs. Disher.
Miss
Bowlware taught them History of the English-Speaking Peoples, starting with the
Romans at Londinium and careening through the Norman Conquest, Magna Carta,
Wars of the Roses, Renaissance, and Civil War; but she didn't really hit her
stride until she got to the Georgian period, at which point she worked herself
up into a froth explaining the shortcomings of that syphilitic monarch, which
had inspired the rightthinking Americans to break away in disgust. They studied
the most ghastly parts of Dickens, which Miss Bowlware carefully explained was called Victorian
literature because it was written during the reign of Victoria
I, but was actually about
pre-Victorian times, and that the mores of the original
Victorians-the ones who built the old British Empire- were actually a reaction
against the sort of bad behavior engaged in by their parents and grandparents
and so convincingly detailed by Dickens, their most popular novelist.
The
girls actually got to sit at their desks and play a few ractives showing what
it was like to live during this time: generally not very nice, even if you
selected the option that turned off all the diseases. At this point, Mrs.
Disher stepped in to say, if you thought that was scary, look
at how poor people lived in the late twentieth century. Indeed, after ractives
told them about the life of an inner-city Washington, D.C., child during the
1990s, most students had to agree they'd take a workhouse in pre-Victorian
England over that
any day.
All
of the foregoing set the stage for a three-pronged, parallel examination of the
British Empire; pre-Vietnam America; and the modern and ongoing history of New
Atlantis. In general, Mrs. Disher handled the more modern stuff and anything
pertaining to America.
Miss
Stricken handled the big payoff at the end of each period and at the end of
each unit. She stormed in to explain what conclusion they were being led to and
to make sure that all of them got it. She also had a way of lunging predatorily
into the classroom and rapping the knuckles of any girl who had been
whispering, making faces at the teachers, passing notes, doodling,
woolgathering, fidgeting, scratching, nose-picking, sighing, or slumping.
Clearly,
she was sitting in her closetlike office next door watching them with cine
monitors. Once, Nell was sitting in Joy diligently absorbing a lecture about
the Lend-Lease Program. When she heard the squeaky door from Miss Stricken's
office swing open behind her, like all the other girls she suppressed the
panicky urge to look around. She heard Miss Stricken's heels popping up her
aisle, heard the whir of the ruler, and then suddenly felt her knuckles
explode.
"Hairdressing
is a private,
not a public activity, Nell," Miss Stricken said. "The other girls
know this; now you do too."
Nell's
face burned, and she wrapped her good hand around her damaged one like a
bandage. She did not understand anything until one of the other girls caught
her eye and made a corkscrewing motion with her index finger up near one
temple: Apparently Nell had been twisting her hair around her finger, which she
often did when she was reading the Primer or thinking hard about any one thing.
The
ruler was such a pissant form of discipline, compared to a real beating, that
she could not take it seriously at first and actually found it funny the first
few times. As the months went by, though, it seemed to get more painful. Either
Nell was becoming soft, or- more likely-the full dimensions of the punishment
were beginning to sink in. She had been such an outsider at first that nothing
mattered. But as she began to excel in the other classes and to gain the
respect of teachers and students alike, she found herself with pride to lose.
Part of her wanted to rebel, to throw everything away so that it could not be
used against her. But she enjoyed the other classes so much that she couldn't
bear to think further of the possibility.
One
day Miss Stricken decided to concentrate all her attentions on Nell. There was
nothing unusual about that-it was standard to randomly single out particular
scholars for intensive enforcement. With twenty minutes left in the hour, Miss
Stricken had already gotten Nell on the right hand for hair-twisting and on the
left for nail-biting, when, to her horror, Nell realized that she was
scratching her nose and that Miss Stricken was standing in the aisle glaring at
her like a falcon. Both of Nell's hands shot into her lap, beneath the desk.
Miss
Stricken walked up to her deliberately, pop pop pop. "Your right hand,
Nell," she said, "just about here." And she indicated with the
end of the ruler an altitude that would be a convenient place for the assault-
rather high above the desk, so that everyone in the room could see it.
Nell
hesitated for a moment, then held her hand up.
"A
bit higher, Nell," Miss Stricken said.
Nell
moved her hand a bit higher.
"Another
inch should do it, I think," Miss Stricken said, appraising the hand as if
it were carved in marble and recently excavated from a Greek temple.
Nell
could not bring herself to raise the hand any higher.
"Raise
it one more inch, Nell," Miss Stricken said, "so that the other girls
can observe and learn along with you."
Nell
raised her hand just a bit.
"That
was rather less than an inch, I should think," Miss Stricken said.
Other
girls in the class began to titter-their faces were all turned back toward
Nell, and she could see their exultation, and somehow Miss Stricken and the
ruler became irrelevant compared to the other girls. Nell raised her hand a
whole inch, saw the windup out of the corner of her eye, heard the whir. At the
last moment, on an impulse, she flipped her hand over, caught the ruler on her
palm, grabbed it, and twisted in a way that Dojo had taught her, bending it
against the grain of Miss Stricken's fingers so that she was forced to let go.
Now Nell had the ruler, and Miss Stricken was disarmed.
Her
opponent was a bulging sort of woman, taller than average, rather topheavy on
those heels, the sort of teacher whose very fleshiness becomes the object of
morbid awe among her gamine pupils, whose personal toilet practices-the
penchant for dandruff, the habitually worn-out lipstick, the little wad of
congealed saliva at the corner of the mouth-loom larger in her students' minds
than the Great Pyramids or the Lewis and Clark Expedition. Like all other
women, Miss Stricken benefited from a lack of external genitalia that would
make it more difficult for Nell to incapacitate her, but nevertheless, Nell
could think of half a dozen ways to leave her a bloody knot on the floor and
not waste more than a quarter of a minute in the process. During her time with
Constable Moore, noting her benefactor's interest in war and weapons, she had
taken up a renewed interest in martial arts, had paged back in the Primer to
the Dinosaur's Tale and been pleased but hardly surprised to discover that Dojo
was still holding lessons there, picking up just where he and Belle the Monkey
had left off.
Thinking
of her friend Dinosaur and her sensei, Dojo the Mouse, she suddenly felt shame
far deeper than anything Miss Stricken or her sniggering classmates could
inflict. Miss Stricken was a stupid hag, and her classmates were snot-nosed
clowns, but Dojo was her friend and her teacher, he had always respected her
and given her his full attention, and he had carefully taught her the ways of
humility and self-discipline. Now she had perverted his teachings by using her
skill to take Miss Stricken's ruler. She could not have been more ashamed.
She
handed the ruler back, raised her hand high in the air, and heard but did not
feel the impacts of the ruler, some ten in all. "I shall expect you in my
office after evening prayers, Nell," Miss Stricken said when she was
finished.
"Yes,
Miss Stricken," Nell said.
"What
are you girls looking at?" blurted Mrs. Disher, who was running the class
today. "Turn around and pay attention!" And with that it was all
over. Nell sat in her desk for the rest of the hour as if carved from a solid
block of gypsum.
Her
interview with Miss Stricken at the end of the day was short and businesslike,
no violence or even histrionics. Nell was informed that her performance in the
Joy phase of the curriculum was so deficient that it placed her in danger of
failing and being expelled from the school altogether, and that her only hope
was to come in each Saturday for eight hours of supplementary study.
Nell
wished more than anything that she could refuse. Saturday was the only day of
the week when she did not have to attend school at all. She always spent the day
reading the Primer, exploring the fields and forests around Dovetail, or
visiting Harv down in the Leased Territories.
She
felt that, through her own mistakes, she had ruined her life at Miss Matheson's
Academy. Until recently, Miss Stricken's classes had been nothing more than a
routine annoyance-an ordeal that she had to sit through in order to experience
the fun parts of the curriculum. She could look back on a time only a couple of
months ago when she would come home with her mind aglow from all the things she
had learned in Brilliance, and when the Joy part was just an indistinct smudge
around the edge. But in recent weeks, Miss Stricken had, for some reason,
loomed larger and larger in her view of the place. And somehow, Miss Stricken
had read Nell's mind and had chosen just the right moment to step up her
campaign of harassment. She had timed today's events perfectly. She had brought
Nell's most deeply hidden feelings out into the open, like a master butcher
exposing the innards with one or two deft strokes of the knife. And now
everything was ruined. Now Miss Matheson's Academy had vanished and become Miss
Stricken's House of Pain, and there was no way for Nell to escape from that
house without giving up, which her friends in the Primer had taught her she
must never do.
Nell's
name went up on a board at the front of the classroom labeled, in heavy brass
letters, SUPPLEMENTARY
CURRICULUM STUDENTS. Within a few days, her name had been
joined by two others: Fiona Hackworth and Elizabeth Finkle-McGraw. Nell's
disarming of the fearsome Miss Stricken had already become the stuff of oral
legend, and her two friends had been so inspired by the act of defiance that
they had gone to elaborate lengths to get themselves in trouble too. Now, the
three best students of Miss Matheson's Academy were all doomed to Supplementary
Curriculum.
Each
Saturday, Nell, Fiona, and Elizabeth would arrive at the school at seven
o'clock, enter the room, and sit down in the front row in adjacent desks. This
was part of Miss Stricken's fiendish plan. A less subtle tormentor would have
placed the girls as far apart as possible to prevent them from talking to each
other, but Miss Stricken wanted them right next to each other so that they
would be more tempted to visit and pass notes.
There
was no teacher in the room at any time. They assumed that they were being
monitored, but they never really knew. When they entered, each one of them had
a pile of books on her desk-old books bound in chafed leather. Their job was to
copy the books out by hand and leave the pages neatly stacked on Miss
Stricken's desk before they went home. Usually, the books were transcripts of
debates from the House of Lords, from the nineteenth century.
During
their seventh Saturday in Supplementary Curriculum, Elizabeth Finkle-McGraw
suddenly dropped her pen, slammed her book shut, and threw it against the wall.
Nell
and Fiona could not keep themselves from laughing. But Elizabeth did not convey
the impression of being in a very lighthearted mood. The old book had scarcely
come to rest on the floor before Elizabeth had run over to it and begun kicking
at it.
With
each blow a furious grunt escaped from her gorge. The book absorbed this
violence impassively, driving Elizabeth into a higher rage; she dropped to her
knees, flung the cover open, and began to rip out pages by the fistful.
Nell
and Fiona looked at each other, suddenly serious. The kicking had been funny,
but something about the tearing of pages disturbed them both. "Elizabeth!
Stop it!" Nell said, but Elizabeth gave no signs of having heard her. Nell
ran up to Elizabeth and hugged her from behind. Fiona scurried in a moment
later and picked up the book.
"God
damn it!" Elizabeth bellowed, "I don't care about any of the goddamn
books, and I don't care about the Primer either!"
The
door banged open. Miss Stricken stomped in, dislodged Nell with a simple body
check, got both arms around Elizabeth's shoulders, and manhandled her out the
door.
A
few days later, Elizabeth left on a lengthy vacation with her parents, jumping
from one New Atlantis clave to another in the family's private airship, working
their way across the Pacific and North America and finally to London itself,
where they settled in for several months. In the first few days, Nell received
one letter from her, and Fiona received two. After that they received no
response to their letters and eventually stopped trying. Elizabeth's name was
removed from the Supplementary Curriculum plaque.
Nell
and Fiona soldiered on. Nell had reached the point where she could transcribe
the old books all day long without actually absorbing a single word. During her
first weeks in Supplementary Curriculum she had been frightened; in fact, she
had been surprised at the level of her own fear and had come to realize that
Authority, even when it refrained from violence, could be as disturbing a
specter as anything she had seen in her earlier years. After the incident with
Elizabeth, she became bored for many months, then furious for quite a while
until she realized, in conversations with Duck and Purple, that her anger was
eating her up inside. So with a conscious effort, she went back to being bored
again.
The
reason she'd been furious was that copying out those books was such an
unforgivably stupid waste of time. There was no end to what she could have
learned reading the Primer for those eight hours. For that matter, the normal
curriculum at Miss Matheson's Academy would have been perfectly fine as well.
She was
tormented by the irrationality of this place.
One
day, when she returned from a trip to the washroom, she was startled to notice
that Fiona had hardly copied out a single page, though they had been there for
hours.
After
this, Nell made it a practice to look at Fiona from time to time. She noticed
that Fiona never stopped writing, but she was not paying attention to the old
books. As she finished each page, she folded it up and placed it in her
reticule. From time to time, she would stop and stare dreamily out the window
for a few minutes, and then resume; or she might place both hands over her face
and rock back and forth silently in her chair for a while before giving herself
over to a long burst of ardent writing that might cover several pages in as
many minutes.
Miss
Stricken cruised into the room late one afternoon, took the stack of completed
pages from Nell's desk, flipped through them, and allowed her chin to decline
by a few minutes of arc. This nearly imperceptible vestige of a nod was her way
of saying that Nell was dismissed for the day. Nell had come to understand that
one way for Miss Stricken to emphasize her power over the girls was for her to
make her wishes known through the subtlest possible signs, so that her charges
were forced to watch her anxiously at all times. Nell took her leave; but after
proceeding a few steps down the corri dor, she turned and stole back to the
door and peeked through the window into the classroom.
Miss
Stricken had gotten the folded-up pages out of Fiona's bag and was perusing
them, strolling back and forth across the front of the room like the slow swing
of a pendulum, a devastatingly ponderous motion. Fiona sat in her chair, her
head bowed and her shoulders drawn together protectively.
After
reading the papers for an eternity or two, Miss Stricken dropped them on her
desk and made some kind of brief statement, shaking her head in hopeless
disbelief. Then she turned and walked out of the room.
When
Nell reached her, Fiona's shoulders were still shaking silently. Nell put her
arms around Fiona, who finally began to draw in sobbing breaths. During the
next few minutes she gradually moved on to that stage of crying where the body
seems to swell up and poach in its own fluids.
Nell
suppressed the urge to be impatient. She well knew, as did all of the other
girls, that Fiona's father had disappeared several years ago and never come
back. He was rumored to be on an honorable and official
mission; but as years went by this belief was gradually supplanted by the
suspicion that something disgraceful had taken place. It would be easy enough
for Nell to make the point that she had been through much worse. But seeing the
depth of Fiona's unhappiness, she had to consider the possibility that Fiona
was in a worse situation now.
When
Fiona's mother came by in a little half-lane car to pick her up, and saw her
daughter's red and ruinous face, an expression of black rage came over her own
visage and she drove Fiona away without so much as a glance at Nell. Fiona
showed up for church the next day as if nothing had happened and said nothing
of it to Nell during the next week at school. In fact, Fiona hardly said a word
to anyone, as she spent all of her time now daydreaming.
When
Nell and Fiona showed up at seven o'clock the next Saturday morning, they were
astonished to find Miss Matheson waiting for them at the front of the
classroom, sitting in her wood-and- wicker wheelchair, wrapped up in a
thermogenic comforter.
The
stacks of books, paper, and fountain pens were not there, and their names had
been removed from the plaque at the front of the room. "It's a lovely
spring day," Miss Matheson said. "Let's gather some foxgloves."
They
went across the playing fields to the meadow where the wildflowers grew, the
two girls walking and Miss Matheson's wheelchair carrying her along on its
many-spoked smart wheels.
"Chiselled
Spam," Miss Matheson said, sort of mumbling it to herself.
"Pardon
me, Miss Matheson?" Nell said.
"I
was just watching the smart wheels and remembering an advertisement from my
youth," Miss Matheson said. "I used to be a thrasher, you know. I
used to ride skateboards through the streets. Now I'm still on wheels, but a
different kind. Got a few too many bumps and bruises during my earlier career,
I'm afraid." .
. .
"It's a
wonderful thing to be clever, and you should never think otherwise, and you
should never stop being that way. But what you learn, as you get older, is that
there are a few billion other people in the world all trying to be clever at
the same time, and whatever you do with your life will certainly be
lost-swallowed up in the ocean-unless you are doing it along with like-minded
people who will remember your contributions and carry them forward. That is why
the world is divided into tribes. There are many Lesser phyles and three Great
ones. "What are the Great ones?"
"New
Atlantis," Nell began.
"Nippon,"
said Fiona.
"Han,"
they concluded together.
"That
is correct," Miss Matheson said. "We traditionally include Han in the
list because of its immense size and age-even though it has lately been
crippled by intestine discord. And some would include Hindustan, while others
would view it as a riotously diverse collection of microtribes sintered
together according to some formula we don't get.
"Now,
there was a time when we believed that what a human mind could accomplish was
determined by genetic factors. Piffle, of course, but it looked convincing for
many years, because distinctions between tribes were so evident. Now we
understand that it's all cultural. That, after all, is what a culture is-a
group of people who share in common certain acquired traits.
"Information
technology has freed cultures from the necessity of owning particular bits of
land in order to propagate; now we can live anywhere. The Common Economic Protocol
specifies how this is to be arranged.
"Some
cultures are prosperous; some are not. Some value rational discourse and the
scientific method; some do not. Some encourage freedom of expression, and some
discourage it. The only thing they have in common is that if they do not
propagate, they will be swallowed up by others. All they have built up will be
torn down; all they have accomplished will be forgotten; all they have learned
and written will be scattered to the wind. In the old days it was easy to remember
this because of the constant necessity of border defence. Nowadays, it is all
too easily forgotten.
"New
Atlantis, like many tribes, propagates itself largely through education. That
is the raison d'źtre of this Academy. Here you develop your bodies through
exercise and dance, and your minds by doing projects. And then you go to Miss
Stricken's class. 'What is the point of Miss Stricken's class? Anyone? Please
speak up. You can't get in trouble, no matter what you say."
Nell
said, after some dithering, "I'm not sure that it has any point."
Fiona just watched her saying it and smiled sadly.
Miss
Matheson smiled. "You are not far off the mark. Miss Stricken's phase of
the curriculum comes perilously close to being without any real substance. Why do
we bother with it, then?"
"I
can't imagine," Nell said.
"When
I was a child, I took a karate class," Miss Matheson said, astonishingly.
"Dropped out after a few weeks. Couldn't stand it. I thought that the
sensei would teach me how to defend myself when I was out on my skateboard. But
the first thing he did was have me sweep the floor. Then he told me that if I
wanted to defend myself, I should buy a gun. I came back the next week and he
had me sweep the floor again. All I ever did was sweep. Now, what was the point
of that?"
"To
teach you humility and self-discipline," Nell said. She had learned this
from Dojo long ago.
"Precisely.
Which are moral qualities. It is upon moral qualities that a society is
ultimately founded. All the prosperity and technological sophistication in the
world is of no use without that foundation-we learned this in the late
twentieth century, when it became unfashionable to teach these things."
"But
how can you say it's moral?" said Fiona. "Miss Stricken isn't moral.
She's so cruel."
"Miss
Stricken is not someone I would invite to dinner at my house. I would not hire
her as a governess for my children. Her methods are not my methods. But people
like her are indispensable.
"It
is the hardest thing in the world to make educated Westerners pull
together," Miss Matheson went on. "That is the job of people like
Miss Stricken. We must forgive them their imperfections. She is like an
avatar-do you children know about avatars? She is the physical embodiment of a
principle. That principle is that outside the comfortable and welldefended
borders of our phyle is a hard world that will come and hurt us if we are not
careful. It is not an easy job to have. We must all feel sorry for Miss
Stricken."
They
brought sheaves of foxgloves, violet and magenta, back to the school and set
them in vases in each classroom, leaving an especially large bouquet in Miss
Stricken's office. Then they took tea with Miss Matheson, and then they each
went home.
Nell
could not bring herself to agree with what Miss Matheson had said; but she
found that, after this conversation, everything became easy. She had the
neo-Victorians all figured out now. The society had miraculously transmutated
into an orderly system, like the simple computers they programmed in the
school. Now that Nell knew all of the rules, she could make it do anything she
wanted.
"Joy"
returned to its former position as a minor annoyance on the fringes of a
wonderful schoolday. Miss Stricken got her with the ruler from time to time, but
not nearly so often, even when she was, in fact, scratching or slumping.
Fiona
Hackworth had a harder time of it, and within a couple of months she was back
on the Supplementary Curriculum list. A few months after that, she stopped
coming to school entirely. It was announced that she and her mother had moved
to Atlantis/Seattle, and her address was posted in the hall for those who
wished to write her letters.
But
Nell heard rumors about Fiona from the other girls, who had picked up snatches
from their parents. After Fiona had been gone for a year or so, word got out
that Fiona's mother had obtained a divorce- which, in their tribe, only
happened in cases of adultery or abuse. Nell wrote Fiona a long letter saying
she was terribly sorry if her father had been abusive, and offering her support
in that case. A few days later she got back a curt note in which Fiona defended
her father from all charges. Nell wrote back a letter of apology but didn't
hear from Fiona Hackworth again.
It
was about two years later that the news feeds filled up with astonishing tales
of the young heiress Elizabeth Finkle-McGraw, who had vanished from her
family's estate outside of London and was rumored to have been sighted in
London, Los Angeles, Hong Kong, Miami, and many other places, in the presence
of people suspected of being highranking members of CryptNet.
Hackworth
awakes from a dream; retreat from the
world of the Drummers; chronological
discrepancies.
Hackworth
woke from a dream of unsustainable pleasure and realized it wasn't a dream; his
penis was inside someone else, and he was steaming like a runaway locomotive
toward ejaculation. He had no idea what was going on; but couldn't he be
forgiven for doing the wrong thing? With a wiggle here and a thrust there, he
finally nudged himself over the threshold, the smooth muscles of the tract in
question executing their spinal algorithm.
Just
a few deep breaths into the refractory period, and he had already disengaged,
yelping a little from the electric spark of withdrawal, and levered himself up
on one arm to see whom he'd just violated. The firelight was enough to tell him
what he already knew: Whoever this woman was, it wasn't Gwen. Hackworth had
violated the most important promise he'd ever made, and he didn't even know the
other party.
But
he knew it wasn't the first time. Far from it. He'd had sex with
a lot of people in the past few years- he'd even been buggered.
There
was, for example, the woman-
Never
mind, there was the man who-
Strange
to say, he could not think of any specific examples. But he knew he was guilty.
It was precisely like waking up from a dream and having a clear train of
thought in your mind, something you were working on just a few seconds ago, but
being unable to remember it, consciousness peeled away from cognition. Like a
three-year-old who has a talent for vanishing into crowds whenever you turn
your back, Hackworth's memories had fled to the same place as words that are on
the tip of your tongue, precedents for déją vu, last night's dreams.
He
knew he was in big trouble with Gwen, but that Fiona still loved him- Fiona,
taller than Gwen now, so self-conscious about her still linear figure, still
devoid of the second derivatives that add spice to life.
Taller
than Gwen? How's that?
Better
get out of this place before he had sex with someone else he didn't know.
He
wasn't in the central chamber anymore, rather in one of the tunnel's aneurysms
with some twenty other people, all just as naked as he was. He knew which tunnel
led to the exit (why?) and began to crawl down it, rather stiffly as it seemed
that he was stiff and laden with cricks and cramps. Must not have been very
athletic sex- more in the Tantric mode.
Sometimes
they had sex for days.
How
did he know that?
The
hallucinations were gone, which was fine with him. He crawled through the
tunnels for a long time. If he tried to think about where he was going, he got
lost and eventually circled back to where he started. Only when his mind began
to wander did he make his way on some kind of autopilot to a long chamber
filled with silvery light, sloping upward. This was beginning to look familiar,
he had seen this when he was still a young man. He followed it upward until he
reached the end, where something unusually stony was under his feet. A hatch
opened above him, and several tons of cold seawater landed on his head.
He
staggered up onto dry land and found himself in Stanley Park again, gray floor
aft, green wall fore. The ferns rustled, and out stepped Kidnapper, who looked
fuzzy and green. He also looked unusually dapper for a robotic horse, as
Hackworth's bowler hat was perched on top of his head.
Hackworth
reached up to feel himself and was astounded to feel his face covered with
hair. Several months' growth of beard was there. But even stranger, his chest
was much hairier than it had been before. Some of the chest hair was gray, the
only gray hairs he had ever seen coming out of his own follicles.
Kidnapper
was fuzzy and green because moss had been growing on him. The bowler looked
terrible and had moss on it too. Hackworth reached out instinctively and put it
on his head. His arm was thicker and hairier than it used to be, a not
altogether unpleasing change, and even the hat felt a little tight.
From
the Primer, Princess Nell crosses the
trail of the enigmatic Mouse Army; a
visit to an invalid.
The
clearing dimly visible through the trees ahead was a welcome sight, for the
forests of King Coyote were surpassingly deep and forever shrouded in cool
mists. Fingers of sunlight had begun to thrust between the clouds, and so
Princess Nell decided to rest in the open space and, with any luck, bask in the
sunlight. But when she reached the clearing, she found that it was not the
flowerstrewn greensward she had expected; it was rather a swath that had been
carved through the forest by the passage of some titanic force, which had
flattened trees and churned up the soil as it progressed. When Princess Nell
had recovered from her astonishment and mastered her fear, she resolved to make
use of the tracking skills she had learned during her many adventures, so as to
learn something about the nature of this unknown creature.
As she soon
discovered, the skills of an advanced tracker were not necessary in this case.
The merest glance at the trampled soil revealed not (as she had anticipated) a
few enormous footprints, but millions of tiny ones, superimposed upon one
another in such numbers that no scrap of ground was unmarked by the impressions
of tiny claws and footpads.
A torrent
of cats had passed this way; even had Princess Nell not recognized the
footprints, the balls of loose hair and tiny scats, strewn everywhere, would
have told the story. Cats moving in a herd! It was most unfeline behavior. Nell
followed their track for some time, hoping to divine the cause of this prodigy.
After a few miles the road widened into an abandoned camp freckled with the
remains of innumerable small campfires. Nell combed this area for more clues,
not without success: she found many mouse droppings here, and mouse footprints
around the fires. The pattern of footprints made it clear that the cats had
been concentrated in a few small areas, while the mice had apparently had the
run of the place.
The final
piece of the puzzle was a tiny scrap of twisted rawhide that Nell found
abandoned near one of the little campfires. Turning it around in her fingers,
Nell realized that it was much like a horse's bridle- except sized to fit
around the head of a cat.
She was
standing on the trail of a vast army of mice, who rode on the backs of cats in
the way that knights ride on horses.
She had
heard tales of the Mouse Army in other parts of the Land Beyond and dismissed
them as ancient superstitions.
But once,
several years ago, in an inn high in the mountains, where Princess Nell had
stayed for the night, she had been awakened early in the morning by the sound
of a mouse rooting through her pack. .
Princess
Nell uttered a light-making spell that Purple had taught her, kindling a ball
of luminance that hung in the air in the center of the room. The words of the
spell had been concealed in the howl of the mountain winds through the rickety
structure of the old inn, and so the mouse was caught entirely by surprise,
blinded by the sudden light. Nell was startled to see that the mouse was not
gnawing its way into her supply of food, as any mouse should have done, but
rather was going through some of her papers. And this was not the usual
destructive search for nesting material-this mouse knew how to read and was
looking for information. Princess Nell trapped the mouse spy under her hands.
"What
are you looking for? Tell me, and I shall let you escape!" she said. Her
adventures had taught her to be on the lookout for tricks of all kinds, and it
was important that she learn who had dispatched this tiny, but effective, spy.
"I am
but a harmless mouse!" the spy squealed. "I do not even desire your
food- information only!"
"I
will give you a big piece of cheese, all to yourself, if you give me some
information," Princess Nell said. She caught the mouse's tail and lifted
him up into the air so that they could talk face-to-face. Meanwhile, with her
other hand, she loosened the drawstring of her bag and drew out a nice piece of
blue-veined Stilton.
"We
are seeking our lost Queen," the mouse said.
"I can
assure you that none of my papers have any information about a missing mouse
monarch," Princess Nell said.
"What
is your name?" the mouse said.
"That
is none of your business, spy!" Princess Nell said. "I will ask the
questions."
"But
it is very important that I know your name," the mouse said.
"Why?
I am not a mouse. I have not seen any little mice with crowns on their
heads."
The mouse
spy said nothing. He was staring carefully at Princess Nell with his little
beady eyes. "Did you, by any chance, come from an enchanted island?"
"You
have been listening to too many fairy tales," Princess Nell said, barely
concealing her astonishment. "You have been most uncooperative and so do not
deserve any cheese- but I admire your pluck and so will give you some anyway.
Enjoy yourself!" She set the mouse down on the floor and took out her
knife to cut off a bit of the cheese; but by the time she was finished, the
mouse had disappeared. She just caught sight of his pink tail disappearing
under the door.
The next
morning, she found him dead on the hallway floor. The innkeeper's cat had
caught him. .
So the
Mouse Army did exist! Princess Nell wondered whether they had ever located
their lost Queen. She followed their trail for another day or two, as it went
in approximately the right direction and was almost as convenient as a road.
She passed
through a few more campsites. At one of them, she even found a little
gravesite, marked with a tiny headstone carved from a chip of soapstone.
The
carvings on this tiny monument were much too small to see. But Princess Nell
carried with her a magnifying glass that she had pilfered from the treasury of
one of the Faery Kings, and so now she removed it from its padded box and its
velvet bag and used it to examine the inscription.
At the top
of the stone was a little bas-relief of a mouse knight, dressed in armor, with
a sword in one hand, bowing before an empty throne. The inscription read, Here lies Clover, tail and all Her virtues far outweighed her flaws She from the saddle took a fall And perished 'neath her charger's paws. We know not if her final ride Hath led her into Heaven or Hell Wherever she doth now abide She's loyal yet to Princess Nell.
Princess
Nell examined the remains of the fires, and the surfaces of the wood that the
Mouse Army had cut, and the state of their droppings, and estimated that they
had passed by here many weeks previously. One day she would rendezvous with
them and find out why they had formed such an attachment to her; but for now,
she had more pressing considerations. . . .
She'd have to
see about the Mouse Army later. Today was Saturday, and on Saturday morning she
always went down to the Leased Territories to visit her brother. She opened up
the wardrobe in the corner of her sleeping room and took out her traveling
dress. Sensing her intentions, the chaperone flew out of its niche in the back
and whined over to the door.
Even
at her still-tender age, just a few years past the threshold of womanhood, Nell
had already had cause to be grateful for the presence of the droning chaperone
pod that followed her everywhere when she ventured from home alone. Maturity
had given her any number of features that would draw the attention of the
opposite sex, and of women so inclined. Commentators rarely failed to mention
her eyes, which were said to have a vaguely exotic appearance. There was
nothing particularly unusual about their shape or size, and their color-a
tweedy blend of green and light brown flecked with gold-did not make them stand
out in a predominantly Anglo-Saxon culture. But Nell's eyes had an appearance
of feral alertness that seized the attention of anyone who met her.
Neo-Victorian society produced many young women who, though highly educated and
well-read, were still blank slates at Nell's age. But Nell's eyes told a
different story. When she had been presented to society a few months ago, along
with several other External Propagation girls at Miss Matheson's Academy, she
had not been the prettiest girl at the dance, and certainly not the best
dressed or most socially prominent. She had attracted a crowd of young men
anyway. They did not do anything so obvious as mill around her; instead they
tried to keep the distance between themselves and Nell below a certain maximum,
so that wherever she went in the ballroom, the local density of young men in
her area became unusually high.
In
particular she had excited the interest of a boy who was the nephew of an Equity
Lord in Atlantis/Toronto. He had written her several ardent letters. She had
responded saying that she did not wish to continue the relationship, and he
had, perhaps with the help of a hidden monitor, encountered her and her
chaperone pod one morning as she had been riding to Miss Matheson's Academy.
She had reminded him of the recent termination of their relationship by
declining to recognize him, but he had persisted anyway, and by the time she
had reached the gates of the Academy, the chaperone pod had gathered enough
evidence to support a formal sexual harassment accusation should Nell have
wished to bring one.
Of
course she did not, because this would have created a cloud of opprobrium that
would have blighted the young man's career. Instead, she excerpted one
five-second piece of the cine record from the chaperone pod: the one in which,
approached by the young man, Nell said, "I'm sorry, but I'm afraid you
have me at a disadvantage," and the young man, failing to appreciate the
ramifications, pressed on as if he had not heard. Nell placed this information
into a smart visiting card and arranged to have it dropped by the young man's
family home. A formal apology was not long in coming, and she did not hear
again from the young man.
Now
that she had been introduced to society, her preparations for a visit to the
Leased Territories were just as elaborate as for any New Atlantis lady. Outside
of New Atlantis, she and her chevaline were surrounded everywhere by a shell of
hovering security pods serving as a first line of personal defense. A modern
lady's chevaline was designed with a sort of Y-shaped body that made it
unnecessary to ride sidesaddle, so Nell was able to wear a fairly
normal-looking sort of dress: a bodice that took advantage of her fashionably
narrow waist, so carefully honed on the Academy's exercise machines that it
might have been turned on a lathe from walnut. Beyond that, her skirts,
sleeves, collar, and hat saw to it that none of the young ruffians of the
Leased Territories would have the opportunity to invade her body space with
their eyes, and lest her distinctive face prove too much of a temptation, she
wore a veil too.
The
veil was a field of microscopic, umbrellalike aerostats programmed to fly in a
sheet formation a few inches in front of Nell's face. The umbrellas were all
pointed away from her. Normally they were furled, which made them nearly
invisible; they looked like the merest shadow before her face, though viewed
sideways they created a subtle wall of shimmer in the air. At a command from
Nell they would open to some degree. When fully open, they nearly touched each
other. The outside-facing surfaces were reflective, the inner ones matte black,
so Nell could see out as if she were looking through a piece of smoked glass.
But others saw only the shimmering veil. The umbrellas could be programmed to
dangle in different ways-always maintaining the same collective shape, like a
fencing mask, or rippling like a sheet of fine silk, depending on the current
mode.
The
veil offered Nell protection from unwanted scrutiny. Many New Atlantis career
women also used the veil as a way of meeting the world on their own terms,
ensuring that they were judged on their own merits and not on their appearance.
It served a protective function as well, bouncing back the harmful rays of the
sun and intercepting many deleterious nanosites that might otherwise slip
unhindered into the nose and mouth.
The
latter function was of particular concern to Constable Moore on this morning.
"It's been nasty of late," he said. "The fighting has been very
bad." Nell had already inferred this from certain peculiarities of the
Constable's behavior: he had been staying up late at night recently, managing
some complicated enterprise spread out across his mediatronic floor, and she
suspected that it was something along the lines of a battle or even a war.
As
she rode her chevaline across Dovetail, she came to a height-of-land that
afforded a fine view across the Leased Territories, Pudong, and Shanghai on a
clear day. But the humidity had congealed into drifts of clouds forming a
seamless layer about a thousand feet below their level, so that this high
territory at the top of New Chusan seemed to be an island, the only land in all
the world except for the snowcapped cone of the Nippon Clave a few miles up the
coast.
She
departed through the main gate and rode down the hill. She kept approaching the
cloud layer but never quite reached it; the lower she went, the softer the
light became, and after a few minutes she could no longer see the rambling
settlements of Dovetail when she turned around, nor the spires of St. Mark's
and Source Victoria above it. After another few minutes' descent the fog became
so thick that she could not see more than a few meters, and she smelled the
elemental reek of the ocean. She passed the former site of the Sendero Clave.
The Senderos had been bloodily uprooted when Protocol Enforcement figured out
that they were working in concert with the New Taiping Rebels, a fanatical cult
opposed to both the Fists and the Coastal Republic. This patch of real estate
had since passed into the hands of the Dong, an ethnic minority tribe from
southwestern China, driven out of their homeland by the civil war. They had
torn down the high wall and thrown up one of their distinctive many-layered
pagodas.
Other
than that, the L.T. didn't look all that different. The operators of the big
wall-size mediatrons that had so terrified Nell on her first night in the
Leased Territories had turned the brightness all the way up, trying to
compensate for the fog.
Down
by the waterfront, not far from the Aerodrome, the compilers of New Chusan had,
as a charitable gesture, made some space available to the Vatican. In the early
years it had contained nothing more than a twostory mission for thetes who had
followed their lifestyle to its logical conclusion and found themselves
homeless, addicted, hounded by debtors, or on the run from the law or abusive
members of their own families.
More
recently those had become secondary functions, and the Vatican had programmed
the building's foundation to extrude many more stories. The Vatican had a
number of serious ethical concerns about nanotech but had eventually decided
that it was okay as long as it didn't mess about with DNA or create direct
interfaces with the human brain. Using nanotech to extrude buildings was fine,
and that was fortunate, because Vatican/Shanghai needed to add a couple of
floors to the Free Phthisis Sanatorium every year. Now it loomed high above any
of the other waterfront buildings.
As
with any other extruded building, the design was drab in the extreme, each
floor exactly alike. The walls were of an unexceptional beige material that had
been used to construct many of the buildings in the L.T., which was
unfortunate, because it had an almost magnetic attraction for the cineritious
corpses of airborne mites. Like all the other buildings so constituted, the
Free Phthisis Sanatorium had, over the years, turned black, and not evenly but
in vertical rain-streaks. It was a cliché to joke that the outside of the
Sanatorium looked much like the inside of its tenants' lungs. The Fists of
Righteous Harmony had, however, done their best to pretty it up by slapping red
posters over it in the dead of night.
Harv
was lying on the top of a three-layer bunkbed on the twentieth floor, sharing a
small room and a supply of purified air with a dozen other chronic asthma
sufferers. His face was goggled into a phantascope, and his lips were wrapped
around a thick tube plugged into a nebulizer socket on the wall. Vaporized
drugs, straight from the matter compiler, were flowing down that tube and into
his lungs, working to keep his bronchi from spasming shut.
Nell
stopped for a moment before breaking him out of his ractive. Some weeks he
looked better than others; this week he did not look good. His body was
bloated, his face round and heavy, his fingers swollen to puffy cylinders; they
had been giving him heavy steroid treatments. But she would have known he'd had
a bad week anyway, because usually Harv didn't go in for immersive ractives. He
liked the kind you held in your lap on a sheet of smart paper.
Nell
tried to send Harv a letter every day, simply written in mediaglyphics, and for
a while he had tried to respond in kind. Last year he had even given up on
this, though she wrote him faithfully anyway.
"Nell!"
he said when he had peeled the goggles away from his eyes. "Sorry, I was
chasing some rich Vickys."
"You
were?"
"Yeah.
Or Burly Scudd was, I mean. In the ractive. See, Burly's bitch gets pregnant,
and she's got to buy herself a Freedom Machine to get rid of it, so she gets a
job as a maid-of-all-work for some snotty Vickys and rips off some of their
nice old stuff, figuring that's a faster way to get the money. So the bitch is
running away and they're chasing her on their chevs, and then Burly Scudd shows
up in his big truck and turns the tables and starts chasing them. If you do it
right, you can get the Vickys to fall into a big pit of manure! It's great! You
should try it," Harv said, then, exhausted by this effort, grabbed his
oxygen tube and pulled on it for a while.
"It
sounds entertaining," Nell said.
Harv,
temporarily gagged by the oxygen tube, watched her face carefully and was not
convinced. "Sorry," he blurted between breaths, "forgot you
don't care for my kind of ractive. Don't they have Burly Scudd in that Primer
of yours?"
Nell
made herself smile at the joke, which Harv had been making every week. She
handed him the basket of cookies and fresh fruit that she had brought down from
Dovetail and sat with him for an hour, talking about the things he enjoyed
talking about, until she could see his attention wandering back toward the
goggles. Then she said good-bye until next week and kissed him good-bye.
She
turned her veil to its highest level of opacity and made her way toward the
door. Harv impulsively grabbed his oxygen tube and sucked on it mightily a few
times, then called her name just as she was about to leave.
"Yes?"
she said, turning toward him.
"Nell,
I want to tell you how fine you look," he said, "just like the finest
Vicky lady in all of Atlantis. I can't believe you're my same Nell that I used
to bring things to in the old flat-remember those days? I know that you and I
have gone different ways, ever since that morning in Dovetail, and I know it's
got a iot to do with that Primer. I just want to tell you, sister, that even
though I say bad stuff about Vickys sometimes, I'm as proud of you as I could
be, and I hope when you read that Primer-so full of stuff I could never
understand or even read-you'll think back on your brother Harv, who saw it
lying in the gutter years ago and took it into -his mind to bring it to his kid
sister. Will you remember that, Nell?" With that he plugged the oxygen
tube back into his mouth, and his ribs began to heave.
"Of
course I will, Harv," Nell said, her eyes filling with tears, and
blundered her way back across the room until she could sweep Harv's bloated
body up in her strong arms. The
veil swirled like a sheet of water thrown into Harv's face, all the little
umbrellas drawing themselves out of the way as she brought his face up to hers
and planted a kiss on his cheek.
The
veil congealed again as he sank back down onto the foam mattress- just like the
mattresses he had taught her to get from the M.C., long ago-and she turned and
ran out of the room sobbing.
Hackworth
is brought up-to-date by the great Napier.
"Have
you had the opportunity to speak with your family?" Colonel Napier said,
speaking out of a mediatronic sabletop from his office in Atlantis/Shanghai.
Hackworth was sitting in a pub in Atlantis/Vancouver.
Napier
looked good now that he was deeper into middle age- somewhat more imposing.
He'd been working on his bearing.
Hackworth
had been temporarily impressed when Napier's image had first materialized on
the mediatron, then he remembered his own image in the mirror. Once he'd gotten
himself cleaned up and trimmed his beard, which he'd decided to keep, he
realized that he had a new bearing of his own. Even if he was desperately
confused about how he got it.
"Thought
I'd find out what the hell happened first. Besides-" He stopped talking
for a while. He was having trouble getting his conversational rhythm back.
"Yes?"
Napier said in a labored display of patience.
"I
just spoke to Fiona this morning."
"After
you left the tunnels?"
"No.
Before. Before I-woke up, or whatever."
Napier
was slightly taken aback and only popped his jaw muscles a couple of times,
reached for his tea, looked irrelevantly out the window at whatever view he had
out his office window in New Chusan. Hackworth, on the other side of the
Pacific, contented himself with staring into the inky depths of a pint of
stout.
A
dream-image surfaced in Hackworth's mind, like a piece of debris rising to the
surface after a shipwreck, inexorably muscling tons of green murk out of its
path. He saw a glistening blue projectile shoot into the Doctor's beige-gloved
hands, trailing a thick cord, watched it unfold, nay bloom into a baby.
"Why
did I think of that?" he said.
Napier
seemed puzzled by this remark. "Fiona and Gwendolyn are in
Atlantis/Seattle now-half an hour from your present location by tube," he
said.
"Of
course! They live- we live- in Seattle now. I knew that." He was
remembering Fiona hiking around in the caldera of some snow-covered volcano.
"If
you are under the impression that you've been in contact with her
recently-which is quite out of the question, I'm afraid- then it must have been
mediated through the Primer. We were not able to break the encryption on the
signals passing out of the Drummers' cave, but traffic analysis suggests that
you've spent a lot of time racting in the last ten years."
"Ten years!?"
"Yes. But
surely you must have suspected that, from evidence."
"It
feels like ten years. I sense that ten years of things have happened to me. But
the engineer hemisphere has a bit of trouble coming to grips."
"We
are at a loss to understand why Dr. X would choose to have you serve out your
sentence among the Drummers," Napier said. "It would seem to us that
your engineer hemisphere, as you put it, is your most desirable feature as far
as he is concerned-you know that the Celestials are still terribly short of
engineers."
"I've
been working on something," Hackworth said. Images of a nanotechnological
system, something admirably compact and elegant, were flashing over his mind's
eye. It seemed to be very nice work, the kind of thing he could produce only
when he was concentrating very hard for a long time. As, for example, a
prisoner might do.
"What
sort of thing exactly?" Napier asked, suddenly sounding rather tense.
"Can't
get a grip on it," Hackworth finally said, shaking his head helplessly.
The detailed images of atoms and bonds had been replaced, in his mind's eye, by
a fat brown seed hanging in space, like something in a Magritte painting. A
lush bifurcated curve on one end, like buttocks, converging to a nipplelike
point on the other.
"What
the hell happened?"
"Before
you left Shanghai, Dr. X hooked you up to a matter compiler, no?"
"Yes."
"Did
he tell you what he was putting into your system?"
"I
guessed it was hęmocules of some description."
"We
took blood samples before you left Shanghai."
"You
did?"
"We
have ways," Colonel Napier said. "We also did a full workup on one of
your friends from the cave and found several million nanosites in her
brain."
"Several
million?"
"Very
small ones," Napier said reassuringly. "They are introduced through
the blood, of course-the hęmocules circulate through the bloodstream until they
find themselves passing through capillaries in the brain, at which point they
cut through the blood/brain barrier and fasten themselves to a nearby axon.
They can monitor activity in the axon or trigger it. These 'sites all talk to
each other with visible light."
"So
when I was on my own, my 'sites just talked to themselves," Hackworth
said, "but when I came into close proximity with other people who had
these things in their brains-"
"It
didn't matter which brain a 'site was in. They all talked
to one another indiscriminately, forming a network. Get some Drummers together
in a dark room, and they become a gestalt society."
"But
the interface between these nanosites and the brain itself-"
"Yes,
I admit that a few million of these things piggybacking on randomly chosen
neurons is only a feeble interface to something as complicated as the human
brain," Napier said. "We're not claiming that you shared one brain
with these people."
"So
what did I share with them exactly?" Hackworth said.
"Food.
Air. Companionship. Body fluids. Perhaps emotions or general emotional states.
Probably more."
"That's
all I did for ten years?"
"You
did a iot of things," Napier said, "but you did them in a sort of
unconscious, dreamlike state. You were sleepwalking. When we figured that
out-after doing the biopsy on your fellow-troglodyte- we realised that in some
sense you were no longer acting of your own free will, and we engineered a
hunter-killer that would seek out and destroy the nanosites in your brain. We
introduced it, in a dormant mode, into this female Drummer's system, then
reintroduced her to your colony. When you had sex with her-well, you can work
out the rest for yourself."
"You
have given me information, Colonel Napier, and I am grateful, but it has only
made me more confused. What do you suppose the Celestial Kingdom wanted with
me?"
"Did
Dr. X ask anything of you?"
"To
seek the Alchemist."
Colonel
Napier looked startled. "He asked that of you ten years ago?"
"Yes.
In as many words."
"That
is very singular," Napier said, after a prolonged interlude of
mustache-twiddling. "We have only been aware of this shadowy figure for
some five years and know virtually nothing about him- other than that he is a
wizardly artifex who is conspiring with Dr. X."
"Is
there any other information-"
"Nothing
that I can reveal," Napier said brusquely, perhaps having revealed too
much already. "Do let us know if you find him, though. Er, Hackworth,
there is no tactful way to broach this subject. Are you aware that your wife
has divorced you?"
"Oh,
yes," Hackworth said quietly. "I suppose I did know that." But
he hadn't been conscious of it until now.
"She
was remarkably understanding about your long absence," Napier said,
"but at some point it became evident that, like all the Drummers, you had
become sexually promiscuous in the extreme."
"How
did she know?"
"We
warned her."
"Pardon
me?"
"I
mentioned earlier that we found things in your blood. These hęmocules were
designed specifically to be spread through exchange of bodily fluids."
"How
do you know that?"
Napier
seemed impatient for the first time. "For god's sake, man, we know what we
are doing. These particles had two functions: spread through exchange of bodily
fluids, and interact with each other. Once we saw that, we had no ethical
choice but to inform your wife."
"Of
course. That's only right. As a matter of fact, I thank you for it,"
Hackworth said. "And it's not hard to understand Gwen's feelings about
sharing bodily fluids with thousands of Drummers."
"You
shouldn't beat yourself up," Napier said. "We've sent explorers down
there."
"Really?"
"Yes.
The Drummers don't mind. The explorers relate that the Drummers behave much the
way people do in dreams. 'Poorly defined ego boundaries' was the phrase, as I
recall. In any event, your behaviour down there wasn't necessarily a moral
transgression as such-your mind wasn't your own."
"You
said that these particles interact with each other?"
"Each
one is a container for some rod logic and some memory," Napier said.
"When one particle encounters another either in vivo or
in vitro,
they dock and seem to exchange data for a few moments. Most of the time they
disengage and drift apart. Sometimes they stay docked for a while, and
computation takes place-we can tell because the rod logic throws off heat. Then
they disconnect. Sometimes both particles go their separate ways, sometimes one
of them goes dead. But one of them always keeps going."
The
implications of that last sentence were not lost on Hackworth. "Do the
Drummers only have sex with one another, or-"
"That
was our first question too," Napier said. "The answer is no. They
have a very good deal of sex with many, many other people. They actually run
bordellos in Vancouver. They cater especially to the Aerodrome-and-tube-station
crowd. A few years ago they came into conflict with the established bordellos
because they were hardly charging any money at all for their services. They
raised their prices just to be diplomatic. But they don't want the money- what
on earth would they do with it?"
From
the Primer, a visit to Castle
Turing; a final chat with Miss
Matheson; speculation as to Nell's
destiny; farewell; conversation with a
grizzled hoplite; Nell goes forth to
seek her fortune.
The new
territory into which Princess Nell had crossed was by far the largest and most
complex of all the Faery Kingdoms in the Primer. Paging back to the first
panoramic illustration, she counted seven major castles perched on the
mountaintops, and she knew perfectly well that she would have to visit all of
them, and do something difficult in each one, in order to retrieve the eleven
keys that had been stolen from her and the one key that remained.
She
made herself some tea and sandwiches and carried them in a basket to a meadow,
where she liked to sit among the wildflowers and read. Constable Moore's house
was a melancholy place without the Constable in it, and it had been several
weeks since she had seen him. During the last two years he had been called away
on business with increasing 3 frequency, vanishing (as she supposed) into the
interior of China for days, then weeks at a time, coming back depressed and
exhausted to find solace in whiskey, which he consumed in surprisingly moderate
quantities but with fierce concentration, and in midnight bagpipe recitals that
woke up everyone in Dovetail and a few sensitive sleepers in the New Atlantis
Clave.
During
her trip from the campsite of the Mouse Army to the first of the castles, Nell
had to use all the wilderness skills she had learned in years of traveling
around the Land Beyond: She fought with a mountain lion, avoided a bear, forded
streams, lit fires, built shelters. By the time Nell had maneuvered Princess
Nell to the ancient moss-covered gates of the first castle, the sun was shining
horizontally across the meadow and the air was becoming a bit chilly. Nell
wrapped herself up in a thermogenic shawl and set the thermostat for something
a little on the cool side of comfortable; she had found that her wits became
dull if she got too cozy. The basket had a thermos of hot tea with milk, and
the sandwiches would hold out for a while.
The
highest of the castle's many towers was surmounted by a great four-sailed
windmill that turned steadily, even though only a mild breeze could be noticed
at Princess Nell's altitude, hundreds of feet below.
Set into
the main gate was a judas gate, and set into the judas was a small hatch. Below
the hatch was a great bronze knocker made in the shape of a letter T, though
its shape had become indistinct from an encrustation of moss and lichens.
Princess Nell operated the knocker only with some effort and, given its
decrepit state, did not expect a response; but hardly had the first knock
sounded than the hatch opened up, and she was confronted by a helmet: For the
gatekeeper on the other side was dressed from head to toe in a rusty and
moss-covered suit of battle armor. But the gatekeeper said nothing, simply
stared at Princess Nell; or so she assumed, as she could not see his face
through the helmet's narrow vision-slits.
"Good
afternoon," said Princess Nell. "I beg your pardon, but I am a
traveler in these parts, and I wonder if you would be so good as to give me a
place to stay for the night."
Without a
word, the gatekeeper slammed the hatch closed. Nell could hear the creaking and
clanking of his armor as he slowly marched away.
Some
minutes later, she heard him coming toward her again, though this time the
noise was redoubled. The rusty locks on the judas gate grumbled and shrieked.
The gate door swung open, and Princess Nell stepped back from it as rust
flakes, fragments of lichens, and divots of moss showered down around her. Two
men in armor now stood there, beckoning her forward.
Nell
stepped through the gate and into the dark streets of the castle. The gate
slammed behind her. An iron vise clamped around each of Princess Nell's upper
arms; the men had seized her with their gauntlets. They lifted her into the air
and carried her for some minutes through the streets, stairs, and corridors of
the castle. These were completely deserted.
She did not
see so much as a mouse or a rat. No smoke rose from the chimneys, no light came
from any window, and in the long hallway leading to the throne room, the
torches hung cold and blackened in their sconces. From place to place Princess
Nell saw another armored soldier standing at attention, but, as none of them
moved, she did not know whether these were empty suits of armor or real men.
Nowhere did
she see the usual signs of commerce and human activity: horse manure, orange
peels, barking dogs, running sewers. Somewhat to her alarm, she did see an
inordinate number of chains. The chains were all of the same, somewhat peculiar
design, and she saw them everywhere: piled up in heaps on streetcorners,
overflowing from metal baskets, dangling from rooftops, strung between towers.
The
clanking and squeaking of the men who bore her along made it difficult for her
to hear anything else; but as they proceeded higher and deeper into the castle,
she slowly became conscious of a deep grinding, growling noise that pervaded
the very ashlars. This noise crescendoed as they hustled down the long final
hallway, and became nearly earth-shaking as they finally entered the vaulted
throne room at the very heart of the castle.
The room
was dark and cold, though some light was admitted by clerestory windows high up
in the vaults. The walls were lined with men in armor, standing stock-still.
Sitting in the middle of the room, on a throne twice as high as a man, was a
giant, dressed in a suit of armor that gleamed like a looking-glass. Standing
below him was a man in armor holding a rag and a wire brush, vigorously buffing
one of the lord's greaves.
"Welcome
to Castle Turing," said the lord in a metallic voice.
By this
time, Princess Nell's eyes had adjusted to the dimness, and she could see
something else behind the throne: a tremendous Shaft, as thick as the mainmast
of a dromond, made of the trunk of a great tree bound and reinforced with brass
plates and bands. The Shaft turned steadily, and Princess Nell realized that it
must be transmitting the power of the giant windmill far above them.
Enormous
gears, black and sticky with grease, were attached to the Shaft and transferred
its power to other, smaller shafts that ran off horizontally in every direction
and disappeared through holes in the walls. The turning and grinding of all
these shafts and gears made the omnipresent noise she had noted earlier.
One
horizontal shaft ran along each wall of the throne room at about the height of
a man's chest. This shaft passed through a gearbox at short, regular intervals.
A stubby, square shaft projected from each gearbox at a right angle, sticking
straight out of the wall. These gearboxes tended to coincide with the locations
of the soldiers.
The soldier
who was polishing the lord's armor worked his way around to one of the lord's
spiked knee protectors and, in so doing, turned his back on Princess Nell. She
was startled to see a large square hole in the middle of his back.
Nell
knew, vaguely, that the name Castle Turing was a hint; she'd learned a bit
about Turing at Miss Matheson's Academy. He had something to do with computers.
She could have turned to the Encyclopędia pages and looked it right up, but she
had learned to let the Primer tell the story its own way. Clearly the soldiers
were not men in armor, but simply wind-up men, and the same was probably true
of the Duke of Turing himself.
After
a short and not very interesting conversation, during which Princess Nell tried
unsuccessfully to establish whether the Duke was or was not human, he
announced, unemotionally, that he was throwing her into the dungeon forever.
This sort of thing no longer surprised or
upset Nell because it had happened hundreds of times during her relationship
with the Primer. Besides, she had known, from the very first day Harv had given
her the book, how the story would come out in the end. It was just that the
story was anfractuous; it developed more ramifications the more closely she
read it.
One
of the soldiers detached himself from his gearbox on the wall, stomped into the
corner, and picked up a metal basket filled with one of those peculiar chains
Princess Nell had seen everywhere. He carried it to the throne, fished through
it until he found the end, and fed the end into a hole on the side of the
throne. In the meantime, a second soldier had also detached himself from the
wall and taken up a position on the opposite side of the throne. This soldier
flipped his visor open to expose some sort of mechanical device in the space
where his head ought to have been.
A
tremendous chattering noise arose from inside the throne. The second soldier
caught the end of the chain as it was emerging from his side and fed it into
the opening in his visor. A moment later it popped out of a hatch on his chest.
In this fashion, the entire length of the chain, some twenty or thirty feet in
all, was slowly and noisily drawn out of the basket, into the noisy mechanism
hidden beneath the throne, down the second soldier's throat, out the hatch in
his chest, and down to the floor, where it gradually accumulated into a greasy
heap. The process went on for much longer than Princess Nell first anticipated,
because the chain frequently changed direction; more than once, when the basket
was nearly empty, the chain began to spew back into it until it was nearly full
again. But on the whole it was more apt to go forward than backward, and
eventually the last link lifted free from the basket and disappeared into the
throne. A few seconds later, the din from the throne stopped; now Nell could
only hear a somewhat lesser chattering from the second soldier. Finally that
stopped as well, and the chain fell from his chest. The soldier scooped it up
in his arms and deposited it in an empty basket that was sitting handily
nearby. Then he strode toward Nell, bent forward at the waist, put his hard
cold shoulder rather uncomfortably into the pit of her stomach, and picked her
up off the floor like a sack of corn. He carried her for some minutes through
the castle, most of that time spent descending endless stone staircases, and
finally brought her to a very deep, dark, and cold dungeon, where he deposited
her in a small and perfectly dark cell.
Nell
said, "Princess Nell used one of the magic spells Purple
had
taught her to make light." Princess Nell could see
that the room was about two by three paces, with a stone bench on one wall to
serve as a bed, and a hole in the floor for a toilet. A tiny barred window in
the back wall led to an air shaft. Evidently this was quite deep and narrow,
and Nell was close to the very bottom, because no light came through it. The
soldier walked out of the cell and pulled the door shut behind him; as he did,
she saw that the lock was extraordinarily large, about the size of an iron
breadbox mounted to the door, full of clockwork and with a large crank dangling
from its center.
The door
was equipped with a small peephole. Peering out through it, Nell could see that
the soldier did not have a key as such. Instead, he took a short length of
chain, about as long as his arm, from a peg near the door and fed it into the
giant lock. Then he began to turn the crank. The clockwork clicked, the chain
clanked, and eventually the bolt shot out and engaged the jamb, locking
Princess Nell into the dungeon. Immediately the chain crashed out of the lock
and landed on the floor. The soldier picked it up and hung it back on the wall.
Then he clanked away and did not come back until several hours later, when he
brought her some bread and water, shoving it through a little hatch in the
middle of the door, just above the mechanical lock.
It did not
take Princess Nell long to explore the limited confines of her cell. In one
corner, buried under dust and debris, she found something hard and cold and
pulled it out for a better look: It was a fragment of chain, quite rusty, but
clearly recognizable as the same sort of chain that she saw all over Castle
Turing.
The chain
was flat. Each link had a toggle: a movable bit of metal in the center, capable
of rotating about and snapping into place in either of two positions, either
parallel or perpendicular to the chain.
During her
first night in the cell, Nell discovered two other things. First, the latch on
the little door through which her food was delivered was partly accessible from
her side, and with a little effort she was able to jam it so that it no longer
locked properly. After that, she was able to stick her head out of the hatch
and examine her surroundings, including the mechanical lock. Or she could reach
out with one arm and feel the lock, spin the crank, and so on.
The second
discovery came in the middle of the night, when she was awakened by a metallic
clanking sound coming through the tiny window on the air shaft. Reaching out
with one hand, she felt the end of a chain dangling there. She pulled on it,
and after initial resistance, it came freely. In short order she was able to
pull many yards of chain into her cell and pile it up on the floor.
Nell
had a pretty good idea what to do with the chain. Starting with the end, she
examined the toggles and began to mark their positions down (the Primer always
gave her scratch pages when she needed them). She made a horizontal mark for
toggles parallel to the chain and a vertical mark for those that were
perpendicular, and came up with this:
||||||||- |||||- ||||||||||||-
||||||||||||- |||||||||||||||- -
|||||||||- - |- |||||||||||||- - -
||||- |||||||||||||||||||||- |||||||||||-|||||- - -
- - ||||||||||||||||||||-
|||||||||||||||||||||- ||||||||||||||||||- |||||||||- ||||||||||||||- |||||||-
If
she counted the vertical marks and replaced them with
numbers, this amounted to
8-5-12-12-15- -9- -1-13- - -4-21-11-5- - - - -20-21-18-9-14-7-
and if the numbers stood for letters of the alphabet, horizontal
marks divided the letters, and double horizontals were spaces,
this was HELLO
I AM- - -DUKE- - - - -TURING Perhaps the multiple horizontals were codes for
commonly used words: - - - the -
- - - (not used; possibly alan?) - - - - - of
If that was
right, then the message was HELLO I AM THE DUKE
OF TURING, which was interesting, since the giant fellow
in the armor had previously identified himself as such, and she
deemed it unlikely that he would be sending her a message by
this route. This must have come from someone
else calling himself the Duke of Turing- perhaps
a real, living human being.
A
few years ago Nell could have relied on it. But in recent years the Primer had
become much subtler than it used to be, full of hidden traps, and she could no
longer make comfortable and easy assumptions. It was just as likely that this
chain had descended straight from the throne room itself, and that the
mechanical Duke was, for some unfathomable reason, trying to dupe her. So while
she was happy to respond to this message in kind, she intended to take a
guarded approach until she had established whether the sender was human or
mechanical.
The
next part of the message was GIVE- - -CHAIN- - - -TUG-- - - - -ANSWER. Assuming
that four horizontal marks stood for alan and
six stood for to,
this was GIVE THE CHAIN A TUG TO ANSWER.
Nell
began to flip the toggles on the chain, erasing the message from this personage
calling himself the Duke and replacing it with I AM PRINCESS NELL WHY DID YOU
IMPRISON ME. Then she gave the chain a tug, and after a moment it began to
withdraw from her cell. A few minutes later, back came the message: WELCOME
PRINCESS NELL LET US DEVISE A MORE EFFICIENT MEANS OF COMMUNICATION followed by
instructions on how to use a more compact system of toggles to represent
numbers, and how to convert the numbers into letters and punctuation marks.
Once this was settled, the Duke said I AM THE REAL DUKE. I CREATED THESE
MACHINES, AND THEY IMPRISONED ME IN A HIGH TOWER FAR ABOVE YOU. THE MACHINE
CALLING HIMSELF THE DUKE IS MERELY THE LARGEST AND MOST SOPHISTICATED OF MY
CREATIONS.
Nell
responded, THIS CHAIN WEIGHS HUNDREDS OF POUNDS. YOU MUST BE STRONG FOR A
HUMAN.
The
Duke responded YOU ARE A SHARP ONE PRINCESS NELL! THE FULL WEIGHT OF THE CHAIN
IS ACTUALLY SEVERAL THOUSAND POUNDS, AND I MANAGE IT BY MEANS OF A WINCH
LOCATED IN MY ROOM AND DERIVING ITS MOTIVE POWER FROM THE CENTRAL SHAFT.
Night
had long since fallen on the meadow. Nell closed the Primer, packed up her
basket, and returned home.
She
stayed up late into the night with the Primer, just as she had when she was a
small child, and as a result was late for church the next morning. They said a
special prayer for Miss Matheson, who was at home and said to be feeling
poorly. Nell called on her for a few minutes after the service, then went
straight back home and dove into the Primer again.
She
was attacking two problems at once. First, she needed to figure out how the
lock on the door worked. Second, she needed to find out whether the person
sending her the message was human or mechanical. If she could be confident that
he was a human, she could ask him for assistance in opening the lock, but until
she had settled this issue, she had to keep her activities a secret.
The
lock only had a few parts that she could observe: the crank, the bolt, and a
pair of brass drums set into the top with digits from 0 to 9 engraved in them,
so that by spinning different ways, they could display all the integers from 00
to 99. These drums were in almost constant motion whenever the crank was
turning.
Nell
had managed to detach several yards of chain from the one that she was using to
converse with the Duke, and so she was able to feed different messages into the
lock and see what result they had.
The
number on the top changed with every link that went into the machine, and it
seemed to determine, in a limited way, what the machine would do next; for
example, she had learned that the number happened to be 09, and if the next
link in the chain was in the vertical position (which the Duke referred to as a
one), the drums would spin around and change the number to 23. But if the next
link was, instead, a zero (as the Duke referred to links with horizontal
toggles), the number drums would change to 03. But that wasn't all: In this
case, the machine would, for some reason, reverse the direction in which the
chain was moving through the machine, and also flick the toggle from zero to
one. That is, the machine could write on the chain as well as read from it.
From
idle chitchat with the Duke she learned that the numbers on the drums were
referred to as states. At first she did not know which states led to other
states, and so she wandered aimlessly from one state to the next, recording the
connections on scratch paper.
This
soon grew to a table listing some thirty-two different states and how the lock
would respond to a one or a zero when it was in each of those states. It took a
while for Nell to fill out all the blank spaces in the table, because some of
the states were hard to get to-they could be reached only by getting the
machine to write a certain series of ones and zeros on the chain.
She
would have gone crazy with ones and zeros were it not for the frequent
interruptions from the Duke, who evidently had nothing better to do than to
send her messages. These two parallel courses of inquiry occupied all of Nell's
free time for a couple of weeks, and she made slow but steady progress.
"You
must learn how to operate the lock on your door," the Duke said.
"This will enable you to effect an escape and to come and rescue me. I
will instruct you."
All
he wanted to talk about was technology, which wouldn't help Nell in figuring
out whether he was a human or a machine. "Why don't you pick your own
lock," she responded, "and come and rescue me? I am just a poor
helpless young thing all alone in the world, and so scared and lonely, and you
seem so brave and heroic; your story really is quite romantic, and I cannot
wait to see how it all comes out now that our fates have become
intertwined."
"The
machines placed a special lock on my door, not a Turing machine,"
responded the Duke.
"Describe
yourself," Nell wrote.
"Nothing
special, - I'm afraid," wrote the Duke. "How about yourself?"
"Slightly
taller than average, flashing green eyes, raven hair falling in luxuriant waves
to my waist unless I pin it up to emphasize my high cheekbones and full lips.
Narrow waist, pert breasts, long legs, alabaster skin that flushes vividly when
I am passionate about something, which is frequently."
"Your
description is reminiscent of my late wife, God rest her
soul."
"Tell
me about your wife."
"The
subject fills me with such unutterable sadness that I cannot bear to write
about it. Now, let's buckle down to work on the Turing machine."
Since
the prurient approach had dead-ended, Nell tried a different tack: playing
stupid. Sooner or later, the Duke would become a little testy. But he was
always terribly patient with her, even after the twentieth repetition of
"Could you explain it again with different words? I still don't get
it." Of course, for all she knew, he was upstairs punching the walls until
his knuckles were bloody and simply pretending to be patient with her. A man
who'd been locked up in a tower for years would learn to be extremely patient.
She
tried sending him poetry. He sent back glowing reviews but declined to send her
any of his own, saying it wasn't good enough to be committed to metal.
On
her twentieth day in the dungeon, Princess Nell finally got the lock open.
Rather than making an immediate escape, she locked herself back in and sat down
to ponder her next move.
If
the Duke was human, she should notify him so that they could plan their escape.
If he was a machine, doing so would lead to disaster. She had to figure out the
Duke's identity before she made another move.She sent him another poem. For the Greek's love she gave away her
heart Her father, crown and
homeland. They stopped to rest on
Naxos She woke up alone upon the strand The sails of her lover's ship descending Round the slow curve of the earth.
Ariadne Fell into a swoon on the churned
sand And dreamed of home. Minos did not
forgive her And holding diamonds in the
pouches of his eyes Had her flung into
the Labyrinth. She was alone this time.
Through a wilderness Of blackness
wandered Ariadne many days Until she
tripped on the memory. It was still
wound all through the place. She spun it
round her fingers Lifted it from the
floor Knotted it into lace Erased it.
The lace made a gift for him who had imprisoned her. Blind with tears, he read it with his fingers And opened his arms.
The answer came
back much too quickly, and it was the same answer as always: "I do so envy
your skill with words. Now, if you do not object, let us turn our attention to
the inner workings of the Turing machine."
She
had made it as obvious as she dared, and the Duke still hadn't gotten the
message. He must be a machine.
Why
the deception?
Clearly,
the mechanical Duke desired for her to learn about the Turing machines. That
is, if a machine could ever be said to desire something.
There
must be something wrong with the Duke's programming. He knew there was
something wrong with it, and he needed a human to fix it.
Once
Nell had figured these things out, the rest of the Castle Turing story resolved
itself quickly and neatly. She slipped out of her cell and stealthily explored
the castle. The soldiers rarely noticed her, and when they did, they could not
improvise; they had to go back to the Duke to be reprogrammed. Eventually,
Princess Nell found her way into a room beneath the windmill that contained a sort
of clutch mechanism. By disengaging the clutch, she was able to stop the Shaft.
Within a few hours, the springs inside the soldiers' back had all run down, and
they had all stopped in their tracks. The whole castle was frozen, as if she
had cast an enchantment over it.
Now
roaming freely, she opened up the Duke's throne and found a Turing machine
beneath it. On either side of the machine was a narrow hole descending straight
through the floor and into the earth for as far as her torch light could illuminate
it. The chain containing the Duke's program dangled on either side into these
holes. Nell tried throwing stones into the holes and never heard them hit
bottom; the chain must be unfathomably long.
High
up in one of the castle's towers, Princess Nell found a skeleton in a chair,
slumped over a table piled high with books. Mice, bugs, and birds had nibbled
away all of the flesh, but traces of gray hair and whiskers were still
scattered around the table, and around the cervical vertebrae was a golden chain
bearing a seal with the T insignia.
She
spent some time going through the Duke's books. Most of them were notebooks
where he would sketch the inventions he hadn't had time to build yet. He had
plans for whole armies of Turing machines made to run in parallel, and for
chains with links that could be set in more than two positions, and for
machines that would read and write on two-dimensional sheets of chain mail
instead of one-dimensional chains, and for a three-dimensional Turing grid a
mile on a side, through which a mobile Turing machine would climb about,
computing as it went.
No
matter how complicated his designs became, the Duke always found a way to
simulate their behavior by putting a sufficiently long chain into one of the
traditional Turing machines. That is to say that while the parallel and
multidimensional machines worked more quickly than the original model, they
didn't really do anything different.
One
afternoon, Nell was sitting in her favorite meadow, reading
about these things in the Primer, when a riderless chevaline emerged
from the woods and galloped directly toward her. This was not highly unusual,
in and of itself; chevalines were smart enough to be sent out in
search of specific persons. People rarely sent them in search
of Nell, though.
The
chevaline galloped at her full-tilt until it was just a few feet away, and then
planted its hooves and stopped instantly- a trick it could easily do
when it wasn't carrying a human. It was carrying a note written in Miss
Stricken's hand: "Nell, please come immediately. Miss Matheson has
requested your presence, and time is short."
Nell
didn't hesitate. She gathered her things, stuffed them into the mount's small
luggage compartment, and climbed on. "Go!" she said. Then, getting
herself well situated and clenching the hand-grips, she added, "Unlimited
speed." Within moments the chevaline was threading gaps between trees at
something close to a cheetah's sprint velocity, clawing its way up the hill
toward the dog pod grid.
From
the way the tubes ran, Nell guessed that Miss Matheson was plugged into the
Feed in two or three different ways, though everything had been discreetly
hidden under many afghans, piled up on top of her body like the airy layers of
a French pastry. Only her face and hands were visible, and looking at them Nell
remembered for the first time since their introduction just how old Miss
Matheson was. The force of her personality had blinded Nell and all the girls
to the blunt evidence of her true age.
"Please
let us be, Miss Stricken," Miss Matheson said, and Miss Stricken backed
out warily, strewing reluctant and reproving glances along her trail.
Nell
sat on the edge of the bed and carefully lifted one of Miss Matheson's hands
from the coverlet, as if it were the desiccated leaf of some rare tree.
"Nell," Miss Matheson said, "do not waste my few remaining
moments with pleasantries."
"Oh,
Miss Matheson-" Nell began, but the old lady's eyes widened and she gave
Nell a certain look, practiced through many decades in the classroom, that
still had not lost its power to silence.
"I
have requested that you come here because you are my favorite student. No! Do
not say a word," Miss Matheson admonished her, as Nell leaned her face
closer, eyes filling with tears. "Teachers are not supposed to have
favorites, but I am approaching that time when I must confess all my sins, so
there it is.
"I
know that you have a secret, Nell, though I cannot imagine what it is, and I
know that your secret has made you different from any other girl I have ever
taught. I wonder what you suppose you will do with your life when you leave
this Academy, as you must
soon, and go out into the world?"
"Take
the Oath, of course, as soon as I reach the age of eligibility. And I suppose
that I should like to study the art of programming, and how ractives are made.
Someday, of course, after I have become one of Her Majesty's subjects, I should
like to find a nice husband and perhaps raise children- "
"Oh,
stop it," Miss Matheson said. "You are a young woman- of course you
think about whether you shall have children- every young woman does. I
haven't much time left, Nell, and we must dispense with what makes you like all
the other girls and concentrate on what makes you different."
At
this point, the old lady gripped Nell's hand with surprising force and raised
her head just a bit off the pillow. The tremendous wrinkles and furrows on her
brow deepened, and her hooded eyes took on an intense burning appearance.
"Your destiny is marked in some way, Nell. I have known it since the day
Lord Finkle-McGraw came to me and asked me to admit you- a
ragged little thete girl- into my Academy.
"You
can try to act the same-
we have tried to make you the same- you can pretend it in the
future if you insist, and you can even take the Oath- but
it's all a lie. You are different."
These
words struck Nell like a sudden cold wind of pure mountain air and stripped
away the soporific cloud of sentimentality. Now she stood exposed and utterly
vulnerable. But not unpleasantly so.
"Are
you suggesting that I leave the bosom of the adopted tribe that has nurtured
me?"
"I
am suggesting that you are one of those rare people who transcends tribes, and
you certainly don't need a bosom any more," Miss Matheson said. "You
will find, in time, that this tribe is as good as any other- better than most,
really." Miss Matheson exhaled deeply and seemed to dissolve into her
blankets. "Now, I haven't long. So give us a kiss, and then be on your
way, girl."
Nell
leaned forward and pressed her lips against Miss Matheson's
cheek, which looked leathery but was surprisingly soft. Then,
unwilling to leave so abruptly, she turned her head and rested it
on Miss Matheson's chest for a few moments. Miss Matheson stroked
feebly at her hair and tut-tutted.
"Farewell,
Miss Matheson," Nell said. "I will never forget you."
"Nor
I you," Miss Matheson whispered, "though admittedly that
is not saying much." . . .
A very large
chevaline stood stolidly in front of Constable Moore's house, somewhere between
a Percheron and a small elephant in size and bulk It was the dirtiest object
Nell had ever seen in her life-its encrustations alone must have weighed
hundreds of pounds and were redolent with the scent of night soil and stagnant
water. A fragment of a mulberry branch, still bearing leaves and even a couple
of actual berries, had gotten wedged into a flexing joint between two adjoining
armor plates, and long ropes of milfoil trailed from its ankles.
The
Constable was sitting in the middle of his bamboo grove, enveloped in a suit of
hoplite armor, similarly filthy and scarred, that was twice as big as he was,
and that made his bare head look absurdly small. He had ripped the helmet off
and dropped it into his fish pond, where it floated around like the eviscerated
hull of a scuttled dreadnought. He looked very gaunt and was staring vacantly,
without blinking, at some kudzu that was slowly but inexorably conquering the
wisteria. As soon as Nell saw the look on his face, she made him some tea and
brought it to him. The Constable reached for the tiny alabaster teacup with
armored hands that could have crumbled stones like loaves of stale bread. The
thick barrels of the guns built into the arms of his suit were scorched on the
inside. He plucked the cup from Nell's hands with the precision of a surgical
robot, but did not lift it to his lips, perhaps afraid that he might, in his
exhaustion, get the distance a bit wrong and inadvertently crush the porcelain
into his jaw, or even decapitate himself. Merely holding the cup, watching the
steam rise from its surface, seemed to calm him. His nostrils dilated once,
then again.
"Darjeeling,"
he said. "Well chosen. Always thought of India as a more civilised place
than China. Have to throw out all of the oolong now, all the keemun, the lung
jang, the lapsang souchong. Time to switch over to Ceylon, pekoe, assam."
He chuckled.
White
trails of dried salt ran back from the corners of the Constable's eyes and
disappeared into his hairline. He had been riding fast with his helmet off.
Nell wished that she had been able to see the Constable thundering across China
on his war chevaline.
"I've
retired for the last time," he explained. He nodded in the direction of
China. "Been doing a bit of consulting work for a gentleman there.
Complicated fellow. Dead now. Had many facets, but now he'll go down in history
as just another damn Chinese warlord who didn't make the grade. It is
remarkable, love," he said, looking at Nell for the first time, "how
much money you can make shovelling back the tide. In the end you need to get
out while the getting is good. Not very honourable, I suppose, but then, there
is no honour among consultants."
Nell
did not imagine that Constable Moore wanted to get into a detailed discussion
of recent events, so she changed the subject. "I think I have finally
worked out what you were trying to tell me, years ago, about being
intelligent," she said.
The
Constable brightened all at once. "Pleased to hear it."
"The
Vickys have an elaborate code of morals and conduct. It grew out of the moral
squalor of an earlier generation, just as the original Victorians were preceded
by the Georgians and the Regency. The old guard believe in that code because
they came to it the hard way. They raise their children to believe in that
code- but
their children believe it for entirely different reasons."
"They
believe it," the Constable said, "because they have been indoctrinated
to believe it."
"Yes.
Some of them never challenge it- they grow up to be
smallminded people, who can tell you what they believe but not why they believe
it. Others become disillusioned by the hypocrisy of the society and rebel- as
did Elizabeth Finkle-McGraw."
"Which
path do you intend to take, Nell?" said the Constable, sounding very interested.
"Conformity or rebellion?"
"Neither
one. Both ways are simple-minded- they are only for people who
cannot cope with contradiction and ambiguity."
"Ah!
Excellent!" the Constable exclaimed. As punctuation, he slapped the ground
with his free hand, sending up a shower of sparks and transmitting a powerful
shock through the ground to Nell's feet.
"I
suspect that Lord Finkle-McGraw, being an intelligent man, sees through all of
the hypocrisy in his society, but upholds its principles anyway, because that
is what is best in the long run. And I suspect that he has been worrying about
how best to inculcate this stance in young people who cannot understand, as he
does, its historical antecedents- which might explain why he has taken an
interest in me. The Primer may have been Finkle-McGraw's idea to begin with-a
first attempt to go about this systematically."
"The
Duke plays his cards close," Constable Moore said, "and so I cannot
say whether your suppositions are correct. But I will admit it hangs together
nicely."
"Thank
you."
"What
do you intend to do with yourself, now that you have pieced all of this
together? A few more years' education and polishing will place you in a
position to take the Oath."
"I
am, of course, aware that I have favorable prospects in the Atlantan
phyle," Nell said, "but I do not think that it would be fitting for
me to take the straight and narrow path. I am going to China now to seek my
fortune."
"Well,"
Constable Moore said, "look out for the Fists." His gaze wandered
over his battered and filthy armor and came to rest on the floating helmet.
"They are coming now."
The
best explorers, like Burton, made every effort to blend in. In this spirit,
Nell stopped at a public M.C., doffed her long dress, and compiled a new set of
clothes- a
navy blue skin-tight coverall emblazoned with SHIT HAPPENS in pulsating orange
letters. She swapped her old clothes for a pair of powered skates on the
waterfront, and then headed straight for the Causeway. It rose gently into the
air for a few miles, and then the Pudong Economic Zone came into view at her
feet, and Shanghai beyond that, and she suddenly began to pick up speed and had
to cut the skates' power assist. She'd passed over the watershed now. Nell was
alone in China.
The
Hackworths have a family reunion;
Hackworth strikes out on his quest;
an unexpected companion.
Atlantis/Seattle
was designed small and to the point; the narrow, convoluted straits of Puget
Sound, already so full of natural islands, did not leave much room for
artificial ones. So they had made it rather long and slender, parallel to the
currents and the shipping lanes, and been rather stingy when it came to the
parks, meadows, heaths, gentleman farms, and country estates. Much of the
Seattle area was still sufficiently rich, civilized, and polite that New
Atlantans did not object to living there, and little Victorian mini-claves were
scattered about the place, particularly east of the lake, around the misty
forest domains of the software khans. Gwen and Fiona had taken a townhouse in
one of these areas.
These
tiny bits of New Atlantis stood out from the surrounding forest in the same way
that a vicar in morning coat and wing collar would have in the cave of the
Drummers. The prevailing architecture here, among those who had not adopted
neo-Victorian precepts, was distinctly subterranean; as if these people were
somehow ashamed of their own humanity and could not bear to fell even a handful
of the immense Douglas firs that marched monotonously up the tumbling slopes
toward the frozen, sodden ridge of the Cascades. Even when it was half buried,
a house wasn't even a proper house; it was an association of modules, scattered
about here and there and connected by breezeways or tunnels. Stuck together
properly and built on a rise, these modules might have added up to a house of
substance, even grandeur; but to Hackworth, riding through the territory on his
way to visit his family, it was all depressing and confusing. Ten years among
the Drummers had not affected his Victorian aesthetics. He could not tell where
one house left off and the next one began, the houses were all intertangled
with one another like neurons in the brain.
His
mind's eye again seemed to seize control of his visual cortex; he could not see
the firs anymore, just axons and dendrites hanging in black three-dimensional
space, packets of rod logic maneuvering among them like space probes, meeting
and copulating among the nerve fibers.
It
was a bit too aggressive to be a reverie and too abstract to be a
hallucination. It didn't really clear away until a gust of cold mist hit him in
his face, he opened his eyes, and realized that Kidnapper had stopped after
emerging from the trees at the crest of a mossy ridgeline. Below him was a
rocky bowl with a few cobblestone streets sketched out in a grid, a green park
lined with red geraniums, a church with a white steeple, whitewashed four-story
Georgian buildings surrounded by black wrought-iron fences. The security grid
was tenuous and feeble; the software khans were at least as good at that kind
of thing as Her Majesty's specialists, and so a New Atlantis clave in this area
could rely on the neighbors to shoulder much of that burden.
Kidnapper
picked its way carefully down the steep declivity as Hackworth looked out over
the tiny clave, musing at how familiar it seemed. Since leaving the Drummers,
he hadn't gone more than ten minutes without being seized by a feeling of déją
vu, and now it was especially strong. Perhaps this was because, to some degree,
all New Atlantis settlements looked alike. But he suspected that he had seen
this place, somehow, in his communications with Fiona over the years.
A
bell clanged once or twice, and teenaged girls, dressed in plaid uniform
skirts, began to emerge from a domed school. Hackworth knew that it was Fiona's
school, and that she was not entirely happy there. After the crush of girls had
gone out of the place, he rode Kidnapper into the school yard and sauntered
once around the building, gazing in the windows. Without much trouble he saw
his daughter, sitting at a table in the library, hunched over a book, evidently
as part of some disciplinary action.
He
wanted so badly to go in and put his arms around her, because he knew that she
had spent many hours suffering like punishments, and that she was a lonely
girl. But he was in New Atlantis, and there were proprieties to be observed.
First things first. Gwendolyn's townhouse was only a few blocks away. Hackworth
rang the bell, determined to observe all of the formalities now that he was a
stranger in the house.
"May
I ask what your visit is regarding?" asked the parlourmaid, as Hackworth
spun his card onto the salver. Hackworth didn't like this woman, who was named
Amelia, because Fiona didn't like her, and Fiona didn't like her because Gwen
had given her some disciplinary authority in the household, and Amelia was the
sort who relished having it. He tried not to confuse himself by wondering how
he could possibly know all of these things.
"Business,"
Hackworth said pleasantly. "Family business."
Amelia
was halfiway up the stairs when her eyes finally focused on Hackworth's card.
She nearly dropped the salver and had to clutch at the banister with one hand
in order to keep her balance. She froze there for a few moments, trying to
resist the temptation to turn around, and finally surrendered to it. The
expression on her face was one of perfect loathing mixed with fascination.
"Please
carry out your duties," Hackworth said, "and dispense with the vulgar
theatrics."
Amelia,
looking crestfallen, stormed up the stairs with the tainted card. There
followed a good deal of muffled commotion upstairs. After a few minutes, Amelia
ventured as far down as the landing and encouraged Hackworth to make himself
comfortable in the parlor. He did so, noting that in his absence, Gwendolyn had
been able to consummate all of the long-term furniture-buying strategies she
had spent so much time plotting during the early years of their marriage. Wives
and widows of secret agents in Protocol Enforcement could rely on being well
cared for, and Gwen had not allowed his salary to sit around collecting dust.
His
ex-wife descended the stairway cautiously, stood outside the beveled-glass
parlor doors for a minute peering at him through the gauze curtains, and
finally slipped into the room without meeting his gaze and took a seat rather
far away from him. "Hello, Mr. Hackworth," she said.
"Mrs.
Hackworth. Or is it back to Miss Lloyd?"
"It
is."
"Ah,
that's hard." When Hackworth heard the name Miss Lloyd, he thought of
their courtship.
They
sat there for a minute or so, not saying anything, just listening to the
ponderous ratcheting of the grandfather clock.
"All
right," Hackworth said, "I won't trouble you talking about
extenuating circumstances, as I don't ask for your forgiveness, and in all
honesty I'm not sure that I deserve it."
"Thank
you for that consideration."
"I
would like you to know, Miss Lloyd, that I am sympathetic to the step you have
taken in securing a divorce and harbour no bitterness on that account."
"That
is reassuring to know."
"You
should also know that whatever behaviour I engaged in, as inexcusable as it
was, was not motivated by rejection of you or of our marriage. It was not, in
fact, a reflection upon you at all, but rather a reflection upon myself."
"Thank
you for clarifying that point."
"I
realize that any hope I might harbour in my breast of rekindling our former
relationship, sincere as it might be, is futile, and so I will not trouble you
after today."
"I
cannot tell you how relieved I am to hear that you understand the situation so
completely."
"However,
I would like to be of service to you and Fiona in helping to resolve any loose
ends."
"You
are very kind. I shall give you my lawyer's card."
"And,
of course, I look forward to reestablishing some sort of contact with my
daughter."
The
conversation, which had been running as smoothly as a machine to this point,
now veered off track and crashed. Gwendolyn reddened and stiffened.
"You-
you bastard."
The
front door opened. Fiona stepped into the foyer carrying her schoolbooks.
Amelia was there immediately, maneuvering around with her back to the foyer
doors, blocking Fiona's view, talking to her in low angry tones.
Hackworth
heard his daughter's voice. It was a lovely voice, a husky alto, and he would
have recognized it anywhere. "Don't lie to me, I recognised his
chevaline!" she said, and finally shouldered Amelia out of the way, burst
into the parlor, all lanky and awkward and beautiful, an incarnation of joy.
She took two steps across the oriental rug and then launched herself
full-length across the settee into her father's arms, where she lay for some
minutes alternately weeping and laughing.
Gwen
had to be escorted from the room by Amelia, who came back immediately and
stationed herself nearby, hands clasped behind back like a military sentry,
observing Hackworth's every move. Hackworth couldn't imagine what they
suspected he might be capable of-incest in the parlor? But there was no point
in spoiling the moment by thinking of galling things, and so he shut Amelia out
of his mind.
Father
and daughter were allowed to converse for a quarter of an hour, really just
queuing up subjects for future conversation. By that time, Gwen had recovered
her composure enough to reenter the room, and she and Amelia stood
shoulder-to-shoulder, quivering in sympathetic resonance, until Gwen
interrupted.
"Fiona,
your-father-and
I were in the midst of a very serious discussion when you burst in on us.
Please leave us alone for a few minutes."
Fiona
did, reluctantly. Gwen resumed her former position, and Amelia backed out of
the room. Hackworth noticed that Gwen had fetched some documents, bound up in
red tape.
"These
are papers setting out the terms of our divorce, including all conditions
relating to Fiona," she said. "You are already in violation, I'm
afraid. Of course, this can be forgiven, as your lack of a forwarding address
as such made it impossible for us to acquaint you with this information.
Needless to say, it is imperative for you to familiarise yourself with these
documents before darkening my door again."
"Naturally,"
Hackworth said. "Thank you for retaining them for me."
"If
you will be so good as to withdraw from these premises-"
"Of
course. Good day," Hackworth said, took the roll of papers from Gwen's
trembling hand, and let himself out briskly. He was a bit surprised when he
heard Amelia calling to him from the doorway.
"Mr.
Hackworth. Miss Lloyd wishes to know whether you have established a new
residence, so that your personal effects may be forwarded."
"None
as yet," Hackworth said. "I'm in transit."
Amelia
brightened. "In transit to where?"
"Oh,
I don't really know," Hackworth said. A movement caught his eye and he saw
Fiona framed in a second-story window. She was undoing the latches, raising the
sash. "I'm on a quest of sorts."
"A
quest for what, Mr. Hackworth?"
"Can't
say precisely. You know, top secret and all that. Something to do with an
alchemist. Who knows, maybe there'll be faeries and hobgoblins too, before it's
all over. I'll be happy to fill you in when I return. Until then, please ask
Miss Lloyd if she would be so understanding as to retain those personal effects
for just a bit longer. It can't possibly take more than another ten years or
so." And with that, Hackworth prodded Kidnapper forward, moving at an
extremely deliberate pace.
Fiona
was on a velocipede with smart wheels that made short work of the cobblestone
road. She caught up with her father just short of the security grid. Mother and
Amelia had just materialized a block behind them in a half-lane car, and the
sudden sensation of danger inspired Fiona to make an impetuous dive from the
saddle of her velocipede onto Kidnapper's hindquarters, like a cowboy in a
movie switching horses in midgallop. Her skirts, poorly adapted to cowboy
maneuvers, got all fouled up around her legs, and she ended up slung over
Kidnapper's back like a sack of beans, one hand clutching the vestigial knob
where its tail would have been if it were a horse, and the other arm thrown
round her father's waist.
"I
love you, Mother!" she shouted, as they rode through the grid and out of
the jurisdiction of New Atlantis family law. "Can't say the same for you,
Amelia! But I'll be back soon, don't worry about me! Goodbye!" And then
the ferns and mist closed behind them, and they were alone in the deep forest.
Carl
Hollywood takes the Oath; stroll along
the Thames; an encounter with Lord
Finkle-McGraw.
Carl took the
Oath at Westminster Abbey on a surprisingly balmy day in April and afterward
went for a stride down the river, heading not too directly toward a reception
that had been arranged in his honor at the Hopkins Theatre near Leicester
Square. Even without a pedomotive, he walked as fast as many people jogged.
Ever
since his first visit to London as a malnourished theatre student, he had
preferred walking to any other way of getting around the place. Walking,
especially along the Embankment where fellow-pedestrians were relatively few,
also gave him freedom to smoke big old authentic cigars or the occasional briar
pipe. Just because he was a Victorian didn't mean he had to give up his
peculiarities; quite the opposite, in fact. Cruising along past old shrapnel-pocked
Cleopatra's Needle in a comet-like corona of his own roiling, viscous smoke, he
thought that he might get to like this.
A
gentleman in a top hat was standing on the railing, gazing stolidly across the
water, and as Carl drew closer, he could see that it was Lord Alexander
Chung-Sik Finkle-McGraw, who, a day or two earlier, had stated during a
cinephone conversation that he should like to meet him face-to-face in the near
future for a chat.
Carl
Hollywood, remembering his new tribal affiliation, went so far as to doff his
hat and bow. Finkle-McGraw acknowledged the greeting somewhat distractedly.
"Please accept my sincere congratulations, Mr. Hollywood. Welcome to the
phyle."
"Thank
you."
"I
regret that I have not been able to attend any of your productions at the
Hopkins- my
friends who have could hardly have been more complimentary."
"Your
friends are too kind," said Carl Hollywood. He was still a little unsure
of the etiquette. To accept the compliment at face value would have been boastful;
to imply that His Grace's friends were incompetent judges of theatre was not
much of an improvement; he settled for the less dangerous accusation that these
friends had a superfluity of goodness.
Finkle-McGraw
detached himself from the railing and began to walk along the river, keeping a
brisk pace for a man of his age. "I daresay that you shall make a prized
addition to our phyle, which, as brilliantly as it shines in the fields of
commerce and science, wants more artists."
Not
wanting to join in criticism of the tribe he'd just sworn a solemn Oath to
uphold, Carl pursed his lips and mulled over some possible responses.
Finkle-McGraw
continued, "Do you suppose that we fail to encourage our own children to
pursue the arts, or fail to attract enough men such as yourself, or perhaps
both?"
"With
all due respect, Your Grace, I do not necessarily agree with your premise. New
Atlantis has many fine artists."
"Oh,
come now. Why do all of them come from outside the tribe, as you did? Really,
Mr. Hollywood, would you have taken the Oath at all if your prominence as a
theatrical producer had not made it advantageous for you to do so?"
"I
think I will choose to interpret your question as part of a Socratic dialogue
for my edification," Carl Hollywood said carefully, "and not as an
allegation of insincerity on my part. As a matter of fact, just before I
encountered you, I was enjoying my cigar, and looking about at London, and
thinking about just how well it all suits me."
"It
suits you well because you are of a certain age now. You are a successful and
established artist. The ragged bohemian life holds no charm for you anymore.
But would you have reached your current position if you had not lived that life
when you were younger?"
"Now
that you put it that way," Carl said, "I agree that we might try to
make some provision, in the future, for young bohemians-"
"It
wouldn't work," Finkle-McGraw said. "I've been thinking about this
for years. I had the same idea: Set up a sort of young artistic bohemian theme
park, sprinkled around in all the major cities, where young New Atlantans who
were so inclined could congregate and be subversive when they were in the mood.
The whole idea was self-contradictory. Mr. Hollywood, I have devoted much
effort, during the last decade or so, to the systematic encouragement of
subversiveness."
"You
have? Are you not concerned that our young subversives will migrate to other
phyles?"
If
Carl Hollywood could have kicked himself in the arse, he would
have done so as soon as finishing that sentence. He had forgotten about
Elizabeth Finkle-McGraw's recent and highly publicized defection to
CryptNet. But the Duke took it serenely.
"Some
of them will, as the case of my granddaughter demonstrates. But what does it
really mean when such a young person moves to another phyle? It means that they
have outgrown youthful credulity and no longer wish to belong to a tribe simply
because it is the path of least resistance-they have developed principles, they
are concerned with their personal integrity. It means, in short, that they are
ripe to become members in good standing of New Atlantis-as soon as they develop
the wisdom to see that it is, in the end, the best of all possible
tribes."
"Your
strategy was much too subtle for me to follow. I thank you for explaining it.
You encourage subversiveness because you think that it will have an effect
opposite to what one might naively suppose."
"Yes.
And that's the whole point of being an Equity Lord, you know-to look after the
interests of the society as a whole instead of flogging one's own company, or
whatever. At any rate, this brings us to the subject of the advertisement I
placed in the ractives section of the Times and our consequent cinephone
conversation."
"Yes,"
Carl Hollywood said, "you are looking for ractors who performed in a
project called the Young
Lady's Illustrated Primer."
"The
Primer was my idea. I commissioned it. I paid the racting fees. Of course,
owing to the way the media system is organised, I had no way to determine the
identity of the ractors to whom I was sending the fees- hence the need for a
public advertisement."
"Your
Grace, I should tell you immediately-and would have told you on the cinephone,
had you not insisted that we defer all substantive discussion to a
face-to-face-that I myself did not ract in the Primer. A friend of mine did.
When I saw the advertisement, I undertook to respond on her behalf."
"I
understand that ractors are frequently pursued by overly appreciative members
of their audience," said Finkle-McGraw, "and so I suppose I
understand why you have chosen to act as intermediary in this case. Let me
assure you that my motives are perfectly benign."
Carl
adopted a wounded look "Your Grace! I would never have supposed otherwise.
I am arrogating this role to myself, not to protect the young lady in question
from any supposed malignity on your part, but simply because her current
circumstances make establishing contact with her a somewhat troublesome
business."
"Then
pray tell me what you know about the young woman." Carl gave the Equity
Lord a brief description of Miranda's relationship with the Primer.
Finkle-McGraw
was keenly interested in how much time Miranda had spent in the Primer each
week. "If your estimates are even approximately accurate, this young woman
must have singlehandedly done at least nine-tenths of the racting
associated with that copy of the Primer."
"That copy?
Do you mean to say there were others?"
Finkle-McGraw
walked on silently for a few moments, then resumed in a quieter voice.
"There were three copies in all. The first one went to my granddaughter-as
you will appreciate, I tell you this in confidence. A second went to Fiona, the
daughter of the artifex who created it. The third fell into the hands of Nell, a
little thete girl.
"To
make a long story short, the three girls have turned out very differently.
Elizabeth is rebellious and high-spirited and lost interest in the Primer
several years ago. Fiona is bright but depressed, a classic manic-depressive
artist. Nell, on the other hand, is a most promising young lady.
"I
prepared an analysis of the girls' usage habits, which were largely obscured by
the inherent secrecy of the media system, but which can be inferred from the
bills we paid to hire the ractors. It became clear that, in the case of
Elizabeth, the racting was done by hundreds of different performers. In Fiona's
case, the bills were strikingly lower because much of the racting was done by
someone who did not charge money for his or her services-probably her father.
But that's a different story. In Nell's case, virtually all of the racting was
done by the same person."
"It
sounds," Carl said, "as if my friend established a relationship with
Nell's copy-"
"And
by extension, with Nell," said Lord Finkle-McGraw. Carl said, "May I
inquire as to why you wish to contact the ractor?"
"Because
she is a central part of what is going on here," said Lord Finkle-McGraw,
"which I did not expect. It was not a part of the original plan that the
ractor would be important."
"She
did it," Carl Hollywood said, "by sacrificing her career and much of
her life. It is important for you to understand, Your Grace, that she was not
merely Nell's tutor. She became Nell's mother."
These
words seemed to strike Lord Finkle-McGraw quite forcefully. His stride
faltered, and he ambled along the riverbank for some time, lost in thought.
"You
gave me to believe, several minutes ago, that establishing contact with the
ractor in question would not be a trivial process," he said finally, in
quieter voice. "Is she no longer associated with your troupe?"
"She
took a leave of absence several years ago in order to concentrate on Nell and
the Primer."
"I
see," said the Equity Lord, leaning into the words a little bit and
turning it into an exclamation. He was getting excited. "Mr. Hollywood, I
hope you will not be offended by my indelicacy in inquiring as to whether this
has been a paid
leave of absence."
"Had
it been necessary, I would have underwritten it. Instead there is another
backer."
"Another
backer," repeated Finkle-McGraw. He was obviously fascinated, and slightly
alarmed, by the use of financial jargon in this context.
"The
transaction was fairly simple, as I suppose all transactions are au fond,"
said Carl Hollywood. "Miranda wanted to locate Nell. Conventional thinking
dictates that this is impossible. There are, however, some unconventional
thinkers who would maintain that it can be done through unconscious,
nonrational processes. There is a tribe called the Drummers who normally live
underwater-"
"I
am familiar with them," said Lord Finkle-McGraw.
"Miranda
joined the Drummers four years ago," Carl said. "She had entered into
a partnership. The two other partners were a gentleman of my acquaintance, also
in the theatrical business, and a financial backer."
"What
did the backer hope to gain from it?"
"A
leased line to the collective unconscious," said Carl Hollywood.
"He thought it would be to the entertainment industry what
the philosopher's stone was to alchemy."
"And
the results?"
"We
have all been waiting to hear from Miranda."
"You
have heard nothing at all?"
"Only
in my dreams," Carl Hollywood said.
Nell's
passage through Pudong; she happens upon
the offices of Madame Ping; interview
with the same.
Shanghai proper
could be glimpsed only through vertical apertures between the high buildings of
the Pudong Economic Zone as Nell skated westward. Downtown Pudong erupted from
the flat paddy-land on the east bank of the Huang Pu. Almost all of the
skyscrapers made use of mediatronic building materials. Some bore the
streamlined characters of the Japanese writing system, rendered in
sophisticated color schemes, but most of them were written in the denser
high-resolution characters used by the Chinese, and these tended to be stroked
out in fiery red, or in black on a background of that color.
The
Anglo-Americans had their Manhattan, the Japanese had Tokyo. Hong Kong was a
nice piece of work, but it was essentially Western. When the Overseas Chinese
came back to the homeland to build their monument to enterprise, they had done
it here, and they had done it bigger and brighter, and unquestionably redder,
than any of those other cities. The nanotechnological trick of making sturdy
structures that were lighter than air had come along just at the right time, as
all of the last paddies were being replaced by immense concrete foundations,
and a canopy of new construction had bloomed above the first-generation
undergrowth of seventy- and eighty-story buildings. This new architecture was
naturally large and ellipsoidal, typically consisting of a huge neonrimmed ball
impaled on a spike, so Pudong was bigger and denser a thousand feet above the
ground than it was at street level.
Seen
from the apex of the big arch in the Causeway through several miles of bad air,
the view was curiously flattened and faded, as if the whole scene had been
woven into a fabulously complex brocade that had been allowed to gather dust
for several decades and then been hung in front of Nell, about ten feet away.
The sun had gone down not long before and the sky was still a dim orange fading
up into purple, divided into irregular segments by half a dozen pillars of
smoke spurting straight up out of the horizon and toward the dark polluted
vault of the heavens, many miles off to the west, somewhere out in the silk and
tea districts between Shanghai and Suzhou.
As
she power-skated down the western slope of the arch and crossed the coastline
of China, the thunderhead of neon reached above her head, spread out to embrace
her, developed into three
dimensions- and she was still several miles away from
it. The coastal neighborhoods consisted of block after block of
reinforced-concrete apartment buildings, four to five stories high, looking
older than the Great Wall though their real age could not have exceeded a few
decades, and decorated on the ends facing the street with large cartoonish
billboards, some mediatronic, most just painted on. For the first kilometer or
so, most of these were targeted at businessmen just coming in from New Chusan,
and in particular from the New Atlantis Clave. Glancing at these billboards as
she went by them,
Nell
concluded that visitors from New Atlantis played an important role in
supporting casinos and bordellos, both the old-fashioned variety and the newer
scripted-fantasy emporia, where you could be the star in a little play you
wrote yourself. Nell slowed down to examine several of these, memorizing the
addresses of ones with especially new or well-executed signs.
She
had no clear plan in mind yet. All she knew was that she had to keep moving
purposefully. Then the young men squatting on the curbs talking into their
cellphones would keep eyeing her but leave her alone. The moment she stopped or
looked the tiniest bit uncertain, they would descend.
The
dense wet air along the Huang Pu was supporting millions of tons of air buoys,
and Nell felt every kilogram of their weight pressing upon her ribs and
shoulders as she skated up and down the main waterfront thoroughfare, trying to
maintain her momentum and her false sense of purposefulness. This was the
Coastal Republic, which appeared to have no fixed principles other than that
money talked and that it was a good thing to get rich. Every tribe in the world
seemed to have its own skyscraper here. Some, like New Atlantis, were not
actively recruiting and simply used the size and magnificence of their
buildings as a monument to themselves.
Others,
like the Boers, the Parsis, the Jews, went for the understated approach, and in
Pudong anything understated was more or less invisible. Still others-the
Mormons, the First Distributed Republic, and the Chinese Coastal Republic
itself-used every square inch of their mediatronic walls to proselytize.
The
only phyle that didn't seem to appreciate the ecumenical spirit of the place
was the Celestial Kingdom itself. Nell stumbled across their territory, half a
square block surrounded with a stucco-sheathed masonry wall, circular gates
here and there, and an old three-story structure inside, done in high Ming
style with eaves that curved way up at the corners and sculpted dragons along
the ridgeline of the roof. The place was so tiny compared to the rest of Pudong
that it looked as if you might trip over it. The gates were guarded by men in
armor, presumably backed up by other, less obvious defensive systems.
Nell
was fairly certain that she was being followed, unobtrusively, by at least
three young men who had locked on to her during her initial passage in from the
coast, and who were waiting to find out whether she really had somewhere to go
or was just faking it. She had already made her way from one end of the
waterfront to the other, pretending to be a tourist who just wanted to take in
a view of the Bund across the river. She was now heading back into the heart of
downtown Pudong, where she had better look as if she were doing something.
Passing
by the grand entrance to one of the skyscrapers-a Coastal Republic edifice, not
barbarian turf-she recognized its mediaglyphic logo from one of the signs she
had seen on the way into town.
Nell
could at least fill out an application without committing herself. It would
allow her to kill an hour in relatively safe and clean surroundings. The
important thing, as Dojo had taught her long ago in a different context, was
not to stop; without movement she could do nothing.
Alas,
Madame Ping's office suite was closed. A few lights were on in the back, but
the doors were locked and no receptionist was on duty. Nell did not know
whether to be amused or annoyed; whoever heard of a brothel that closed down
after dark? But then these were only the administrative offices.
She
loitered in the lobby for a few minutes, then caught a down elevator. Just as
the doors were closing, someone jumped into the lobby and slammed the button,
opening them back up again. A young Chinese man with a small, slender body,
large head, neatly dressed, carrying some papers. "Pardon me," he
said. "Did you require something?"
"I'm
here to apply for a job," Nell said.
The
man's eyes traveled up and down her body in a coolly professional fashion,
almost completely devoid of prurience, starting and stopping on her face.
"As a performer," he said. The intonation was somewhere between a
question and a declaration.
"As
a scriptwriter," she said.
Unexpectedly,
he broke into a grin.
"I
have qualifications that I will explain in detail."
"We
have writers. We contract for them on the network."
"I'm
surprised. How can a contract writer in Minnesota possibly provide your clients
with the personalized service they require?"
"You
could almost certainly get a job as a performer," said the young man.
"You would start tonight. Good pay."
"Just
by looking at the billboards on the way in, I could see that your customers
aren't paying for bodies. They are paying for ideas. That's your value added,
right?"
"Pardon
me?" said the young man, grinning again.
"Your
value added. The reason you can charge more than a whorehouse, pardon my
language, is that you provide a scripted fantasy scenario tailored to the
client's requirements. I can do that for you," Nell said. "I know
these people, and I can make you a lot of money."
"You
know what people?"
"The
Vickys. I know them inside and out," Nell said.
"Please
come inside," said the young man, gesturing toward the diamondoid door
with MADAME PING'S written on it in red letters. "Would you care for
tea?" .
. .
"There are
only two industries. This has always been true," said Madame Ping,
enfolding a lovely porcelain teacup in her withered fingers, the two-inch
fingernails interleaving neatly like the pinions of a raptor folding its wings
after a long hard day of cruising the thermals. "There is the industry of
things, and the industry of entertainment. The industry of things comes first.
It keeps us alive. But making things is easy now that we have the Feed. This is
not a very interesting business anymore.
"After
people have the things they need to live, everything else is entertainment.
Everything. This is Madame Ping's business."
Madame
Ping had an office on the hundred-and-eleventh floor with a nice unobstructed
view across the Huang Pu and into downtown Shanghai. When it wasn't foggy, she
could even see the facade of her theatre, which was on a side street a couple
of blocks in from the Bund, its mediatronic marquee glowing patchily through
the dun limbs of an old sycamore tree. She had a telescope mounted in one of
her windows, fixed upon the theatre's entrance, and noting Nell's
curiosity, she encouraged her to look through it.
Nell
had never looked through a real telescope before. It had a tendency to jiggle
and go out of focus, it didn't zoom, and panning was tricky. But for all that,
the image quality was a lot better than photographic, and she quickly forgot
herself and began sweeping it back and forth across the city. She checked out
the little Celestial Kingdom Clave in the heart of the old city, where a couple
of Mandarins stood on a zigzag bridge across a pond, contemplating a swarm of
golden carp, wispy silver beards trailing down over the colorful silk of their
lapels, blue sapphire buttons on their caps flashing as they nodded their
heads. She looked into a high-rise building farther inland, apparently a
foreign concession of some type, where some Euros were holding a cocktail
party, some venturing onto the balcony with glasses of wine and doing some
eavesdropping of their own. Finally she leveled the 'scope toward the horizon,
out past the vast dangerous triad-ridden suburbs, where millions of Shanghai's
poor had been forcibly banished to make way for highrises. Beyond that was real
agricultural land, a fractal network of canals and creeks glimmering like a
golden net as they reflected the lambency of the sunset, and beyond that, as
always, a few scattered pillars of smoke in the ultimate distance, where the
Fists of Righteous Harmony were burning the foreign devils' Feed lines.
"You
are a curious girl," Madame Ping said. "That is natural. But you must
never let any other person-especially a client-see your curiosity. Never seek
information. Sit quietly and let them bring it to you. What they conceal tells
you more than what they reveal. Do you understand?"
"Yes,
madam," Nell said, turning toward her interlocutor with a little curtsy.
Rather than trying to do Chinese etiquette and making a hash of it, she was
taking the Victorian route, which worked just as well. For purposes of this
interview, Henry (the young man who had offered her tea) had advanced her a few
hard ucus, which she had used to compile a reasonably decent full-length dress,
hat, gloves, and reticule. She had gone in nervous and realized within a few
minutes that the decision to hire her had already been made, somehow, and that
this little get-together was actually more along the lines of an orientation
session.
"Why
is the Victorian market important to us?" Madame Ping asked, and fixed
Nell with an incisive glare.
"Because
New Atlantis is one of the three first-tier phyles." "Not correct.
The wealth of New Atlantis is great, yes. But its population is just a few
percent. The successful New Atlantis man is busy and has just a bit of time for
scripted fantasies. He has much money, you understand, but little opportunity
to spend it. No, this market is important because everyone else-the men of all
other phyles, including many of Nippon- want to be like Victorian
gentlemen. Look at the Ashantis- the Jews- the
Coastal Republic. Do they wear traditional costume? Sometimes. Usually though,
they wear a suit on the Victorian pattern. They carry an umbrella from Old Bond
Street. They have a book of Sherlock Holmes stories. They play in Victorian
ractives, and when they have to spend their natural urges, they come to me, and
I provide them with a scripted fantasy that was originally requested by some
gentleman who came sneaking across the Causeway from New Atlantis."
Somewhat uncharacteristically, Madame Ping turned two of her claws into walking
legs and made them scurry across the tabletop, like a furtive Vicky gent trying
to slip into Shanghai without being caught on a monitor. Recognizing her cue,
Nell covered her mouth with one gloved hand and tittered.
"This
way, Madame Ping does a magic trick- she turns one satisfied
client from New Atlantis into a thousand clients from all tribes."
"I must confess that I am
surprised," Nell ventured. "Inexperienced as I am in these matters, I
had supposed that each tribe would exhibit a different preference."
"We
change the script a little," Madame Ping said, "to allow for cultural
differences. But the story never changes. There are many people and many
tribes, but only so many stories."
Peculiar
practices in the woods; the Reformed
Distributed Republic; an extraordinary
conversation in a log cabin; CryptNet; the Hackworths depart.
Half a day's
slow eastward ride took them well up into the foothills of the Cascades, where
the clouds, flowing in eternally from the Pacific, were forced upward by the
swelling terrain and unburdened themselves of their immense stores of moisture.
The trees were giants, rising branchless to far above their heads, the trunks
aglow with moss. The landscape was a checkerboard of old-growth forest
alternating with patches that had been logged in the previous century;
Hackworth tried to guide Kidnapper toward the latter, because the scarcity of
undergrowth and deadfalls made for a smoother ride. They passed through the
remains of an abandoned timber town, half small clapboard buildings and half
moss-covered and rust-streaked mobile homes. Through their dirty windows, faded
signs were dimly visible, stenciled THIS HOUSEHOLD DEPENDS ON TIMBER MONEY.
Ten-foot saplings grew up through cracks in the streets. Narrow hedges of
blueberry shrubs and blackberry canes sprouted from the rain gutters of houses,
and gigantic old cars, resting askew on flat and cracked tires, had become
trellises for morning glories and vine maples. They also passed through an old
mining encampment that had been abandoned even longer ago. For the most part,
the signs of modern habitation were relatively subtle. The houses up here
tended to be of the same unassuming style favored by the software khans closer
to Seattle, and from place to place a number of them would cluster around a
central square with playground equipment, cafés, stores, and other amenities.
He and Fiona stopped at two such places to exchange ucus for coffee,
sandwiches, and cinnamon rolls.
The
unmarked, decussating paths would have been confusing to anyone but a native.
Hackworth had never been here before. He had gotten the coordinates from the
second fortune cookie in Kidnapper's glove compartment, which was much less
cryptic than the first had been. He had no way to tell whether he was really
going anywhere. His faith did not begin to waver until evening approached, the
eternal clouds changed from silver to dark gray, and he noticed that the
chevaline was taking them higher and toward less densely populated ground.
Then
he saw the rocks and knew he had chosen the right path. A wall of brown
granite, dark and damp from the condensing fog, materialized before them. They
heard it before they saw it; it made no sound, but its presence changed the
acoustics of the forest. The fog was closing in, and they could barely see the
silhouettes of scrubby, wind-gnarled mountain trees lined up uncomfortably
along the top of the cliff.
Amid
those trees was the silhouette of a human being.
"Quiet,"
Hackworth mouthed to his daughter, then reined Kidnapper to a stop.
The
person had a short haircut and wore a bulky waist-length jacket with stretch
pants; they could tell by the curve of the hips that it was a woman. Around
those hips she had fastened an arrangement of neon green straps: a climbing
harness. She wore no other outdoor paraphernalia, though, no knapsack or
helmet, and behind her on the clifftop they could just make out the silhouette
of a horse, prodding the ground with its nose. From time to time she checked
her wristwatch.
A
tenuous neon strand of rope hung down the bulging face of the cliff from where
the woman stood. The last several meters dangled loosely in the mist in front
of a small cozy pocket sheltered by the overhang.
Hackworth
turned around to get Fiona's attention, then pointed something out: a second
person, making his way along the base of the cliff, out of sight of the woman
above. Moving carefully and quietly, he eventually reached the shelter of the
overhang. He gingerly took the dangling end of the rope and tied it to
something, apparently a piece of hardware fixed into the rock. Then he left the
way he had come, moving silently and staying close to the cliff.
The
woman remained still and silent for several minutes, checking her watch more
and more frequently.
Finally
she backed several paces away from the edge of the cliff, took her hands out of
her jacket pockets, seemed to draw a few deep breaths, then ran forward and
launched herself into space. She screamed as she did it, a scream to drive out
her own fear. The rope ran through a pulley fixed near the top of the cliff.
She
fell for a few meters, the rope tightened, the man's knot held, and the rope,
which was somewhat elastic, brought her to a firm but not violent stop just
above the wicked pile of rubble and snags at the base of the cliff. Swinging at
the end of the rope, she grabbed it with one hand and leaned back, baring her
throat to the mist, allowing herself to dangle listlessly for a few minutes,
basking in relief.
A
third person, previously unseen, emerged from the trees. This one was a
middle-aged man, and he was wearing a jacket that had a few vaguely official
touches such as an armband and an insignia on the breast pocket. He walked
beneath the dangling woman and busied himself for a few moments beneath the
overhang, eventually releasing the rope and letting her safely to the ground.
The woman detached herself from the rope and then the harness and fell into a
businesslike discussion with this man, who poured both of them hot drinks from
a thermal flask.
"Have
you heard of these people? The Reformed Distributed Republic," Hackworth
said to Fiona, still keeping his voice low.
"I
am only familiar with the First."
"The
First Distributed Republic doesn't hang together very well- in a way, it was
never designed to. It was started by a bunch of people who were very nearly
anarchists. As you've probably learned in school, it's become awfully
factionalized."
"I
have some friends in the F.D.R.," Fiona said.
"Your
neighbors?"
"Yes."
"Software
khans," Hackworth said. "The F.D.R. works for them, because they have
something in common-old software money. They're almost like Victorians- a lot
of them cross over and take the Oath as they get older. But for the broad
middle class, the F.D.R. offers no central religion or ethnic identity."
"So
it becomes balkanized."
"Precisely.
These people," Hackworth said, pointing to the man and the woman at the
base of the cliff, "are R.D.R., Reformed Distributed Republic. Very
similar to F.D.R., with one key difference."
"The
ritual we just witnessed?"
"Ritual
is a good description," Hackworth said. "Earlier today, that man and
that woman were both visited by messengers who gave them a place and
time-nothing else. In this case, the woman's job was to jump off that cliff at
the given time. The man's job was to tie the end of the rope before she jumped.
A very simple job-"
"But
if he had failed to do it, she'd be dead," Fiona said.
"Precisely.
The names are pulled out of a hat. The participants have only a few hours'
warning. Here, the ritual is done with a cliff and a rope, because there
happened to be a cliff in the vicinity. In other R.D.R. nodes, the mechanism
might be different. For example, person A might go into a room, take a pistol
out of a box, load it with live ammunition, put it back in the box, and then
leave the room for ten minutes. During that time, person B is supposed to enter
the room and replace the live ammunition with a dummy clip having the same
weight. Then person A comes back into the room, puts the gun to his head, and
pulls the trigger."
"But
person A has no way of knowing whether person B has done his job?"
"Exactly."
"What
is the role of the third person?"
"A
proctor. An official of the R.D.R. who sees to it that the two participants
don't try to communicate."
"How
frequently must they undergo this ritual?"
"As
frequently as their name comes up at random, perhaps once every couple of
years," Hackworth said. "It's a way of creating mutual dependency.
These people know they can trust each other. In a tribe such as the F.D.R.,
whose view of the universe contains no absolutes, this ritual creates an
artificial absolute."
The
woman finished her hot drink, shook hands with the proctor, then began to
ascend a polymer ladder, fixed to the rock, that took her back toward her
horse. Hackworth spurred Kidnapper into movement, following a path that ran
parallel to the base of the cliff, and rode for half a kilometer or so until it
was joined by another path angling down from above. A few minutes later, the
woman approached, riding her horse, an old-fashioned biological model.
She
was a healthy, open-faced, apple-cheeked woman, still invigorated by her leap
into the unknown, and she greeted them from some distance away, without any of
the reserve of neo-Victorians.
"How
do you do," Hackworth said, removing his bowler.
The
woman barely glanced at Fiona. She reined her horse to a gentle stop, eyes
fixed on Hackworth's face. She was wearing a distracted look. "I know
you," she said. "But I don't know your name."
"Hackworth,
John Percival, at your service. This is my daughter Fiona."
"I'm
sure I've never heard that name," the woman said.
"I'm
sure I've never heard yours," Hackworth said cheerfully.
"Maggie,"
the woman said. "This is driving me crazy. Where have we met?"
"This
may sound rather odd," Hackworth said gently, "but if you and I could
both remember all of our dreams-which we can't, of course- and if we compared
notes long enough, we would probably find that we had shared a few over the
years."
"A
lot of people have similar dreams," Maggie said.
"Excuse
me, but that's not what I mean," Hackworth said. "I refer to a
situation in which each of us would retain his or her own personal point of
view. I would see you. You would see me. We might then share certain
experiences together-each of us seeing it from our own perspective.
"Like
a ractive?"
"Yes,"
Hackworth said, "but you don't have to pay for it. Not with money,
anyway." .
. .
The local
climate lent itself to hot drinks. Maggie did not even take off her jacket
before going into her kitchen and putting a kettle on to boil. The place was a
log cabin, airier than it looked from the outside, and Maggie apparently shared
it with several other people who were not there at the moment. Fiona, walking
to and from the bathroom, was fascinated to see evidence of men and women
living and sleeping and bathing together.
As
they sat around having their tea, Hackworth persuaded Maggie to poke her finger
into a thimble-size device. When he took this object from his pocket, Fiona was
struck by a powerful sense of déją vu. She had seen it before, and it was
significant. She knew that her father had designed it; it bore all the earmarks
of his style. Then they all sat around making small talk for a few minutes;
Fiona had many questions about the workings of the R.D.R., which Maggie, a true
believer, was pleased to answer. Hackworth had spread a sheet of blank paper
out on the table, and as the minutes went by, words and pictures began to
appear on it and to scroll up the page after it had filled itself up. The
thimble, he explained, had placed some reconnaissance mites into Maggie's
bloodstream, which had been gathering information, flying out through her pores
when their tape drives were full, and offloading the data into the paper.
"It
seems that you and I have a mutual acquaintance, Maggie," he said after a
few minutes. "We are carrying many of the same tuples in our bloodstreams.
They can only be spread through certain forms of contact."
"You
mean, like, exchange of bodily fluids?" Maggie said blankly.
Fiona
thought briefly of old-fashioned transfusions and probably would not have
worked out the real meaning of this phrase had her father not flushed and
glanced at her momentarily.
"I
believe we understand each other, yes," Hackworth said.
Maggie
thought about it for a moment and seemed to get irked, or as irked as someone
with her generous and contented nature was ever likely to get. She addressed
Hackworth but watched Fiona as she tried to construct her next sentence. "Despite what you Atlantans might
think of us, I don't sleep ... I mean, I don't have s ... I don't have that
many partners."
"I
am sorry to have given you the mistaken impression that I had formed any
untoward preconceptions about your moral standards," Hackworth said.
"Please be assured that I do not regard myself as being in any position to
judge others in this regard. However, if you could be so forthcoming as to tell
me who, or with whom, in the last year or so . . ."
"Just
one," Maggie said. "It's been a slow year." Then she set her tea
mug down on the table (Fiona had been startled by the unavailability of
saucers) and leaned back in her chair, looking at Hackworth alertly.
"Funny that I'm telling you this stuff- you, a stranger."
"Please
allow me to recommend that you trust your instincts and treat me not as a
stranger."
"I
had a fling. Months and months ago. That's been it."
"Where?"
"London."
A trace of a smile came onto Maggie's face. "You'd think living here, I'd
go someplace warm and sunny. But I went to London. I guess there's a little
Victorian in all of us.
"It
was a guy," Maggie went on. "I had gone to London with a couple of
girlfriends of mine. One of them was another R.D.R. citizen and the other,
Trish, left the R.D.R. about three years ago and co-founded a local CryptNet
node. They've got a little point of presence down in Seattle, near the
market."
"Please
pardon me for interrupting," Fiona said, "but would you be so kind as
to explain the nature of CryptNet? One of my old school friends seems to have
joined it."
"A synthetic phyle. Elusive in the
extreme," Hackworth said.
"Each
node is independent and self-governing," Maggie said.
"You
could found a node tomorrow if you wanted. Nodes are defined by contracts. You
sign a contract in which you agree to provide certain services when called upon
to do so."
"What
sorts of services?"
"Typically,
data is delivered into your system. You process the data and pass it on to
other nodes. It seemed like a natural to Trish because she was a coder, like me
and my housemates and most other people around here."
"Nodes
have computers then?"
"The
people themselves have computers, typically embedded systems," Maggie
said, unconsciously rubbing the mastoid bone behind her ear.
"Is
the node synonymous with the person, then?"
"In
many cases," Maggie said, "but sometimes it's several persons with
embedded systems that are contained within the same trust boundary."
"May
I ask what level your friend Trish's node has attained?" Hackworth said.
Maggie
looked uncertain. "Eight or nine, maybe. Anyway, we went to London. While
we were there, we decided to take in some shows. I wanted to see the big
productions. Those were nice-we saw a nice Doctor Faustus at
the Olivier."
"Marlowe's?"
"Yes.
But Trish had a knack for finding all of these little, scruffy, out-of-the-way
theatres that I never would have found in a million years- they weren't marked,
and they didn't really advertise, as far as I could tell. We saw some radical
stuff- really radical."
"I
don't imagine you are using that adjective in a political sense,"
Hackworth said.
"No,
I mean how they were staged. In one of them, we walked into this bombed-out old
building in Whitechapel, full of people milling around, and all this weird
stuff started happening, and after a while I realized that some of the people
were actors and some were audience and that all of us were both, in a way. It
was cool- I suppose you can get stuff like that on the net anytime, in a
ractive, but it was so much better to be there with real, warm bodies around. I
felt happy. Anyway, this guy was going to the bar for a pint, and he offered to
get me one. We started talking. One thing led to another. He was really
intelligent, really sexy. An African guy who knew a lot about the theatre. This
place had back rooms. Some of them had beds."
"After
you were finished," Hackworth said, "did you experience any unusual
sensations?"
Maggie
threw back her head and laughed, thinking that this was a bit of wry humor on
Hackworth's part. But he was serious.
"After we were
finished?" she said.
"Yes.
Let us say, several minutes afterward."
Suddenly
Maggie became disconcerted. "Yeah, actually," she said.
"I got hot. Really hot. We had to leave, 'cause I thought I had a flu or
something. We went back to the hotel, and I took my clothes off
and stood out on the balcony. My temperature was a hundred and
four. But the next morning I felt fine. And I've felt fine ever since."
"Thank
you, Maggie," Hackworth said, rising to his feet and pocketing
the sheet of paper. Fiona rose too, following her father's cue.
"Prior to your London visit, had your social life been an active one?"
Maggie
got a little pinker. "Relatively active for a few years, yes."
"What
sort of crowd? CryptNet types? People who spent a lot of
time near the water?"
Maggie
shook her head. "The water? I don't understand."
"Ask
yourself why you have been so inactive, Maggie, since your
liaison with Mr.-"
"Beck.
Mr. Beck."
"With
Mr. Beck. Could it be that you found the experience just a
bit alarming? Exchange of bodily fluids followed by a violent rise in
core temperature?"
Maggie
was poker-faced.
"I
recommend that you look into the subject of spontaneous combustion,"
Hackworth said. And without further ceremony, he reclaimed his bowler and
umbrella from the entryway and led Fiona back out into the forest.
Hackworth
said, "Maggie did not tell you everything about CryptNet. To begin with,
it is believed to have numerous unsavoury connexions and is a perennial focus
of Protocol Enforcement's investigations. And"- Hackworth laughed
ruefully- "it
is patently untrue that ten is the highest level."
"What
is the goal of this organisation?" Fiona asked.
"It
represents itself as a simple, moderately successful data-processing
collective. But its actual goals can only be known by those privileged to be
included within the trust boundary of the thirty-third level," Hackworth
said, his voice slowing down as he tried to remember why he knew all of these
things. "It is rumoured that, within that select circle, any member can
kill any other simply by thinking of the deed."
Fiona
leaned forward and wrapped her arms snugly around her father's body, nestled
her head between his shoulder blades, and held tight. She thought that the
subject of CryptNet was closed; but a quarter of an hour later, as Kidnapper
carried them swiftly through the trees down toward Seattle, her father spoke
again, picking up the
sentence where he had left it, as if he had merely paused for
breath.
His
voice was slow and distant and almost trancelike, the memories percolating
outward from deep storage with little participation from his
conscious mind. "CryptNet's true desire is the Seed- a technology
that, in their diabolical scheme, will one day supplant the
Feed, upon which our society and many others are founded. Protocol,
to us, has brought prosperity and peace- to CryptNet, however,
it is a contemptible system of oppression. They believe that
information has an almost mystical power of free flow and self-replication, as
water seeks its own level or sparks fly upward- and lacking
any moral code, they confuse inevitability with Right. It is their view that
one day, instead of Feeds terminating in matter compilers, we
will have Seeds that, sown on the earth, will sprout up
into houses, hamburgers, spaceships, and books- that the Seed will
develop inevitably from the Feed, and that upon it will be founded
a more highly evolved society."
He
stopped for a moment, took a deep breath, and seemed to stir
awake; when he spoke again, it was in a clearer and stronger voice. "Of
course, it can't be allowed- the Feed is not a system of control and
oppression, as CryptNet would maintain. It is the only way order can be
maintained in modern society- if everyone possessed a Seed, anyone could
produce weapons whose destructive power rivalled that of Elizabethan nuclear
weapons. This is why Protocol Enforcement takes such a dim view of CryptNet's
activities."
The
trees parted to reveal a long blue lake below them. Kidnapper found its way to
a road, and Hackworth spurred it on to a hand-gallop. Within a few hours,
father and daughter were settling into bunkbeds in a second-class cabin of the
airship Falkland
Islands, bound for London.
From
the Primer, Princess Nell's activities
as Duchess of Turing; the Castle of the
Water-gates; other castles; the
Cipherers' Market; Nell prepares for her
final journey.
Princess
Nell remained in Castle Turing for several months. During her quest for the
twelve keys, she had entered many castles, outwitted their sentries, picked
their locks, and rifled their treasuries; but Castle Turing was an altogether
different place, a place that ran on rules and programs that were devised by
men and that could be rewritten by one who was adept in the language of the
ones and zeroes. She need not content herself with sneaking in, seizing a
trinket, and fleeing. Castle Turing she made her own. Its demesne became
Princess Nell's kingdom.
First she
gave the Duke of Turing a decent burial. Then she studied his books until she
had mastered them. She acquainted herself with the states by which the
soldiers, and the mechanical Duke, could be programmed. She entered a new
master program Into the Duke and then restarted the turning of the mighty Shaft
that powered the castle. Her first efforts were unsuccessful, as her program
contained many errors. The original Duke himself had not been above this; he
called them bugs, in reference to a large beetle that had become entangled in
one of his chains during an early experiment and brought the first Turing
machine to a violent halt. But with steadfast patience, Princess Nell resolved
these bugs and made the mechanical Duke into her devoted servant. The Duke in
turn had the knack of putting simple programs into all of the soldiers, so that
an order given him by Nell was rapidly disseminated into the entire force.
For the
first time in her life, the Princess had an army and servants. But it was not a
conquering sort of army, because the springs in the soldiers' backs unwound rapidly,
and they did not have the adaptability of human soldiers. Still, it was an
effective force behind the walls of the castle and made her secure from any
conceivable aggressor. Following maintenance schedules that had been laid down
by the original Duke, Princess Nell set the soldiers to work greasing the
gears, repairing cracked shafts and worn bearings, and building new soldiers
out of stockpiled parts.
She was
heartened by her success. But Castle Turing was only one of seven ducal seats
in this kingdom, and she knew she had much work to do.
The
territory around the castle was deeply forested, but grassy ridges rose several
miles away, and standing on the castle walls with the original Duke's spyglass,
Nell was able to see wild horses grazing there. Purple had taught her the
secrets of mastering wild horses, and Duck had taught her how to win their
affection, and so Nell mounted an expedition to these grasslands and returned a
week later with two beautiful mustangs, Coffee and Cream. She equipped them
with fine tack from the Duke's stables, marked with the T crest-for the crest
was hers now, and she could with justifIcation call herself the Duchess of
Turing. She also brought a plain, unmarked saddle so that she could pass for a
commoner if need be-though Princess Nell had become so beautiful over the years
and had developed such a fine bearing that few people would mistake her for a
commoner now, even if she were dressed in rags and walking barefoot.
Lying
in her bunkbed in Madame Ping's dormitory, reading these words from a softly
glowing page in the middle of the night, Nell wondered at that. Princesses were
not genetically different from commoners.
On
the other side of a fairly thin wall she could hear water running in half a
dozen sinks as young women performed their crepuscular ablutions. Nell was the
only scripter staying in Madame Ping's dormitory; the others were performers
and were just coming back from a long vigorous shift, rubbing liniment on their
shoulders, sore from wielding paddles against clients' bottoms, or snorting up
great nostril-loads of mites programmed to seek out their inflamed buttocks and
help to repair damaged capillaries overnight. And of course, many more
traditional activities were going on, such as douching, makeup removal,
moisturizing, and the like. The girls went through these motions briskly, with
the unselfconscious efficiency that the Chinese all seemed to share, discussing
the day's events in the dry Shanghainese dialect. Nell had been living among
these girls for a month and was just starting to pick up a few words. They all
spoke English anyway.
She
stayed up late reading the Primer in the dark. The dormitory was a good place
for this; Madame Ping's girls were professionals, and after a few minutes of
whispering, giggling, and scandalized communal shushing, they always went to
sleep.
Nell
sensed that she was coming close to the end of the Primer. This would have been
evident even if she hadn't been closing in on Coyote, the twelfth and final
Faery King. In the last few weeks, since Nell had entered the domain of King
Coyote, the character of the Primer had changed. Formerly, her Night Friends or
other characters had acted with minds of their own, even if Nell just went
along passively. Reading the Primer had always meant racting with other
characters in the book while also having to think her way through various
interesting situations.
Recently
the former element had been almost absent. Castle Turing had been a fair sample
of King Coyote's domain: a place with few human beings, albeit filled with
fascinating places and situations.
She
made her lonesome way across the domain of King Coyote, visiting one castle
after another, and encountering a different conundrum in each one. The second
castle (after Castle Turing) was built on the slope of a mountain and had an
elaborate irrigation system in which water from a bubbling spring was routed
through a system of gates. There were many thousands of these gates, and they
were connected to each other in small groups, so that one gate's opening or
closing would, in some way, affect that of the others in its group. This castle
grew its own food and was suffering a terrible famine because the arrangement
of gates had in some way become fubared. A dark, mysterious knight had come to
visit the place and apparently sneaked out of his bedroom in the middle of the
night and fiddled with connections between some gates in such a way that water
no longer flowed to the fields. Then he had disappeared, leaving behind a note
stating that he would fix the problem in exchange for a large ransom in gold
and jewels. Princess Nell spent some time studying the problem and eventually
noticed that the system of gates was actually a very sophisticated version of
one of the Duke of Turing's machines.
Once
she understood that the behavior of the water-gates was orderly and
predictable, it was not long before she was able to program their behavior and
locate the bugs that the dark knight had introduced into the system. Soon water
was flowing through the irrigation system again, and the famine was relieved.
The
people who lived in this castle were grateful, which she had expected. But then
they put a crown on her head and made her their ruler, which she had not
expected.
On
some reflection, though, it only made sense. They would die unless their system
functioned properly. Princess Nell was the only person who knew how it worked;
she held their fate in her hands. They had little choice but to submit to her
rule.
So
it went, as Princess Nell proceeded from castle to castle, inadvertently
finding herself at the helm of a full-fledged rebellion against King Coyote.
Each castle depended on some kind of a programmable system that was a little
more complicated than the previous one. After the Castle of the Water-gates,
she came to a castle with a magnificent organ, powered by air pressure and
controlled by a bewildering grid of push-rods, which could play music stored on
a roll of paper tape with holes punched through it.
A
mysterious dark knight had programmed the organ to play a sad, depressing tune,
plunging the place into a profound depression so that no one worked or even got
out of bed. With some playing around, Princess Nell established that the
behavior of the organ could be simulated by an extremely sophisticated
arrangement of water-gates, which meant, in turn, that it could just as well be
reduced to an unfathomably long and complicated Turing machine program.
When
she had the organ working properly and the residents cheered up, she moved on
to a castle that functioned according to rules written in a great book, in a
peculiar language. Some pages of the book had been ripped out by the mysterious
dark knight, and Princess Nell had to reconstruct them, learning the language,
which was extremely pithy and made heavy use of parentheses. Along the way, she
proved what was a foregone conclusion, namely, that the system for processing
this language was essentially a more complex version of the mechanical organ,
hence a Turing machine in essence.
Next
was a castle divided into many small rooms, with a system for passing messages
between rooms through a pneumatic tube. In each room was a group of people who
responded to the messages by following certain rules laid out in books, which
usually entailed sending more messages to other rooms. After familiarizing
herself with some of these rule-books and establishing that the castle was
another Turing machine, Princess Nell fixed a problem in the message-delivery
system that had been created by the vexatious dark knight, collected another
ducal coronet, and moved on to castle number
six.
This
place was entirely different. It was much bigger. It was much richer. And
unlike all of the other castles in the domain of King Coyote, it worked. As she
approached the castle, she learned to keep her horse to the edge of the road,
for messengers were constantly blowing past her at a full gallop in both
directions.
It
was a vast open marketplace with thousands of stalls, filled with carts and
runners carrying product in all directions. But no vegetables, fish, spices, or
fodder were to be seen here; all the product was information written down in
books. The books were trundled from place to place on wheelbarrows and carried
here and there on great long seedylooking conveyor belts made of hemp and
burlap. Book-carriers bumped into each other, compared notes as to what they
were carrying and where they were going, and swapped books for other books.
Stacks of books were sold in great, raucous auctions-and paid for not with gold
but with other books. Around the edges of the market were stalls where books
were exchanged for gold, and beyond that, a few alleys where gold could be
exchanged for food.
In
the midst of this hubbub, Princess Nell saw a dark knight sitting on a black
horse, paging through one of these books. Without further ado, she spurred her
horse forward and drew her sword. She slew him in single combat, right there in
the middle of the marketplace, and the book-sellers simply backed out of their
way and ignored them as Princess Nell and the dark knight hacked and slashed at
each other. When the dark knight fell dead and Princess Nell sheathed her
sword, the commotion closed in about her again, like the waters of a turbulent
river closing over a falling stone. Nell picked up the book that the dark
knight had been reading and found that it contained nothing but gibberish. It
was written in some kind of a cipher.
She
spent some time reconnoitering, looking for the center of the place, and found
no center. One stall was the same as the next. There was no tower, no throne
room, no clear system of authority. Examining the market stalls in more detail,
she saw that each one included a man who did nothing but sit at a table and
decipher books, writing them out on long sheets of foolscap and handing them
over to other people, who would read through the contents, consult rule-books,
and dictate responses to the man with the quill pen, who enciphered them and
wrote them out in books that were then tossed out into the marketplace for
delivery. The men with the quill pens, she
noticed, always wore jeweled keys on chains around their necks; the key was
apparently the badge of the cipherers' guild.
This
castle proved fiendishly difficult to figure out, and Nell spent a few weeks
working on it. Part of the problem was that this was the first castle Princess
Nell had visited that was actually functioning as intended; the dark knight had
not been able to foul the place up, probably because everything was done in
ciphers here, and everything was decentralized. Nell discovered that a smoothly
functioning system was much harder to puzzle out than one that was
broken.
In
the end, Princess Nell had to apprentice herself to a master cipherer and learn
everything there was to know about codes and the keys that unlocked them. This
done, she was given her own key, as a badge of her office, and found a job in
one of the stalls enciphering and deciphering books. As it turned out, the key
was more than just a decoration; rolled up inside its shaft was a strip of
parchment inscribed with a long number that could be used to decipher a
message, if the sender wanted you to decipher it. From time to time she would
go to the edge of the market, exchange a book for some gold, then go buy some food
and drink.
On
one of these trips, she saw another member of the cipherer's guild, also taking
his break, and noticed that the key hanging around his neck looked familiar: it
was one of the eleven keys that Nell and her Night Friends had taken from the
Faery Kings and Queens! She concealed her excitement and followed this cipherer
back to his stall, making a note of where he worked. Over the next few days,
going from stall to stall and examining each cipherer, she was able to locate
the rest of the eleven keys. She was able to steal a look at the rule-books
that her employers used to respond to the encoded messages. They were written
in the same special language used at the previous two castles.
In
other words, once Princess Nell had deciphered the messages, her stall
functioned like another Turing machine. It would have been easy enough to
conclude that this whole castle was, like the others, a Turing machine. But the
Primer had taught Nell to be very careful about making unwarranted assumptions.
Just because her stall functioned according to Turing rules did not mean that
all of the others did. And even if every stall in this castle was, in fact, a
Turing machine, she still could not come to
any fixed conclusions. She had seen riders carrying books to and from the
castle, which meant that cipherers must be at work elsewhere in this kingdom.
She could not verify that all of them were Turing machines.
It
did not take long for Nell to attain prosperity here. After a few months (which
in the Primer were summarized in as many sentences) her employers announced
that they were getting more work than they could handle. They decided to split
their operation. They erected a new stall at the edge of the market and gave
Nell some of their rule-books.
They
also obtained a new key for her. This was done by dispatching a special coded
message to the Castle of King Coyote himself, which was three days' ride to the
north. Seven days later, Nell's key came back to her in a scarlet box bearing
the seal of King Coyote himself.
From
time to time, someone would come around to her stall and offer to buy her out.
She always turned them down but found it interesting that the keys could be
bought and sold in this fashion.
All
Nell needed was money, which she quickly accumulated through shrewd dealings in
the market. Before long, all eleven of the keys were in her possession, and
after liquidating her holdings and turning them into jewels, which she sewed
into her clothes, she rode her horse out of the sixth castle and turned north,
heading for the seventh: the Castle of King Coyote, and the ultimate goal of
her lifelong quest.
Nell
goes to Madame Ping's Theatre; rumors of
the Fists; an important client; assault of the Fists of Righteous Harmony; ruminations on the inner workings of
ractives.
Like
much that was done with nanotechnology, Feed lines were assembled primarily
from a few species of small and uncomplicated atoms in the upper right-hand
corner of Mendeleev's grid: carbon, nitrogen, oxygen, silicon, phosphorus,
sulfur, and chlorine. The Fists of Righteous Harmony had discovered, to their
enduring delight, that objects made of these atoms burned rather nicely once
you got them going. The flat, low Yangtze Delta country east of Shanghai was a
silk district well stocked with mulberry trees, which when
felled, stacked, and burned beneath the Feed lines would eventually ignite them
like road flares.
The
Nipponese Feed was heavy on the phosphorus and burned with a furious white
flame that lit up the night sky in several places as seen from the tall
buildings in Pudong. One major line led toward Nanjing, one toward Suzhou, one
toward Hangzhou: these distant flares inevitably led to rumors, among the
hordes of refugees in Shanghai, that those cities were themselves burning.
The
New Atlantan Feed had a higher sulfur content that, when burned, produced a
plutonic reek that permeated everything for dozens of miles downwind, making
the fires seem much closer than they really were. Shanghai was smelling pretty
sulfurous as Nell walked into it across one of the bridges linking downtown
Pudong with the much lower and older Bund. The Huang Pu had been too wide to
bridge easily until nano had come along, so the four downtown bridges were made
of the new materials and seemed impossibly fragile compared with the
reinforced-concrete behemoths built to the north and south during the previous
century.
A
few days ago, working on a script in Madame Ping's offices far
above, Nell had gazed out the window at a barge making its way down
the river, pulled by a rickety old diesel tug, swathed in dun tarps.
A few hundred meters upstream of this very bridge she was now
crossing, the tarps had begun squirming and boiling, and a dozen
young men in white tunics had jumped out from beneath, scarlet
bands tied about their waists, scarlet ribbons around their wrists
and foreheads. They had swarmed across the top of the barge hacking
at ropes with knives, and the tarps had reluctantly and unevenly
fallen away to expose a patchy new coat of red paint and, lined
up on the top of the barge like a string of enormous firecrackers,
several dozen compressed gas tanks, also painted a festive
red for the occasion. Under the circumstances, she did not doubt
for a moment that the men were Fists and the gas hydrogen or something
else that burned well. But before they had been able to reach
the bridge, the tanks had been burst and ignited by something too
small and fast for Nell to see from her high post. The barge silently
turned into a carbuncle of yellow flame that took up half the width
of the Huang Pu, and though the diamond window filtered all of
the heat out of its radiance, Nell was able to put her hand on the pane and
feel the absorbed warmth, not much hotter than a person's skin.
The whole operation had been touchingly hapless, in an age when a hand-size
battery could contain as much energy as all those cylinders of
gas. It had a quaint twentieth-century feel and made Nell
oddly nostalgic for the days when dangerousness was a function of mass and bulk.
The passives of that era were so fun to watch, with their big,
stupid cars and big, stupid guns and big, stupid people.
Up-
and downstream of the bridge, the funeral piers were crowded
with refugee families heaving corpses into the Huang Pu; the
emaciated bodies, rolled up in white sheets, looked like cigarettes.
The Coastal Republic authorities had instituted a pass system
on the bridges to prevent rural refugees from swarming across
into the relatively spacious streets, plazas, atria, and lobbies of
Pudong and gumming up the works for the office crowd. By the time
Nell made it across, a couple of hundred refugees had already picked
her out as a likely alms source and were waiting with canned demonstrations:
women holding up their gaunt babies, or older children who
were trained to hang comatose in their arms; men with open
wounds, and legless gaffers dauntlessly knucklewalking through the crowd,
butting at people's knees. The taxi-drivers were stronger and
more aggressive than the rurals, though, and had a fearsome
reputation that created space around them in the crowd, and
that was more valuable than an actual vehicle; a vehicle would always
get stuck in traffic, but a taxi-driver's hat generated a magic force
field that enabled the wearer to walk faster than anyone else.
The taxi-drivers
converged on Nell too, and she picked out the biggest one and
haggled with him, holding up fingers and essaying a few words in Shanghainese.
When the numbers had climbed into the right range for him, he spun around
suddenly to face the crowd. The suddenness of the movement drove people back,
and the meter-long bamboo stick in his hand didn't hurt either. He stepped
forward and Nell hurried after him, ignoring the myriad tuggings at her long
skirts, trying not to wonder which of the beggars was a Fist with a concealed
knife. If her clothes hadn't been made of untearable, uncuttable nanostuff, she
would have been stripped naked within a block.
Madame
Ping's was still doing a decent business. Its clientele were willing to put up
with some inconvenience to get there. It was only a short distance from the
bridgehead, and the Madame had put a few truculent taxi-drivers on retainer as
personal escorts. The business was startlingly large given the scarcity of real
estate in Shanghai; it occupied most of a five-story reinforced-concrete Mao
Dynasty apartment block, having started out with just a couple of flats and
expanded room by room as the years went on.
The
reception area reminded one of a not-bad hotel lobby, except that it had no
restaurant or bar; none of the clients wanted to see or be seen by any other.
The desk was staffed by concierges whose job was to get the clients out of view
as quickly as possible, and they did it so well that an uninitiated passerby
might get the impression that Madame Ping's was some kind of a walk-in
kidnapping operation.
One
of these functionaries, a tiny woman who seemed oddly prim and asexual
considering that she was wearing a black leather miniskirt, briskly took Nell
to the top floor, where the large apartments had been built and elaborate
scenarios were now realized for Madame Ping's clients.
As
the writer, Nell of course never actually entered the same room as the client.
The woman in the miniskirt escorted her into a nearby observation room, where a
high-res cine feed from the next room covered most of one wall.
If
she hadn't known it already, Nell would have seen from the client's uniform
that he was a colonel in Her Majesty's Joint Forces. He was wearing a full
dress uniform, and the various pins and medals on his coat indicated that he
had spent a good deal of his career attached to various Protocol Enforcement
units, been wounded in action several times, and displayed exceptional heroism
on one occasion. In fact, it was clear that he was a rather important fellow.
Reviewing the previous half-hour, Nell saw that, not surprisingly, he had
arrived in mufti, carrying the uniform in a leather satchel. Wearing the
uniform must be part of the scenario.
At
the moment he was seated in a rather typical Victorian parlor, sipping tea from
a Royal Albert china cup decorated with a somewhat agonistic briar rose
pattern. He looked fidgety; he'd been kept waiting for half an hour, which was
also part of the scenario. Madame Ping kept telling her that no one ever
complained about having to wait too long for an orgasm; that men could do that
to themselves any time they wanted, and that it was the business leading up to
it that they would pay for. The biological readouts seemed to confirm Madame
Ping's rule: Perspiration and pulse were rather high, and he was about half
erect.
Nell
heard the sound of a door opening. Switching to a different angle
she saw a parlormaid entering the room. Her uniform was
not as overtly sexy as most of the ones in Madame Ping's wardrobe department;
the client was sophisticated. The woman was Chinese, but she played the
role with the mid-Atlantic accent currently in vogue among
neo-Victorians: "Mrs. Braithwaite will see you now."
The
client stepped into an adjoining drawing room, where two women awaited him: a
heavy Anglo in late middle age and a very attractive Eurasian woman, about
thirty. Introductions were performed: The old woman was Mrs. Braithwaite, and
the younger woman was her daughter. Mrs. was somewhat addled, and Miss was
obviously running the show.
This
section of the script never changed, and Nell had been over it a hundred times
trying to troubleshoot it. The client went through a little speech in which he
informed Mrs. Braithwaite that her son Richard had been killed in action,
displaying great heroism in the process, and that he was recommending him for a
posthumous Victoria Cross.
Nell
had already done the obvious, going back through the Times archives
to see whether this was a reconstruction of an actual event in the client's
life. As far as she could determine, it was more like a composite of many
similar events, perhaps with a dollop of fantasy thrown in.
At
this point, the old lady got a case of the vapors and had to be helped from the
room by the parlormaid and other servants, leaving the client alone with Miss
Braithwaite, who was taking the whole thing quite stoically. "Your
composure is admirable, Miss Braithwaite," said the client, "but
please be assured that no one will blame you for giving vent to your emotions
at such a time." When the client spoke this line, there was an audible
tremor of excitement in his voice.
"Very
well, then," said Miss Braithwaite. She withdrew a small black
box from her reticule and pressed a button. The client grunted and
arched his back so violently that he fell out of his chair onto the rug,
where he lay paralyzed.
"Mites- you
have infected my body with some insidious nanosite," he gasped. "in
the tea."
"But that
is impossible-
most mites highly susceptible to thermal damage- boiling
water would destroy them."
"You
underestimate the capabilities of CryptNet, Colonel Napier.
Our technology is advanced far beyond your knowledge- as
you will discover during the next few days!"
"Whatever
your plan is- be
assured that it will fail!"
"Oh,
I have no plan in particular," Miss Braithwaite said. "This is
not a CryptNet operation. This is personal. You are responsible for
the death of my brother Richard- and I will have you show the proper
contrition."
"I
assure you that I was as deeply saddened-"
She
zapped him again. "I do not want your sadness," she said. "I
want you to admit the truth: that you are responsible for his death!"
She
pressed another button, which caused Colonel Napier's body
to go limp. She and a maid wrestled him into a dumbwaiter and
moved him down to a lower floor, where, after descending via the
stairway, they tied him to a rack.
This was where
the problem came in. By the time they had finished tying him up, he
was sound asleep.
"He
did it again," said the woman playing the role of Miss Braithwaite,
addressing herself to Nell and anyone else who might be
monitoring. "Six weeks in a row now."
When
Madame Ping had explained this problem to Nell, Nell wondered
what the problem was. Let the man sleep, as long as he kept
coming and paid his bill. But Madame Ping knew her clients and
feared that Colonel Napier was losing interest and might shift his
business to some other establishment unless they put some variety into the
scenario.
"The
fighting has been very bad," the actress said. "He's probably
exhausted."
"I
don't think it's that," Nell said. She had now opened a private
voice channel direct to the woman's eardrum. "I think it is a personal
change."
"They
never change, sweetheart," said the actress. "Once they get
the taste, they have it forever."
"Yes,
but different situations may trigger those feelings at different
times of life," Nell said. "In the past it has been guilt over the
deaths of his soldiers. Now he has made his peace. He has accepted
his guilt, and so he accepts the punishment. There is no longer
a contest of wills, because he has become submissive."
"So
what do we do?"
"We
must create a genuine contest of wills. We must force him to
do something he really doesn't want to do," Nell said, thinking aloud.
What would fit that bill?
"Wake
him up," Nell said. "Tell him you were lying when you said
this wasn't a CryptNet operation. Tell him you want real information.
You want military secrets."
Miss
Braithwaite sent the maid out for a bucket of cold water and
heaved it over Colonel Napier's body. Then she played the role as
Nell had suggested, and did it well; Madame Ping hired people who
were good at improvisation, and since most of them never actually
had to have sex with clients, she had no trouble finding good ones.
Colonel
Napier seemed surprised, not unpleasantly so, at the script
change. "If you suppose that I will divulge information that might
lead to the deaths of more of my soldiers, you are sadly mistaken,"
he said. But his voice sounded a little bored and disappointed,
and the bio readouts coming in from the nanosites in his
body did not show the full flush of sexual excitement that, presumably,
he was paying for. They still were not meeting their client's needs.
On
the private channel to Miss Braithwaite, Nell said, "He still doesn't
get it. This isn't a fantasy scenario anymore. This is real. Madame
Ping's is actually a CryptNet operation. We've been drawing
him in for the last several years. Now he belongs to us, and he's
going to give us information, and he's going to keep giving it to us, because
he's our slave."
Miss
Braithwaite acted the scene as suggested, making up more florid
dialogue as she went along. Watching the bio readouts, Nell could
see that Colonel Napier was just as scared and excited, now, as
he had been on his very first visit to Madame Ping's several years ago
(they kept records). They were making him feel young again, and
fully alive.
"Are
you connected with Dr. X?" Colonel Napier said.
"We'll
ask the questions," Nell said.
"I
shall do the asking. Lotus, give him twenty for that!" said Miss
Braithwajte, and the maid went to work on Colonel Napier with
a cane.
The
rest of the session almost ran itself, which was good for Nell,
because she had been startled by Napier's reference to Dr. X and
had gone into a reverie, remembering comments that Harv had made
about the same person many years ago.
Miss
Braithwaite knew her job and understood Nell's strategy instantly:
the scenario did not excite the client unless there was a genuine
contest of wills, and the only way for them to create that contest was to force
Napier to reveal real classified information.
Reveal
it he did, bit by bit, under the encouragement of Lotus's bamboo
and Miss Braithwaite's voice. Most of it had to do with troop
movements and other minutiae that he probably thought was terribly
interesting. Nell didn't.
"Get
more about Dr. X," she said. "Why did he assume a connection
between CryptNet and Dr. X?" After a few more minutes of whacking and
verbal domination,
Colonel Napier was ready to spill. "Big operation of ours
for many years
now-Dr. X is working in collusion with a high-level CryptNet
figure, the Alchemist. Working on something they mustn't be
allowed to have."
"Don't
you dare hold back on me," Miss Braithwaite said.
But before she
could extract more information about the Alchemist, the building was
jolted by a tremendous force that sent thin cracks racing through
the old concrete. In the silence that followed, Nell could hear
women screaming all over the building, and a crackling, hissing
sound as dust and sand sifted out of a fissure in the ceiling. Then her ears
began to resolve another sound: men shouting, "Sha! Sha!"
"I suggest
that someone has just breached the wall of your building with an
explosive charge," Colonel Napier said, perfectly calm.
"If you would be so good as to terminate the scenario now and
release me, I shall try to make myself useful in whatever is to follow."
Whatever is to follow. The
shouting meant simply, "Kill! Kill!" and was the
battle cry of the Fists of Righteous Harmony.
Perhaps
they wanted Colonel Napier. But it was more likely that
they had decided to attack this place for its symbolic value as a den
of barbarian decadence.
Miss
Braithwaite and Lotus had already gotten Colonel Napier out
of his restraints, and he was pulling on his trousers. "That we are not
all dead implies that they are not making use of nanotechnological
methods," he said professorially. "Hence this attack
may safely be assumed to originate from a low-level neighborhood
cell. The attackers probably believe the Fist doctrine that
they are immune from all weapons. It never hurts, in these situations, to give
them a reality check of some sort."
The
door to Napier's room flew open, splinters of blond naked wood
hissing across the floor. Nell watched, as though watching an old
movie, as Colonel Napier drew a ridiculously shiny cavalry saber from its
scabbard and ran it through the chest of the attacking Fist.
This one fell back into another, creating momentary confusion; Napier
took advantage of it, methodically planting his feet in a rather
prissy-looking stance, squaring his shoulders, calmly reaching out,
as if he were using the saber to poke around in a dark closet, and
twitching the point beneath the second Fist's chin, incidentally cutting
his throat in the process. A third Fist had gotten into the room by this point,
this one bearing a long pole with a knife lashed to the end of it
with the gray polymer ribbon peasants used for rope.
But
as he tried to wheel the weapon around, its butt end got tangled up
in the rack to which Napier had lately been tied. Napier stepped forward
cautiously, checking his footing as he went, as if he did not want
to get any blood on his boots, parried a belated attack, and stabbed
the Fist in the thorax three times in quick succession. Someone kicked at the
door to Nell's room.
"Ah,"
Colonel Napier sighed, when it seemed clear that there were
no more attackers in this party, "it is really very singular that I happen
to have brought the full dress uniform, as edged weapons are
not a part of our usual kit."
Several
kicks had failed to open Nell's door, which unlike the ones
in the scenario rooms was made of a modern substance and could
not possibly be broken in that way. But Nell could hear voices out
in the corridor and suspected that contrary to Napier's speculation,
they might have nanotech devices of a very primitive sort- small
explosives, say, capable of blowing doors open.
She
ditched her long dress, which would only get in the way, and
got down on knees and elbows to peer through the crack under the
door. There were two pairs of feet. She could hear them conversing
in low, businesslike tones.
Nell
opened the door suddenly with one hand, reaching through with
the other to shove a fountain pen into the throat of the Fist standing
closest to the door. The other one reached for an old automatic
rifle slung over his shoulder. This gave Nell more than enough
time to kick him in the knee, which may or may not have done
permanent damage but certainly threw him off balance. The Fist
kept trying to bring his rifle to bear, as Nell kicked him over and
over again. In the end she was able to twist the rifle free from his
feeble one-handed grasp, whirl it around, and butt him in the head.
The
Fist with the pen in his neck was sitting on the floor watching
her calmly. She aimed the rifle his way, and he held up one hand and looked
down and away. His wound was bleeding, but not all that much; she had
ruined his week but not hit anything big.
She
reflected that it was probably a healthy thing for hini in the long run
to be rid of the superstition that he was immune to weapons.
Constable
Moore had taught her a thing or two about rifles. She stepped
back into her room, locked the door, and devoted a minute or
so to familiarizing herself with its controls, checking the magazine
(only half full) and firing a single round (into the door, which
stopped it) just to make sure it worked.
She
was trying to suppress a flashback to the screwdriver incident.
This frightened her until she realized that this time around she
was much more in control of the situation. Her conversations with
the Constable had not been without effect.
Then
she made her way down the corridors and stairwells toward
the lobby, slowly gathering a retinue of terrified young women
along her way. They passed a few clients, mostly male and mostly
European, who had been pulled from their scenario rooms and
crudely hacked up by the Fists. Three times she had to fire, surprised
each time at how complicated it was. Accustomed to the Primer,
Nell had to make allowances when functioning in the real world.
She
and her followers found Colonel Napier in the lobby, about three-quarters
dressed, carrying on a memorable edged-weapons duel with
a couple of Fists who had, perhaps, been left there to keep the path
of escape open. Nell considered trying to shoot at the Fists but decided
against it, because she did not trust her marksmanship and also
because she was mesmerized by the entire scene.
Nell
would have been dazzled by Colonel Napier if she had not recently
seen him strapped to a rack. Still, there was something about
this very contradiction that made him, and by extension all Victorian
men, fascinating to her. They lived a life of nearly perfect emotional
denial-a form of asceticism as extreme as that of a medieval
stylite. Yet they did have emotions, the same as anyone else,
and only vented them in carefully selected circumstances.
Napier
calmly impaled a Fist who had tripped and fallen, then turned
his attention to a new antagonist, a formidable character skilled
with a real sword. The duel between Western and Eastern martial
arts moved back and forth across the lobby floor, the two combatants
staring directly into one another's eyes and trying to intuit the other's
thoughts and emotional state. The actual thrusts and parries and
ripostes, when they came, were too rapid to be understood. The Fist's style was
quite beautiful to watch, involving many slow movements that
looked like the stretching of large felines at the zoo. Napier's
style was almost perfectly boring: He moved about in a crabbed
stance, watched his opponent calmly, and apparently did a lot of deep
thinking.
Watching
Napier at work, watching the medals and braid swinging and
glinting on his jacket, Nell realized that it was precisely their
emotional repression that made the Victorians the richest and most
powerful people in the world. Their ability to submerge their
feelings, far from pathological, was rather a kind of mystical
art that gave them nearly magical power over Nature and over
the more intuitive tribes. Such was also the strength of the Nipponese.
Before the
struggle could be resolved, a smart flechette, horsefly-size,
trailing a whip antenna as thick as a hair and as long as
a finger, hissed in through a broken window and thunked into the back
of the Fist's neck. It did not strike very hard but must have shot
some poison into his brain. He sat down quickly on the floor, closed
his eyes, and died in that position.
"Not
very chivalrous," Colonel Napier said distastefully. "I suppose
I have some bureaucrat up on New Chusan to thank for that."
A
cautious tour of the building turned up several more Fists who had died in the
same fashion. Outside, the same old crowd of refugees, beggars, pedestrians,
and cargo-carrying bicyclists streamed on, about as undisturbed as the Yangtze.
Colonel
Napier did not return to Madame Ping's the next week, but Madame Ping did not
blame Nell for the loss of his custom. To the contrary, she praised Nell for
having correctly divined Napier's wishes and for improvising so well. "A
fine performance," she said.
Nell
had not really thought of her work as a performance, and for some reason Madame
Ping's choice of words provoked her in a way that kept her awake late that
night, staring into the darkness above her bunk.
Since
she had been very small, she had made up stories and recited them to the Primer,
which were often digested and incorporated into the Primer's stories. It had
come naturally to Nell to do the same work for Madame Ping. But now her boss
was calling it a performance, and Nell had to admit that it was, in a way.
Her
stories were being digested, not by the Primer, but by another human being,
becoming a part of that person's mind.
That seemed simple enough, but the notion troubled her for a reason that
did not become clear until she had lain half-asleep and fretted over it for
several hours.
Colonel
Napier did not know her and probably never would. All of the intercourse
between him and Nell had been mediated through the actress pretending to be
Miss Braithwaite, and through various technological systems.
Nonetheless
she had touched him deeply. She had penetrated farther into his soul than any
lover. If Colonel Napier had chosen to return the following week and Nell had
not been present to make up the story for him, would he have missed her? Nell
suspected that he would have. From his point of view, some indefinable essence
would have been wanting, and he would have departed unsatisfied.
If
this could happen to Colonel Napier in his dealings with Madame Ping's, could
it happen to Nell in her dealings with the Primer? She had always felt that
there was some essence in the book, something that understood her and even
loved her, something that forgave her when she did wrong and appreciated what
she did right.
When
she'd been very young, she hadn't questioned this at all; it had been part of
the book's magic. More recently she had understood it as the workings of a
parallel computer of enormous size and power, carefully programmed to
understand the human mind and give it what it needed.
Now
she wasn't so sure. Princess Nell's recent travels through the lands of King
Coyote, and the various castles with their increasingly sophisticated computers
that were, in the end, nothing more than Turing machines, had caught her up in
a bewildering logical circle. In Castle Turing she had learned that a Turing
machine could not really understand a human being. But the Primer was, itself,
a Turing machine, or so she suspected; so how could it understand Nell?
Could
it be that the Primer was just a conduit, a technological system that mediated
between Nell and some human being who really loved her? In the end, she knew,
this was basically how all ractives worked. The idea was too alarming to
consider at first, and so she circled around it cautiously, poking at it from
different directions, like a cavewoman discovering fire for the first time. But
as she settled in closer, she found that it warmed her and satisfied her, and
by the time her mind wandered into sleep, she had become dependent upon it and
would not consider going back into the cold and dark place where she had
been traveling for so many years.
Carl
Hollywood returns to Shanghai; his
forebears in the territory of the Lone Eagles;
Mrs. Kwan's teahouse.
Heavy
rains had come rolling into Shanghai from the West, like a harbinger of the
Fists of Righteous Harmony and the thundering herald of the coming Celestial
Kingdom. Stepping off the airship from London, Carl Hollywood at once felt
himself in a different Shanghai from the one he had left; the old city had
always been wild, but in a sophisticated urban way, and now it was wild like a
frontier town. He sensed this ambience before he even left the Aerodrome; it
leaked in from the streets, like ozone before a thunderstorm. Looking out the
windows, he could see a heavy rain rushing down, knocking all the nanotech out
of the air and down into the gutters, whence it would eventually stain the
Huang Pu and then the Yangtze. Whether it was the wild atmosphere or the
prospect of being rained upon, he stopped his porters short of the main exit
doors so that he could change hats. The hatboxes were stacked on one of the
carts; his bowler went into the smallest and topmost box, which was empty, and
then he yanked the largest box out from underneath, popping the stack, and took
out a ten-gallon Stetson of breathtaking width and sweep, almost like a
head-mounted umbrella. Casting an eye into the street, where a rushing brown
stream carried litter, road dust, choleraridden sewage, and tons of captive
nanotech toward the storm drains, he slipped off his leather shoes and
exchanged them for a pair of handtooled cowboy boots, made from hides of gaudy
reptiles and avians, the pores of which had been corked with mites that would
keep his feet dry even if he chose to wade through the gutters.
Thus
reconfigured, Carl Hollywood stepped out into the streets of Shanghai. As he
came out the doors of the Aerodrome, his duster billowed in the cold wind of
the storm and even the beggars stepped away from him. He paused to light a
cigar before proceeding and was not molested; even the refugees, who were
starving or at least claimed to be, derived more enjoyment from simply looking
at him than they would have from the coins in his pocket. He walked the four
blocks to his hotel, pursued doggedly by the porters and by a crowd of
youngsters entranced by the sight of a real cowboy.
Carl's
grandfather was a Lone Eagle who had ridden out from the crowding and squalor
of Silicon Valley in the 1990s and homesteaded a patch of abandoned ranch along
a violent cold river on the eastern slope of the Wind River Range. From there
he had made a comfortable living as a freelance coder and consultant. His wife
had left him for the bright lights and social life of California and been
startled when he had managed to persuade a judge that he was better equipped to
raise their son than she was. Grandfather had raised Carl Hollywood's father
mostly in the out-of-doors, hunting and fishing and chopping wood when he
wasn't sitting inside studying his calculus. As the years went by, they had
gradually been joined by like-minded sorts with similar stories to tell, so
that by the time of the Interregnum they had formed a community of several
hundred, loosely spread over a few thousand square miles of nearwilderness but,
in the electronic sense, as tightly knit as any small village in the Old West.
Their technological prowess, prodigious wealth, and numerous large weapons had
made them a dangerous group, and the odd pickup-truck-driving desperadoes who
attacked an isolated ranch had found themselves surrounded and outgunned with
cataclysmic swiftness. Grandfather loved to tell stories of these criminals,
how they had tried to excuse their own crimes by pleading that they were
economically disadvantaged or infected with the disease of substance abuse, and
how the Lone Eagles-
many of whom had overcome poverty or addiction themselves-had
dispatched them with firing squads and left them posted around the edge of
their territory as NO TRESPASSING signs that even the illiterate could read.
The
advent of the Common Economic Protocol had settled things down and, in the eyes
of the old-timers, begun to soften and ruin the place. There was nothing like
getting up at three in the morning and riding the defensive perimeter in
subzero cold, with a loaded rifle, to build up one's sense of responsibility
and community. Carl Hollywood's clearest and best memories were of going on
such rides with his father. But as they squatted on packed snow boiling coffee
over a fire, they would listen to the radio and hear stories about the jihad
raging across Xinjiang, driving the Han back into the east, and about the first
incidents of nanotech terrorism in Eastern Europe. Carl's father didn't have to
tell him that their community was rapidly acquiring the character of a historical
theme park, and that before long they would have to give up the mounted patrols
for more modern defensive systems.
Even
after those innovations had been made and the community had mostly joined up
with the First Distributed Republic, Carl and his father and grandfather had
continued to do things in the old way, hunting elk and heating their houses
with wood-burning stoves and sitting behind their computer screens in dark
rooms late into the night hand-tooling code in assembly language. It was a purely
male household (Carl's mother had died when he was nine years old, in a rafting
accident), and Carl had fled the place as soon as he'd found a way, going to
San Francisco, then New York, then London, and making himself useful in
theatrical productions. But the older he got, the more he understood in how
many ways he was rooted in the place where he grew up, and he never felt it
more purely than he did striding down a crowded street in a Shanghai
thunderstorm, puffing on a thick cigar and watching the rain dribble from the
rim of his hat. The most intense and clear sensations of his life had flooded
into his young and defenseless mind during his first dawn patrol, knowing the
desperadoes were out there somewhere. He kept returning to these memories in later
life, trying to recapture the same purity and intensity of sensation, or trying
to get his ractors to feel it. Now for the first time in thirty years he felt
the same thing, this time on the streets of Shanghai, hot and pulsing on the
edge of a dynastic rebellion, like the arteries of an old man about to have his
first orgasm in years.
He
merely touched base at his hotel, where he stuffed the pockets of his coat with
a sheaf of foolscap, a fountain pen, a silver box loaded with cigars like
rounds in an ammo clip, and some tiny containers of nanosnuff that he could use
to adjust the functioning of his brain and body. He also hefted a heavy
walking-stick, a real wizard's staff loaded with security aerostats that would
shepherd him back to the hotel in the event of a riot. Then he returned once
more to the streets, shouldering for a mile through the crowd until he reached
a teahouse where he had passed many long nights during his tenure at the
Parnasse. Old Mrs. Kwan welcomed him warmly, bowing many times and showing him
to his favorite corner table where he could look out on the intersection of
Nanjing Road and a narrow side street jammed with tiny market stalls. All he
could see now were the backs and buttocks of people in the street, jammed up
against the glass by the pressure of the crowd. He ordered a big pot of his
favorite green tea, the most expensive kind, picked in April when the leaves
were tender and young, and spread out his sheets of foolscap
across the table. This teahouse was fully integrated into the worldwide media
network, and so the pages automatically jacked themselves in. Under Carl
Hollywood's murmured commands they began to fill themselves with columns of
animated text and windows bearing images and cine feeds. He took his first sip of
tea-always the best one- withdrew his big fountain pen from his pocket, removed
the lid, and touched it to the paper. He began to inscribe commands onto the
page, in words and drawings. As he finished the words, they were enacted before
him, and as he drew the lines between the boxes and circles, links were made
and information flowed.
At
the bottom of the page he wrote the word MIRANDA and drew a circle around it.
It was not connected to anything else in the diagram yet. He hoped that before
long it would be. Carl Hollywood worked on his papers late into the night, and
Mrs. Kwan continued to replenish his teapot and to bring him little sweets and
decorated the edge of his table with candles as night fell and the teahouse
darkened, for she remembered that he liked to work by candlelight.
The
Chinese people outside, separated from him by half an inch of crosslinked
diamond, watched with their noses making white ellipses against the pane, their
faces glowing in the candlelight like ripe peaches hanging in dark lush
foliage.
The
Hackworths in transit, and in London;
the East End; a remarkable
boatride; Dramatis Personae; a night at
the theatre.
Smooth,
fine-grained arctic clouds undulated slowly like snow drifts into the distance,
a thousand miles looking like the width of a front yard, lit but not warmed by
a low apricot sun that never quite went down. Fiona lay on her stomach on the
top bunk, looking out the window, watching her breath condense on the pane and
then evaporate in the parched air.
"Father?"
she said, very softly, to see if he was awake.
He
wasn't, but he woke up quickly, as if he'd been in one of those dreams that
just skims beneath the surface of consciousness, like an airship clipping a few
cloud-tops. "Yes?"
"Who
is the Alchemist? Why are you looking for him?"
"I
would rather not explain why I'm looking for him. Let us say that I have
incurred obligations that want settling." Her father seemed more
preoccupied with the second part of the question than she'd expected, and his
voice was steeped in regret.
"Who
is he?" she insisted gently.
"Oh.
Well, my darling, if I knew that, I'd have found him."
"Father!"
"What
sort of a person is he? I haven't been afforded many clues, unfortunately. I've
tried to draw some deductions from the sorts of people who are looking for him,
and the sort of person I am."
"Pardon
me, Father, but what bearing does your own nature have on that of the
Alchemist?"
"More
than one knowledgeable sort has arrived at the conclusion that I'm just the
right man to find this fellow, even though I know nothing of criminals and
espionage and so forth. I'm just a nanotechnological engineer."
"That's
not true, Father! You're ever so much more than that. You know so many
stories-you told me so many, when you were gone, remember?"
"I
suppose so," he allowed, strangely diffident.
"And
I read it every night. And though the stories were about faeries and pirates
and djinns and such, I could always sense that you were behind them. Like the
puppeteer pulling the strings and imbuing them with voices and personalities.
So I think you're more than an engineer. It's just that you need a magic book
to bring it out."
"Well
. . . that's a point I had not considered," her father said, his voice
suddenly emotional. She fought the temptation to peer over the edge of the bed
and look at his face, which would have embarrassed him. Instead she curled up
in her bed and closed her eyes.
"Whatever
you may think of me, Fiona- and I must say I am pleasantly surprised that
you think of me so favourably- to those who despatched me on this errand,
I am an engineer. Without being arrogant, I might add that I have advanced
rapidly in that field and attained a position of not inconsiderable
responsibility. As this is the only characteristic that distinguishes me from
other men, it can be the only reason I was chosen to find the Alchemist. From
this I infer that the Alchemist is himself a nanotechnological researcher of
some sophistication, and that he is thought to be developing a product that is
of interest to more than one of the Powers."
"Are
you talking about the Seed, Father?"
He
was silent for a few moments. When he spoke again, his voice was high and
tight. "The Seed. How did you know about the Seed?"
"You
told me about it, Father. You told me it was a dangerous thing, and that
Protocol Enforcement mustn't allow it to be created. And besides . . .
"Besides
what?"
She
was on the verge of reminding him that her dreams had been filled with seeds
for the last several years, and that every story she had seen in her Primer had
been replete with them: seeds that grew up into castles; dragon's teeth that
grew up into soldiers; seeds that sprouted into giant beanstalks leading to
alternate universes in the clouds; and seeds, given to hospitable, barren
couples by itinerant crones, that grew up into plants with bulging pods that
contained happy, kicking babies.
But
she sensed that if she mentioned this directly, he would slam the steel door in
her face- a
door that was tantalizingly cracked open at the moment.
"Why
do you think that Seeds are so interesting?" she essayed.
"They
are interesting inasmuch as a beaker of nitroglycerin is interesting," he
said. "They are subversive technology. You are not to speak of Seeds
again, Fiona- CryptNet
agents could be anywhere, listening to our conversation."
Fiona
sighed. When her father spoke freely, she could sense the man who had told her
the stories. When certain subjects were broached, he drew down his veil and
became just another Victorian gentleman. It was irksome. But she could sense
how the same characteristic, in a man who was not her father, could be
provocative. It was such an obvious weakness that neither she nor any woman
could resist the temptation to exploit it-a mischievous and hence tantalizing
notion that was to occupy much of Fiona's thinking for the next few days, as
they encountered other members of their tribe in London. . . .
After a simple
dinner of beer and pasties in a pub on the fringes of the City, they rode south
across the Tower Bridge, pierced a shallow layer of posh development along the
right bank of the river, and entered into Southwark. As in other Atlantan
districts of London, Feed lines had been worked into the sinews of the place,
coursing through utility tunnels, clinging to the clammy undersides of bridges,
and sneaking into buildings through small holes bored in the foundations. The
tiny old houses and flats of this once impoverished quarter had mostly been
refurbished into toeholds for young Atlantans from all around the Anglosphere,
poor in equity but rich in expectations, who had come to the great city to
incubate their careers. The businesses on the ground floors tended to be pubs,
coffeehouses, and music halls. As father and daughter worked their way east,
generally paralleling the river, the lustre that was so evident near the
approaches to the bridge began to wear thin in places, and the ancient
character of the neighborhood began to assert itself, as the bones of the
knuckles reveal their shape beneath the stretched skin of a fist. Wide gaps
developed between the waterfront developments, allowing them to look across the
river into a district whose blanket of evening fog was already stained with the
carcinogenic candy-colored hues of big mediatrons.
Fiona
Hackworth noticed a glow in the air, which resolved into a constellation when
she blinked and focused. A pinprick of green light, an infinitesimal chip of
emerald, touched the surface of her eye, expanding into a cloud of light. She
blinked twice, and it was gone. Sooner or later it and many others would make
their way to the corners of her eyes, giving her a grotesque appearance. She
drew a handkerchief from her sleeve and wiped her eyes. The presence of so many
lidar-emitting mites prompted her to realize that they had been infiltrating a
great expanse of fog for some minutes without really being aware of it;
moisture from the river was condensing around the microscopic guardians of the
border. Colored light flashed vaguely across the screen of fog before them,
silhouetting a stone column planted in the center of the road: wings of a
gryphon, horn of a unicorn, crisp and black against a lurid cosmos. A constable
stood beside the pediment, symbolically guarding the bar. He nodded to the
Hackworths and mumbled something gruff but polite through his chinstrap as
father and daughter rode out of New Atlantis and into a gaudy dave full of
loutish thetes scrumming and chanting before the entrances of pubs. Fiona
caught sight of an old Union Jack, then did a double-take and realized that the
limbs of the St. Andrew's Cross had been enhanced with stars, like the
Confederate Battle Flag. She gave her chevaline a nudge and pulled up nearly
abreast with her father.
Then
the city became darker and quieter, though no less crowded, and for a few
blocks they saw only dark-haired men with mustaches and women who were nothing
more than columns of black fabric. Then Fiona smelled anise and garlic, and
they passed into Vietnamese territory for a short time. She would have enjoyed
stopping at one of the sidewalk cafés for a bowl of pho, but her father rode
on, pursuing the tide that was ebbing down the Thames, and in a few more
minutes they had come once again to the bank. It was lined with ancient masonry
warehouses-a category of structure now so obsolete as to defy explanation-which
had been converted into offices.
A
pier rode on the surface of the river, riding up and down on the tide, linked
to the rim of the granite embankment by a hinged gangway. A shaggy black vessel
was tied up to the pier, but it was completely unlit, visible only by its black
shadow against the charcoal-gray water. After the chevalines had planted
themselves and the Hackworths had dismounted, they were able to hear low voices
coming from below.
John
Hackworth withdrew some tickets from his breast pocket and asked them to
illuminate themselves; but they were printed on old-fashioned paper that did
not contain its own energy source, and so he finally had to use the microtorch
dangling from his watch chain. Apparently satisfied that they had arrived at
the right place, he offered Fiona his arm and escorted her down the gangway to
the pier. A tiny flickering light bobbed toward them and resolved into an
Afro-Caribbean man, wearing rimless glasses and carrying an antique hurricane
lamp. Fiona watched his face as his enormous eyes, yellowed like antique ivory
billiard balls, scanned their tickets. His skin was rich and warm and glowing
in the light of the candle, and he smelled faintly of citrus combined with
something darker and less ingratiating. When he was finished, he looked up, not
at the Hackworths but off into the distance, turned his back, and ambled away.
John Hackworth stood there for a few moments, awaiting instructions, then
straightened, squared his shoulders, and led Fiona across the pier to the boat.
It
was eight or ten meters long. There was no gangway, and persons already on
board had to reach out and clutch their arms and pull them in, a breach of
formality that happened so quickly that they had no time to become
uncomfortable.
The
boat was basically a large flat open tub, not much more than a liferaft, with
some controls in the bow and some sort of modern and hence negligibly small
propulsion system built into the stern. As their eyes adjusted to the dim light
scattering through the fog, they could see perhaps a dozen other passengers
around the edge of the boat, seated so that wakes from passing vessels would
not upset them. Seeing wisdom in this, John led Fiona to the only remaining
open space, and they sat down between two other groups: a trio of young
Nipponese men forcing cigarettes on one another, and a man and woman in
bohemian-but-expensive clothes, sipping lager from cans and conversing in
Canadian accents.
The man from the pier cast off the painters
and vaulted aboard. Another functionary had taken the controls and gently
accelerated into the current, cutting the throttle at one point and swinging
her about into an oncoming wake. When the boat entered the main channel and
came up to speed, it very quickly became chilly, and all the passengers
murmured, demanding more warmth from their thermogenic clothing. The
AfroCaribbean man made a circuit lugging a heavy chest stocked with cans of
lager and splits of pinot noir. Conversation stopped for several minutes as the
passengers, all driven by the same primal impulses, turned their faces into the
cool wind and relaxed into the gentle thumping of hull against waves.
The
trip took the better part of an hour. After several minutes, conversation
resumed, most of the passengers remaining within their little groups. The
refreshment chest made a few more circuits. John Hackworth began to realize,
from a few subtleties, that one of the Nipponese youths was much more intoxicated
than he was letting on and had probably spent a few hours in a dockside pub
before reaching the pier. He took a drink from the chest every time it came by,
and half an hour into the ride, he rose unsteadily to his feet, leaned over the
edge, and threw up. John turned to smirk at his daughter. The boat struck an
unseen wave, rolling sideways into the trough. Hackworth clutched first at the
railing and then at his daughter's arm.
Fiona
screamed. She was staring over John's shoulder at the Nipponese youths. John
turned around to see that there were only two of them now; the sick one was
gone, and the other two had flung their bellies across the gunwhale and
stretched out their arms, fingers like white rays shining into the black water.
John felt Fiona's arm pull free from his grasp, and as he turned toward her, he
just saw her vaulting over the rail.
It
was over before he had an opportunity to get really scared. The crew dealt with
the matter with a practiced efficiency that suggested to Hackworth that the
Nipponese man was really an actor, the entire incident part of the production.
The Afro-Caribbean man cursed and shouted for them to hang on, his voice pure
and powerful as a Stradivarius cello, a stage voice. He inverted the cooler,
dumping out all the beer and wine, then snapped it shut and flung it over the
stern as a life preserver. Meanwhile the pilot was swinging the boat round.
Several passengers, including Hackworth, had turned on microtorches and focused
their beams on Fiona, whose skirts had inflated as she'd jumped in feet-first
and now surrounded her like a raft of flowers. With one hand she was clutching
the Nipponese man's collar, and with the other, the handle of the ice chest.
She did not have the strength or buoyancy to hold the drunken man out of the
water, and so both of them were swamped by the estuary's rolling waves.
The
man with the dreadlocks hauled Fiona out first and handed her off to her
father. The fabricules making up her clothing- countless mites linked
elbow-to-elbow in a two-dimensional array- went to work pumping away the water
trapped in the interstices. Fiona was wreathed in a sinuous veil of mist that
burned with the captured light of the torches. Her thick red hair had been
freed from the confines of her hat, which had been torn away by the waves and
now fell about her in a cape of fire.
She
was looking defiantly at Hackworth, whose adrenal glands had finally jumped
into the endocrinological fray. When he saw his daughter in this way, it felt
as though someone were inexorably sliding a hundred pound block of ice up the
length of his spine. When the sensation reached his medulla, he staggered and
nearly had to sit down. She had somehow flung herself through an unknown and
unmarked barrier and become supernatural, a naiad rising from the waves cloaked
in fire and steam. In some rational compartment of his mind that had now become
irrelevant, Hackworth wondered whether Dramatis Personae (for this was the name
of the troupe that was running this show) had got some nanosites into his
system, and if so what exactly they were doing to his mind.
Water
streamed from Fiona's skirts and ran between the floorboards, and then she was
dry, except for her face and hair. She wiped her face on her sleeves, ignoring
her father's proffered handkerchief. No words passed between them, and they did
not embrace, as if Fiona were conscious now of the impact she was having upon
her father and all the others-a faculty that, Hackworth supposed, must be
highly acute in sixteen-year-old girls. By now the Nipponese man was just about
finished coughing water out of his lungs and gasping piteously for air. As soon
as he had the airways up and running, he spoke hoarsely and lengthily. One of
his companions translated. "He says that we are not alone-that the water
is filled with spirits-that they spoke to him. He followed them beneath the
waves. But feeling his spirit about to leave his body, he felt fear and swam to
the surface and was saved by the young woman. He says that the spirits are
talking to all of us, and we must listen to them!"
This
was, needless to say, embarrassing, and so all of the passengers doused their
torches and turned their backs on the stricken passenger. But when Hackworth's
eyes had adjusted, he took another look at this man and saw that the exposed
portions of his flesh had begun to radiate colored light.
He
looked at Fiona and saw that a band of white light encircled her head like a
tiara, bright enough that it shone red through her hair, with a jewel centered
upon her forehead. Hackworth marveled at this sight from a distance, knowing
that she wanted to be free of him for now.
Fat
lights hung low above the water, describing the envelopes of great ships,
sliding past each other as their parallax shifted with the steady progress of
the boat. They had come to a place near the mouth of the estuary but not on the
usual shipping lanes, where ships lay at anchor awaiting shifts in tides,
winds, or markets. One constellation of lights did not move but only grew
larger as they drew toward it. Experimenting with shadows and examining the
pattern of light cast upon the water from this vessel, Hackworth concluded that
the lights were being deliberately shone into their faces so that they could
not make any judgments about the nature of the source.
The
fog slowly congealed into a wall of rust, so vast and featureless that it might
have been ten or a hundred feet distant. The helmsman waited until they were
about to ram it, then cut the engines. The raft lost speed instantly and nuzzled
the hull of the big ship. Chains, slimy and dripping, descended from the
firmament, diverging in Hackworth's view like radiance emanating from some
heavy-industrial demigod, clanking harbingers of iron that the crew, heads
thrown back ecstatically, throats bared to this kinky revelation, received into
their bosoms. They snapped the chains onto metal loops fixed into the floor of
the boat. Shackled, the boat rose free of the water and began to ascend the
wall of rust, which soared vaguely into the infinite fog. Suddenly there was a
railing, an open deck beyond it, pools of light here and there, a few red
cigar-coals reciprocating through space. The deck swung under and rose to shove
at the hull of the little boat. As they disembarked, they could see similar
boats scattered about.
"Dodgy"
did not begin to describe the reputation of Dramatis Personae in the New
Atlantan parts of London, but that was the adjective they always used anyway,
delivered in a near-whisper, with brows raised nearly into the hairline and
eyes glancing significantly over the shoulder. It had quickly become clear to
Hackworth that a man could get a bad reputation simply for having known that
Dramatis Personae existed-at the same time, it was clear that almost everyone
had heard about it. Rather than being spattered with any more opprobrium, he
had sought the tickets among other tribes.
After
all this it did not surprise him in the least to see that most of the attendees
were fellow Victorians, and not just young bachelors having a night out, but
ostensibly respectable couples, strolling the decks in their top hats and
veils.
Fiona
vaulted out of the boat before it even touched the deck of the ship and
vanished. She had repatterned her dress, ditching the chintzy flowered pattern
for basic white, and skipped off into the darkness, her integral tiara glowing
like a halo. Hackworth took a slow turn around the deck, watching his
fellow-tribesmen trying to solve the following problem: get close enough to
another couple to recognize them without getting so close that they can
recognize you.
From
time to time, couples recognized each other simultaneously and had to say
something: the women tittered wickedly, and the men laughed from their bellies
and called each other scoundrels, the words glancing off the deckplates and
burying themselves in the fog like arrows fired into a bale of cotton.
Some
kind of amplified music emanated from compartments below; atonal power chords
came up through the deck like seismic disturbances. She was a bulk cargo
carrier, now empty and bobbing, surprisingly jittery for something so big.
Hackworth
was alone and separate from all humanity, a feeling he had grown up with, like
a childhood friend living next door. He had found Gwen by some miracle and lost
touch with that old friend for a few years, but now he and solitude were back
together, out for a stroll, familiar and comfortable. A makeshift bar amidships
had drawn a dozen or so congregants, but Hackworth knew that he could not join
in with them. He had been born without the ability to blend and socialize as
some are born without hands.
"Standing
above it all?" said a voice. "Or standing aside perhaps?"
It
was a man in a clown outfit. Hackworth recognized it, vaguely, as an
advertising fetish for an old American fast-food chain. But the costume was
conspicuously ill-used, as if it were the sole garment of a refugee. It had
been patched all over with swatches of chintz, Chinese silk, studded black
leather, charcoal-gray pinstripe, and jungle camo. The clown wore integral
makeup- his face glowed like an injection-molded plastic toy from the previous
century with a light bulb stuck inside the head. It was disturbing to see him
talk, like watching one of those animated CAT scans of a man swallowing.
"Are
you of it? Or just in it?" the Clown said, and looked at Hackworth
expectantly.
As
soon as Hackworth had realized, quite some time ago, that this Dramatis
Personae thing was going to be some kind of participatory theatre, he had been
dreading this moment: his first cue. "Please excuse me," he said in a
tense and not altogether steady voice, "this is not my milieu."
"That's
for damn fucking sure," said the Clown. "Put these on," he
continued, taking something out of his pocket. He reached out to Hackworth, who
was two or three meters away from him- but shockingly, his hand detached itself
from his arm and flew through the air, the smutty white glove like a dirty ball
of ice tumbling elliptically through the inner planets. It shoved something
into Hackworth's breast pocket and then withdrew; but because Hackworth was
watching, it described a smooth sudden figure-eight pattern in space before
reattaching itself to the stump of the forearm.
Hackworth
realized that the clown was mechanical. "Put 'em on and be yourself,
mister alienated loner steppenwolf bemused distant meta-izing technocrat
rationalist fucking shithead." The Clown spun on his heel to leave; his
floppy clown shoes were built around some kind of trick heel with a swivel
built in, so that when he spun on his heel he really did spin on his heel,
performing several complete rotations before stopping with his back turned to
Hackworth and storming away. "Revolutionary, ain't it?" he snapped.
The
thing in Hackworth's pocket was a pair of dark sunglasses: wraparounds with a
glimmering rainbow finish, the sort of thing that, decades ago, would have been
worn by a Magnum-slinging rebel cop in a prematurely canceled television
series. Hackworth unfolded them and slid the polished ends of the bows cautiously
over his temples. As the lenses approached, he could see light coming from
them; they were phenomenoscopes. Though in this context, the word phantascope might
have been more appropriate.
The
image grew to fill his sight but would not focus until he put them all the way
on, so he reluctantly plummeted into the hallucination until it resolved, and
just then the bows behind his ears came alive, stretched, and grew around the
back of his skull like a rubber band snapping in reverse, joining in the back
to form an unbreakable band. "Release," Hackworth said, and then ran
through a litany of other standard yuvree commands. The spectacles would not
release his head. Finally, a cone of light pierced space from somewhere above
and behind him and splashed across a stage.
Footlights
came up, and a man in a top hat emerged from behind a curtain. "Welcome to
your show," he said. "You can remove the glasses at any time by
securing a standing ovation from not less than ninety percent of the
audience." Then the lights and curtain vanished, and Hackworth was left
with what he had seen before, namely, a cybernetically enhanced night-vision
rendering of the deck of the ship.
He
tried a few more commands. Most phenomenoscopes had a transparent mode, or at
least translucent, that allowed the wearer to view what was really there. But
these ones were doggedly opaque and would only show him a mediatronic rendering
of the scene. The strolling and chatting theatregoers were represented by
preposterously oversimplified wireframes, a display technology unused these
eighty years or so, clearly intended to irritate Hackworth. Each figure had a
large placard strapped to its chest:
JARED
MASON GRIFFIN III, aged 35 (too Late to become an interesting character like
you!) Nephew of an earl-level Equity Lord (don't you envy him?) Married to that
sunken bitch on his right They go on these little escapades to escape their own
crzppled lives. (why are you here?)
Hackworth looked
down and tried to read the placard on his own chest but couldn't focus on it.
When
he walked around the deck, his viewpoint changed correspondingly. There was
also a standard interface that enabled him to "fly" around the ship;
Hackworth himself remained in one fixed location, of course, but his viewpoint
in the spectacles became unlinked to his real coordinates. Whenever he used
this mode, the following legend was superimposed on his view in giant flashing
red block letters: JOHN
PERCIVAL HACKWORTH'S GODLIKE PERSPECTIVE sometimes
accompanied by a cartoon of a wizardly sort of fellow sitting atop a mountain
peering down into a village of squalid midgets. Because of this annoyance,
Hackworth did not use this feature very frequently. But on his initial
reconnaissance, he discovered a few items of interest.
For
one thing, the Nipponese fellow who had got pissed and fallen overboard had
encountered a group of several other people who had, by a remarkable
coincidence, also fallen out of their boats on the way here, and who upon being
rescued had all begun to emit colored light and see visions that they insisted
on recounting to anyone in the vicinity. These people convened into a poorly
organized chorus, all shouting at once and articulating visions that seemed to
be linked in an approximate way-as if they had all just now awakened from the
same dream and were all doing an equally bad job describing it. They stuck
together despite their differences, drawn together by the same mysterious
attractive force that causes streetcorner crackpots to set up their soapboxes right
next to each other. Shortly after Hackworth zoomed toward them in his
phenomenoscopic view, they began to hallucinate something along the lines of a
giant eyeball peering at them from the heavens, the black skin of its eyelids
studded with stars.
Hackworth
skulked away and focused in on another large gathering: a couple of dozen older
people of the trim, fit, and active style, tennis sweaters draped over their
shoulders and sensible walking shoes firmly but not too tightly laced to their
feet, piling off a small airship that had just moored on the old helicopter pad
near the ship's stern. The airship had many windows and was festooned with
mediatronic advertisements for aerial tours of London. As the tourists climbed
off, they tended to stop in their tracks, so that a severe bottleneck was
forever forming. They had to be goaded into the outer darkness by their tour
guide, a young actress dressed in a cheesy devil outfit, complete with flashing
red horns and a trident.
"Is
this Whitechapel?" one of them said to the fog, speaking in an American
accent. These people were obviously members of the Heartland tribe, a
prosperous phyle closely allied with New Atlantis that had absorbed many
responsible, sane, educated, white, Midwestern, middleclass types. Listening in
on their furtive conversations, Hackworth divined that these tourists had been
brought in from a Holiday Inn in Kensington, under the ruse that they were
going to take the Jack the Ripper tour in Whitechapel. As Hackworth listened,
the diabolical tour guide explained that their drunken airship pilot had
accidentally flown them to a floating theatre, and they were welcome to enjoy
the show, which would be starting shortly; a free (to them) performance of
Cats, the longest-running musical of all time, which most of them had already
seen on their first night in London.
Hackworth,
still peering through the mocking red letters, did a quick scan belowdecks.
There were a dozen cavernous compartments down there. Four of them had been
consolidated into a capacious theatre; four more served as the stage and
backstage. Hackworth located his daughter there. She was seated on a throne of
light, rehearsing some lines. Apparently she'd already been cast in a major
role.
"I
don't want you to watch me like that," she said, and vanished from
Hackworth's display in a burst of light. The ship's foghorn sounded. The sound
continued to echo sporadically from other ships in the area. Hackworth returned
to his natural view of the deck just in time to see a blazing figment rushing
toward him: the Clown again, who apparently possessed the special power of
moving through Hackworth's display like a phantasm.
"Going
to stay up here all night, guessing the distance to the other ships by timing
the echoes? Or may I show you to your seat?"
Hackworth
decided that the best thing was not to be ruffled. "Please," he said.
"Well,
there it is then," said the Clown, gesturing with one maculated glove
toward a plain wooden chair right before them on the deck. Hackworth did not
believe it was really there, because he hadn't seen it before now. But the
spectacles allowed him no way to tell.
He
stepped forward like a man making his way to the toilet in a dark and
unfamiliar room, knees bent, hands outstretched, moving his feet gingerly so as
not to bark shins or toes on anything. The Clown had drawn to one side and was
watching him scornfully. "Is this what you call getting into your role?
Think you can get away with scientific rationalism all night? What's going to
happen the first time you actually start believing what you see?"
Hackworth
found his seat exactly where the display told him it would be, but it wasn't a
simple wooden chair; it was foam-covered and it had arms. It was like a seat in
a theatre, but when he groped to either side, he did not find any others. So he
depressed the seat and fell into it.
"You'll
be needing this," the Clown said, and snapped a tubular object into the
palm of Hackworth's hand. Hackworth was just recognizing it as some kind of
torch when something loud and violent happened just below him. His feet, which
had been resting on the deckplates, were now dangling in air. In fact, all of
him was dangling. A trap door had flown open beneath him, and he was in free
fall. "Enjoy the show," the Clown said, tipping his hat and peering
down at him through a rapidly diminishing square hole.
"And
while you're accelerating toward the center of the earth at nine point eight
meters per second squared, riddle me this: We can fake sounds, we can fake
images, we can even fake the wind blowing over your face, but how do we fake
the sensation of free fall?"
Pseudopods
had sprouted from the chair's foam and wrapped around Hackworth's waist and
upper thighs. This was fortunate as he had gone into a slow backward spin and
soon found himself falling face-first, passing through great amorphous clouds
of light: a collection of old chandeliers that Dramatis Personae had scavenged
from condemned buildings. The Clown was right: Hackworth was definitely in free
fall, a sensation that could not be faked with spectacles. If his eyes and ears
were to be believed, he was plunging toward the floor of the big theatre he had
reconnoitered earlier. But it was not grooved with neat rows of seats like an
ordinary theatre. The seats were present but scattered about randomly. And some
of them were moving.
The
floor continued to accelerate toward him until he got really scared and started
to scream. Then he felt gravity again as some force began to slow him down. The
chair spun around so that Hackworth was looking up into the irregular
constellation of chandeliers, and the acceleration shot up to several gees.
Then back to normal. The chair rotated so that he was on the level once more,
and the phenomenoscope went brilliant, blinding white. The earpieces were
pumping white noise at him; but as it began to diminish, he realized it was
actually the sound of applause.
Hackworth
was not able to see anything until he fiddled with the interface and got back
to a more schematic view of the theatre. Then he determined that the place was
about half full of theatregoers, moving about independently on their chairs,
which were somehow motorized, and that several dozen of them were aiming their
torches toward him, which accounted for the blinding light. He was on center
stage, the main attraction. He wondered if he was supposed to say something. A
line was written across his spectacles: Thanks very much, Ladies and gentlemen, for letting
me drop in. We have a great show for you tonight. . . .
Hackworth wondered
if he was somehow obligated to read this line. But soon the torches turned away
from him, as more audience members began to rain down through the astral plane
of the chandeliers. Watching them fall, Hackworth realized that he'd seen
something like it before at amusement parks: This was nothing more than
bungee-jumping. It's just that the spectacles had declined to show Hackworth
his own bungee cord, just to add an extra frisson to the
whole experience.
The
armrest of Hackworth's chair included some controls that enabled him to move it
around the floor of the house, which was coneshaped, sloping sharply in toward
the center. A pedestrian would have found difficult footing, but the chair had
powerful nanotech motors and compensated for the slope.
It
was a round theatre, Globe-style. The conical floor was encompassed by a
circular wall, pierced here and there by openings of different sizes. Some
appeared to be ventilation shafts, some were the apertures of private boxes or
technical control rooms, and by far the largest was a proscenium that occupied
a quarter of the circumference, and that was currently closed off by a curtain.
Hackworth
noted that the lowest and innermost part of the house floor was not occupied.
He motored down the slope and was shocked to realize that he was suddenly up to
his waist in painfully chilly water. He threw the chair into reverse, but it
did not respond to the controls. "Dead in the water!" cried the Clown
triumphantly, sounding as if he were standing right there, though Hackworth
couldn't see him. He found a way to release the chair's built-in restraints and
struggled up the raked floor, his legs stiff from the cold and reeking of
seawater. Evidently the central third of the floor actually plunged beneath the
waterline and was open to the sea- another fact that Hackworth's spectacles had
not bothered to reveal.
Again,
dozens of lights were on him. The audience was laughing, and there was even
some sarcastic applause. Come on in, folks, the water 's fine! suggested
the spectacles, but once again Hackworth declined to read the line. Apparently
these were nothing more than suggestions tossed out by Dramatis Personae's
writers, which faded from the display as they lost their currency.
The
events of the last few minutes-the phenomenoscopes that couldn't be taken off,
the unexpected bungee jump, the plunge into cold seawater-had left Hackworth in
a state of shock. He felt a strong need to hole up somewhere and shake off the
disorientation.
He
clambered up toward the perimeter of the house, dodging the occasional moving
chair, and tracked by a few spotlight beams from fellow audience members who
had taken a particular interest in his personal story. An aperture was above
him, glowing with warm light, and passing through it, Hackworth found himself
in a cozy little bar with a curving window that afforded an excellent view of
the theatre. It was a refuge in more ways than one; he could see normally
through the spectacles here, they seemed to be giving him an untampered view of
reality. He ordered a pint of stout from the barman and took a seat at the
counter along the window.
Somewhere
around his third or fourth gulp of stout, he realized that he had already
submitted to the Clown's imperative. The plunge into the water had taught him
that he had no choice but to believe in what the spectades showed his eyes and
ears- even though he knew it to be false- and to accept the consequences. A
pint of stout went some distance toward warming up his legs, and toward
relaxing his mind. He had come here for a show, and he was getting one, and
there was no reason to fight it; Dramatis Personae might have a dodgy
reputation, but no one had ever accused them of killing a member of the
audience.
The
chandeliers dimmed. The torch-wielding audience went into motion like sparks
stirred by a gust of wind, some motoring toward the high ground and others
preferring the water's edge. As the house lights faded to black, they amused
themselves playing their torches back and forth across the walls and the
curtain, creating an apocalyptic sky torn by hundreds of comets. A tongue of
clammy, algae-colored light shone beneath the water, resolving itself into a
long narrow thrust stage as it rose toward the surface, like Atlantis
resurgent. The audience noticed it and bounced their spotlights off the
surface, catching a few dark motes in the crossfire: the heads of a dozen or so
performers, slowly rising out of the water. They began to speak in something
like unison, and Hackworth realized that they were the chorus of lunatics he
had seen earlier.
"Set
me up, Nick," said a woman's voice behind him.
"Tucked
'em in, did you?" said the barkeep.
"Ninnies."
Hackworth
turned and saw that it was the young woman in the devil costume who had acted
as tour guide for the Heartlanders. She was very petite, dressed in a long
black skirt slit all the way to the hipbone, and she had nice hair, very thick
and black and glossy. She carried a glass of wheat beer over to the counter,
primly swept her devil's tail out of the way in a gesture that Hackworth found
hopelessly fetching, and took a seat. Then she let out an explosive sigh and
put her head down on her arms for a few moments, her blinking red horns
reflecting in the curved window like the taillights of a full-laner. Hackworth
laced his fingers together around his pint and smelled her perfume. Down below,
the chorus had gotten out of hand and was trying to pull off a rather ambitious
Busby Berkeley dance number. They showed an uncanny ability to act in unison- something
to do with the 'sites that had burrowed into their brains- but their bodies
were stiff, weak, and badly coordinated. What they did, they did with absolute
conviction, which made it good anyway.
"Did
they buy it?" Hackworth said.
"Pardon
me?" said the woman, looking up alertly like a bird, as if she hadn't
known Hackworth was here.
"Do
those Heartlanders really believe that story about the drunken pilot?"
"Oh.
Who cares?" the woman said.
Hackworth
laughed, pleased that a member of Dramatis Personae was affording him this
confidence.
"It's
off the point, isn't it," the woman said in a lower voice, getting a bit
philosophical now. She squeezed a wedge of lemon into her wheat beer and took a
sip. "Belief isn't a binary state, not here at least. Does anyone believe
anything one hundred percent? Do you believe everything you see through those
goggles?"
"No,"
Hackworth said, "the only thing I believe at the moment is that my legs
are wet, this stout is good, and I like your perfume."
She
looked a bit surprised, not unpleasantly so, but she wasn't nearly that easy.
"So why are you here? Which show did you come to see?"
"What
do you mean? I suppose I came to see this one."
"But
there is no this one. It's a whole family of shows. Interlaced." She
parked her beer and executed Phase 1 of the here-is- the-church maneuver.
"Which show you see depends on which feed you're viewing."
"I
don't seem to have any control over what I see."
"Ah,
then you're a performer."
"So
far I have felt like a very inept slapstick performer."
"Inept
slapstick? Isn't that a bit redundant?"
It
wasn't that funny, but she said it wittily, and Hackworth chuckled politely.
"It
sounds as though you've been singled out to be a performer."
"You
don't say."
"Now,
I don't normally reveal our trade secrets," the woman continued in a lower
voice, "but usually when someone is singled out as a performer, it's
because they have come here for some purpose other than pure, passive
entertainment."
Hackworth
stuttered and fumbled for words a bit. "Does that- is that done?"
"Oh,
yes!" the woman said. She rose from her stool and moved to the one right
next to Hackworth. "Theatre's not just a few people clowning about on a
stage, being watched by this herd of oxen. I mean, sometimes it's that. But it
can be ever so much more-really it can be any sort of interaction between
people and people, or people and information." The woman had become quite
passionate now, forgotten herself completely. Hackworth got boundless pleasure
just from watching her. When she'd first entered the bar, he'd thought she had
a sort of nondescript face, but as she let her guard down and spoke without any
self-consciousness, she seemed to become prettier and prettier. "We are
tied in to everything here- plugged into the whole universe of information.
Really, it's a virtual theatre. Instead of being hard-wired, the stage, sets,
cast, and script are all soft-they can be reconfigured simply by shifting bits
about."
"Oh.
So the show-or interlaced set of shows-can be different each night?"
"No,
you're still not getting it," she said, becoming very excited. She reached
out and gripped his forearm just below the elbow and leaned toward him,
desperate to make sure he got this. "It's not that we do a set show,
reconfigure, and a different one next night. The changes are dynamic and take
place in real time. The show reconfigures itself dynamically depending upon
what happens moment to moment-and mind you, not just what happens here, but
what is happening in the world at large. It is a smart play-an
intelligent organism."
"So,
if, for example, a battle between the Fists of Righteous Harmony and the
Coastal Republic were taking place in the interior of China at this moment,
then shifts in the battle might in some way-"
"Might
change the color of a spotlight or a line of dialogue- not necessarily in any
simple and deterministic fashion, mind you-"
"I
think I understand," Hackworth said. "The internal variables of the
play depend on the total universe of information outside-"
The
woman nodded vigorously, quite pleased with him, her huge black eyes shining.
Hackworth
continued, "As, for example, a person's state of mind at any given moment
might depend on the relative concentrations of innumerable chemical compounds
circulating through his bloodstream."
"Yes,"
the woman said, "like if you're in a pub being chatted up by a fetching
young gentleman, the words coming out of your mouth are affected by the amount
of alcohol you've put into your system, and, of course, by concentrations of
natural hormones- again, not in a simple deterministic way-these things are all
inputs."
"I
think I'm beginning to get your meaning," Hackworth said.
"Substitute
tonight's show for the brain, and the information flowing across the net for
molecules flowing through the bloodstream, and you have it," the woman
said.
Hackworth
was a bit disappointed that she had chosen to pull back from the pub metaphor,
which he had found more immediately interesting.
The
woman continued, "That lack of determinism causes some to dismiss the
whole process as wanking. But in fact it's an incredibly powerful tool. Some
people understand that."
"I
believe I do," Hackworth said, desperately wanting her to believe that he
did.
"And
so some people come here because they are on a quest of some sort-trying to
find a lost lover, let's say, or to understand why something terrible happened
in their lives, or why there is cruelty in the world, or why they aren't
satisfied with their career. Society has never been good at answering these
questions-the sorts of questions you can't just look up in a reference
database."
"But
the dynamic theatre allows one to interface with the universe of data in a more
intuitive way," Hackworth said.
"That
is precisely
it," the woman said. "I'm so pleased that you get
this."
"When
I was working with information, it frequently occurred to me, in a vague and
general way, that such a thing might be desirable," Hackworth said.
"But this is beyond my imagination."
"Where
did you hear of us?"
"I
was referred here by a friend who has been associated with you in the past, in
some vague way."
"Oh?
May I ask who? Perhaps we have a mutual friend," the woman said, as if
that would be a fine thing. Hackworth felt himself reddening and let out a deep
breath.
"All
right," he said, "I lied. It wasn't really a friend of mine. It was
someone I was led to."
"Ah,
now we're getting into it," the woman said. "I knew there was
something mysterious going on with you."
Hackworth
was abashed and did not know what to say. He looked into his beer. The woman
was staring at him, and he could feel her eqes on his face like the warmth of a
follow spot.
"So
you did come here in search of something. Didn't you? Something you couldn't
find by looking it up in a database."
"I'm
seeking a fellow called the Alchemist," Hackworth said. Suddenly, things
got bright. The side of the woman's face that was toward the window was
brilliantly illuminated, like a probe in space lit on one side by the directional
light of the sun. Hackworth sensed, somehow, that this was not a new
development. Looking out over the audience, he saw that nearly all of them were
aiming their spotlights into the bar, and that everyone in the place had been
watching and listening to his entire conversation with the woman. The
spectacles had deceived him by adjusting the apparent light levels. The woman
looked different too; her face had reverted to the way it looked when she came
in, and Hackworth now understood that her image in his spectacles had been
gradually evolving during their conversation, getting feedback from whatever
part of his brain buzzed when he saw a beautiful woman.
The
curtain parted to reveal a large electric sign descending from the fly space:
JOHN HACKWORTH in QUEST FOR THE ALCHEMIST starring JOHN HACKWORTH as HIMSELF.
The
Chorus sang: He's such a stiff John Hackworth is Can't show emotion to save his life With nasty repercussions, viz He lost his job and lost his wife So now he's on a goshdarn Quest Wandering all o'er the world Hunting down that Alchemist 'Cept when he stops to pick up girls. Maybe he'll clean up his act And do the job tonight A fabulous adventure packed With marvelous sounds and sights Let's get it on, oh Hacker John Let's get it on, on, on.
Something jerked
violently at Hackworth's neck. The woman had tossed a noose around him while
he'd been staring out the window, and now she was hauling him out the door of
the bar like a recalcitrant dog. As soon as she cleared the doorway, her cape
inflated like a time-lapse explosion, and she shot twelve feet into the air,
propelled on jets of air built into her clothing somehow-she payed out the
leash so that Hackworth wasn't hanged in the process. F lying above the audience like the cone of
fire from a rocket engine, she led the stumbling Hackworth down the sloping
floor and to the edge of the water. The thrust stage was linked to the water's
edge by a couple of narrow bridges, and Hackworth negotiated one of these,
feeling hundreds of lights on his shoulders, seemingly hot enough to ignite his
clothing. She led him straight back through the center of the Chorus, beneath
the electric sign, through the backstage area, and through a doorway, which
clanged shut behind him. Then she vanished.
Hackworth
was surrounded on three sides by softly glowing blue walls. He reached out to
touch one and received a mild shock for his troubles. Stepping forward, he
tripped over something that skittered across the floor: a dry bone, big and
heavy, larger than a human femur.
He
stepped forward through the only gap available to him and found more walls. He
had been deposited into the heart of a labyrinth.
It
took him an hour or so to realize that escape through normal means was
hopeless. He didn't even try to figure out the labyrinth's floor plan; instead,
realizing that it couldn't possibly be larger than the ship, he followed the
foolproof expedient of turning right at every corner, which as all clever boys
knew must always lead to an exit. But it didn't, and he did not understand why
until once, in the corner of his eye, he saw a wall segment shift sideways,
closing up an old gap and creating a new one. It was a dynamic labyrinth.
He
found a rusty bolt on the floor, picked it up, and threw it at a wall. It did
not bounce off but passed through and clattered onto the floor beyond. So the
walls did not exist except as figments in his spectacles. The labyrinth was
constructed of information. In order to escape, he would have to hack it.
He
sat down on the floor. Nick the barman appeared, walking unhindered through
walls, bearing a tray with another stout on it, and handed it to him along with
a bowl of salty peanuts. As the evening went on, other people passed through
his area, dancing or singing or dueling or arguing or making love. None of
these had anything to do, particularly, with Hackworth's Quest, and they
appeared to have nothing to do with each other. Apparently Hackworth's Quest
was (as the devil-woman herself had told him) just one of several concurrent
stories being acted out tonight, coexisting in the same space.
So
what did any of this have to do with the life of John Hackworth? And how was
Fiona mixed up in it?
As
Hackworth thought about Fiona, a panel in front of him slid to the side,
exposing several yards of corridor. During the next couple of hours he noted
the same thing several times: An idea would occur to him, and a wall would
move. In this way
he moved in fits and starts through the maze, as his mind moved
from one idea to the next. The floor was definitely sloping downward, which
would obviously bring him below the waterline at some point; and indeed he had
begun to sense a heavy drumming noise coming up through the deckplates, which
might have been the pounding of mighty engines except that this ship, as far as
he knew, wasn't going anywhere. He smelled seawater before him and saw dim
lights shining through its surface, broken by the waves, and knew that in the
flooded ballast tanks of this ship lay a network of underwater tunnels, and
that in those tunnels were Drummers. For all he knew, the whole show was just a
figment being enacted in the mind of the Drummers. Probably not the main event
either; it was probably just an epiphenomenon of whatever deep processes the
Drummers were running down there in their collective mind.
A
wall panel slid aside and gave him a clear path to the water. Hackworth
squatted at the water's edge for a few minutes, listening to the drums, then
stood up and began to undo his necktie. . . .
He was terribly
hot and sweaty, and bright light was in his eyes, and none of these things were
consistent with being underwater. He awoke to see a bright blue sky overhead,
pawed at his face, and found that the spectacles were gone. Fiona was there in
her white dress, watching him with a rueful smile. The floor was pounding
Hackworth on the buttocks and evidently had been for some time, as the bony
parts of his backside were bruised and raw.
He
realized that they were on the raft, heading back toward the London docks; that
he was naked and that Fiona had covered him with a sheet of plastic to protect
his skin from the sun. A few other theatergoers were scattered about, slumped
against one another, utterly passive, like refugees, or people who've just had
the greatest sex of their lives, or people who are tremendously hung over.
"You
were quite a hit," Fiona said. And suddenly Hackworth remembered himself
being paraded naked and dripping down the thrust stage, waves of applause
rolling over him from the standing audience.
"The
Quest is finished," he blurted. "We're going to Shanghai."
"You're
going to Shanghai," Fiona said. "I'll see you off at the dock.
Then I'll be going back." She cocked her head over the stern.
"Back
to the ship?"
"I
was a bigger hit than you were," she said. "I've found my calling
in life, Father. I've accepted an invitation to join Dramatis Personae."
Carl
Hollywood's hack.
Carl Hollywood leaned back against the hard
lacquered back of his corner seat for the first time in many hours and rubbed
his face with both hands, scratching himself with his own whiskers. He had been
sitting in the teahouse for almost twenty-four hours, consumed twelve pots of
tea, and twice called in masseuses to unknot his back.
The
afternoon light coming in the windows behind him flickered as the crowd outside
began to break up. They had been treated to a remarkable free media show,
watching over his shoulders for hours as the dramaturgical exploits of John
Percival Hackworth had played themselves out, in several different camera
angles, on floating cine windows on Carl Hollywood's pages. None of them could
read English, and so they had been unable to follow the story of Princess
Nell's adventures in the land of King Coyote, which had been streaming across
the pages at the same time, the storyline fluctuating and curling in upon
itself like a cloud of smoke spun and torn by invisible currents.
Now
the pages were blank and empty. Carl reached out lazily with one hand and began
to stack the sheets on top of each other, just for something to occupy his
hands while his mind worked- though it wasn't working, at this point, so much
as stumbling blindly through a dark labyrinth a Ia John Percival Hackworth.
Carl Hollywood had long suspected that, among other things, the network of the
Drummers was a giant system for breaking codes. The cryptographic systems that
made the media network run securely, and that made it capable of securely
transferring money, were based on the use of immense prime numbers as magic
keys. The keys could theoretically be broken by throwing enough computing power
at the problem. But at any given level of computing power, code-making was
always much easier than code-breaking, so as long as the system kept moving to
larger and larger prime numbers as computers got faster, the code-makers could
stay far ahead of the code-breakers forever.
But
the human mind didn't work like a digital computer and was capable of doing
some funny things. Carl Hollywood remembered one of the Lone Eagles, an older
man who could add huge columns of numbers in his head as quickly as they were
called out. That, in and of itself, was merely a duplication of something that
a digital computer could do. But this man could also do numerical tricks that
could not easily be programmed into a computer.
If
many minds were gathered together in the network of the Drummers, perhaps they
could somehow see through the storm of encrypted data that roared continuously
through media space, cause the seemingly random bits to coalesce into meaning.
The men who had come to talk to Miranda, who had persuaded her to enter the
world of the Drummers, had implied that this was possible; that through them,
Miranda could find Nell.
Superficially,
this would be disastrous, because it would destroy the system used for
financial transactions. It would be as if, in a world where commerce was based
upon the exchange of gold, some person had figured out how to change lead into
gold. An Alchemist.
But
Carl Hollywood wondered if it really made a difference. The Drummers could only
do such things by subsuming themselves into a gestalt society. As the case of
Hackworth demonstrated, as soon as a Drummer removed himself from that gestalt,
he lost touch with it completely. All communication between the Drummers and
normal human society took place unconsciously, through their influence upon the
Net, in patterns that appeared subliminally in the ractives that everyone
played with in their homes and saw playing across the walls of buildings. The
Drummers could break the code, but they couldn't take advantage of it in an
obvious way, or perhaps they simply did not want to. They could make gold, but
they were no longer interested in having it.
John
Hackworth, somehow, was better than anyone else at making the transition
between the society of Drummers and the Victorian tribe, and each time he
crossed the boundary, he seemed to bring something with him, clinging to his
garments like traces of scent. These faint echoes of forbidden data entrained
in his wake caused tangled and unpredictable repercussions, on both sides of
the boundary, that Hackworth himself might not even be aware of. Carl Hollywood
had known little of Hackworth until several hours ago, when, alerted by a
friend in Dramatis Personae, he had joined his story in progress on the black
decks of the show boat. Now he seemed to know a great deal: that Hackworth was
the progenitor of the Young
Lady's Illustrated Primer, and that he had a deep
relationship with the Drummers that went far beyond anything as simple-minded
as captivity. He had not just been eating lotuses and getting his rocks off
during his years beneath the waves.
Hackworth
had brought something back with him this time, when he had emerged naked and
streaming with cold seawater from the warren of Drummers in the ballast tanks
of the ship. He had emerged with a set of numerical keys that were used to
identify certain entities: the Primer, Nell, Miranda, and someone else who went
by the name of Dr. X. Before he had fully reentered his conscious state, he had
supplied those keys to the Clown, who had been there to haul his gasping and
shivering body out of the water.
The
Clown was a mechanical device, but Dramatis Personae had been good enough to
allow Carl Hollywood to control it- and to improvise much of Hackworth's
personal script and storyline- for the duration of the show.
Now
Carl had the keys and, for the purposes of the Net, was indistinguishable from
Miranda or Nell or Dr. X or even Hackworth himself. They were written out
across the surface of a page, long columns of digits grouped in bunches of
four. Carl Hollywood told this sheet to fold itself and then tucked it into his
breast pocket. He could use them to untangle this whole business, but that
would be another night's hack. Snuff and caffeine had done as much as they
could. It was time to go back to the hotel, soak in a bath, get some sleep, and
prepare for the final act.
From
the Primer, Princess Nell's ride to the
Castle of King Coyote; description of
the castle; an audience with a
Wizard; her final triumph over King
Coyote; an enchanted army.
Princess
Nell rode north into an explosive thunderstorm. The horses were driven nearly
mad with terror by the cannonlike explosions of the thunder and the unearthly
blue flashes of the lightning, but with a firm hand and a soothing voice in the
ear, Nell urged them forward. The cairns of bones strewn along the roadside
were evidence that this mountain pass was no place to dawdle, and the poor
animals would be no less terrified huddling under a rock. For all she knew, the
great King Coyote was capable of controlling even the weather itself and had
prepared this reception to try Princess Nell's will.
Finally she
crested the pass, and none too soon, as the horses' hooves had begun to slip on
a thick layer of ice, and ice had begun thickly to coat the reins and to weigh
down the animals' manes and tails. Working her way down the switchbacks, she
left the high fury of the storm behind and pushed into masses of rain as dense
as any jungle. It was well that she had paused for a few days at the foot of
the mountains to review all of Purple's magic books, for on this night ride
through the mountains she used every spell Purple had taught her: spells for
casting light, for choosing the right fork in the road, for calming animals and
warming chilled bodies, for bolstering her own failing courage, for sensing the
approach of any monsters foolish enough to venture out in such weather, and for
defeating those desperate enough to attack. This night ride was, perhaps, a
rash act, but Princess Nell proved equal to the challenge. King Coyote would
not expect her to make such a crossing. Tomorrow when the storm on high had
cleared, he would send his raven sentinels winging through the pass and down
into the plain below to spy on her, as he had for the last several days, and
they would return with dismaying news: The Princess had vanished! Even King
Coyote's best trackers would not be able to follow her path from yesterday's campsite,
so craftily had she covered her real tracks and laid false ones.
Dawn found
her in the heart of a great forest. King Coyote's castle was built on a high
woodland plateau surrounded by mountains; she estimated she was several hours'
ride away. Staying well clear of the high road taken by the messengers from the
Cipherers' Market, she made camp under an overhanging rock along a river,
sheltered from the chill wet wind and safe from the eyes of the raven
sentinels, and lit a tiny fire where she made some tea and porridge. She napped
until the middle of the afternoon, then rose, bathed in the bitter water of the
stream, and untied the oilcloth packet she had brought with her. It contained
one of the costumes worn by the messengers who galloped to and from the
Cipherers' Market. It also contained a few books containing enciphered
messages- authentic ones dispatched from various stalls in the market addressed
to King Coyote's castle.
As she made
her way through the woods toward the high road, she heard massed hoofbeats
rolling by and knew that the first contingent of messengers had just come over
the pass after waiting for the storm to pass. She waited a few minutes and then
followed them. Turning onto the high road out of the dense woods, she reined in
her horse and sat for a moment, astonished by her first sight of the Castle of
King Coyote.
She had
never seen its like in all of her travels through the Land Beyond. Its base was
as wide as a mountain, and its waIls rose sheer and straight into the clouds.
Galactic clouds of lights shone from its myriad windows. It was guarded by
mighty stockades, each of them a great castle unto itself, but built not on
stony foundations, but upon the very clouds themselves; for King Coyote, in his
cleverness, had devised a way to make buildings that floated on the air.
Princess Nell spurred her horse forward, for even in her numbness she sensed
that someone might be watching the high road from a window high in one of the
castle's glittering oriels. As she galloped toward the castle, she was torn
between a sense of her own foolishness in daring to assault such a mighty
fortress and admiration for King Coyote's work. Faint clouds of diaphanous
black oozed between the towers and stockades, and as Princess Nell drew closer,
she saw that they were actually regiments of ravens going through their
military drills. They were the closest thing King Coyote had to an army; for as
one of the ravens had told her, after he had stolen the eleven keys from around
her neck, Castles, gardens, gold, and
jewels Contentment signify, for
fools Like Princess Nell; but those Who cultivate their wit Like King Coyote and his crows Compile their power bit by bit And hide it places no one knows.
King Coyote
did not preserve his power by armed might but by cleverness, and sentinels were
the only army he needed, information his only weapon.
As she
galloped the final miles to the gate, wondering whether her legs and back would
hold out, a thin steam of black issued from a narrow portal high in one of the
floating stockades, thickened into a transparent ball, and dove toward her like
a plunging comet. She could not help flinching from the illusion of mass and
momentum, but, a stone's throw above her head the cloud of ravens parted into
several contingents that whirled around and struck from several directions,
converging on her, passing around her so closely that the wind from their
rattling wings blew her hair back, finally reforming into a disciplined group
that returned to its stockade without a look back. Apparently she had passed
the inspection. When she reached the mighty gate, it was standing open for her,
and no one was guarding it. Princess Nell rode into the broad streets of King
Coyote's castle.
It was the
finest place she had ever seen. Here gold and crystal were not hidden away in
the King's treasury but were used as building materials. Green and growing
things were everywhere, for King Coyote was fascinated by the secrets of nature
and had sent his agents to the farthest reaches of the world to bring back
exotic seeds. The wide boulevards of King Coyote's city were lined with trees
whose arching limbs closed over the ashlars to form a rustling vault. The
undersides of the leaves were silver and seemed to cast a gentle light, and the
branches were filled with violet and magenta bromeliads the size of kettles,
making a sweet sharp smell, aswarm with ruby-throated hummingbirds and filled
with water where tiny fluorescent frogs and beetles lived.
The
Messenger's Route was marked with polished brass plates set among the
paving-stones. Princess Nell followed it down the grand boulevard, into a park
that encircled the city, and then onto a rising street that spiraled around the
central promontory. As the horse took her toward the clouds, her ears popped
again and again, and from each curve in the road she enjoyed a sweeping view
over the lower city and into the constellation of floating stockades where the
raven sentinels soared, coming and going in flights and squadrons, bringing
news from every corner of the empire.
She rode by
a place where King Coyote was adding on to the castle; but instead of an army
of stonemasons and carpenters, the builder was a single man, a portly
gray-bearded fellow puffing at a long slender pipe, carrying a leather bag on
his belt. Arriving at the center of the building site, he reached into his bag
and drew out a great seed the size of an apple and pitched it into the soil. By
the time this man had walked back to the spiral road, a tall shaft of gleaming
crystal had arisen from the soil and grown far above their heads, gleaming in
the sunlight, and branched out like a tree. By the time Princess Nell lost
sight of it around the corner, the builder was puffing contentedly and looking
at a crystalline vault that nearly covered the lot.
This and
many other wonders Princess Nell saw during her long ride up the spiral road.
The clouds cleared away, and Nell found that she could see great distances in
every direction. King Coyote's domain was in the very heart of the Land Beyond,
and his castle was built on a high plateau in the center of his domain, so that
from his windows he could see all the way to the shining ocean in every
direction. Nell kept a sharp eye on the horizon as she climbed toward the
King's inner keep, hoping she might get a glimpse of the faraway island where
Harv languished in the Dark Castle; but there were many islands in the distant
sea, and it was hard to tell the Dark Castle's towers from mountain crags.
Finally the
road became level and turned inward to pierce another unguarded gate in another
high wall, and Princess Nell found herself in a green, flowery court before the
King's keep-a high palace that appeared to have been hewn from a single diamond
the size of an iceberg. By now the sun was sinking low in the west, and its
orange rays ignited the walls of the keep and cast tiny rainbows everywhere
like shards from a shattered crystal bowl. A dozen or so messengers stood in a
queue before the doors of the keep. They had left their horses in a corner of
the yard where a watering-trough and manger were available. Princess Nell did
likewise and joined the queue.
"I
have never had the honor of carrying a message to King Coyote," Princess
Nell said to the messenger preceding her in the queue.
"It is
an experience you will never forget," said the messenger, a cocky young
man with black hair and a goatee.
"Why
must we wait in this queue? In the stalls at the Cipherers' Market, we leave
the books on the table and continue on our way."
Several of
the messengers turned and looked back at Princess Nell disdainfully. The
messenger with the goatee made a visible effort to control his amusement and
said, "King Coyote is no small-timer sitting in a stall at the Cipherers'
Market! This you will soon see for yourself."
"But
doesn't he make his decisions the same way as all the others-by consulting
rules in a book?"
At this the
other messengers made no effort to control their amusement. The one with the
goatee took on a distinctly sneering tone. "What would be the point of
having a King in that case?" he said. "He does not take his decisions
from any book. King Coyote has built a mighty thinking machine, Wizard 0.2,
containing all the wisdom in the world. When we bring a book to this place, his
acolytes decipher it and consult with Wizard 0.2. Sometimes it takes hours for
Wizard to reach its decision. I would advise you to wait respectfully and
quietly in the presence of the great machine!"
"That
I will certainly do," said Princess Nell, amused rather than angered by
this lowly messenger's impertinence.
The queue
moved along steadily, and as darkness fell and the orange rays of the sun died
away, Princess Nell became aware of colored lights streaming out from within
the keep. The lights seemed to be quite brilliant whenever Wizard 0.2 was
cogitating and dropped to a low flicker the rest of the time. Princess Nell
tried to make out other details of what was going on inside the keep, but the
countless facets broke up the light and bent it into all directions so that she
could get only hints and fragments; trying to see into King Coyote's inner
sanctum was like trying to remember the details of a forgotten dream.
Finally the
messenger with the goatee emerged, gave Princess Nell a final smirk, and
reminded her to display proper respect.
"Next,"
intoned the acolyte in a chanting voice, and Princess Nell entered the keep.
Five
acolytes sat in the anteroom, each one at a desk piled high with dusty old
books and long reels of paper tape. Nell had brought thirteen books from the
Cipherers' Market, and at their direction, she distributed these books among
the acolytes for decipherment. The acolytes were neither young nor old but in
the middle of their lives, all dressed in white coats decorated, in golden thread,
with the crest of King Coyote. Each also had a key around his neck. As Princess
Nell waited, they deciphered the contents of the books she had brought and
punched the results onto strips of paper tape using little machines built into
their tables.
Then, with
great ceremony, the thirteen paper tapes were coiled up and placed on a
tremendous silver platter carried by a young altar boy. A pair of large doors
was swung open, and the acolytes, the altar boy, and Princess Nell formed into
a procession of sorts, which marched into the Chamber of the Wizard, a vast
vaulted room, and down its long central aisle.
At the far
end of the chamber was-nothing. A sort of large empty space surrounded by
elaborate machinery and clockwork, with a small altar at the front. It reminded
Princess Nell of a stage, empty of curtains and scenery. Standing next to the
stage was a high priest, older and wearing a more impressive white robe.
When they
reached the head of the aisle, the priest went through a perfunctory ceremony, praising
the Wizard's excellent features and asking for its cooperation. As he said
these words, lights began to come on and the machinery began to whir. Princess
Nell saw that this vault was, in fact, nothing more than an anteroom for a much
vaster space within, and that this space was filled with machinery: countless
narrow shining rods, scarcely larger than pencil leads, laid in a fine
gridwork, sliding back and forth under the impetus of geared power shafts
running throughout the place. All of the machinery threw off heat as it ran,
and the room was quite warm despite a vigorous draught of cold mountain air
being pumped through it by windmill-size fans.
The priest
took the first of the thirteen rolls of paper tape from the platter and fed it
into a slot on the top of the altar. At this point, Wizard 0.2 really went into
action, and Princess Nell saw that all the whirring and humming she'd seen to
this point had been nothing more than a low idle. Each of its million pushrods
was tiny, but the force needed to move all of them at once was seismic, and she
could sense the tremendous strains on the power shafts and gear boxes
thundering through the sturdy floor of the keep.
Lights came
on around the stage, some of them built into the surface of the stage itself
and some hidden in the machinery around it. To Princess Nell's surprise, a
seemingly three-dimensional shape of light began to coalesce in the center of
the empty stage. It gradually formed itself into a head, which took on
additional details as the machinery thundered and hissed away: it was an old
bald man with a long white beard, his face deeply furrowed in thought. After a
few moments, the beard exploded into a flock of white birds and the head turned
into a craggy mountain, the white birds swarming about it, and then the
mountain erupted in orange lava that gradually filled up the entire volume of
the stage until it was a solid glowing cube of orange light. In this fashion
did one image merge into another, most astonishingly, for several minutes, and
all the time the machinery was screaming away and making Princess Nell most
anxious, and she suspected that if she had not seen less sophisticated machines
at work at Castle Turing, she might have turned around and fled.
Finally,
though, the images died away, the stage became empty again, and the altar spat
out a length of paper tape, which the priest carefully folded up and handed to
one of the acolytes. After a brief prayer of thanks, the priest fed the second
tape into the altar, and the whole process started up again, this time with
different but equally remarkable images.
So it went
with one tape after another. When Princess Nell became accustomed to the noise
and vibration of the Wizard, she began to enjoy the images, which seemed quite
artistic to her- like something a human would come up with, and not machinelike
at all.
But the
Wizard was undoubtedly a machine. She had not yet had the opportunity to study
it in detail, but after her experiences in all of King Coyote's other castles,
she suspected that it, too, was just another Turing machine. Her study of the
Cipherers' Market, and particularly of the rulebooks used by the cipherers to
respond to messages, had taught her that for all its complexity, it too was
nothing more than another Turing machine. She had come here to the Castle of
King Coyote to see whether the King answered his messages according to
Turing-like rules. For if he did, then the entire system- the entire kingdom-
the entire Land Beyond-was nothing more than a vast Turing machine. And as she
had established when she'd been locked up in the dungeon at Castle Turing,
communicating with the mysterious Duke by sending messages on a chain, a Turing
machine, no matter how complex, was not human. It had no soul. It could not do
what a human did.
The
thirteenth tape was fed into the altar, and the machinery began to whine, then
to whir, and then to rumble. The images appearing above the stage flourished
into wilder and more exotic forms than any they had seen yet, and watching the
faces of the priest and the acolytes, Princess Nell could see that even they
were surprised; they had never seen anything of the like before. As the minutes
wore on, the images became fragmented and bizarre, mere incarnations of
mathematical ideas, and finally the stage went entirely dark except for
occasional random flashes of color. The Wizard had worked itself up to such a
pitch that all of them felt trapped within the bowels of a mighty machine that
could tear them to shreds in a moment. The little altar boy finally broke away
and fled down the aisle. Within a minute or so, the acolytes, one by one, did
the same, backing slowly away from the Wizard until they were about halfway
down the aisle and then turning away and running. Finally even the high priest turned
and fled. The rumbling of the machinery had now reached such a pitch that it
felt as though an epochal earthquake were in progress, and Nell had to steady
herself with a hand on the altar. The heat coming from back in the machine was
like that from a forge, and Nell could see a dim red light from deep inside as
some of the pushrods became hot enough to glow.
Finally it
all stopped. The silence was astonishing. Nell realized she had been cringing
and stood up straight. The red glow from inside the Wizard began to die away.
White light poured in from all around. Princess Nell could tell that it was
coming in from outside the diamond walls of the keep. A few minutes ago it had
been nighttime. Now there was light, but not daylight; it came from all directions
and was cool and colorless.
She ran
down the aisle and opened the door to the anteroom, but it wasn't there.
Nothing was there. The anteroom was gone. The flowery garden beyond it was
gone, and the horses, the wall, the spiral road, the City of King Coyote, and
the Land Beyond. Instead there was nothing but gentle white light.
She turned
around. The Chamber of the Wizard was still there.
At the head
of the aisle she could see a man sitting atop the altar, looking at her. He was
wearing a crown. Around his neck was a key-the twelfth key to the Dark Castle.
Princess Nell walked down the aisle toward King Coyote. He was a middle-aged
man, sandy hair losing its color, gray eyes, and a beard, somewhat darker than
his hair and not especially well trimmed. As Princess Nell approached, he
seemed to become conscious of the crown around his head. He reached up, lifted
it from his head, and tossed it carelessly onto the top of the altar.
"Very
funny," he said. "You snuck a zero divide past all of my defenses."
Princess
Nell refused to be drawn by his studied informality. She stopped several paces
away. "As there is no one here to make introductions, I shall take the
liberty of doing so myself. I am Princess Nell, Duchess of Turing," she
said, and held out her hand.
King Coyote
looked slightly embarrassed. He jumped down from the altar, approached Princess
Nell, and kissed her hand. "King Coyote at your service."
"Pleased
to make your acquaintance."
"The
pleasure is mine. Sorry! I should have known that the Primer would have taught
you better manners."
"I am
not acquainted with the Primer to which you refer," Princess Nell said.
"I am simply a Princess on a quest: to obtain the twelve keys to the Dark
Castle. I note you have one of them in your possession."
King Coyote
held up his hands, palms facing toward her. "Say no more," he said.
"Single combat will not be necessary. You are already the victor." He
removed the twelfth key from his neck and held it out to Princess Nell. She
took it from him with a little curtsy; but as the chain was sliding through his
fingers, he tightened his grip suddenly, so that both of them were joined by
the chain. "Now that your quest is over," he said, "can we drop
the pretense?"
"I'm
sure I don't take your meaning, Your Majesty."
He bore a
controlled look of exasperation. "What was your purpose in coming
here?"
"To
obtain the twelfth key."
"Anything
else?"
"To
learn about Wizard 0.2."
"Ah."
"To
discover whether it was, in fact, a Turing machine."
"Well,
you have your answer. Wizard 0.2 is most certainly a Turing machine-the most
powerful ever built."
"And
the Land Beyond?"
"All
grown from seeds. Seeds that I invented."
"And
it is also a Turing machine, then? All controlled by Wizard 0.2?"
"No,"
said King Coyote. "Managed by Wizard. Controlled by me."
"But
the messages in the Cipherers' Market control all the events in the Land
Beyond, do they not?"
"You
are most perceptive, Princess Nell."
"Those
messages came to Wizard-just another Turing machine."
"Open
the altar," said King Coyote, pointing to a large brass plate with a
keyhole in the middle.
Princess
Nell used her key to open the lock, and King Coyote flipped back the lid of the
altar. Inside were two small machines, one for reading tapes and one for
writing them.
"Follow
me," said King Coyote, and opened a trap door set into the floor behind
the altar.
Princess
Nell followed him down a spiral staircase into a small room. The connecting
rods from the altar came down into this room and terminated at a small console.
"Wizard
is not even connected to the altar! It does nothing," Princess Nell said.
"Oh,
Wizard does a great deal. It helps me keep track of things, does calculations,
and so on. But all of that business up there on the stage is just for show-
just to impress the commoners. When a message comes here from the Cipherers'
Market, I read it myself, and answer it myself.
"So as
you can see, Princess Nell, the Land Beyond is not really a Turing machine at
all. It's actually a person- a few people, to be precise. Now it's all
yours."
King Coyote
led Princess Nell back into the heart of his keep and gave her a tour of the
place. The best part was the library. He showed her the books containing the
rules for programming Wizard 0.2, and other books explaining how to make atoms
build themselves into machines, buildings, and whole worlds.
"You
see, Princess Nell, you have conquered this world today, and now that you have
conquered it, you'll find it a rather boring place. Now it's your
responsibility to make new worlds for other people to explore and
conquer." King Coyote waved his hand out the window into the vast, empty
white space where once had stood the Land Beyond. "There's plenty of empty
space out there."
"What
will you do, King Coyote?"
"Call
me John, Your Royal Highness. As of today, I no longer have a kingdom."
"John,
what will you do?"
"I
have a quest of my own."
"What
is your quest?"
"To
find the Alchemist, whoever he may be."
"And
is there . . ."
Nell
stopped reading the Primer for a moment. Her eyes had filled up with tears.
"Is
there what?" said John's voice from the book.
"Is
there another? Another who has been with me during my
quest?"
"Yes,
there is," John said quietly, after a short pause. "At least
I have always sensed that she is here."
"Is
she here now?"
"Only
if you build a place for her," John said. "Read the books,
and they will show you how."
With
that, John, the former King Coyote and Emperor of the Land Beyond, vanished in
a flash of light, leaving Princess Nell alone in her great dusty library.
Princess Nell put her head down on an old leather-bound book and smelled its
rich fragrance. One tear of joy ran from each eye. But she mastered the impulse
to cry and reached for the book instead.
They were
magic books, and they drew Princess Nell into them so deeply that, for many
hours, perhaps even days, she was not aware of her surroundings; which scarcely
mattered as nothing remained of the Land Beyond. But at some length, she realized
that something was tickling her foot. She reached down absently and scratched
it. Moments later the tickling sensation returned. This time she looked down
and was astonished to see that the floor of the library was covered with a
thick gray-brown carpet, flecked here and there with splotches of white and
black.
It was a
living, moving carpet. It was, in fact, the Mouse Army. All of the other
buildings, places, and creatures Princess Nell had seen in the Land Beyond had
been figments produced by Wizard 0.2; but apparently the mice were an exception
and existed independently of King Coyote's machinations. When the Land Beyond
had disappeared, all of the obstructions and impedimenta that had kept the
Mouse Army away from Princess Nell had disappeared with it, and in short order
they had been able to fix her whereabouts and to converge upon their
long-sought Queen.
"What
would you have me do?" Princess Nell said. She had never been a Queen
before and did not know the protocol.
A chorus of
excited squeaking came from the mice as commands were relayed and issued. The
carpet went into violent but highly organized motion as the mice drew
themselves up into platoons, companies, battalions, and regiments, each of them
commanded by an officer. One mouse clambered up the leg of Princess Nell's
table, bowed low to her, and then began to squeak commands from on high. The
mice executed a close-order drill, withdrew to the edges of the room, and
arrayed themselves in an empty box shape, leaving a large open rectangle in the
middle of the floor.
The mouse
up on the table, whom Nell had dubbed the Generalissima, issued a lengthy
series of orders, running to each of the four edges of the table to address
different contingents of the Mouse Army. When the Generalissima was finished,
very high piping music could be heard as the mouse pipers played their bagpipes
and the drummers beat their drums.
Small
groups of mice began to encroach on the empty space, each group moving toward a
different spot. Once each group had reached its assigned position, the
individual mice arranged themselves in such a way that the group as a whole
described a letter. In this way, the following message was written across the
floor of the library:
WE ARE ENCHANTED
REQUEST ASSISTANCE
REFER TO BOOKS
"I
shall bend all my efforts toward your disenchantment," Princess Nell said,
and a tremendous, earsplitting scream of gratitude rose from the tiny throats
of the Mouse Army. Finding the required book did not take long. The Mouse Army
split itself up into small detachments, each of which wrestled a different book
from the shelf, opened it up on the floor, and scampered through it one page at
a time, looking for relevant spells. Within the hour, Princess Nell noted that
a broad open corridor had developed in the Mouse Army, and that a book was
making its way toward her, seeming to float an inch above the floor.
She lifted
the book carefully from the backs of the mice who were bearing it and flipped
through it until she found a spell for the disenchantment of mice. "Very
well then," she said, and began to read the spell; but suddenly, excited
squeaking filled the air and all the mice were running away in a panic. The
Generalissima climbed up onto the page, jumping up and down in a state of extreme
agitation and waving her forelegs back and forth over her head.
"I
understand," Princess Nell said. She picked up the book and walked out of
the library, taking care not to step on any of her subjects, and followed them
out to the vast empty space beyond.
Once again
the Mouse Army put on a dazzling display of close order drill, drawing itself
up across the empty, colorless plain by platoons, companies, battalions,
regiments, and brigades; but this time the parade took up a much larger space,
because this time the mice took care to space themselves as far apart as the
length of a human arm. Some of the platoons had to march what was, for them, a
distance of many leagues in order to reach the edges of the formation.
Princess
Nell took advantage of the time to wander about and inspect the ranks, and to
rehearse the spell.
Finally the
Generalissima approached, bowed deeply, and gave her the thumbs-up, though
Princess Nell had to pick the tiny leader up and squint to see this gesture.
She went to the place that had been left for her at the head of the formation,
opened up the book, and spoke the magic spell.
There was a
violent thunderclap, and a rush of wind that knocked Princess Nell flat on her
back. She looked up, dazed, to see that she was surrounded by a vast army of
some hundreds of thousands of girls, only a few years younger than she was. A
wild cheer rose up, and all of the girls fell to their knees as one and, in a
scene of riotous jubilation, proclaimed their fealty to Queen Nell.
Hackworth
in China; depredations of the Fists; a
meeting with Dr. X; an unusual procession.
They
said that the Chinese had great respect for madmen, and that during the days of
the Boxer Rebellion, certain Western missionaries, probably unstable characters
to begin with, who had been trapped behind walls of rubble for weeks, scurrying
through the sniper fire of the encircling Boxers and Imperial troops and
listening to the cries of their flock being burned and tortured in the streets
of Beijing, had become deranged and had walked unharmed into the ranks of their
besiegers and been given food and treated with deference.
Now
John Percival Hackworth, having checked into a suite on the top floor of the
Shangri-La in Pudong (or Shong-a-lee-lah as the taxi drivers sang it), put on a
fresh shirt; his best waistcoat, girded with the gold chain, adangle with his
chop, snuffboxes, fob, and watchphone; a long coat with a swallowtail for
riding; boots, the black leather and brass spurs hand-shined in the lobby of
the Shong-a- lee-lah by a coolie who was so servile that he was insolent, and
Hackworth suspected him of being a Fist; new kid gloves; and his bowler,
de-mossed and otherwise spruced up a bit, but obviously a veteran of many
travels in rough territory.
As he crossed the western bank of the Huang
Pu, the usual crowd of starving peasants and professional amputees washed
around him like a wave running up a flat beach because, though riding here was
dangerous, it was not crazy, and they did not know him for a madman. He kept
his gray eyes fixed upon the picket of burning Feed lines that demarcated the
shrinking border of the Coastal Republic, and let their hands tug at his
coattails, but he took no notice of them. At different times, three very rural
young men, identifiable as much by their deep tans as their ignorance of modern
security technology, made the mistake of reaching for his watch chain and
received warning shocks for their trouble. One of them refused to let go until
the smell of burned flesh rose from his palm, and then he peeled his hand away
slowly and calmly, staring up at Hackworth to show that he didn't mind a little
pain, and said something clearly and loudly that caused a titter to run through
the crowd.
The
ride down Nanjing Road took him through the heart of Shanghai's shopping
district, now an endless gauntlet of tanned beggars squatting on their heels
gripping the brightly colored plastic bags that served as their suitcases,
carefully passing the butts of cigarettes back and forth. In the shop windows
above their heads, animated mannikins strutted and posed in the latest Coastal
Republic styles. Hackworth noticed that these were much more conservative than
they had been ten years ago, during his last trip down Nanjing Road. The female
mannikins weren't wearing slit skirts anymore. Many weren't wearing skirts at
all, but silk pants instead, or long robes that were even less revealing. One
display was centered upon a patriarchal figure who reclined on a dais, wearing
a round cap with a blue button on the top: a Mandarin. A young scholar was
bowing to him. Around the dais, four groups of mannikins were demonstrating the
other four filial relationships.
So
it was chic to be Confucian now, or at least it was politic. This was one of
the few shop windows that didn't have red Fist posters pasted all over it.
Hackworth
rode past marble villas built by Iraqi Jews in previous centuries, past the
hotel where Nixon had once stayed, past the high-rise enclaves that Western
businessmen had used as the beachheads of the post-Communist development that
had led to the squalid affluence of the Coastal Republic. He rode past
nightclubs the size of stadiums; jaialai pits where stunned refugees gaped at
the jostling of the bettors; side streets filled with boutiques, one street for
fine goods made from alligators, another for furs, another for leathers;
a nanotech district consisting of tiny businesses that did bespoke engineering;
fruit and vegetable stands; a cul-de-sac where peddlers sold antiques from little
carts, one specializing in cinnabar boxes, another in Maoist kitsch. Each time
the density began to wane and he thought he must be reaching the edge of the
city, he would come to another edge city of miniature three-story strip malls
and it would begin again.
But
as the day went on, he truly did approach the limit of the city and kept riding
anyway toward the west, and it became evident then that he was a madman and the
people in the streets looked at him with awe and got out of his way. Bicycles
and pedestrians became less common, replaced by heavier and faster military
traffic.
Hackworth
did not like riding on the shoulder of highways, and so he directed Kidnapper
to find a less direct route to Suzhou, one that used smaller roads. This was
fiat Yangtze Delta territory only inches above the waterline, where canals, for
transport, irrigation, and drainage, were more numerous than roads. The canals
ramified through the black, stinky ground like blood vessels branching into the
tissues of the brain. The plain was interrupted frequently by small tumuli
containing the coffins of someone's ancestors, just high enough to stay above
the most routine floods. Farther to the west, steep hills rose from the
paddies, black with vegetation. The Coastal Republic checkpoints at the
intersections of the roads were gray and fuzzy, like house-size clots of bread
mold, so dense was the fractal defense grid, and staring through the cloud of
macro- and microscopic aerostats, Hackworth could barely make out the hoplites
in the center, heat waves rising from the radiators on their backs and stirring
the airborne soup. They let him pass through without incident. Hackworth
expected to see more checkpoints as he continued toward Fist territory, but the
first one was the last; the Coastal Republic did not have the strength for
defense in depth and could muster only a one-dimensional picket line.
A
mile past the checkpoint, at another small intersection, Hackworth found a pair
of very makeshift crucifixes fashioned from freshly cut mulberry trees, green
leaves still fluttering from their twigs. Two young white men had been bound to
the crucifixes with gray plastic ties, burned in many places and incrementally
disemboweled. From the looks of their haircuts and the somber black neckties
that had been ironically left around their necks, Hackworth guessed they were
Mormons. A long skein of intestine trailed from one of their bellies down into
the dirt, where a gaunt
pig was tugging on it stubbornly.
He
did not see much more death, but he smelled it everywhere in the hot wet air.
He thought that he might be seeing a network of nanotech defense barriers until
he realized that it was a natural phenomenon: Each waterway supported a linear
black nimbus of fat, drowsy flies. From this he lmew that if he tugged a bit on
this or that rein and guided Kidnapper to the bank of the canal, he would find
it filled with ballooning corpses.
Ten
minutes after passing the Coastal Republic checkpoint, he rode through the
center of a Fist encampment. As he looked neither right nor left, he could not
really estimate its size; they had taken over a village of low brick-and-stucco
buildings. A long straight smudge running across the earth marked the location
of a burned Feed line, and as he crossed it, Hackworth fantasized that it was a
meridian engraved on the living globe by an astral cartographer.
Most
of the Fists were shirtless, wearing indigo trousers, scarlet girdles knotted
at the waist, sometimes scarlet ribbons tied round necks, foreheads, or upper
arms. The ones who weren't sleeping or smoking were practicing martial arts.
Hackworth rode slowly through their midst, and they pretended not to notice
him, except for one man who came running out of a house with a knife, shouting "Sha! Sha!" and
had to be tackled by three comrades.
As
he rode the forty miles to Suzhou, nothing changed about the landscape except
that creeks became rivers and ponds became lakes. The Fist encampments became
somewhat larger and closer together. When the thick air infrequently roused
itself to a breeze, he could smell the clammy metallic reek of stagnant water
and knew he was close to the great lake of Tai Wu, or Taifu as the Shanghainese
pronounced it. A grayscale dome rose from the paddies some miles away, casting
a film of shadow before a cluster of tall buildings, and Hackworth knew it must
be Suzhou, now a stronghold of the Celestial Kingdom, veiled in its airborne
shield like a courtesan behind a translucent sheen of Suzhou silk.
Nearing
the shore of the great lake he found his way onto an important road that ran
south toward Hangzhou. He set Kidnapper ambling northward. Suzhou had thrown
out tendrils of development along its major roads, and so as he drew closer he
saw strip malls and franchises, now destroyed, deserted, or colonized by
refugees.
Most
of these places catered to truck drivers: lots of motels, casinos, teahouses,
and fast-food places. But no trucks ran on the highway now, and Hackworth rode
down the center of a lane, sweating uncontrollably in his dark
clothes and drinking frequently from a refrigerated bottle in Kidnapper's glove
compartment.
A
McDonald's sign lay toppled across the highway like a giant turnpike; something
had burned through the single pillar that thrust it into the air. A couple of
young men were standing in front of it smoking cigarettes and, as Hackworth
realized, waiting for him. As Hackworth drew closer, they ground out their
cigarettes, stepped forward, and bowed. Hackworth tipped his bowler. One of
them took Kidnapper's reins, which was a purely ceremonial gesture in the case
of a robot horse, and the other invited Hackworth to dismount. Both of the men
were wearing heavy but flexible coveralls with cables and tubes running through
the fabric: the inner layer of armor suits. They could turn themselves into
battle-ready hoplites by slapping on the harder and heavier outer bits, which
were presumably stashed somewhere handy. Their scarlet headbands identified
them as Fists. Hackworth was one of the few members of the Outer Tribes ever to
find himself in the presence of a Fist who was not running toward him with a
weapon screaming "Kill! Kill!" and found it interesting to see them
in a more indulgent mood. They were dignified, formal, and controlled, like
military men, with none of the leering and snickering that were fashionable
among Coastal Republic boys of the same age.
Hackworth
walked across the parking lot toward the McDonald's, followed at a respectful
distance by one of the soldiers. Another soldier opened the door for him, and
Hackworth sighed with delight as cold dry air flowed over his face and began to
chase the muggy stuff through the weave of his clothing. The place had been
lightly sacked. He could smell a cold, almost clinical greasy smell wafting
from behind the counter, where containers of fat had spilled onto the floor and
congealed like snow. Much of this had been scooped up by looters; Hackworth
could see the parallel tracks of women's fingers. The place was decorated in a Silk Road motif,
transpicuous mediatronic panels portraying wondrous sights between here and the
route's ancient terminus in Cadiz.
Dr.
X was seated in the corner booth, his face radiant in the cool, UV-filtered
sunlight. He was wearing a Mandarin cap with dragons embroidered in gold thread
and a magnificent brocade robe. The robe was loose at the neck and had short
sleeves so that Hackworth could see the inner garment of a hoplite suit
underneath.
Dr.
X was at war, and had emerged from the safe perimeter of Suzhou, and needed to
be prepared for an attack. He was sipping green tea from a jumbo
McDonald's cup, made in the local style, great clouds of big green leaves
swirling around in a tumbler of hot water. Hackworth doffed his hat and bowed
in the Victorian style, which was proper under the circumstances. Dr. X
returned the bow, and as his head tilted forward, Hackworth could see the
button on the top of his cap. It was red, the color of the highest ranks, but
it was made of coral, marking him as second rank. A ruby button would have put him
at the very highest level. In Western terms this made Dr. X roughly equivalent
to a lesser cabinet minister or three-star general. Hackworth supposed that
this was the highest rank of Mandarin permitted to converse with barbarians.
Hackworth
sat down across the table from Dr. X. A young woman padded out of the kitchen
on silk slippers and gave Hackworth his own tumbler full of green tea. Watching
her mince away, Hackworth was only mildly shocked to see that her feet were no
more than four inches long. There must be better ways to do it now, maybe by
regulating the growth of the tarsal bones during adolescence. It probably
didn't even hurt.
Realizing
this, Hackworth also realized, for the first time, that he had done the right
thing ten years ago.
Dr.
X was watching him and might as well have been reading his mind. This seemed to
put him in a pensive mood. He said nothing for a while, just gazed out the
window and occasionally sipped his tea. This was fine with Hackworth, who had
had a long ride.
"Have
you learned anything from your ten-year sentence?" Dr. X finally said.
"It
would seem so. But I have trouble pulling it up," Hackworth said.
This
was a bit too idiomatic for Dr. X. By way of explanation, Hackworth flipped out
a ten-year-old card bearing Dr. X's dynamic chop. As the old fisherman hauled
the dragon out of the water, Dr. X suddenly got it, and grinned appreciatively.
This was showing a lot of emotion- assuming it was genuine- but
age and war had made him reckless.
Have
you found the Alchemist?" Dr. X said.
Yes,"
Hackworth said. "I am the Alchemist."
When
did you know this?"
Only
very recently," Hackworth said. "Then I understood it all in an
instant- pulled it up," he said, pantomiming the
act of reeling in a fish. "The Celestial Kingdom was far behind Nippon and
Atlantis in nanotech. The Fists could always have burned the barbarians' Feed
lines, but this would only have plunged the peasants into poverty and made the
people long for foreign goods. The decision was made to leapfrog the barbarian
tribes by developing Seed technology. At first you pursued the project in
cooperation with second-tier phyles like Israel, Armenia, and Greater Serbia,
but they proved unreliable. Again and again your carefully cultivated networks
were scattered by Protocol Enforcement.
"But
through these failures you made contact for the first time with CryptNet, whom
you doubtless view as just another triad-a contemptible band of conspirators.
However, CryptNet was tied in with something much deeper and more
interesting-the society of the Drummers. With their flaky and shallow Western
perspective, CryptNet didn't grasp the full power of the Drummers' collective
mind. But you got it right away.
"All
you required to initiate the Seed project was the rational, analytical mind of
a nanotechnological engineer. I fit the bill perfectly. You dropped me into the
society of the Drummers like a seed into fertile soil, and my knowledge spread
through them and permeated their collective mind-as their thoughts spread into
my own unconscious. They became like an extension of my own brain. For years I
laboured on the problem, twenty-four hours a day.
"Then,
before I was able to finish the job, I was pulled out by my superiors at
Protocol Enforcement. I was close to being finished. But not finished
yet."
"Your
superiors had uncovered our plan?"
"Either
they are completely ignorant, or else they know everything and are pretending
ignorance," Hackworth said.
"But
surely you have told them everything now," Dr. X said almost
inaudibly.
"If
I were to answer that question, you would have no reason not
to kill me," Hackworth said.
Dr.
X nodded, not so much to concede the point as to express sympathy with
Hackworth's admirably cynical train of thought-as though Hackworth, after a
series of seemingly inconclusive moves, had suddenly flipped over a large
territory of stones on a go board.
"There
are those who would advocate that course, because of what has happened with the
girls," Dr. X said.
Hackworth
was so startled to hear this that he became somewhat lightheaded for a moment
and too self-conscious to speak "Have the Primers proved useful?" he
finally said, trying not to sound giddy.
Dr.
X grinned broadly for a moment. Then the emotion dropped beneath the surface
again, like a breaching whale. "They must have been useful to
someone," he said. "My opinion is that we made a mistake in saving
the girls."
"How
can this act of humanity possibly have been a mistake?"
Dr.
X considered it. "It would be more correct to say that, although it was
virtuous to save them, it was mistaken to believe that they could be raised
properly. We lacked the resources to raise them individually, and so we raised
them with books. But the only proper way to raise a child is within a family.
The Master could have told us as much, had we listened to his words."
"Some
of those girls will one day choose to follow in the ways of the Master,"
Hackworth said, "and then the wisdom of your decisions will be
demonstrated."
This
seemed to be a genuinely new thought to Dr. X. His gaze returned to the window.
Hackworth sensed that the matter of the girls and the Primers had been
concluded.
"I
will be open and frank," said Dr. X after some ruminative tea slurping,
"and you will not believe that I am being so, because it is in the heads
of those from the Outer Tribes to think that we never speak directly. But
perhaps in time you will see the truth of my words.
"The
Seed is almost finished. When you left, the building of it slowed down very
much- more
than we expected. We thought that the Drummers, after ten years, had absorbed
your knowledge and could continue the work without you. But there is something
in your mind that you have gained through your years of scholarly studies that
the Drummers, if they ever had it, have given up and cannot get back unless
they come out of the darkness and live their lives in the light again.
"The
war against the Coastal Republic reaches a critical moment. We ask you to help
us now."
"I
must say that it is nearly inconceivable for me to help you at this
point," Hackworth said, "unless it would be in the interest of my
tribe, which does not strike me as a likely prospect."
"We
need you to help us finish building the Seed," Dr. X said doggedly.
Only
decades of training in emotional repression kept Hackworth from laughing out
loud. "Sir. You are a worldly man and a scholar. Certainly you are aware
of the position of Her Majesty's government, and indeed of the Common Economic
Protocol itself, on the subject of Seed technologies."
Dr.
X raised one hand a few inches from the tabletop, palm down, and pawed once at
the air. Hackworth recognized it as the gesture that well-to-do Chinese used to
dismiss beggars, or even to call bullshit on people during meetings. "They
are wrong," he said. "They do not understand. They think of the Seed
from a Western perspective. Your cultures- and that of the Coastal
Republic- are
poorly organized. There is no respect for order, no reverence for authority.
Order must be enforced from above lest anarchy break out. You are afraid to
give the Seed to your people because they can use it to make weapons, viruses,
drugs of their own design, and destroy order. You enforce order through control
of the Feed. But in the Celestial Kingdom, we are disciplined, we revere
authority, we have order within our own minds, and hence the family is orderly,
the village is orderly, the state is orderly. In our hands the Seed would be
harmless."
"Why
do you need it?" Hackworth said.
"We
must have technology to live," Dr. X said, "but we must have it with
our own."
Hackworth
thought for a moment that Dr. X was referring to the beverage. But the Doctor
began to trace characters on the tabletop, his hand moving deftly and
gracefully, the brocade sleeve rasping across the plastic surface. "Yong is
the outer manifestation of something. Ti is the underlying essence. Technology
is a yong associated
with a particular ti that is"-the Doctor stumbled here and, through a
noticeable effort, refrained from using pejorative terms like barbarian or
gwailo-"that
is Western, and completely alien to us. For centuries, since the time of the
Opium Wars, we have struggled to absorb the yong of technology
without importing the Western ti. But it has
been impossible. Just as our ancestors could not open our ports to the West
without accepting the poison of opium, we could not open our lives to Western
technology without taking in the Western ideas, which have been as a plague on
our society. The result has been centuries of chaos. We ask you to end that by
giving as the Seed."
"I
do not understand why the Seed will help you."
"The
Seed is technology rooted in the Chinese ti. We have lived
by the Seed for five thousand years," Dr. X said. He waved his hand toward
the window. "These were rice paddies before they were parking lots. Rice
was the basis for our society. Peasants planted the seeds and had highest
status in the Confucian hierarchy. As the Master said, 'Let the producers be
many and the consumers few.' When the Feed came in from Atlantis, From Nippon,
we no longer had to plant, because the rice now came From the matter compiler.
It was the destruction of our society. When our society was based upon
planting, it could truly be said, as the Master did, 'Virtue is the root;
wealth is the result.' But under the Western ti, wealth comes
not from virtue but from cleverness. So the filial relationships became
deranged. Chaos," Dr. X said regretfully, then looked up From his tea and
nodded out the window. "Parking lots and chaos."
Hackworth
remained silent for a full minute. Images had come into his mind again, not a
fleeting hallucination this time, but a full-fledged vision of a China freed
from the yoke of the foreign Feed. It was something he'd seen before, perhaps
something he'd even helped create. It showed something no gwailo would
ever get to see: the Celestial Kingdom during the coming Age of the Seed.
Peasants tended their fields and paddies, and even in times of drought and
flood, the earth brought forth a rich harvest: food, of course, but many
unfamiliar plants too, fruits that :ould be made into medicines, bamboo a
thousand times stronger than the natural varieties, trees that produced
synthetic rubber and pellets of clean safe fuel. In an orderly procession the
suntanned farmers brought their proceeds to great markets in clean cities free
of cholera and strife, where all of the young people were respectful and
dutiful scholars and all of the elders were honored and cared for. This was a
ractive simulation as big as all of China, and Hackworth could have lost
himself in it, and perhaps did for he knew not how long. But finally he closed
his eyes, blinked it away, sipped some tea to bring his rational mind back into
control.
"Your
arguments are not without merit," Hackworth said. "Thank you for
helping me to see the matter in a different light. I will ponder these
questions on my return to Shanghai."
Dr.
X escorted him to the parking lot of the McDonald's. The heat felt pleasant at
first, like a relaxing bath, though Hackworth knew that soon he would feel as
if he were drowning in it. Kidnapper ambled over and folded its legs, allowing
Hackworth to mount it easily.
"You
have helped us willingly for ten years," Dr. X said. "It is your
destiny to make the Seed."
"Nonsense,"
Hackworth said, "I did not know the nature of the project."
Dr.
X smiled. "You knew it perfectly well." He freed one hand from the
long sleeves of his robe and shook his finger at Hackworth, like an indulgent
teacher pretending to scold a clever but mischievous pupil. "You do these
things not to serve your Queen but to serve your own nature, John Hackworth,
and I understand your nature. For you cleverness is its own end, and once you
have seen a clever way to do a thing, you must do it, as water finding a crack
in a dike must pass through it and cover the land on the other side."
"Farewell,
Dr. X," Hackworth said. "You will understand that although I hold you
in the highest personal esteem, I cannot earnestly wish you good fortune in
your current endeavour." He doffed his hat and bowed low to one side,
forcing Kidnapper to adjust its stance a bit. Dr. X returned the bow, giving
Hackworth another look at that coral button on his cap. Hackworth spurred
Kidnapper on to Shanghai. . . .
He followed a
more northerly route now, along one of the many radial highways that converged
on the metropolis. After he had been riding for some time, he became
consciously aware of a sound that had been brushing against the outer fringes
of perceptibility for some time: a heavy, distant, and rapid drumbeat, perhaps
twice as fast as the beat of his own heart. His first thought, of course, was
of the Drummers, and he was tempted to explore one of the nearby canals to see
whether their colony had spread its tendrils this far inland. But then he
looked northward across the flat land for a couple of miles and saw a long
procession making its way down another highway, a dark column of pedestrians
marching on Shanghai.
He
saw that his path was converging with theirs, so he spurred Kidnapper forward
at a hand-gallop, hoping to reach the intersection of the roads before it was
clogged by this column of refugees. Kidnapper outdistanced them easily, but to
no avail; when he reached the intersection, he found it had been seized by the
column's vanguard which had established a roadblock there and would
not let him pass.
The
contingent now controlling the intersection consisted entirely of girls, some
eleven or twelve years old. There were several dozen of them, and they had apparently
taken the objective by force from a smaller group of Fists, who could now be
seen lying in the shade of some mulberry trees, hogtied with plastic rope.
Probably
three-quarters of the girls were on guard duty, mostly armed with sharpened
bamboo stakes, though a few guns and blades were in evidence. The remaining
quarter were on break, hunkered down in a circle near the intersection, sipping
freshly boiled water and concentrating intently on books. Hackworth recognized
the books; they were all identical, and they all had marbled jade covers,
though all of them had been personalized with stickers, graffiti, and other
decorations over the years.
Hackworth
realized that several more girls, organized in groups of four, had been
following him down the road on bicycles; these outriders passed by him now and
rejoined their group.
He
had no choice but to wait until the column had passed. The drumbeat grew and
grew in volume until the pavement shook with each blow, and the shock
absorption gear built into Kidnapper's legs went into play, flinching minutely
at each beat. Another vanguard passed through: Hackworth easily calculated its
size at two hundred and fifty-six. A battalion was four platoons, each of
which was four companies of four troops of four girls each. The vanguard
consisted of one such battalion, moving at a very brisk double-time, probably
going ahead of the main group to fall upon the next major intersection.
Then,
finally, the main column passed through, organized in battalions, each foot hitting
the ground in unison with all the others. Each battalion carried a few sedan
chairs, which were passed from one four-girl troop to another every few minutes
to spread out the work. They were not luxurious palanquins but were improvised
from bamboo and plastic rope and upholstered with materials stripped from old
plastic cafeteria furniture. Riding in these chairs were girls who did not seem
all that different from the others, except that they might have been a year or
two older. They did not seem to be officers; they were not giving orders and
wore no special insignia. Hackworth did not understand why they were riding in
sedan chairs until he got a look at one of them, who had crossed one ankle up
on her knee and taken her slipper off. Her foot was defective;
it was several inches too short.
But
all of the other sedan chair girls were deeply absorbed in their Primers.
Hackworth unclipped a small optical device from his watch chain, a nanotech
telescope/microscope that frequently came in handy, and used it to look over
one girl's shoulder. She was looking at a diagram of a small nanotechnological
device, working her way through a tutorial that Hackworth had written several
years ago.
The
column went past much faster than Hackworth had feared; they moved down the
highway like a piston. Each battalion carried a banner, a very modest thing
improvised from a painted bedsheet. Each banner bore the number of the
battalion and a crest that Hackworth knew well, as it played an important role
in the Primer. In all, he counted two hundred and fifty-six battalions.
Sixty-five thousand girls ran past him, hell-bent on Shanghai.
From
the Primer, Princess Nell's return to
the Dark Castle; the death of Harv; The Books of the Book and of the Seed; Princess Nell's quest to find her mother.
Destruction of the Causeway; Nell falls
into the hands of Fists; she escapes
into a greater peril; deliverance.
Princess
Nell could have used all of the powers she had acquired during her great quest
to dig Harv's grave or caused the work to be done for her by the Disenchanted
Army, but it did not seem fitting, and so instead she found an old rusty shovel
hung up in one of the Dark Castle's outbuildings. The ground was dry and stony
and veined with the roots of thorn bushes, and more than once the shovel struck
ancient bones.
Princess
Nell dug throughout the long day, softening the hard earth with her tears, but
did not slacken until the ground was level with her own head. Then she went
into the little room in the Dark Castle where Harv had died of a consumption,
carefully wrapped his withered body in fine white silk, and bore it out to the
grave. She had found lilies growing wild in the overgrown flower-garden by the
little fisherman's cottage, so she put a spray of these in the grave with him,
along with a little children's story-book that Harv had given her for a present
many years ago. Harv could not read, and many nights as they had sat round the
fire in the courtyard of the Dark Castle, Nell had read to him from this book,
and she supposed that he might like to have it wherever he was going now.
Filling in
the grave went quickly; the loose dirt more than filled the hole. Nell left
more lilies atop the long low mound of earth that marked Harv's resting place.
Then she turned her back and walked into the Dark Castle. The stain-colored
granite walls had picked up some salmon highlights from the western sky, and
she suspected that she could see a beautiful sunset from the room in the high
tower where she had established her library.
It was a
long climb up a dank and mildewy staircase that wound up the inside of the Dark
Castle's highest tower. In the circular room at the top, which was built with
mullioned windows looking out in all directions, Nell had placed all of the
books she had gathered during her quest: books given her as presents by Purple,
books from the library of King Magpie, the first Faery King that she had
vanquished, and more from the palace of the djinn, and Castle Turing, and many
other hidden libraries and treasuries that she had discovered or pillaged on
her way. And, of course, there was the entire library of King Coyote, which
contained so many books that she had not even had time to look at them yet.
There was
so much work to be done. Copies of all of these books had to be made for all of
the girls in the Disenchanted Army. The Land Beyond had vanished, and Princess
Nell wanted to make it anew. She wanted to write down her own story in a great
book that young girls could read. And she had one remaining quest that had been
pressing on her mind of late, during her long voyage across the empty sea back
to the island of the Dark Castle: she wanted to solve the mystery of her own
origins. She wanted to find her mother. Even after the destruction of the Land
Beyond, she had sensed the presence of another in the world, one who had always
been there. King Coyote himself had confirmed it. Long ago, her stepfather, the
kindly fisherman, had received her from mermaids; whence had the mermaids
gotten her?
She suspected that the answer could not be
found without the wisdom contained in her library. She began by causing a
catalog to be made, starting with the first books she had gotten on her early
adventures with her Night Friends. At the same time she established a
Scriptorium in the great hall of the castle, where thousands of girls sat at
long tables making exact copies of all of the books.
Most of
King Coyote's books had to do with the secrets of atoms and how to put them
together to make machines. Naturally, all of them were magic books; the
pictures moved, and you could ask them questions and get answers. Some of them
were primers and workbooks for novices, and Princess Nell spent a few days
studying this art, putting atoms together to make simple machines and then
watching them run.
Next came a
very large set of matched volumes containing reference materials: One contained
designs for thousands of sleeve bearings, another for computers made of rods,
still another for energy storage devices, and all of them were ractive so that
she could use them to design such things to her own specifications. Then there
were more books on the general principles of putting such things together into
systems.
Finally,
King Coyote's library included some books inscribed in the King's own hand,
containing designs for his greatest masterpieces. Of these, the two very finest
were the Book of the Book and the Book of the Seed. They were magnificent
folio-size volumes, as thick as Princess Nell's hand was broad, bound in rich
leather illuminated with hair-thin gilt lines in an elaborate interlace
pattern, and closed with heavy brass hasps and locks.
The lock on
the Book of the Book yielded to the same key that Princess Nell had taken from
King Coyote. She had discovered this very early in her exploration of the
library but was unable to comprehend the contents of this volume until she had
studied the others and learnt the secrets of these machines. The Book of the
Book contained a complete set of plans for a magical book that would tell
stories to a young person, tailoring them for the child's needs and interests-
even teaching them how to read if need be. It was a fearsomely complicated
work, and Princess Nell only skimmed it at first, recognizing that to
understand the particulars might take years of study.
The lock on
the Book of the Seed would not yield to King Coyote's key or to any other key
in Princess Nell's possession, and because this book had been built atom by
atom, it was stronger than any mortal substance and could not possibly be
broken open. Princess Nell did not know what this book was about; but the cover
bore an inlaid illustration of a striped seed, like the apple-sized seed that
she had seen used in King Coyote's city to build a crystal pavilion, and this
foreshadowed the book's purpose clearly enough.
Nell
opened her eyes and propped herself up on one elbow. The Primer fell shut and
slid off her belly onto the mattress. She had fallen asleep reading it.
The
girls on their bunkbeds lay all around her, breathing quietly and smelling of
soap. It made her want to lie back down and sleep too. But for some reason she
was up on one elbow. Some instinct had told her she had to be up.
She
sat up and drew her knees up to her chest, freeing the hem of her nightgown
from between the sheets, then spun around and dropped to the floor soundlessly.
Her bare feet took her silently between the rows of bunks and into the little
lounge in the corner of the floor where the girls sat together, had tea,
brushed their hair, watched old passives. It was empty now, the lights were
off, the corner windows exposing a vast panorama: to the northeast, the lights
of New Chusan and of the Nipponese and Hindustani concessions standing a few
kilometers offshore, and the outlying parts of Pudong. Downtown Pudong was all
around, its floating, mediatronic skyscrapers like biblical pillars of fire. To
the northwest lay the Huang Pu River, Shanghai, its suburbs, and the ravaged
silk and tea districts beyond. No fires burned there now; the Feed lines had
been burned all the way to the edge of the city, and the Fists had stopped at
the outskirts and hunkered down as they sought a way to penetrate the tattered
remains of the security grid.
Nell's
eye was drawn toward the water. Downtown Pudong offered the most spectacular
urban nightscape ever devised, but she always found herself looking past it,
staring instead at the Huang Pu, or the Yangzte to the north, or to the
curvature of the Pacific beyond New Chusan.
She'd
been having a dream, she realized. She had awakened not because of any external
disturbance but because of what had happened in that dream. She had to remember
it; but, of course, she couldn't.
Just
a few snatches: a woman's face, a beautiful young woman, perhaps wearing a crown,
but seen muddily, as through turbulent water. And something that glittered in
her hands. No, dangling beneath her hands. A piece of jewelry on a golden
chain.
Could
it have been a key? Nell could not bring the image back, but an instinct told
her that it was.
Another
detail too: a gleaming swath of something that passed in front of her face
once, twice, three times. Something yellow, with a repeating pattern woven into
it: a crest consisting of a book, a seed, and crossed keys.
Cloth
of gold. Long ago the mermaids had brought her to her stepfather, and she had
been wrapped in cloth of gold, and from this she had always known that she was
a Princess.
The
woman in the dream, veiled in swirling water, must have been her mother. The
dream was a memory from her lost infancy. And before her mother had given her
up to the mermaids, she had given Princess Nell a golden key on a chain.
Nell
perched herself on the windowsill, leaned against the pane, opened the Primer,
and flipped all the way back to the beginning. It started with the same old
story, as ever, but told now in more mature prose. She read the story of how
her stepfather had gotten her from the mermaids, and read it again, drawing out
more details, asking it questions, calling up detailed illustrations.
There,
in one of the illustrations, she saw it: her stepfather's lock-box, a humble
plank chest bound in rusted iron straps, with a heavy oldfashioned padlock,
stored underneath his bed. It was in this chest that he had stored the cloth of
gold-and, perhaps, the key as well.
Paging
forward through the book, she came across a long-forgotten story of how,
following her stepfather's disappearance, her wicked stepmother had taken the
lock-box to a high cliff above the sea and flung it into the waves, destroying
any evidence that Princess Nell was of royal blood. She had not known that her
stepdaughter was watching her from between the branches of a thicket, where she
often concealed herself during her stepmother's rages.
Nell
flipped to the last page of the Young Lady's Illustrated Primer.
As
Princess Nell approached the edge of the cliff, picking her way along carefully
through the darkness, taking care not to snag the train of her nightgown on
thorny shrubs, she experienced a peculiar feeling that the entire ocean had
become dimly luminescent. She had often noticed this phenomenon from the high
windows of her library in the tower and reckoned that the waves must be
reflecting back the light of the moon and stars. But this was a cloudy night, the
sky was like a bowl of carved onyx, allowing no light to pass down from the
heavens. The light she saw must emanate from beneath.
Arriving
cautiously at the rim of the cliff, she saw that her surmise was true. The
ocean-the one constant in all the world- the place from where she had come as
an infant, from which the Land Beyond had grown out of King Coyote's seed, and
into which it had dissolved- the ocean was alive.
Since the
departure of King Coyote, Princess Nell had supposed herself entirely alone in
the world. But now she saw cities of light beneath the waves and knew that she
was alone only by her own choice.
"'Princess
Nell gathered the hem of her nightgown in both hands and raised it over her
head, letting the chill wind stream over her body and carry the garment away,'
" Nell said. " 'Then, drawing a deep breath and closing her eyes, she
bent her legs and sprang forward into space.'
She
was reading about the way the illuminated waves rushed up toward her when
suddenly the room filled with light. She looked toward the door, thinking that
someone had come in and turned the lights on, but she was alone in the room,
and the light was flickering against the wall. She turned her head the other
way.
The
center span of the Causeway had become a ball of white light hurling its
marbled shroud of cold dark matter into the night. The sphere expanded until it
seemed to occupy most of the interval between New Chusan and the Pudong
shoreline, though by this time the color had deepened from white into reddish-orange,
and the explosion had punched a sizable crater into the water, which developed
into a circular wave of steam and spray that ran effortlessly across the
ocean's surface like the arc of light cast by a pocket torch.
Fragments
of the giant Feed line that had once constituted most of the Causeway's mass
had been pitched into the sky by the explosion and now tumbled end over end
through the night sky, the slowness of their motion bespeaking their size,
casting yellow sulfurous light over the city as they burned furiously in the
wind-blast created by their own movement. The light limned a pair of tremendous
pillars of water vapor rising from the ocean north and south of the Causeway;
Nell realized that the Fists must have blown the Nipponese and Hindustani Feeds
at the same moment. So the Fists of Righteous Harmony had nanotechnological
explosives now; they'd come a long way since they'd tried to torch the bridge
over the Huang Pu with a few cylinders of hydrogen.
The
shock wave rapped at the window, startling several of the girls from sleep.
Nell heard them murmuring to one another in the bunk room. She wondered if she
should go in and warn them that Pudong was cut off now, that the final assault
of the Fists had commenced. But though she could not understand what they were
saying, she could understand their tone of voice clearly enough: They were not
surprised by this, nor unhappy.
They
were all Chinese and could become subjects of the Celestial Kingdom simply by
donning the conservative garb of that tribe and showing due deference to any
Mandarins who happened by. No doubt this was exactly what they would do as soon
as the Fists came to Pudong. Some of them might suffer deprivation,
imprisonment, or rape, but within a year they would all be integrated into the
C.K., as if the Coastal Republic had never existed.
But
if the news feeds from the interior meant anything, the Fists would kill Nell
gradually, with many small cuts and burns, when they grew weary of raping her.
In recent days she had often seen the Chinese girls talking in little groups
and sneaking glances at her, and the suspicion had grown in her breast that
some of them might know of the attack in advance and might make arrangements to
turn Nell over to the Fists as a demonstration of their loyalty. She opened the
door a crack and saw two of these girls padding toward the bunk room where Nell
usually slept, carrying lengths of red polymer ribbon.
As
soon as they had stolen into Nell's bunk room, Nell ran down the corridor and
got to the elevators. As she awaited the elevator, she was more scared than she
had ever been; the sight of the cruel
red ribbons in the small hands of the girls had for some reason struck more
terror into her heart than the sight of knives in the hands of Fists.
A
shrill commotion arose from the bunk room.
The
bell for the elevator sounded.
She
heard the bunk room door fly open, and someone running down the hall.
The
elevator door opened.
One
of the girls came into the lobby, saw her, and shrieked something to the others
in a dolphinlike squeal.
Nell
got into the elevator, punched the button for the lobby, and held down the DOOR
CLOSE button. The girl thought for a moment, then stepped forward to hold the
door. Several more girls were running down the hall. Nell kicked the girl in
the face, and she spun away in a helix of blood. The elevator door began to
close. Just as the two doors were meeting in the center, through the narrowing
slit she saw one of the other girls diving toward the wall button. The doors
closed. There was a brief pause, and then they slid open again.
Nell
was already in the correct stance to defend herself. If she had to beat each of
the girls to death individually, she would do it. But none of them rushed the
elevator. Instead, the leader stepped forward and aimed something at Nell.
There was a little popping noise, a pinprick in Nell's midsection, and within a
few seconds she felt her arms becoming impossibly heavy. Her bottom drooped.
Her head bowed. Her knees buckled. She could not keep her eyes open; as they
closed, she saw the girls coming toward her, smiling with pleasure, holding up
the red ribbons. Nell could not move any part of her body, but she remained
perfectly conscious as they tied her up with the ribbon. They did it slowly and
methodically and perfectly; they did it every day of their lives.
The
tortures of the next few hours were of a purely experimental and preliminary
nature. They did not last for long and accomplished no permanent damage. These
girls had made a living out of binding and torturing people in a way that
didn't leave scars, and that was all they really knew. When the leader came up
with the idea of shoving a cigarette into Nell's cheek, it was something
entirely novel and left the rest of the girls startled and silent for a few
minutes. Nell sensed that most of the girls had no stomach for such things and
merely wanted to turn her over to the Fists in exchange for citizenship in the
Celestial Kingdom.
The
Fists themselves began to arrive some twelve hours later. Some of them wore
conservative business suits, some wore the uniforms of the building's security
force, others looked as if they'd arrived to take a girl out to a disco.
They
all had things to do when they arrived. It was obvious that this suite would
act as local headquarters of some sort when the rebellion began in earnest.
They began to bring up supplies on the freight elevator and seemed to spend a
lot of time on the telephone. More arrived every hour, until Madame Ping's
suite was playing host to between one and two dozen. Some of them were very
tired and dirty and went to sleep in the bunks immediately.
In
a way, Nell wished that they would do whatever they were going to do and get it
over with fast. But nothing happened for quite some time. When the first Fists
arrived, the girls brought them in to see Nell, who had been shoved under a bed
and was now lying there in a puddle of her own urine. The leader shone a light
on her face briefly and then turned away, completely uninterested. It seemed
that once he'd verified that the girls had done their bit for the revolution,
Nell ceased to be relevant.
She
supposed it was inevitable that, in due time, these men would take those
liberties with her that have ever been claimed as angary by irregular fighting
men, who have willfully severed themselves from the softening feminine
influence of civilized society, with those women who have had the misfortune to
become their captives. To make this prospect less attractive, she took the
desperate measure of allowing her person to become tainted with the noisome
issue of her natural internal processes. But most of the Fists were too busy,
and when some of the grungy foot-soldier types arrived, Madame Ping's girls
were eager to make themselves useful in this regard. Nell reflected that a
bunch of soldiers who found themselves billeted in a bawdy-house would
naturally arrive with certain expectations, and that the inmates would be
unwise to disappoint them.
Nell
had gone into the world to seek her fortune and this was what she had found.
She understood more forcibly than ever the wisdom of Miss Matheson's remarks
about the hostility of the world and the importance of belonging to a powerful
tribe; all of Nell's intellect, her vast knowledge and skills, accumulated over
a lifetime of intensive training, meant nothing at all when she was confronted
with a handful of organized peasants. She could not really sleep in her current
position but drifted in and out of consciousness, visited occasionally by hallucinatory
waking dreams. More than once she dreamed
that the Constable had come in his hoplite suit to rescue her; and the pain she
felt when she returned to full consciousness and realized that her mind had
been lying to her, was worse than any tortures others might inflict.
Eventually
they got tired of the stink under the bed and dragged her out of there on a
smear of half-dried body fluids. It had been at least thirty-six hours since
her capture. The leader of the girls, the one who had put out the cigarette on
Nell's face, cut the red ribbon away and cut off Nell's filthy nightgown with
it. Nell's limbs bounced on the floor. The leader had brought a whip that they
sometimes used on clients and beat Nell with it until circulation returned.
This spectacle drew quite a crowd of Fist soldiers, who crowded into the bunk
room to watch.
The
girl drove Nell on hands and knees to a maintenance closet and made her get out
a bucket and mop. Then she made Nell clean up the mess under the bed,
frequently inspecting the results and beating her, apparently acting
out a parody of a rich Westerner
bossing around some poor running dog. It became clear after the third or fourth
scrubbing of the floor that this was being done as much for the entertainment
of the soldiers as for hygienic reasons. Then it was back to the maintenance
closet, where Nell was bound again, this time with lightweight police shackles,
and left there on the floor in the dark, naked and filthy. A few minutes later,
her possessions- some clothes that the girls didn't like and a book they
couldn't read- were thrown in there with her.
When
she was sure that the girl with the whip had gone, she spoke to her Primer and
told it to make light.
She
could see a big matter compiler on the floor in the back of the closet; the
girls used it to manufacture larger items when they were needed. This building
was apparently hooked up to the Coastal Republic's Pudong Feed, because it
hadn't lost Feed services when the Causeway had blown up; and indeed the Fists
probably would not have bothered to establish their base here if the place had
been cut off.
Once
every couple of hours or so, a Fist would come into this closet and order the
M.C. to create something, usually a simple bulk substance like rations. On two
of these occasions, Nell was outraged in the manner she had long suspected was
inevitable. She closed her eyes during the commission of these atrocities,
knowing that whatever might be done to the mere vessel of her soul by the likes
of these, her soul itself was as serene, as remote from their grasp, as is the
full moon from the furious incantations of an aboriginal shaman. She tried to
think about the machine that she was designing in her head, with the help of
the Primer, about how the gears meshed and the bearings spun, how the rod logic
was programmed and where the energy was stored.
On
her second night in the closet, after most of the Fists had gone to bed and use
of the matter compiler had apparently ceased for the night, she instructed the
Primer to load her design into the M.C.'s memory, then crept forward and
pressed the START button with her tongue.
Ten
minutes later, the machine released its vacuum with a shriek. Nell tongued the
door open. A knife and a sword rested on the floor of the M.C. She turned
herself around, moving in small, cautious increments and breathing deeply so
that she would not whimper from the pain emanating from those parts of her that
were most tender and vulnerable and yet had been most viciously depredated by
her captors. She reached backward with her shackled hands and gripped the
handle of the knife.
Footsteps
were approaching down the hallway. Someone must have heard the hiss of the M.C.
and thought it was dinner time. But Nell couldn't rush this; she had to be
careful.
The
door opened. It was one of the ranking Fists, perhaps the rough equivalent of a
sergeant. He shone a torch in her face, then chuckled and turned on the
overhead light.
Nell's
body blocked his view of the M.C., but it was obvious that she was reaching for
something. He probably assumed it was only food.
He
stepped forward and kicked her casually in the ribs, then grabbed her upper arm
and jerked her away from the M.C., causing such pain in her wrists that tears
spurted down her face. But she held on to the knife.
The
Fist was staring into the M.C. He was startled and would be for several
moments. Nell maneuvered the knife so that the blade was touching nothing but
the link between the shackles, then hit the ON switch. It worked; the edge of
the blade came to life like a nanotech chainsaw and zipped through the link in
a moment, like clipping a fingernail. Nell brought it around her body in the
same motion and buried it in the base of the Fist's spine.
He
fell to the ground without speaking- he
wasn't feeling any pain from that wound or from anything below his waist.
Before he could assess matters any further, she plunged the knife into the base
of his skull.
He
was wearing simple peasant stuff: indigo trousers and a tank-top. She put them
on. Then she tied her hair up behind her head using strings cut from a mop and
devoted a precious minute or two to stretching her arms and legs.
And
then it was out into the hallway with her knife in her waistband and her sword
in her hands. Going round a corner, she cut a man in half as he emerged from
the bathroom; the sword kept going of its own momentum and carved a long gash
in the wall. This assault released a prodigious amount of blood, which Nell put
behind her as quickly as possible. Another man was on guard in the elevator
lobby, and as he came to investigate the sounds, she ran him through several
times quickly, taking a page from Napier's book this time.
The
elevators were now under some kind of central control and probably subject to
surveillance; rather than press the button in the lobby, she cut a hole in the
doors, sheathed her sword, and clambered out onto a ladder that ran down the
shaft.
She
forced herself to descend slowly and carefully, pressing herself flat against
the rungs whenever the car went by. By the time she had descended perhaps fifty
or sixty floors, the building had come awake; all of the cars were in constant
motion, and when they went past her, she could hear men talking excitedly
inside them.
Light
flooded into the shaft several floors below. The doors had been forced open. A
couple of Fists thrust their heads out carefully into the shaft and began
looking up and down, shining torches here and there. Several floors below them,
more Fists pried another door open; but they had to pull their heads in rapidly
as the ascending car nearly decapitated them.
She
had imagined that Madame Ping's was playing host to an isolated cell of Fists,
but it was now clear that most if not all of the building had been taken over.
For that matter, all of Pudong might now be a part of the Celestial Kingdom.
Nell was much more profoundly isolated than she had feared.
The
skin of her arms glowed yellow-pink in the beam of a torch shone up from below.
She did not make the mistake of looking down into the dazzling light and did
not have to; the excited voice of the Fist below her told her that she had been
discovered. A moment later, the light vanished as the ascending elevator
interposed itself between Nell and the Fists who had seen her.
She
recalled Harv and his buds elevator-surfing in their old building and reckoned
that this would be a good time to take up the practice. As the car rose toward
her, she jumped off the ladder, trying to give herself enough upward thrust to
match its velocity. She landed hard on the roof, for it was moving far more
rapidly than she could jump. The roof knocked her feet out from under her, and
she fell backward, slamming her arms out as Dojo had taught her so that she
absorbed the impact with her fists and forearms, not her back.
More
excited talking from inside the car. The access panel on the roof suddenly flew
into the air, driven out of its frame by a well-delivered kick from below. A
head popped out of the open hatch; Nell skewered it on her knife. The man tumbled
down into the car.
There
was no point in waiting now; the situation had gone into violent motion, which
Nell was obliged to use. She rolled onto her belly and kicked both feet
downward into the hatch, spun down into the car, landed badly on the corpse,
and staggered to one knee. She had barked the point of her chin on the edge of
the hatch as she fell tjirough and bitten her tongue, so she was slightly
dazed. A gaunt man in a black leather skullcap was standing directly in front
of her, reaching for a gun, and while she was shoving her knife up through the
center of his thorax, she bumped into someone behind her. She jumped to her
feet and spun around, terrified, readying the knife for another blow, and
discovered a much more terrified man in a blue coverall, standing by the
elevator's control panel, holding his arms up in front of his face and
screaming.
Nell
stepped back and lowered the point of the knife. The man was wearing the
uniform of a building services worker and had obviously been yanked away from
whatever he had been doing and put in charge of the elevator's controls. The
man whom Nell had just killed, the one in the black leather skullcap, was some
sort of low-level official in the rebellion and could not be expected to demean
himself by punching the buttons himself.
"Keep
going! Up! Up!" she said, pointing at the ceiling. The last thing she
wanted was for him to stop the elevator at Madame Ping's.
The
man bowed several times in quick succession and did something with the
controls, then turned and smiled ingratiatingly at Nell.
As
a Coastal Republic citizen working in services, he knew a few words of English,
and Nell knew a few of Chinese. "Down below- Fists?"
she said.
"Many
Fist."
"Ground
floor-Fists?"
"Yes,
many Fist ground floor."
"Street-
Fists?"
"Fist,
army have fight in street."
"Around
this building?"
"Fist
around this building all over."
Nell
looked at the elevator's control panel: four columns of tightly spaced buttons,
color-coded according to each floor's function: green for shopping, yellow for
residential, red for offices, and blue for utility floors. Most of the blue
floors were below ground level, but one of them was fifth from the top.
"Building
office?" she said, pointing to it.
"Yes."
"Fists
there?"
"No,
Fist all down below. But Fist on roof!"
"Go
there."
When
the elevator reached the fifth floor from the top, Nell had the man freeze it
there, then climbed on top and trashed its motors so that it would remain
there. She dropped back into the car, trying not to look at the bodies or smell
the reek of blood and other body fluids that had gotten all over it, and that
were now draining out the open doors and dripping down the shaft. It would not
take long for any of this to be discovered.
She
had some time, though; all she had to do was decide how to make use of it. The
maintenance closet had a matter compiler, just like the one Nell had used to
make her weapons, and she knew that she could use it to compile explosives and
booby-trap the lobby. But the Fists had explosives of their own and could just
as well blow the top floors of the building to kingdom come.
For
that matter, they were probably down in some basement control room watching
traffic on the building's Feed network. Use of the M.C. would simply announce
her location; they would shut off the Feed and then come after her slowly and
carefully. She took a quick tour of the offices, sizing up her resources.
Looking
out the panoramic windows of the finest office suite, she saw a new state of
affairs in the streets of Pudong. Many of the skyscrapers had been rooted in
lines from the foreign Feeds and were now dark, though in some places flames
vented from broken windows, casting primitive
illumination over the streets a thousand feet below. These buildings had mostly
been evacuated, and so the streets were crowded with far more people than they
could really handle. The plaza immediately surrounding this particular building
had been staked out by a picket line of Fists and was relatively
uncrowded.
She
found a windowless room with mediatronic walls that bore a bewildering collage
of images: flowers, details of European cathedrals and Shinto temples, Chinese
landscape art, magnified images of insects and pollen grains, many-armed Indian
goddesses, planets and moons of the solar system, abstract patterns from the
Islamic world, graphs of mathematical equations, head shots of models male and
female. Other than that, the room was empty except for a model of the building
that stood in the center of the room, about Nell's height. The model's skin was
mediatronic, just like the skin of the building itself, and it was currently
echoing (as she supposed) whatever images were being displayed on the outside
of the building: mostly advertising panels, though some Fists had apparently
come in here and scrawled graffiti across them.
On
top of the model rested a stylus- just
a black stick pointed on one end-and a palette, covered with a color wheel and
other controls. Nell picked them up, touched the tip of the stylus to a green
area on the palette's color wheel, and drew it across the surface of the model.
A glowing green line appeared along the track of the stylus, disfiguring an ad
panel for an airship line.
Whatever
other steps Nell might take in the time she had left, there was one thing she
could do quickly and easily here. She was not entirely sure why she did it, but
some intuition told her that it might be useful; or perhaps it was an artistic
urge to make something that would live longer than she would, even if only by a
few minutes. She began by erasing all of the big advertising panels on the
upper levels of the skyscraper. Then she sketched out a simple line drawing in
primary colors: an escutcheon in blue, and
within it, a crest depicting a book drawn in red and white; crossed keys in
gold; and a seed in brown. She caused this image to be displayed on all sides
of the skyscraper, between the hundredth and two-hundredth floors.
Then
she tried to think of a way out of this place. Perhaps there were airships on
the roof. There would certainly be Fist guards up there, but perhaps through a
combination of stealth and suddenness she could overcome them. She used the
emergency stairs to make her way up to the next
floor, then the next, and then the next. Two flights above, she could hear Fist
guards posted at the roof, talking to each other and playing mah-jongg. Many
flights below, she could hear more Fists making their way up the stairs one
flight at a time, looking for her.
She
was pondering her next move when the guards above her were rudely interrupted
by orders squawking from their radios. Several Fists came charging down the
stairway, shouting excitedly. Nell, trapped in the stairwell, made herself
ready to ambush them as they came toward her, but instead they ran into the top
floor and made for the elevator lobby. Within a minute or two, an elevator had
arrived and carried them away. Nell waited for a while, listening, and could no
longer hear the contingent approaching from below.
She
climbed up the last flights of stairs and emerged onto the building's roof,
exhilarated as much by the fresh air as by the discovery that it was completely
deserted. She walked to the edge of the roof and peered down almost half a mile
to the street. In the black windows of a dead skyscraper across the way, she
could see the mirror image of Princess Nell's crest.
After
a minute or two, she noticed that something akin to a shock wave was making its
way down the street far below, moving in slow motion, covering a city block
every couple of minutes. Details were difficult to make out at this distance:
it was a highly organized group of pedestrians, all wearing the same generally
dark clothing, ramming its way through the mob of refugees, forcing the
panicked barbarians toward the picket line of the Fists or sideways into the
lobbies of the dead buildings.
Nell
was transfixed for several minutes by this sight. Then she happened to glance
down a different street and saw the same phenomenon there.
She
made a quick circuit of the building's roof. All in all, several columns were
advancing inexorably on the foundations of the building where Nell stood.
In
time, one of these columns broke through the last of the obstructing refugees
and reached the edge of the broad open plaza that surrounded the foot of Nell's
building, where it faced off against the Fist defenses. The column stopped
abruptly at this point and waited for a few minutes, collecting itself and
waiting for the other columns to catch up.
Nell
had supposed at first that these columns might be Fist reinforcements
converging on this building, which was clearly intended to be the headquarters
of their final assault on the Coastal Republic. But it soon became evident that
these newcomers had arrived for other purposes. After a few minutes of
unbearable tension had gone by in nearly perfect silence, the columns suddenly,
on the same unheard signal, erupted into the plaza. As they debouched from the
narrow streets, they spread out into many-pronged formations, arranging
themselves with the precision of a professional drill team, and then charged
forward into the suddenly panicked and disorganized Fists, throwing up a
tremendous battle-cry.
When
that sound echoed up two hundred stories to Nell's ears, she felt her hair
standing on end, because it was not the deep lusty roar of grown men but the
fierce thrill of thousands of young girls, sharp and penetrating as the skirl
of massed bagpipes.
It
was Nell's tribe, and they had come for their leader. Nell spun on her heel and
made for the stairway.
By
the time she had reached ground level and burst out, somewhat unwisely, into
the building's lobby, the girls had breached the walls of the building in
several places and rushed in upon the remaining defenders. They moved in groups
of four. One girl (the largest) would rush toward an opponent, holding a
pointed bamboo stick aimed at his heart. While his attention was thus fixed,
two other girls (the smallest) would converge on him from the sides. Each girl
would hug one of his legs and, acting together, they would lift him off the
ground. The fourth girl (the fastest) would by this point have circled all the
way round and would come in from behind, driving a knife or other weapon into
the victim's back. During the half-dozen or so applications of this technique
that Nell witnessed, it never failed, and none of the girls ever suffered more
than the odd bruise or scrape.
Suddenly
she felt a moment of wild panic as she thought they were doing the same to her;
but after she had been lifted into the air, no attack came from front or back,
though many girls rushed in from all sides, each adding her small strength to
the paramount goal of hoisting Nell high into the air. Even as the last
remnants of the Fists were being hunted down and destroyed in the nooks and
corners of the lobby, Nell was being borne on the shoulders of her little
sisters out the front doors of the building and into the plaza, where something
like a hundred thousand girls- Nell could not count all the regiments and
brigades- collapsed
to their knees in unison, as though struck down by a divine wind, and presented
her their
bamboo stakes, pole knives, lead pipes, and nunchuks. The provisional
commanders of her divisions stood foremost, as did her provisional ministers of
defense, of state, and of research and development, all of them bowing to Nell,
not with a Chinese bow or a Victorian one but something they'd come up with
that was in between.
Nell
should have been tongue-tied and paralyzed with astonishment, but she was not;
for the first time in her life she understood why she'd been put on the earth
and felt comfortable with her position. One moment, her life had been a
meaningless abortion, and the next it all made glorious sense. She began to
speak, the words rushing from her mouth as easily as if she had been reading
them from the pages of the Primer. She accepted the allegiance of the Mouse
Army, complimented them on their great deeds, and swept her arm across the
plaza, over the heads of her little sisters, toward the thousands upon
thousands of stranded sojourners from New Atlantis, Nippon, Israel, and all of
the other Outer Tribes. "Our first duty is to protect these," she
said. "Show me the condition of the city and all those in it."
They
wanted to carry her, but she jumped to the stones of the plaza and strode away
from the building, toward her ranks, which parted to make way for her. The
streets of Pudong were filled with hungry and terrified refugees, and through
them, in simple peasant clothes streaked with the blood of herself and of
others, broken shackles dangling from her wrists, followed by her generals and
ministers, walked the barbarian Princess with her book and her sword.
Carl
Hollywood takes a stroll to the waterfront.
Carl
Hollywood was awakened by a ringing in his ears and a burning in his cheek that
turned out to be an inch-long fragment of plate glass driven into his flesh.
When he sat up, his bed made clanking and crashing noises, shedding a heavy
burden of shattered glass, and a foetid exhalation from the wrecked windows
blew over his face. Old hotels had their charms, but disadvantages too-such as
windowpanes made out of antique materials.
Fortunately
some old Wyoming instinct had caused him to leave his boots next to the bed the
night before. He inverted each one and carefully probed it for broken glass
before he pulled it on. Only when he had put on all of his clothes and gathered
his things together did he go to look out the window.
His
hotel was near the Huang Pu waterfront. Looking across the river, he could see
that great patches of Pudong had gone black against the indigo sky of predawn.
A few buildings, connected to the indigenous Feeds, were still lit up. On this
side of the river the situation was not so simple; Shanghai, unlike Pudong, had
lived through many wars and was therefore made to be robust: the city was rife
with secret power sources, old diesel generators, private Sources and Feeds,
water tanks and cisterns. People still raised chickens for food in the shadow
of the Hongkong & Shanghai Banking Corporation. Shanghai would weather the
onslaught of the Fists much better than Pudong.
But
as a white person, Carl Hollywood might not weather it very well at all. It was
better to be across the river, in Pudong, with the rest of the Outer Tribes.
From
here to the waterfront was about three blocks; but since this was Shanghai,
those three blocks were fraught with what in any other city would be three
miles' worth of complications. The main problem was going to be Fists; he could
already hear the cries of "Sha! Sha!" boiling up from
the streets, and shining a pocket torch through the bars of his balcony, he
could see many Fists, emboldened by the destruction of the foreign Feeds,
running around with their scarlet girdles and headbands exposed to the world.
If
he weren't six and a half feet tall and blue-eyed, he'd probably try to
disguise himself as Chinese and slink to the waterfront, and it probably
wouldn't work. He went through his closet and hauled out his big duster, which
swept nearly to his ankles. It was proof against bullets and most nanotech
projectiles.
There
was a long item of luggage he had thrown up on the closet shelf unopened.
Hearing the reports of trouble, he had taken the precaution of bringing these
relics with him: an engraved lever-action .44 rifle with low-tech iron sights
and, as a last-ditch sort of thing, a Colt revolver. These were unnecessarily
glorious weapons, but he had long ago gotten rid of any of his guns that did not
have historical or artistic value.
Two
gunshots sounded from within the building, very close to him.
Moments later, someone knocked at his door. Carl wrapped his duster around him,
in case someone decided to fire through the door, and peered out through
the peephole. To his surprise, he saw a white-haired Anglo gentleman
with a handlebar mustache, gripping a semiautomatic. Carl had
met him yesterday in the hotel bar; he was here trying to clear up
some kind of business before the fall of Shanghai.
He
opened the door. The two men regarded each other briefly.
"One
might think we had come for an antique weapons convention," the gentleman
said through his mustache. "Say, I'm frightfully sorry to have disturbed
you, but I thought you might like to know that there are Fists in the
hotel." He gestured down the corridor with his gun. Carl poked his head
out and discovered a dead bellboy sprawled out in front of an open door, still
clutching a long knife.
"As
it happens, I was already up," said Carl Hollywood, "and
contemplating a bit of a stroll to the waterfront. Care to join me?"
"Delighted.
Colonel Spence, Royal Joint Forces, Retired."
"Carl
Hollywood."
On
their way down the fire stairs, Spence killed two more hotel employees whom he
had, on somewhat ambiguous grounds, identified as Fists. Carl was skeptical in
both cases until Spence ripped their shirts open to reveal the scarlet girdles
beneath. "It's not that they're really Fists, you see," Spence
explained jovially. "Just that when the Fists come, this sort of nonsense
becomes terribly fashionable."
After
exchanging some more self-consciously dry humor about whether they should
settle their bills before departure, and how much you were supposed to tip a
bellboy who came after you with a carving knife, they agreed it might be safest
to exit through the kitchens. Half a dozen dead Fists littered the floor here,
their bodies striped with the marks of cookie-cutters. Arriving at the exit
they found two fellow guests, both Israelis, staring at them with the fixed
gaze that implies the presence of a skull gun. Seconds later, they were joined
by two Zulu management consultants carrying long, telescoping poles with
nanoblades affixed to the ends, which they used to destroy all of the light
fixtures in their path. It took Carl a minute to appreciate their plan: They
were all about to step out into a dark alley, and they would need their night
vision.
The
door began to shudder in its frame and make tremendous booming
noises. Carl stepped forward and peered through the peephole;
it was a couple of urban homeboy types having at it with a
fire axe. He stepped away from the door, shrugging the rifle from his shoulder,
levered in a shell, and fired it through the door, aiming away
from the youths. The booming stopped abruptly, and they heard
the head of the axe ringing like a bell as it fell to the pavement.
One
of the Zulus kicked the door open and leapt into the alley, whirling his blade
in a vast, fatal arc like the blade of a helicopter, slicing through a garbage
can but not hitting any people. When Carl came piling through the door a few
seconds later, he saw several young toughs scattering down the alley, dodging
among several dozen refugees, loiterers, and street people who pointed
helpfully at their receding backsides, making sure it was understood that their
only reason for being in this alley at this time was to act as a sort of block
watch on behalf of the gwailo visitors.
Without
talking about it much, they fell into an improvised formation there in the
alley, where they had a bit of room to maneuver. The Zulus went in front,
whirling their poles over their heads and hollering some kind of traditional
war-cry that drove a good many of the Chinese out of their path. One of the
Jews went behind the Zulus, using his skull gun to pick off any Fists who
charged them. Then came Carl Hollywood, who, with his height and his rifle,
seemed to have ended up with the job of long-range reconnaissance and defense.
Colonel Spence and the other Israeli brought up the rear, walking backward most
of the time.
This
got them down the alley without much trouble, but that was the easy part; when
they reached the street, they were no longer the only focus of action but mere
motes in a sandstorm. Colonel Spence discharged most of a clip into the air;
the explosions were nearly inaudible in the chaos, but the gouts of light from
the weapon's barrel drew some attention, and people in their immediate vicinity
actually got out of their way. Carl saw one of the Zulus do something very ugly
with his long weapon and looked away; then he reflected that it was the Zulus'
job to break trail and his to concentrate on more distant threats. He turned
slowly around as he walked, trying to ignore the threat that was just beyond
arm's length and to get a view of the larger scene.
They
had walked into a completely disorganized street fight between the Coastal
Republic forces and the Fists of Righteous Harmony, which was not made any
clearer by the fact that many of the Coastals had defected by tying strips of
red cloth round the arms of their uniforms, and that many of the Fists were not
wearing any markings at all, and that many others who had no affiliation were
taking advantage of the situation to loot stores and were being fought
off by private guards; many of the looters were themselves being
mugged by organized gangs.
They
were on Nanjing Road, a broad thoroughfare leading straight to the Bund and the
Huang Pu, lined with four- and five-story buildings so that many windows looked
out over them, any one of which might have contained a sniper.
A
few of them did contain snipers, Carl realized, but many of these were shooting
across the street at each other, and the ones who were firing into the street
could have been shooting at anyone. Carl saw one fellow with a laser-sighted
rifle emptying clip after clip into the street, and he reckoned that this
constituted a clear and present danger; so at a moment when their forward
progress had stalled momentarily, while the Zulus were waiting for an
especially desperate Coastal/Fist melee to resolve itself ahead of them, Carl
planted his feet, swung his rifle up to his shoulder, took aim, and fired. In
the dim fire- and torch-light rising up from the street, he could see powder
explode from the stone window frame just above the sniper's head. The sniper
cringed, then began to sweep the street with his laser, looking for the source
of the bullet.
Someone
jostled Carl from behind. It was Spence, who had been hit with something and
lost the use of his leg. A Fist was in the Colonel's face. Carl rammed the butt
of the rifle into the man's chin, sending him backward into the melee with his
eyes rolled up into their sockets. Then he levered in another shell, raised the
weapon to his shoulder again, and tried to find the window with his sniper
friend.
He
was still there, tracing a ruby-red line patiently across the boiling surface
of the crowd. Carl took in a deep breath, released it slowly, prayed that no
one would bump into him, and squeezed the trigger. The rifle butted him hard in
the shoulder, and at the same moment he saw the sniper's rifle fall out of the
window, spinning end over end, the laser beam sweeping through the smoke and
steam like the trace on a radar scope.
The
whole thing had probably been a bad idea; if any of the other snipers had seen
this, they'd be wanting to get rid of him, whatever their affiliation. Carl
levered in another shell and then let the rifle dangle from one hand, pointed
down at the street, where it wouldn't be so conspicuous. He got the other hand
into Spence's armpit and helped him continue down the street. The ends of
Spence's mustache wiggled as he continued with his endless and unflappable line
of patter; Carl couldn't hear a word but nodded encouragingly.
Not even the most literal-minded neo-Victorian could take that stiff-upper-lip
thing seriously; Carl realized now that it was all done with a nod and a wink.
It was not Colonel Spence's way of saying that he wasn't scared; it was,
rather, a code of sorts, a face-saving way for him to admit that he was
terrified half out of his wits, and for Carl to admit likewise.
Several
Fists rushed them at once; the Zulus got two, the leading Israeli got one, but
another came in and bounced his knife from the Israeli's knife-proof jacket.
Carl raised the rifle, clamping the stock between his arm and his body, and
fired from the hip. The recoil nearly knocked the weapon out of his hand; the
Fist practically did a backflip.
He
couldn't believe they had not reached the waterfront yet; they had been doing
this for hours. Something prodded him hard in the back, causing him to stumble
forward; he looked back over his shoulder and saw a man trying to run him
through with a bayonet. Another man ran up and tried to wrench the rifle out of
Carl's hand.
Carl,
too startled to respond for a moment, finally let go of Spence, reached across,
and poked him in the eyes. A great explosion sounded in his ear, and he looked
over to see that Spence had twisted himself round and shot the attacker who had
the bayonet. The Israeli who had been guarding their rear had simply vanished.
Carl raised his rifle toward the people who were converging on them from the
rear; that and Spence's pistol opened up a gratifying clear space in their
wake. But something more powerful and terrifying was driving more people toward
them from the side, and as Carl tried to see what it was, he realized that a
score of Chinese people were now between him and the Zulus. The looks on their
faces were pained and panicky; they were not attacking, they were being
attacked.
Suddenly
all of the Chinese were gone. Carl and Colonel Spence found themselves
commingled with a dozen or so Boers- not just men, but women and children and
elders too, a whole laager on the move. All of them surged forward
instinctively and reabsorbed the vanguard of Carl's group. They were a block
from the waterfront.
The
Boer leader, a stout man of about fifty, somehow identified Carl
Hollywood as the leader, and they quickly redeployed what forces
they had for the final push to the waterfront. The only thing Carl
remembered of this conversation was the man saying, "Good. You've got
Zulus."
The
Boers in the vanguard were carrying some sort of automatic weapons firing tiny
nanotech high-explosive rounds, which, indiscriminately used, could have turned
the crowd into a rampart of chewed meat; but they fired the weapons in
disciplined bursts even when the charging Fists penetrated to within a sword's
length. From time to time, one of them would raise his head and sweep a row of
windows with continuous automatic fire; riflemen would tumble out of the
darkness and spin down into the street like rag dolls. The Boers must be
wearing some kind of night vision stuff.
Colonel
Spence suddenly felt very heavy on Carl's arm, and he realized that the Colonel
was unconscious, or close to it. Carl slung the rifle over his shoulder, bent
down, and picked up Spence in a fireman's carry.
They
arrived at the waterfront and established a defensive perimeter. The next question
was: Were there any boats? But this part of China was half underwater and
seemed to have as many boats as bicycles. Most of them seemed to have found
their way downstream to Shanghai during the gradual onslaught of the Fists. So
when they arrived at the water's edge, they discovered thousands of people with
boats, eager to transact some business. But as the Boer leader rightly pointed
out, it would be suicide to split up the group among several tiny, unpowered
craft; the Fists were paying high bounties for the heads of barbarians. Much
safer to wait for one of the larger vessels out in the channel to make its way
to shore, where they could cut a deal with the captain and climb on board as a
group.
Several
vessels, ranging from motor yachts to fishing trawlers, were already vying to
be the first to make that deal, shouldering their way inexorably through the
organic chaff of small boats crowded along the shore.
A
rhythmic beat had begun to resonate in their lungs. At first it sounded like
drumbeats, but as it drew closer it developed into the sound of hundreds or
thousands of human voices chanting in unison: "Sha! Sha! Sha! Sha!" Nanjing
Road began to vomit forth a great crowd of people shoved out onto the Bund like
exhaust pushed out by a piston. They cleared out of the way, dispersing up and
down the riverfront.
An
army of hoplites-
professional warriors in battle armor- was marching toward the river, a score
abreast, completely filling the width of Nanjing Road. These were not Fists;
they were the regular army, the vanguard of the Celestial Kingdom, and Carl
Hollywood was appalled to realize that the only thing now standing between
them and their three-decade march to the banks of the Huang Pu was Carl
Hollywood, his .44, and a handful of lightly armed civilians.
A
nice-looking yacht had penetrated to within a few meters of the shore. The
remaining Israeli, who was fluent in Mandarin, had already commenced
negotiations with its captain.
One
of the Boers, a wiry grandmother with a white bun on her head and a black
bonnet pinned primly over that, conferred briefly with the Boer leader. He
nodded once, then caught her face in his hands and kissed her.
She
turned her back on the waterfront and began to march toward the head of the
advancing column of Celestials. The few Chinese crazy enough to remain along
the waterfront, respecting her age and possible madness, parted to make way for
her.
The
negotiations over the boat appeared to have hit some kind of snag. Carl
Hollywood could see individual hoplites vaulting two and three stories into the
air, crashing headfirst into the windows of the Cathay Hotel.
The
Boer grandmother doggedly made her way forward until she was standing in the
middle of the Bund. The leader of the Celestial column stepped toward her,
covering her with some kind of projectile weapon built into one arm of his suit
and waving her aside with the other. The Boer woman carefully got down on both
knees in the middle of the road, clasped her hands together in prayer, and
bowed her head.
Then
she became a pearl of white light in the mouth of the dragon. In an instant
this pearl grew to the size of an airship. Carl Hollywood had the presence of
mind to close his eyes and turn his head away, but he didn't have time to throw
himself down; the shock wave did that, slamming him full-length into the
granite paving-stones of the waterfront promenade and tearing about half of his
clothes from his body.
Some
time passed before he was really conscious; he felt it must
have been half an hour, though debris was still raining down around
him, so five seconds was probably more like it. The hull of the
white yacht had been caved in on one side and most of its crew flung
into the river. But a minute later, a fishing trawler pulled up and took the barbarians
on board with only perfunctory negotiations. Carl nearly forgot about
Spence and almost left him there; he found that he no longer had the
strength to raise the Colonel's body from the ground, so he dragged him on
board with the
help of a couple of young Boers- identical twins, he
realized, maybe
thirteen years old. As they headed across the Huang Pu, Carl Hollywood
huddled on a piled-up fishing net, limp and weak as though his bones had all
been shattered, staring at the hundred-foot crater in the center of the
Bund and looking into the rooms of the Cathay Hotel, which had been
neatly cross-sectioned by the bomb in the Boer woman's body.
Within
fifteen minutes, they were free on the streets of Pudong. Carl
Hollywood found his way to the local New Atlantan encampment,
reported for duty, and spent a few minutes composing a
letter to Colonel Spence's widow; the Colonel had bled to death from
a leg wound during the voyage across the river. Then he spread
his pages out on the ground before him and returned to the pursuit that
had occupied him in his hotel room for the past few days, namely, the search
for Miranda. He had begun
this search at the bidding of Lord Finkle-McGraw, pursued it
with mounting
passion over the last few days as he had begun to understand how
much he'd been missing Miranda, and was now pressing the work
desperately; for he had realized that in this search might
reside the only hope for the salvation of the tens of thousands of
Outer Tribesmen now encamped upon the dead streets of the Pudong
Economic Zone.
Final
onslaught of the Fists; victory of the
Celestial Kingdom; refugees in the
domain of the Drummers; Miranda.
The Huang Pu
stopped the advance of the Celestial Army toward the sea, but having crossed
the river farther inland, it continued to move northward up the Pudong
Peninsula at a walking pace, driving before it flocks of starving peasants much
like the ones who had been their harbingers in Shanghai.
The
occupants of Pudong-
a mixture of barbarians, Coastal Republic Chinese who feared
persecution at the hands of their Celestial cousins, and Nell's little sisters,
a third of a million strong and constituting a new phyle unto themselves- were
thus caught between the Celestials on the south, the Huang Pu on the west, the
Yangtze on the north, and the ocean on the east. All the links to the artificial
islands offshore had been cut.
The
geotects of Imperial Tectonics, in their Classical and Gothic temples high atop
New Chusan, made various efforts to build a temporary bridge between their
island and Pudong. It was simple enough to throw a truss or floating bridge
across the gap, but the Celestials now had the technology to blow such things
up faster than they could be constructed. On the second day of the siege, they
caused the island to reach toward Pudong with a narrow pseudopod of smart
coral, rooted on the ocean floor. But there were very simple and clear limits
to how fast such things could be grown, and as the refugees continued to throng
the narrow defiles of downtown Pudong, bearing increasingly dire reports of the
Celestials' advance, it became evident to everyone that the land bridge would
not be completed in time.
The
encampments of the various tribes moved north and east as they were forced out
of downtown by the pressure of the refugees and fear of the Celestials, until
several miles of shoreline had been claimed and settled by the various groups.
The southern end, along the seashore, was anchored by the New Atlantans, who
had prepared themselves to fend off any assaults along the beach. The chain of
camps extended northward from there, curving along the ocean and then eastward
along the banks of the Yangtze to the opposite end, which was anchored by
Nippon against any onslaught across the tidal flats. The entire center of the
line was guarded against a direct frontal assault by Princess Nell's tribe/army
of twelve-year-old girls, who were gradually trading in their pointed sticks
for more modern weapons compiled from portable Sources owned by the Nipponese
and the New Atlantans.
Carl
Hollywood had been assigned to military duty as soon as he reported to the New
Atlantan authorities, despite his efforts to convince his superiors that he
might be of more use pursuing his own line of research. But then a message came
through from the highest levels of Her Majesty's government. The first part of
it praised Carl Hollywood for his "heroic" actions in getting the
late Colonel Spence out of Shanghai and suggested that a knighthood might be
waiting for him if he ever got out of Pudong. The second part of it named him
as a special envoy of sorts to Her Royal Highness, Princess Nell.
Reading
the message, Carl was momentarily stunned that his Sovereign
was according equivalent status to Nell; but upon some reflection he saw that
it was simultaneously just and pragmatic.
During
his time in the streets of Pudong, he had seen enough of the Mouse Army (as
they called themselves, for some reason) to know that they did, in fact,
constitute a new ethnic group of sorts, and that Nell was their undisputed
leader. Victoria's esteem for the new sovereign was well-founded. At the same
time, that the Mouse Army was currently helping to protect many New Atlantans
from being taken hostage, or worse, by the Celestial Kingdom made such
recognition an eminently pragmatic step.
It
fell to Carl Hollywood, who had been a member of his adopted tribe only for a
few months, to forward Her Majesty's greetings and felicitations to Princess
Nell, a girl about whom he had heard much from Miranda but whom he had never
met and could hardly fathom. It did not take very deep reflection to see the
hand of Lord Alexander Chung-Sik Finkle-McGraw in all this.
Freed
from day-to-day responsibilities, he walked north from the New Atlantan camp on
the third day of the siege, following the tideline. Every few yards he came to
a tribal border and presented a visa that, under the provisions of the Common
Economic Protocol, was supposed to afford him free passage. Some of the tribal
zones were only a meter or two wide, but their owners jealously guarded their
access to the sea, sitting up all night staring out into the surf, waiting for
some unspecified form of salvation. Carl Hollywood strolled through encampments
of Ashantis, Kurds, Armenians, Navajos, Tibetans, Senderos, Mormons, Jesuits,
Lapps, Pathans, Tutsis, the First Distributed Republic and its innumerable
offshoots, Heartlanders, Irish, and one or two local CryptNet cells who had now
been flushed into the open. He discovered synthetic phyles he had never heard
of, but this did not surprise him.
Finally
he came to a generous piece of beach frontage guarded by twelve-year-old
Chinese girls. At this point he presented his credentials from Her Majesty
Queen Victoria II, which were extremely impressive, so much so that many of the
girls gathered around to marvel at them. Carl Hollywood was surprised to hear
them all speaking perfect English in a rather high Victorian style. They seemed
to prefer it when discussing things in the abstract, but when it came to
practical matters they reverted to Mandarin.
He
was ushered through the lines into the Mouse Army's encampment, which was
mostly an open-air hospice for ragged, sick and injured discards from other
phyles. The ones who weren't flat on their backs, being tended to by Mouse
Nurses, were sitting on the sand, hugging their knees, staring out across the
water in the direction
of New Chusan. The slope of the land was quite gentle here, and a person could
wade for a good long stone's throw into the waves.
One
person had: a young woman whose long hair fell about her shoulders
and trailed in the water around her waist. She stood with her
back to the shore, holding a book in her hands, and did not move for
a long time.
"What
is she doing out there?" Carl Hollywood said to his Mouse
Army escort, who had five little stars on her lapels. In Pudong,
he had figured out their insignia: Five stars meant that she was
in charge of
(4)5 people, or 1,024. A regimental commander, then.
"She
is calling to her mother."
"Her
mother?"
"Her
mother is beneath the waves," the woman said. "She is a Queen."
"Queen
of what?"
"She
is the Queen of the Drummers who live beneath the sea."
And
then Carl Hollywood knew that Princess Nell was searching for
Miranda too. He threw his long coat down on the sand and
sloshed out Into the Pacific, accompanied by the officer, and remained
at a judicious distance, partly to show due respect, and partly
because Nell had a sword in her waistband. Her face was inclined over the pages
of her book like a focusing lens, and he half expected the
pages to curl and smoke under her gaze.
She
looked up from the book after some time. The officer spoke
to her in a low voice. Carl Hollywood did not know the protocol
when one was up to midthigh in the East China Sea, so he stepped
forward, bowed as low as he could under the circumstances, and
handed Princess Nell the scroll from Queen Victoria II.
She
accepted it wordlessly and read it through, then went back to
the top and read it again. Then she handed it to her officer, who rolled
it up carefully. Princess Nell stared out over the waves for a while,
then looked Carl in the eye and said quietly, "I accept your credentials
and request that you convey my warm thanks and regard to
Her Majesty, along with my apologies that circumstances prevent me
from composing a more formal response to her kind letter, which
at any other time would naturally be my highest priority."
"I
shall do so at the earliest opportunity, Your Majesty," Carl Hollywood
said. Hearing these words, Princess Nell looked a bit unsteady
and shifted her feet to maintain her balance; though this might have been the
undertow. Carl realized that she had never been addressed in
this way before; that, until she had been recognized in this
fashion by Victoria, she had never fully realized her position.
"The
woman you seek is named Miranda," he said.
All
thoughts of crowns, queens, and armies seemed to vanish from
Nell's mind, and she was just a young lady again, looking for-what?
Her mother? Her teacher? Her friend? Carl Hollywood spoke
to Nell in a low gentle voice, projecting just enough to be heard
over the strumming of the waves. He spoke to her of Miranda, and
of the book, and of the old stories about the deeds of Princess Nell,
which he had watched from the wings, as it were, by looking in
on Miranda's feed many years ago at the Parnasse.
Over
the next two days many of the refugees on the shore got away
on air or surface ships, but a few of these were destroyed in spectacular
fashion before they could get out of range of the Celestial
Kingdom's weaponry. Three-quarters of the Mouse Army evacuated
itself through the technique of stripping naked and walking into the ocean en
masse, linked arm-in-arm into a flexible and unsinkable raft that
gradually, slowly, exhaustingly paddled across the sea to New
Chusan. Rumors spread rapidly up and down the length of the coast; the
tribal borders seemed to accelerate rather than hinder this process as
interfaces between languages and cultures spawned new variants of each rumor,
tailored to the local
fears and prejudices. The most popular rumor was that the
Celestials planned
to give everyone safe passage and that the attacks were being
carried out by intelligent mines that had run out of control or, at
worst, by a few fanatical commanders who were defying orders and who would soon
be brought to heel. There was a second, stranger rumor that gave
some people an incentive to remain on the shore and not entrust
themselves to the evacuation ships: A young woman with a book and a
sword was creating magical tunnels from out of the deep that would
carry them all away to safety. Such ideas were naturally met with skepticism
among more rational cultures, but on the morning of the sixth day of the
siege, the neap tide
carried a peculiar omen up onto the sand: a harvest of
translucent eggs
the size of beach balls. 'When their fragile shells were torn open,
they were found to contain sculpted backpacks pierced with a fractal
pattern of delicate louvers. A stiff hose extended from the top and
connected to a facemask. Under the circumstances, it was not difficult
to divine the use of these objects. People strapped the packs onto
their backs, slipped on the facemasks, and plunged into the water. The
backpacks acted like the gills of a fish and provided a steady supply of
oxygen.
The
gill packs did not carry any tribal identification; they merely
washed up onto the beach, by the thousands, with each high tide,
cast up organically by the sea. The Atlantans, Nipponese, and others
each assumed that they had come from their own tribes. But many
perceived a connection between this and the rumors of Princess
Nell and the tunnels beneath the waves. Such people migrated
toward the center of the Pudong coast, where the tiny, weak,
and flaky tribes had all been concentrated. This contraction of the
defensive line became inevitable as the number of defenders was shrunk
by the evacuation. Borders between tribes became unstable and finally
dissolved, and on the fifth day of the siege the barbarians had
all become fungible and formed into a huddle on the uttermost point
of the Pudong Peninsula, several tens of thousands of persons packed
into an area not exceeding a few city blocks. Beyond that were
the Chinese refugees, mostly persons strongly identified with the Coastal
Republic who knew that they could never blend into the Celestial
Kingdom. These did not dare to invade the camp of the refugees,
who were still armed with powerful weapons, but by advancing
an inch at a time and never retreating, they insensibly shrank
the perimeter so that many barbarians found themselves standing knee-deep in
the ocean.
The
rumor spread that the woman called Princess Nell had a wizard
and adviser named Carl, who had appeared out of nowhere one
day knowing nearly everything that Princess Nell did, and a few things
she didn't. This man, according to rumor, had in his possession
a number of magic keys that gave him and the Princess power to speak with the
Drummers who lived beneath the waves.
On
the seventh day, Princess Nell walked naked into the sea at dawn,
vanished beneath waves turned pink by the sunrise, and did not
return. Carl followed her a minute later, though unlike the Princess
he took the precaution of wearing a gill pack. Then all of the
barbarians stepped into the ocean, leaving their filthy clothes strewn across
the beach, relinquishing the last foothold of Chinese soil
to the Celestial Kingdom. They all walked into the ocean until their
heads disappeared. The rearguard was made up of the last part of
the Mouse Army, which charged naked into the surf, linked up into
a raft, and made its way slowly out to sea, nudging a few sick and wounded
along with them in makeshift rafts. By the time the last
girl's foot broke contact with the sandy ocean bottom, the end of the land had
already been claimed by a man with a scarlet girdle round
his waist, who stood on the shore laughing to think that now the
Middle Kingdom was at last a whole country once more.
The
last foreign devil to depart from the Middle Kingdom was a
blond Victorian gentleman with gray eyes, who stood in the waves for
some time looking back over Pudong before he turned around and
continued his descent. As the sea rose over him, it lifted the bowler
from his head, and the hat continued to bob on the tide for some minutes as the
Chinese detonated strings of firecrackers on the shore and tiny
shreds of the red paper wrappers drifted over the sea like
cherry petals. .
. .
On one of her
forays into the surf, Nell had encountered a man- a
Drummer- who
had come swimming out of the deep, naked except for a gill
pack. This should have astonished her; instead, she had known he
was out there before she saw him, and when he came close, she
could feel things happening in her mind that were coming in from
outside. There was something in her brain that made her connected to
the Drummers.
Nell
had drawn up some general plans and given them to her engineers for further
elaboration, and they had given them to Carl, who had taken them to a
functioning portable M.C. in the New Atlantan camp and compiled a little system
for examining and manipulating nanotechnological devices.
In
the dark, motes of light sparkled in Nell's flesh, like airplane beacons in the
night sky. They scraped one of these away with a scalpel and examined it. They
found similar devices circulating in her bloodstream. These things, they realized,
must have been put into Nell's blood when she was raped. It was clear that the
sparkling lights in Nell's flesh were beacons signaling to others across the
gulf that separates each of us from our neighbors.
Carl
opened one of the things from Nell's blood and found a rod logic system inside,
and a tape drive containing some few gigabytes of data. The data was divided
into discrete chunks, each one of which was separately encrypted. Carl tried
all of the keys that he had obtained from John Percival Hackworth and found
that one of them-
Hackworth's key- unlocked some of the chunks. When he
examined the decrypted contents, he discovered fragments of a plan for some
kind of nanotechnological device.
They
drew blood from several volunteers and found that one of them had the same
little devices in his blood. When they put two of these devices in close
proximity, they locked onto one another using lidar and embraced, exchanging
data and performing some sort of computation that threw off waste heat.
The
devices lived in the blood of the human race like viruses and passed from one
person to the next during sex or any other exchange of bodily fluids; they were
smart packets of data, just like the ones traversing the media network, and by
mating with one another in the blood, they formed a vast system of
communication, parallel to and probably linked with the dry Net of optical
lines and copper wires. Like the dry Net, the wet Net could be used for doing
computations- for
running programs. And it was now clear that John Percival Hackworth was using
it for exactly that, running some kind of vast distributed program of his own
devising. He was designing something.
"Hackworth
is the Alchemist," Nell said, "and he is using the wet
Net to design the Seed." . . .
Half a kilometer
offshore, the tunnels began. Some of them must have been there for many years,
for they were rough as tree trunks, encrusted with barnacles and algae. But it
was clear that in the last few days they had forked and split organically, like
roots questing for moisture; clean new tubes forced their way out through the
encrustation and ran uphill toward the tide line, splitting again and again
until many orifices presented themselves to the refugees.
The
shoots terminated in lips that grabbed people and drew them in, like the tip of
an elephant's trunk, accepting the refugees with a minimum of seawater. The
tunnels were lined with mediatronic images urging them forward into the deep;
it always seemed as though a warm dry well-lit space awaited them just a bit
farther down the line. But the light moved along with the viewer so that they
were drawn down the tunnels in a kind of peristalsis. The refugees came to the
main tunnel, the old encrusted one, and continued moving on, now packed
together in a solid mass, until they were disgorged into a large open cavity
far below the surface of the ocean. Here, food and fresh water awaited them and
they ate hungrily.
Two
people did not eat or drink except from the provisions they had brought with
them; these were Nell and Carl. After they had discovered the nanosites in
Nell's flesh that made her a part of the Drummers, Nell had stayed up through
the night and designed a counternanosite, one that would seek out and destroy
the Drummers' devices. She and Carl had both put these devices into their
bloodstreams, so that Nell was now free of the Drummers' influences and both of
them would remain so. Nevertheless they did not press their luck by eating of
the Drummers' food, and it was well, because after their meal the refugees
became drowsy and lay down on the floor and slept, steam rising from their
naked flesh, and before long the sparks of light began to come on, like stars
coming out as the sun goes down. After two hours the stars had merged together
into a continuous surface of flickering light, bright enough to read by, as if
a full moon were shining down upon the bodies of slumbering revelers in a
meadow.
The
refugees, now Drummers, all slept and dreamed the same dream, and the abstract
lights flickering across the mediatronic lining of the cavern began to coalesce
and organize themselves into dark memories from deep within their unconscious
mind. Nell began to see things from her own life, experiences long since
assimilated into the words of the Primer but here shown once more in a raw and
terrifying form. She closed her eyes; but the walls made sounds too, from which
she could not escape.
Carl
Hollywood was monitoring the signals passing through the walls of the tunnels,
avoiding the emotional content of these images by reducing them to binary
digits and trying to puzzle out their internal codes and protocols.
"We
have to go," Nell said finally, and Carl arose and followed her through a
randomly chosen exit. The tunnel forked and forked again, and Nell chose forks
by intuition. Sometimes the tunnels would widen into great caverns full of
luminescent Drummers, sleeping or fucking or simply pounding on the walls. The
caverns always had many outlets, which forked and forked and converged upon
other caverns, the web of tunnels so vast and complicated that it seemed to
fill the entire ocean, like neural bodies with their dendrites knitting and
ramifying to occupy the whole volume of the skull.
A
low drumming sound had been skirting the lower limits of perceptibility ever
since they had left the cavern where the refugees slumbered. Nell had first
taken it for the beat of submarine currents on the walls of the tunnel, but as
it grew stronger, she knew that it was the Drummers talking to
each other, convened in some central cavern sending messages out across their
network. Realizing this, she felt a sense of urgency verging on panic that they
find the central assembly, and for some time they ran through the perfectly
bewildering three-dimensional maze, trying to locate the epicenter of the
drumming.
Carl
Hollywood could not run as quickly as the nimble Nell and eventually lost her
at a fork in the tunnels. From there he made his own judgments, and after some
time had passed-
it was impossible to know how long- his
tunnel dovetailed with another that was carrying a stream of Drummers downward
toward the floor of the ocean. Carl recognized some of these Drummers as former
refugees from the beaches at Pudong.
The
sound of the drumming did not build gradually but exploded to a deafening,
mind-dissolving roar as Carl emerged into a vast cavern, a conical amphitheatre
that must have been a kilometer wide, roofed with a storm of mediatronic images
that played across a vast dome. The Drummers, visible by the flickering light
of the overhead media storm and by their own internal light, moved up and down
the slopes of the cone in a kind of convection pattern. Caught up in an eddy,
Carl was transported down toward the center and found that an orgy of fantastic
dimensions was underway. The steam of vaporized sweat rose from the center of
the pit in a cloud. The bodies pressing against Carl's naked skin were so hot
that they almost burned him, as if everyone were running a high fever, and in
some logical abstract compartment of his mind that was, somehow, continuing to
run along its own reasonable course, he realized why: They were exchanging
packets of data with their bodily fluids, the packets were mating in their
blood, the rod logic throwing off heat that drove up their core temperature.
The
orgy went on for hours, but the pattern of convection gradually
slowed down and condensed into a stable arrangement, like
a circulating crowd in a theatre that settles into its assigned seats
as curtain time approaches A broad open space had formed at the
center of the pit and the innermost ring of spectators consisted of men
as if these were in some sense the winners of the enormous fornication
tournament that was nearing its final round. A lone Drummer
circulated around this innermost ring, handing something out;
the something turned out to be mediatronic condoms that glowed bright colors
when they were stripped onto the men's erect phalluses.
A
lone woman entered the ring. The floor at the absolute center of
the pit rose up beneath her feet, shoving her into the air as on an altar.
The drumming built to an unbearable crescendo and then stopped.
Then it began again a very slow steady beat and the men in the
inner circle began to dance around her. Carl Hollywood saw that the
woman in the center was
Miranda.
He
saw it all now: that the refugees had been gathered into the realm
of the Drummers for the harvest of fresh data running in their bloodstreams,
that this data had been infused into the wet Net in the course
of the great orgy, and that all of it was now going to be dumped
into Miranda, whose body would play host to the climax of some
computation that would certainly burn her alive in the process.
It
was Hackworth's doing; this was the culmination of his effort to design
the Seed, and in so doing to dissolve the foundations of New Atlantis
and Nippon and all of the societies that had grown up around
the concept of a centralized, hierarchical Feed.
A
lone figure, remarkable because her skin did not emit any light,
was fighting her way in toward the center. She burst into the inner
circle, knocking down a dancer who got in her way, and climbed
up onto the central altar where Miranda lay on her back, arms
outstretched as if crucified, her skin a galaxy of colored lights. Nell cradled
Miranda's head in her arms, bent down, and kissed her, not a soft brush
of the lips but a savage kiss with open mouth, and she bit down hard
as she did it, biting through her own lips and Miranda's so that
their blood mingled. The light shining from Miranda's body
diminished and slowly went out as the nanosites were hunted down
and destroyed by the hunter-killers that had crossed into her blood from
Nell's. Miranda came awake and arose, her arms draped weakly around Nell's
neck.
The
drumming had stopped; the Drummers all sat impassively, clearly
content to wait-
for years if necessary-for a woman who could
take Miranda's place. The light from their flesh had diminished,
and the overhead mediatron had gone dim and vague.
Carl Hollywood,
seeing at last a role for himself, stepped into the center,
got one arm under Miranda's knees and another beneath her shoulders,
and lifted her into the air. Nell turned around and led them
up out of the cavern, holding her sword out before her; but none
of the Drummers moved to stop them.
They
passed up through many tunnels, always taking the uphill fork
until they saw sunlight shining down from above through the waves,
casting lines of white light on the translucent roof. Nell severed
the tunnel behind them, wielding her sword like the sweep of
a clock's hand. The warm water rushed in on them. Nell swam up toward
the light. Miranda was not swimming strongly, and Carl was torn
between a panicky desire to reach the surface and his duty to Miranda.
Then he saw shadows descending from above, dozens of naked
girls swimming downward, garlands of silver bubbles streaming
from their mouths, their almond eyes excited and mischievous.
Carl and Miranda were gripped by many gentle hands and
borne upward into the light.
New
Chusan rose above them, a short swim away, and up on the mountain they could
hear the bells of the cathedral ringing.
ABOUT THE AUTHOR Neal Stephenson is the author
of The Diamond Age, Snow Crash, Zodiac, and The Big U
ACKNOWLEDGMENTS Jeremy Bornstein Douglas
(Carl Hollywood) Crockford K. Eric Drexier Wayne "Hank" Hansen Steve
Horst Steve Johnson Marco Kakofen Sachiko Emma Kashiwaya Kevin Kelly Alan
Moores Chris Peterson Rattana Schicketanz Dean Tribble